This is a modern-English version of To the Last Man, originally written by Grey, Zane. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.



To The Last Man


by

Zane Grey




CONTENTS

 I   II   III   IV   V   VI   VII   VIII   IX   X 
 XI   XII   XIII   XIV             



FOREWORD

It was inevitable that in my efforts to write romantic history of the great West I should at length come to the story of a feud. For long I have steered clear of this rock. But at last I have reached it and must go over it, driven by my desire to chronicle the stirring events of pioneer days.

It was bound to happen that in my attempts to write a romantic history of the great West, I would eventually encounter the story of a feud. For a long time, I avoided this possibility. But now I've reached it and must confront it, driven by my desire to document the exciting events of pioneer days.

Even to-day it is not possible to travel into the remote corners of the West without seeing the lives of people still affected by a fighting past. How can the truth be told about the pioneering of the West if the struggle, the fight, the blood be left out? It cannot be done. How can a novel be stirring and thrilling, as were those times, unless it be full of sensation? My long labors have been devoted to making stories resemble the times they depict. I have loved the West for its vastness, its contrast, its beauty and color and life, for its wildness and violence, and for the fact that I have seen how it developed great men and women who died unknown and unsung.

Even today, it's not possible to travel to the remote areas of the West without seeing how people are still influenced by a violent past. How can the truth about the West's pioneering be told if we leave out the struggles, the fights, and the bloodshed? It can't be done. How can a novel be gripping and exciting, like those times were, if it isn't filled with emotion? I've dedicated my efforts to making stories reflect the times they portray. I have loved the West for its vastness, its contrasts, its beauty, color, and life, for its wildness and violence, and for the fact that I’ve seen how it shaped great men and women who died unknown and uncelebrated.

In this materialistic age, this hard, practical, swift, greedy age of realism, it seems there is no place for writers of romance, no place for romance itself. For many years all the events leading up to the great war were realistic, and the war itself was horribly realistic, and the aftermath is likewise. Romance is only another name for idealism; and I contend that life without ideals is not worth living. Never in the history of the world were ideals needed so terribly as now. Walter Scott wrote romance; so did Victor Hugo; and likewise Kipling, Hawthorne, Stevenson. It was Stevenson, particularly, who wielded a bludgeon against the realists. People live for the dream in their hearts. And I have yet to know anyone who has not some secret dream, some hope, however dim, some storied wall to look at in the dusk, some painted window leading to the soul. How strange indeed to find that the realists have ideals and dreams! To read them one would think their lives held nothing significant. But they love, they hope, they dream, they sacrifice, they struggle on with that dream in their hearts just the same as others. We all are dreamers, if not in the heavy-lidded wasting of time, then in the meaning of life that makes us work on.

In this materialistic age, this tough, practical, fast-paced, greedy era of realism, it seems there's no place for romance writers or romance itself. For many years, everything leading up to the great war was realistic, the war itself was brutally real, and the aftermath continues in the same vein. Romance is just another word for idealism, and I argue that life without ideals isn’t worth living. Never in history have ideals been needed as desperately as they are now. Walter Scott wrote romance; so did Victor Hugo, and also Kipling, Hawthorne, and Stevenson. It was Stevenson, in particular, who fought back against the realists. People live for the dreams in their hearts. And I don’t know anyone who doesn’t have some secret dream, some hope, however faint, some story to reflect on at dusk, or some painted window leading to the soul. How strange it is to discover that realists have ideals and dreams! If you read them, you might think their lives held nothing significant. But they love, they hope, they dream, they sacrifice, and they persist with that dream in their hearts just like everyone else. We are all dreamers; if not in the slow, heavy-lidded passing of time, then in the meaning of life that drives us to keep going.

It was Wordsworth who wrote, “The world is too much with us”; and if I could give the secret of my ambition as a novelist in a few words it would be contained in that quotation. My inspiration to write has always come from nature. Character and action are subordinated to setting. In all that I have done I have tried to make people see how the world is too much with them. Getting and spending they lay waste their powers, with never a breath of the free and wonderful life of the open!

It was Wordsworth who wrote, “The world is too much with us”; and if I could sum up my ambition as a novelist in a few words, it would be that quote. My inspiration to write has always come from nature. Character and action take a back seat to the setting. In everything I’ve done, I’ve tried to show people how much the world overwhelms them. In their constant quest for more, they waste their abilities, missing out on the fresh and amazing life that the open world offers!

So I come back to the main point of this foreword, in which I am trying to tell why and how I came to write the story of a feud notorious in Arizona as the Pleasant Valley War.

So I return to the main point of this foreword, where I'm explaining why and how I came to write the story of a feud that is infamous in Arizona as the Pleasant Valley War.

Some years ago Mr. Harry Adams, a cattleman of Vermajo Park, New Mexico, told me he had been in the Tonto Basin of Arizona and thought I might find interesting material there concerning this Pleasant Valley War. His version of the war between cattlemen and sheepmen certainly determined me to look over the ground. My old guide, Al Doyle of Flagstaff, had led me over half of Arizona, but never down into that wonderful wild and rugged basin between the Mogollon Mesa and the Mazatzal Mountains. Doyle had long lived on the frontier and his version of the Pleasant Valley War differed markedly from that of Mr. Adams. I asked other old timers about it, and their remarks further excited my curiosity.

Some years ago, Mr. Harry Adams, a cattle rancher from Vermajo Park, New Mexico, told me he had been in the Tonto Basin of Arizona and thought I might find some interesting information there about the Pleasant Valley War. His take on the conflict between cattlemen and sheepmen definitely made me want to check it out. My old guide, Al Doyle from Flagstaff, had taken me all over Arizona, but never into that beautiful and rugged basin between the Mogollon Mesa and the Mazatzal Mountains. Doyle had spent most of his life on the frontier, and his view of the Pleasant Valley War was quite different from Mr. Adams'. I asked other locals about it, and their comments only fueled my curiosity further.

Once down there, Doyle and I found the wildest, most rugged, roughest, and most remarkable country either of us had visited; and the few inhabitants were like the country. I went in ostensibly to hunt bear and lion and turkey, but what I really was hunting for was the story of that Pleasant Valley War. I engaged the services of a bear hunter who had three strapping sons as reserved and strange and aloof as he was. No wheel tracks of any kind had ever come within miles of their cabin. I spent two wonderful months hunting game and reveling in the beauty and grandeur of that Rim Rock country, but I came out knowing no more about the Pleasant Valley War. These Texans and their few neighbors, likewise from Texas, did not talk. But all I saw and felt only inspired me the more. This trip was in the fall of 1918.

Once we got down there, Doyle and I discovered the wildest, roughest, and most stunning landscape either of us had ever seen; the few people living there were just as rugged as the land. I went under the pretense of hunting bear, lion, and turkey, but what I was really after was the story behind the Pleasant Valley War. I hired a bear hunter who had three strong sons, each as reserved, strange, and distant as he was. No vehicle tracks of any kind had ever come within miles of their cabin. I spent two amazing months hunting game and soaking in the beauty of that Rim Rock country, but I left with no more knowledge about the Pleasant Valley War. These Texans and their few neighbors, also from Texas, just didn’t talk. But everything I saw and felt only fueled my curiosity even more. This trip took place in the fall of 1918.

The next year I went again with the best horses, outfit, and men the Doyles could provide. And this time I did not ask any questions. But I rode horses—some of them too wild for me—and packed a rifle many a hundred miles, riding sometimes thirty and forty miles a day, and I climbed in and out of the deep canyons, desperately staying at the heels of one of those long-legged Texans. I learned the life of those backwoodsmen, but I did not get the story of the Pleasant Valley War. I had, however, won the friendship of that hardy people.

The next year, I went again with the best horses, gear, and crew the Doyles could provide. This time, I didn’t ask any questions. I rode horses—some of them too wild for me—and packed a rifle for many hundreds of miles, sometimes riding thirty to forty miles a day. I climbed in and out of deep canyons, desperately trying to keep up with one of those long-legged Texans. I learned about the life of those backwoodsmen, but I never got the story of the Pleasant Valley War. However, I did earn the friendship of those tough folks.

In 1920 I went back with a still larger outfit, equipped to stay as long as I liked. And this time, without my asking it, different natives of the Tonto came to tell me about the Pleasant Valley War. No two of them agreed on anything concerning it, except that only one of the active participants survived the fighting. Whence comes my title, TO THE LAST MAN. Thus I was swamped in a mass of material out of which I could only flounder to my own conclusion. Some of the stories told me are singularly tempting to a novelist. But, though I believe them myself, I cannot risk their improbability to those who have no idea of the wildness of wild men at a wild time. There really was a terrible and bloody feud, perhaps the most deadly and least known in all the annals of the West. I saw the ground, the cabins, the graves, all so darkly suggestive of what must have happened.

In 1920, I returned with an even larger group, ready to stay as long as I wanted. This time, without me asking, various locals from the Tonto came to share stories about the Pleasant Valley War. No two of them agreed on the details, except that only one of the active participants survived the conflict. That’s where my title, TO THE LAST MAN, comes from. I found myself overwhelmed with information, trying to make sense of it all. Some of the stories they told were incredibly tempting for a novelist. However, even though I believe them, I can’t risk their plausibility for those who can’t grasp the craziness of wild men during a wild time. There truly was a horrific and bloody feud, possibly the deadliest and least known in the history of the West. I saw the land, the cabins, the graves—all darkly hinting at what must have happened.

I never learned the truth of the cause of the Pleasant Valley War, or if I did hear it I had no means of recognizing it. All the given causes were plausible and convincing. Strange to state, there is still secrecy and reticence all over the Tonto Basin as to the facts of this feud. Many descendents of those killed are living there now. But no one likes to talk about it. Assuredly many of the incidents told me really occurred, as, for example, the terrible one of the two women, in the face of relentless enemies, saving the bodies of their dead husbands from being devoured by wild hogs. Suffice it to say that this romance is true to my conception of the war, and I base it upon the setting I learned to know and love so well, upon the strange passions of primitive people, and upon my instinctive reaction to the facts and rumors that I gathered.

I never figured out the real reason behind the Pleasant Valley War, or if I did, I couldn't recognize it. All the reasons given seemed believable and convincing. Strangely enough, there’s still a lot of secrecy and reluctance to talk about the details of this feud in the Tonto Basin. Many descendants of those who were killed still live there now, but no one wants to discuss it. I’m sure many of the stories I heard really happened, like the heartbreaking one about two women, facing down relentless enemies, saving the bodies of their dead husbands from being eaten by wild hogs. It's safe to say that this narrative aligns with my understanding of the war, based on the place I came to know and love so well, the intense passions of these primal people, and my instinctive responses to the facts and rumors I gathered.

ZANE GREY.      AVALON, CALIFORNIA,
         April, 1921

Zane Grey Avalon, CA April 1921




CHAPTER I

At the end of a dry, uphill ride over barren country Jean Isbel unpacked to camp at the edge of the cedars where a little rocky canyon green with willow and cottonwood, promised water and grass.

At the end of a dry, uphill ride through empty land, Jean Isbel set up camp at the edge of the cedars, where a small rocky canyon rich with willows and cottonwoods promised water and grass.

His animals were tired, especially the pack mule that had carried a heavy load; and with slow heave of relief they knelt and rolled in the dust. Jean experienced something of relief himself as he threw off his chaps. He had not been used to hot, dusty, glaring days on the barren lands. Stretching his long length beside a tiny rill of clear water that tinkled over the red stones, he drank thirstily. The water was cool, but it had an acrid taste—an alkali bite that he did not like. Not since he had left Oregon had he tasted clear, sweet, cold water; and he missed it just as he longed for the stately shady forests he had loved. This wild, endless Arizona land bade fair to earn his hatred.

His animals were worn out, especially the pack mule that had carried a heavy load; with a slow sigh of relief, they knelt and rolled in the dust. Jean felt a bit of relief himself as he took off his chaps. He wasn’t used to the hot, dusty, glaring days in the barren lands. Stretching out next to a small stream of clear water that tinkled over the red stones, he drank eagerly. The water was cool, but it had a bitter taste—an alkali sting that he didn’t like. Ever since he left Oregon, he hadn’t tasted fresh, sweet, cold water; and he missed it just as much as he longed for the majestic, shady forests he had loved. This wild, endless Arizona land was starting to earn his dislike.

By the time he had leisurely completed his tasks twilight had fallen and coyotes had begun their barking. Jean listened to the yelps and to the moan of the cool wind in the cedars with a sense of satisfaction that these lonely sounds were familiar. This cedar wood burned into a pretty fire and the smell of its smoke was newly pleasant.

By the time he had casually finished his tasks, dusk had set in and coyotes had started to bark. Jean listened to the yelps and the sound of the cool wind in the cedars with a sense of satisfaction that these solitary noises felt familiar. This cedar wood made a beautiful fire and the smell of its smoke was refreshingly pleasant.

“Reckon maybe I’ll learn to like Arizona,” he mused, half aloud. “But I’ve a hankerin’ for waterfalls an’ dark-green forests. Must be the Indian in me.... Anyway, dad needs me bad, an’ I reckon I’m here for keeps.”

“Maybe I’ll learn to like Arizona,” he thought aloud. “But I really crave waterfalls and dark green forests. It must be the Indian in me... Anyway, Dad really needs me, and I guess I’m here for good.”

Jean threw some cedar branches on the fire, in the light of which he opened his father’s letter, hoping by repeated reading to grasp more of its strange portent. It had been two months in reaching him, coming by traveler, by stage and train, and then by boat, and finally by stage again. Written in lead pencil on a leaf torn from an old ledger, it would have been hard to read even if the writing had been more legible.

Jean tossed some cedar branches onto the fire, under its glow he unfolded his father’s letter, hoping that reading it multiple times would help him understand more of its unusual meaning. It had taken two months to get to him, traveling by various means: a traveler, a stagecoach, a train, then by boat, and finally by stage again. Written in pencil on a page ripped from an old ledger, it would have been difficult to read even if the handwriting were clearer.

“Dad’s writin’ was always bad, but I never saw it so shaky,” said Jean, thinking aloud.

“Dad's handwriting was always bad, but I’ve never seen it so shaky,” Jean said, thinking out loud.


GRASS VALLY, ARIZONA.

Son Jean,—Come home. Here is your home and here your needed. When we left Oregon we all reckoned you would not be long behind. But its years now. I am growing old, son, and you was always my steadiest boy. Not that you ever was so dam steady. Only your wildness seemed more for the woods. You take after mother, and your brothers Bill and Guy take after me. That is the red and white of it. Your part Indian, Jean, and that Indian I reckon I am going to need bad. I am rich in cattle and horses. And my range here is the best I ever seen. Lately we have been losing stock. But that is not all nor so bad. Sheepmen have moved into the Tonto and are grazing down on Grass Vally. Cattlemen and sheepmen can never bide in this country. We have bad times ahead. Reckon I have more reasons to worry and need you, but you must wait to hear that by word of mouth. Whatever your doing, chuck it and rustle for Grass Vally so to make here by spring. I am asking you to take pains to pack in some guns and a lot of shells. And hide them in your outfit. If you meet anyone when your coming down into the Tonto, listen more than you talk. And last, son, dont let anything keep you in Oregon. Reckon you have a sweetheart, and if so fetch her along. With love from your dad,

GASTON ISBEL.

GRASS VALLEY, ARIZONA.

Son Jean, — Come home. This is your home and we need you here. When we left Oregon, we all thought you wouldn’t be far behind. But it’s been years now. I’m getting old, son, and you were always my most reliable kid. Not that you were ever that steady. Your wild side seemed more suited for the woods. You take after your mother, and your brothers Bill and Guy take after me. That’s just how it is. You’re part Indian, Jean, and I think I’m going to need that part of you now more than ever. I’m doing well with cattle and horses, and my range here is the best I’ve ever seen. Lately, we’ve been losing stock. But that’s not the worst of it. Sheepmen have moved into the Tonto and are grazing down in Grass Valley. Cattlemen and sheepmen can never coexist in this area. We have tough times ahead. I have plenty of reasons to be worried and need you, but you'll have to hear more about that in person. Whatever you’re doing, drop it and make your way to Grass Valley by spring. I’m asking you to take the time to pack some guns and a lot of ammunition. And hide them in your luggage. If you run into anyone on your way down to the Tonto, listen more than you talk. And finally, son, don’t let anything keep you in Oregon. I guess you have a sweetheart, and if you do, bring her along. With love from your dad,

GASTON ISBEL.


Jean pondered over this letter. Judged by memory of his father, who had always been self-sufficient, it had been a surprise and somewhat of a shock. Weeks of travel and reflection had not helped him to grasp the meaning between the lines.

Jean thought about this letter. Remembering his father, who had always been independent, it was surprising and kind of shocking. Weeks of traveling and reflecting hadn’t helped him understand the hidden meanings.

“Yes, dad’s growin’ old,” mused Jean, feeling a warmth and a sadness stir in him. “He must be ‘way over sixty. But he never looked old.... So he’s rich now an’ losin’ stock, an’ goin’ to be sheeped off his range. Dad could stand a lot of rustlin’, but not much from sheepmen.”

“Yes, Dad’s getting old,” thought Jean, feeling a mix of warmth and sadness. “He must be way over sixty. But he never looked old... So he’s rich now and losing land, and he’s going to be pushed off his range. Dad could handle a lot of rustling, but not much from sheepmen.”

The softness that stirred in Jean merged into a cold, thoughtful earnestness which had followed every perusal of his father’s letter. A dark, full current seemed flowing in his veins, and at times he felt it swell and heat. It troubled him, making him conscious of a deeper, stronger self, opposed to his careless, free, and dreamy nature. No ties had bound him in Oregon, except love for the great, still forests and the thundering rivers; and this love came from his softer side. It had cost him a wrench to leave. And all the way by ship down the coast to San Diego and across the Sierra Madres by stage, and so on to this last overland travel by horseback, he had felt a retreating of the self that was tranquil and happy and a dominating of this unknown somber self, with its menacing possibilities. Yet despite a nameless regret and a loyalty to Oregon, when he lay in his blankets he had to confess a keen interest in his adventurous future, a keen enjoyment of this stark, wild Arizona. It appeared to be a different sky stretching in dark, star-spangled dome over him—closer, vaster, bluer. The strong fragrance of sage and cedar floated over him with the camp-fire smoke, and all seemed drowsily to subdue his thoughts.

The softness that stirred in Jean turned into a cool, thoughtful seriousness that followed every reading of his father’s letter. A dark, powerful current seemed to flow through his veins, and at times he felt it swell and heat up. It troubled him, making him aware of a deeper, stronger self that opposed his carefree, free-spirited, and dreamy nature. No ties had held him in Oregon, except for his love for the vast, quiet forests and the roaring rivers; and this love came from his gentler side. Leaving had been difficult for him. And all the way by ship down the coast to San Diego, across the Sierra Madres by stagecoach, and on to this final overland journey by horseback, he had felt the peaceful and happy part of himself slipping away and the emergence of this unknown, somber self, with its threatening possibilities. Yet despite a vague sense of regret and loyalty to Oregon, when he lay in his blankets, he had to admit he felt a strong interest in his adventurous future and a genuine enjoyment of this stark, wild Arizona. It felt like a different sky stretched out above him—a dark, starry dome that was closer, wider, and bluer. The strong scent of sage and cedar mixed with the campfire smoke, and everything seemed to lazily calm his thoughts.

At dawn he rolled out of his blankets and, pulling on his boots, began the day with a zest for the work that must bring closer his calling future. White, crackling frost and cold, nipping air were the same keen spurs to action that he had known in the uplands of Oregon, yet they were not wholly the same. He sensed an exhilaration similar to the effect of a strong, sweet wine. His horse and mule had fared well during the night, having been much refreshed by the grass and water of the little canyon. Jean mounted and rode into the cedars with gladness that at last he had put the endless leagues of barren land behind him.

At dawn, he got out of his blankets and, putting on his boots, started the day excited about the work that would bring him closer to his future. The white, crackling frost and chilly air were just as motivating as they had been in the hills of Oregon, but they felt a bit different. He felt a thrill similar to the effect of a strong, sweet wine. His horse and mule had done well overnight, getting plenty of grass and water from the little canyon. Jean climbed on and rode into the cedars, happy that he had finally left the endless miles of empty land behind him.

The trail he followed appeared to be seldom traveled. It led, according to the meager information obtainable at the last settlement, directly to what was called the Rim, and from there Grass Valley could be seen down in the Basin. The ascent of the ground was so gradual that only in long, open stretches could it be seen. But the nature of the vegetation showed Jean how he was climbing. Scant, low, scraggy cedars gave place to more numerous, darker, greener, bushier ones, and these to high, full-foliaged, green-berried trees. Sage and grass in the open flats grew more luxuriously. Then came the pinyons, and presently among them the checker-barked junipers. Jean hailed the first pine tree with a hearty slap on the brown, rugged bark. It was a small dwarf pine struggling to live. The next one was larger, and after that came several, and beyond them pines stood up everywhere above the lower trees. Odor of pine needles mingled with the other dry smells that made the wind pleasant to Jean. In an hour from the first line of pines he had ridden beyond the cedars and pinyons into a slowly thickening and deepening forest. Underbrush appeared scarce except in ravines, and the ground in open patches held a bleached grass. Jean’s eye roved for sight of squirrels, birds, deer, or any moving creature. It appeared to be a dry, uninhabited forest. About midday Jean halted at a pond of surface water, evidently melted snow, and gave his animals a drink. He saw a few old deer tracks in the mud and several huge bird tracks new to him which he concluded must have been made by wild turkeys.

The trail he followed seemed rarely used. It led, based on the limited information he gathered at the last settlement, straight to what was known as the Rim, from where he could see Grass Valley down in the Basin. The ground rose so gradually that it was only noticeable in long, open stretches. However, the type of vegetation indicated to Jean that he was gaining elevation. Sparse, low, scraggly cedars were replaced by more abundant, darker, greener, bushier ones, which then gave way to tall, full-foliaged, green-berried trees. Sage and grass in the open areas grew more vividly. Next came the pinyons, and soon he spotted the checker-barked junipers among them. Jean greeted the first pine tree he encountered with a hearty slap on its brown, rugged bark. It was a small, struggling dwarf pine. The next tree was larger, and then several more appeared, with pines standing high above the lower trees. The scent of pine needles blended with the other dry smells, making the wind enjoyable for Jean. Within an hour of the first line of pines, he had ridden beyond the cedars and pinyons into a forest that was slowly thickening and deepening. Underbrush was sparse except in the ravines, and the ground in open areas held bleached grass. Jean’s eyes searched for signs of squirrels, birds, deer, or any moving creature. The forest seemed dry and uninhabited. Around midday, Jean stopped at a pond of surface water, clearly melted snow, and let his animals drink. He noticed a few old deer tracks in the mud and several large bird tracks that were unfamiliar to him, which he deduced must have been made by wild turkeys.

The trail divided at this pond. Jean had no idea which branch he ought to take. “Reckon it doesn’t matter,” he muttered, as he was about to remount. His horse was standing with ears up, looking back along the trail. Then Jean heard a clip-clop of trotting hoofs, and presently espied a horseman.

The path split at this pond. Jean had no clue which way to go. "I guess it doesn't really matter," he mumbled as he was getting ready to mount again. His horse was standing with its ears perked up, looking back down the path. Then Jean heard the sound of trotting hooves and soon spotted a horseman.

Jean made a pretense of tightening his saddle girths while he peered over his horse at the approaching rider. All men in this country were going to be of exceeding interest to Jean Isbel. This man at a distance rode and looked like all the Arizonians Jean had seen, he had a superb seat in the saddle, and he was long and lean. He wore a huge black sombrero and a soiled red scarf. His vest was open and he was without a coat.

Jean pretended to tighten his saddle girths while he watched the approaching rider over his horse. Every man in this country was going to be of great interest to Jean Isbel. This man in the distance rode and looked like all the Arizonians Jean had seen; he had a fantastic posture in the saddle and was tall and slender. He wore a large black sombrero and a dirty red scarf. His vest was unbuttoned, and he wasn’t wearing a coat.

The rider came trotting up and halted several paces from Jean

The rider trotted up and stopped a few steps away from Jean.

“Hullo, stranger!” he said, gruffly.

“Hey there, stranger!” he said, gruffly.

“Howdy yourself!” replied Jean. He felt an instinctive importance in the meeting with the man. Never had sharper eyes flashed over Jean and his outfit. He had a dust-colored, sun-burned face, long, lean, and hard, a huge sandy mustache that hid his mouth, and eyes of piercing light intensity. Not very much hard Western experience had passed by this man, yet he was not old, measured by years. When he dismounted Jean saw he was tall, even for an Arizonian.

“Howdy yourself!” replied Jean. He felt an instinctive significance in meeting this man. Never had sharper eyes scrutinized Jean and his appearance. He had a dusty, sunburned face, long, lean, and tough, a big sandy mustache that concealed his mouth, and eyes that were intensely piercing. This man didn't have a lot of tough Western experience, yet he wasn’t old in terms of years. When he got off his horse, Jean noticed he was tall, even for someone from Arizona.

“Seen your tracks back a ways,” he said, as he slipped the bit to let his horse drink. “Where bound?”

“Noticed your tracks a ways back,” he said, as he loosened the bit to let his horse drink. “Where are you headed?”

“Reckon I’m lost, all right,” replied Jean. “New country for me.”

“Looks like I’m lost, for sure,” replied Jean. “This is a new country for me.”

“Shore. I seen thet from your tracks an’ your last camp. Wal, where was you headin’ for before you got lost?”

“Sure. I saw that from your tracks and your last camp. Well, where were you headed before you got lost?”

The query was deliberately cool, with a dry, crisp ring. Jean felt the lack of friendliness or kindliness in it.

The question was intentionally casual, with a sharp, clear tone. Jean sensed the absence of warmth or kindness in it.

“Grass Valley. My name’s Isbel,” he replied, shortly.

“Grass Valley. My name's Isbel,” he said briefly.

The rider attended to his drinking horse and presently rebridled him; then with long swing of leg he appeared to step into the saddle.

The rider took care of his horse to let him drink, and soon he put the bridle back on; then, with a smooth swing of his leg, he seemed to hop into the saddle.

“Shore I knowed you was Jean Isbel,” he said. “Everybody in the Tonto has heerd old Gass Isbel sent fer his boy.”

“Sure, I knew you were Jean Isbel,” he said. “Everyone in the Tonto has heard that old Gass Isbel sent for his son.”

“Well then, why did you ask?” inquired Jean, bluntly.

“Well then, why did you ask?” Jean asked bluntly.

“Reckon I wanted to see what you’d say.”

“Guess I wanted to see what you’d say.”

“So? All right. But I’m not carin’ very much for what YOU say.”

“So? Fine. But I really don’t care much about what YOU think.”

Their glances locked steadily then and each measured the other by the intangible conflict of spirit.

Their eyes fixed on each other, and each evaluated the other through the unspoken tension of their spirits.

“Shore thet’s natural,” replied the rider. His speech was slow, and the motions of his long, brown hands, as he took a cigarette from his vest, kept time with his words. “But seein’ you’re one of the Isbels, I’ll hev my say whether you want it or not. My name’s Colter an’ I’m one of the sheepmen Gass Isbel’s riled with.”

“Sure, that’s natural,” replied the rider. His speech was slow, and the movements of his long, brown hands, as he took a cigarette from his vest, matched his words. “But since you’re one of the Isbels, I’ll have my say whether you want it or not. My name’s Colter, and I’m one of the sheepmen Gass Isbel’s angry with.”

“Colter. Glad to meet you,” replied Jean. “An’ I reckon who riled my father is goin’ to rile me.”

“Colter. Nice to meet you,” replied Jean. “And I guess whoever upset my father is going to upset me.”

“Shore. If thet wasn’t so you’d not be an Isbel,” returned Colter, with a grim little laugh. “It’s easy to see you ain’t run into any Tonto Basin fellers yet. Wal, I’m goin’ to tell you thet your old man gabbed like a woman down at Greaves’s store. Bragged aboot you an’ how you could fight an’ how you could shoot an’ how you could track a hoss or a man! Bragged how you’d chase every sheep herder back up on the Rim.... I’m tellin’ you because we want you to git our stand right. We’re goin’ to run sheep down in Grass Valley.”

“Sure. If that wasn’t the case, you wouldn’t be an Isbel,” Colter replied with a wry smile. “It’s clear you haven’t met any Tonto Basin guys yet. Well, I’m going to tell you that your dad talked a lot like a woman at Greaves’s store. He bragged about you and how you could fight, how you could shoot, and how you could track a horse or a man! He bragged that you’d chase every sheep herder back up on the Rim... I’m telling you this because we want you to understand our position. We’re going to run sheep down in Grass Valley.”

“Ahuh! Well, who’s we?” queried Jean, curtly.

“Uh-huh! Well, who’s we?” Jean asked sharply.

“What-at? ... We—I mean the sheepmen rangin’ this Rim from Black Butte to the Apache country.”

“What’s going on? ... We—I mean the sheep herders working this Rim from Black Butte to the Apache area.”

“Colter, I’m a stranger in Arizona,” said Jean, slowly. “I know little about ranchers or sheepmen. It’s true my father sent for me. It’s true, I dare say, that he bragged, for he was given to bluster an’ blow. An’ he’s old now. I can’t help it if he bragged about me. But if he has, an’ if he’s justified in his stand against you sheepmen, I’m goin’ to do my best to live up to his brag.”

“Colter, I’m a stranger here in Arizona,” Jean said slowly. “I don’t know much about ranchers or sheep herders. It’s true my dad called for me. It’s true, I guess, that he boasted a bit, as he tends to do. And he’s old now. I can’t help it if he bragged about me. But if he did, and if he has a good reason to stand against you sheep herders, I’m going to do my best to live up to his words.”

“I get your hunch. Shore we understand each other, an’ thet’s a powerful help. You take my hunch to your old man,” replied Colter, as he turned his horse away toward the left. “Thet trail leadin’ south is yours. When you come to the Rim you’ll see a bare spot down in the Basin. Thet ’ll be Grass Valley.”

“I understand your instinct. It’s good that we’re on the same page, and that really helps. You can share my gut feeling with your dad,” Colter replied, as he turned his horse to the left. “That trail heading south is yours. When you reach the Rim, you’ll notice a clear area in the Basin. That will be Grass Valley.”

He rode away out of sight into the woods. Jean leaned against his horse and pondered. It seemed difficult to be just to this Colter, not because of his claims, but because of a subtle hostility that emanated from him. Colter had the hard face, the masked intent, the turn of speech that Jean had come to associate with dishonest men. Even if Jean had not been prejudiced, if he had known nothing of his father’s trouble with these sheepmen, and if Colter had met him only to exchange glances and greetings, still Jean would never have had a favorable impression. Colter grated upon him, roused an antagonism seldom felt.

He rode out of sight and into the woods. Jean leaned against his horse and thought. It was hard to be fair to Colter, not because of his claims, but because of a subtle hostility that seemed to radiate from him. Colter had a tough face, a hidden agenda, and a way of speaking that Jean associated with dishonest people. Even if Jean hadn’t been biased, even if he didn’t know anything about his father’s trouble with sheepmen, and even if Colter had only exchanged looks and greetings with him, Jean still wouldn’t have felt positively toward him. Colter annoyed him and stirred up a hostility he rarely experienced.

“Heigho!” sighed the young man, “Good-by to huntin’ an’ fishing’! Dad’s given me a man’s job.”

“Heigho!” sighed the young man, “Goodbye to hunting and fishing! Dad’s given me a man’s job.”

With that he mounted his horse and started the pack mule into the right-hand trail. Walking and trotting, he traveled all afternoon, toward sunset getting into heavy forest of pine. More than one snow bank showed white through the green, sheltered on the north slopes of shady ravines. And it was upon entering this zone of richer, deeper forestland that Jean sloughed off his gloomy forebodings. These stately pines were not the giant firs of Oregon, but any lover of the woods could be happy under them. Higher still he climbed until the forest spread before and around him like a level park, with thicketed ravines here and there on each side. And presently that deceitful level led to a higher bench upon which the pines towered, and were matched by beautiful trees he took for spruce. Heavily barked, with regular spreading branches, these conifers rose in symmetrical shape to spear the sky with silver plumes. A graceful gray-green moss, waved like veils from the branches. The air was not so dry and it was colder, with a scent and touch of snow. Jean made camp at the first likely site, taking the precaution to unroll his bed some little distance from his fire. Under the softly moaning pines he felt comfortable, having lost the sense of an immeasurable open space falling away from all around him.

With that, he got on his horse and led the pack mule down the right-hand trail. Walking and trotting, he traveled all afternoon. As the sun began to set, he entered a dense forest of pines. More than one snowbank peeked through the green, nestled on the north slopes of shady ravines. Once he stepped into this richer, deeper forest, Jean shook off his gloomy feelings. These grand pines weren’t the giant firs of Oregon, but any nature lover could find happiness among them. He climbed higher until the forest spread out before him like a flat park, with thicketed ravines on either side. Soon, that deceptive flatness led to a higher area where the pines towered, accompanied by beautiful trees he assumed were spruce. Heavily barked, with evenly spaced branches, these conifers rose symmetrically, reaching for the sky with silver-tipped branches. A graceful gray-green moss hung down like veils from the branches. The air felt less dry and was colder, carrying the scent and chill of snow. Jean made camp at the first suitable spot, taking care to set his bed some distance from the fire. Under the softly rustling pines, he felt at ease, having lost the sense of an endless open space stretching out around him.

The gobbling of wild turkeys awakened Jean, “Chuga-lug, chug-a-lug, chug-a-lug-chug.” There was not a great difference between the gobble of a wild turkey and that of a tame one. Jean got up, and taking his rifle went out into the gray obscurity of dawn to try to locate the turkeys. But it was too dark, and finally when daylight came they appeared to be gone. The mule had strayed, and, what with finding it and cooking breakfast and packing, Jean did not make a very early start. On this last lap of his long journey he had slowed down. He was weary of hurrying; the change from weeks in the glaring sun and dust-laden wind to this sweet coot darkly green and brown forest was very welcome; he wanted to linger along the shaded trail. This day he made sure would see him reach the Rim. By and by he lost the trail. It had just worn out from lack of use. Every now and then Jean would cross an old trail, and as he penetrated deeper into the forest every damp or dusty spot showed tracks of turkey, deer, and bear. The amount of bear sign surprised him. Presently his keen nostrils were assailed by a smell of sheep, and soon he rode into a broad sheep, trail. From the tracks Jean calculated that the sheep had passed there the day before.

The gobbling of wild turkeys woke Jean up, “Chuga-lug, chug-a-lug, chug-a-lug-chug.” There wasn't much difference between the gobble of a wild turkey and that of a domesticated one. Jean got up, took his rifle, and stepped out into the gray dawn to try to find the turkeys. But it was too dark, and by the time daylight arrived, they seemed to have vanished. The mule had wandered off, and with the task of finding it, cooking breakfast, and packing up, Jean didn’t leave as early as he’d planned. On this last leg of his long journey, he had slowed down. He was tired of rushing; the transition from weeks spent in the harsh sun and dusty winds to this lush, dark green and brown forest felt incredibly refreshing; he wanted to take his time along the shaded path. He was determined to reach the Rim by the end of the day. Eventually, he lost the trail. It had simply faded away from disuse. Every now and then, Jean would encounter an old trail, and as he went deeper into the woods, every damp or dusty spot revealed tracks of turkeys, deer, and bears. He was surprised by the amount of bear evidence. Soon, his sharp sense of smell picked up the scent of sheep, and he eventually rode onto a wide sheep trail. Based on the tracks, Jean figured that the sheep had passed through there the day before.

An unreasonable antipathy seemed born in him. To be sure he had been prepared to dislike sheep, and that was why he was unreasonable. But on the other hand this band of sheep had left a broad bare swath, weedless, grassless, flowerless, in their wake. Where sheep grazed they destroyed. That was what Jean had against them.

A strange hatred seemed to have grown inside him. Sure, he was ready to dislike sheep, and that’s what made his feelings unreasonable. But on the flip side, this group of sheep had left a wide, empty space behind, stripped of weeds, grass, and flowers. Where sheep grazed, they wrecked everything. That’s what Jean couldn’t stand about them.

An hour later he rode to the crest of a long parklike slope, where new green grass was sprouting and flowers peeped everywhere. The pines appeared far apart; gnarled oak trees showed rugged and gray against the green wall of woods. A white strip of snow gleamed like a moving stream away down in the woods.

An hour later, he rode up to the top of a long, park-like slope, where fresh green grass was coming up and flowers were popping up everywhere. The pines were spaced out, and the gnarled oak trees looked rugged and gray against the lush green woods. A white patch of snow glimmered like a flowing stream down in the forest.

Jean heard the musical tinkle of bells and the baa-baa of sheep and the faint, sweet bleating of lambs. As he road toward these sounds a dog ran out from an oak thicket and barked at him. Next Jean smelled a camp fire and soon he caught sight of a curling blue column of smoke, and then a small peaked tent. Beyond the clump of oaks Jean encountered a Mexican lad carrying a carbine. The boy had a swarthy, pleasant face, and to Jean’s greeting he replied, “BUENAS DIAS.” Jean understood little Spanish, and about all he gathered by his simple queries was that the lad was not alone—and that it was “lambing time.”

Jean heard the cheerful sound of bells, the baaing of sheep, and the soft, sweet bleating of lambs. As he rode toward these sounds, a dog darted out from an oak thicket and barked at him. Soon, he smelled a campfire and then saw a curling column of blue smoke, followed by a small peaked tent. Beyond the group of oaks, Jean met a Mexican boy carrying a rifle. The boy had a dark, friendly face, and in response to Jean's greeting, he said, “BUENAS DIAS.” Jean understood little Spanish, and all he managed to gather from his simple questions was that the boy wasn't alone—and that it was “lambing time.”

This latter circumstance grew noisily manifest. The forest seemed shrilly full of incessant baas and plaintive bleats. All about the camp, on the slope, in the glades, and everywhere, were sheep. A few were grazing; many were lying down; most of them were ewes suckling white fleecy little lambs that staggered on their feet. Everywhere Jean saw tiny lambs just born. Their pin-pointed bleats pierced the heavier baa-baa of their mothers.

This situation became obviously loud. The forest was filled with constant baaing and sad bleats. Everywhere around the camp, on the slope, in the clearings, and all over, there were sheep. A few were grazing; many were lying down; most of them were ewes nursing little white lambs that wobbled on their legs. Jean noticed tiny lambs that had just been born everywhere. Their sharp bleats cut through the deeper baaing of their mothers.

Jean dismounted and led his horse down toward the camp, where he rather expected to see another and older Mexican, from whom he might get information. The lad walked with him. Down this way the plaintive uproar made by the sheep was not so loud.

Jean got off his horse and led it down toward the camp, where he expected to see another older Mexican who might have some information. The boy walked with him. Down this way, the sad noise made by the sheep wasn't as loud.

“Hello there!” called Jean, cheerfully, as he approached the tent. No answer was forthcoming. Dropping his bridle, he went on, rather slowly, looking for some one to appear. Then a voice from one side startled him.

“Hey there!” called Jean, cheerfully, as he walked toward the tent. No one answered. Dropping his bridle, he continued on, a bit slowly, searching for someone to show up. Then a voice from the side startled him.

“Mawnin’, stranger.”

“Morning, stranger.”

A girl stepped out from beside a pine. She carried a rifle. Her face flashed richly brown, but she was not Mexican. This fact, and the sudden conviction that she had been watching him, somewhat disconcerted Jean.

A girl stepped out from behind a pine tree. She was holding a rifle. Her face had a deep brown tone, but she wasn't Mexican. This realization, along with the sudden feeling that she had been observing him, slightly unsettled Jean.

“Beg pardon—miss,” he floundered. “Didn’t expect, to see a—girl.... I’m sort of lost—lookin’ for the Rim—an’ thought I’d find a sheep herder who’d show me. I can’t savvy this boy’s lingo.”

“Excuse me—miss,” he stumbled. “I didn’t expect to see a—girl... I’m a bit lost—looking for the Rim—and thought I’d find a shepherd who could show me. I can’t understand this kid’s language.”

While he spoke it seemed to him an intentness of expression, a strain relaxed from her face. A faint suggestion of hostility likewise disappeared. Jean was not even sure that he had caught it, but there had been something that now was gone.

While he spoke, he noticed a focused expression and a tension eased from her face. A slight hint of hostility also vanished. Jean wasn't entirely sure he had detected it, but there had been something that was now gone.

“Shore I’ll be glad to show y’u,” she said.

“Sure, I’ll be happy to show you,” she said.

“Thanks, miss. Reckon I can breathe easy now,” he replied,

“Thanks, miss. I think I can relax now,” he replied,

“It’s a long ride from San Diego. Hot an’ dusty! I’m pretty tired. An’ maybe this woods isn’t good medicine to achin’ eyes!”

“It’s a long ride from San Diego. It’s hot and dusty! I’m pretty tired. And maybe these woods aren’t good for my aching eyes!”

“San Diego! Y’u’re from the coast?”

“San Diego! You’re from the coast?”

“Yes.”

“Yes.”

Jean had doffed his sombrero at sight of her and he still held it, rather deferentially, perhaps. It seemed to attract her attention.

Jean had taken off his sombrero when he saw her and he still held it, looking a bit respectful, maybe. It seemed to catch her eye.

“Put on y’ur hat, stranger.... Shore I can’t recollect when any man bared his haid to me.” She uttered a little laugh in which surprise and frankness mingled with a tint of bitterness.

“Put on your hat, stranger.... I really can’t remember the last time any man showed up without a hat.” She let out a small laugh that mixed surprise and honesty with a hint of bitterness.

Jean sat down with his back to a pine, and, laying the sombrero by his side, he looked full at her, conscious of a singular eagerness, as if he wanted to verify by close scrutiny a first hasty impression. If there had been an instinct in his meeting with Colter, there was more in this. The girl half sat, half leaned against a log, with the shiny little carbine across her knees. She had a level, curious gaze upon him, and Jean had never met one just like it. Her eyes were rather a wide oval in shape, clear and steady, with shadows of thought in their amber-brown depths. They seemed to look through Jean, and his gaze dropped first. Then it was he saw her ragged homespun skirt and a few inches of brown, bare ankles, strong and round, and crude worn-out moccasins that failed to hide the shapeliness, of her feet. Suddenly she drew back her stockingless ankles and ill-shod little feet. When Jean lifted his gaze again he found her face half averted and a stain of red in the gold tan of her cheek. That touch of embarrassment somehow removed her from this strong, raw, wild woodland setting. It changed her poise. It detracted from the curious, unabashed, almost bold, look that he had encountered in her eyes.

Jean sat down with his back against a pine tree and put his sombrero beside him. He looked directly at her, feeling a strange eagerness, as if he wanted to confirm a quick first impression. If there had been an instinct in his meeting with Colter, there was even more here. The girl was half sitting, half leaning against a log, with a shiny little carbine resting across her knees. She had a steady, curious gaze fixed on him, and Jean had never seen anything like it before. Her eyes were wide and oval-shaped, clear and steady, with hints of thought in their amber-brown depths. They seemed to look right through him, and Jean was the first to look away. Then he noticed her ragged homespun skirt, a few inches of brown bare ankles—strong and round—along with worn-out moccasins that couldn’t hide the shape of her feet. Suddenly, she pulled back her bare ankles and poorly shod little feet. When Jean looked up again, he found her face turned slightly away, a hint of red staining the golden tan of her cheek. That touch of embarrassment somehow distanced her from the strong, wild, raw woods surrounding them. It changed her posture and took away from the curious, unapologetic, almost bold look he had seen in her eyes.

“Reckon you’re from Texas,” said Jean, presently.

“Looks like you’re from Texas,” Jean said now.

“Shore am,” she drawled. She had a lazy Southern voice, pleasant to hear. “How’d y’u-all guess that?”

“Sure am,” she drawled. She had a laid-back Southern voice that was nice to hear. “How'd you all guess that?”

“Anybody can tell a Texan. Where I came from there were a good many pioneers an’ ranchers from the old Lone Star state. I’ve worked for several. An’, come to think of it, I’d rather hear a Texas girl talk than anybody.”

“Anyone can spot a Texan. Back where I’m from, there were quite a few pioneers and ranchers from the old Lone Star state. I’ve worked for several of them. And now that I think about it, I’d rather listen to a Texas girl talk than anyone else.”

“Did y’u know many Texas girls?” she inquired, turning again to face him.

“Did you know a lot of Texas girls?” she asked, turning back to face him.

“Reckon I did—quite a good many.”

“Yeah, I think I did—quite a few.”

“Did y’u go with them?”

“Did you go with them?”

“Go with them? Reckon you mean keep company. Why, yes, I guess I did—a little,” laughed Jean. “Sometimes on a Sunday or a dance once in a blue moon, an’ occasionally a ride.”

“Go with them? I assume you mean hang out. Well, yeah, I guess I did—a little,” laughed Jean. “Sometimes on a Sunday or a dance every now and then, and occasionally a ride.”

“Shore that accounts,” said the girl, wistfully.

“Make sure to keep track of that,” said the girl, with a hint of longing.

“For what?” asked Jean.

"For what?" Jean asked.

“Y’ur bein’ a gentleman,” she replied, with force. “Oh, I’ve not forgotten. I had friends when we lived in Texas.... Three years ago. Shore it seems longer. Three miserable years in this damned country!”

“You're being a gentleman,” she replied emphatically. “Oh, I haven't forgotten. I had friends when we lived in Texas... three years ago. It sure feels like longer. Three miserable years in this damn country!”

Then she bit her lip, evidently to keep back further unwitting utterance to a total stranger. And it was that biting of her lip that drew Jean’s attention to her mouth. It held beauty of curve and fullness and color that could not hide a certain sadness and bitterness. Then the whole flashing brown face changed for Jean. He saw that it was young, full of passion and restraint, possessing a power which grew on him. This, with her shame and pathos and the fact that she craved respect, gave a leap to Jean’s interest.

Then she bit her lip, clearly to stop herself from saying more to a complete stranger. It was that lip-biting that caught Jean's eye and made him notice her mouth. It had a beautiful shape, fullness, and color that couldn't hide a hint of sadness and bitterness. Then, Jean's perception of her whole radiant brown face shifted. He realized it was young, filled with passion and restraint, and had a magnetic power that drew him in. This, along with her shame, vulnerability, and desire for respect, sparked Jean's curiosity even more.

“Well, I reckon you flatter me,” he said, hoping to put her at her ease again. “I’m only a rough hunter an’ fisherman-woodchopper an’ horse tracker. Never had all the school I needed—nor near enough company of nice girls like you.”

"Well, I guess you're flattering me," he said, trying to make her feel comfortable again. "I'm just a rough hunter and fisherman—woodchopper and horse tracker. I never had all the schooling I needed—or nearly enough time around nice girls like you."

“Am I nice?” she asked, quickly.

“Am I nice?” she asked, quickly.

“You sure are,” he replied, smiling.

“You definitely are,” he said, smiling.

“In these rags,” she demanded, with a sudden flash of passion that thrilled him. “Look at the holes.” She showed rips and worn-out places in the sleeves of her buckskin blouse, through which gleamed a round, brown arm. “I sew when I have anythin’ to sew with.... Look at my skirt—a dirty rag. An’ I have only one other to my name.... Look!” Again a color tinged her cheeks, most becoming, and giving the lie to her action. But shame could not check her violence now. A dammed-up resentment seemed to have broken out in flood. She lifted the ragged skirt almost to her knees. “No stockings! No Shoes! ... How can a girl be nice when she has no clean, decent woman’s clothes to wear?”

“In these rags,” she exclaimed, with a sudden spark of passion that excited him. “Look at the holes.” She pointed out the tears and worn spots in the sleeves of her buckskin blouse, through which her round, brown arm was visible. “I sew when I have anything to sew with... Look at my skirt—a dirty rag. And I only have one other skirt to my name... Look!” Again, color flushed her cheeks, making her look even more attractive, contradicting her fierce words. But the shame couldn't hold back her anger now. A bottled-up resentment seemed to have burst forth. She lifted the ragged skirt almost to her knees. “No stockings! No shoes!... How can a girl feel good when she has no clean, decent clothes to wear?”

“How—how can a girl...” began Jean. “See here, miss, I’m beggin’ your pardon for—sort of stirrin’ you to forget yourself a little. Reckon I understand. You don’t meet many strangers an’ I sort of hit you wrong—makin’ you feel too much—an’ talk too much. Who an’ what you are is none of my business. But we met.... An’ I reckon somethin’ has happened—perhaps more to me than to you.... Now let me put you straight about clothes an’ women. Reckon I know most women love nice things to wear an’ think because clothes make them look pretty that they’re nicer or better. But they’re wrong. You’re wrong. Maybe it ’d be too much for a girl like you to be happy without clothes. But you can be—you axe just as nice, an’—an’ fine—an’, for all you know, a good deal more appealin’ to some men.”

“How—how can a girl...” began Jean. “Listen, miss, I’m sorry for—kind of stirring you up a bit. I get it. You don’t meet many strangers, and I probably threw you off—made you feel too much—and talk too much. Who you are isn’t my business. But we met.... And I think something has happened—maybe more to me than to you.... Now let me set you straight about clothes and women. I think most women love nice things to wear and believe that because clothes make them look pretty, they’re nicer or better. But they’re wrong. You’re wrong. Maybe it would be too much for a girl like you to be happy without clothes. But you can be—you’re just as nice, and—and great—and, for all you know, a lot more appealing to some men.”

“Stranger, y’u shore must excuse my temper an’ the show I made of myself,” replied the girl, with composure. “That, to say the least, was not nice. An’ I don’t want anyone thinkin’ better of me than I deserve. My mother died in Texas, an’ I’ve lived out heah in this wild country—a girl alone among rough men. Meetin’ y’u to-day makes me see what a hard lot they are—an’ what it’s done to me.”

“Stranger, you really have to forgive my attitude and the scene I caused,” the girl replied calmly. “That was, at the very least, not cool. And I don’t want anyone thinking better of me than I deserve. My mother died in Texas, and I’ve been living out here in this rough country—a girl alone among tough men. Meeting you today makes me realize how hard they are—and what it’s done to me.”

Jean smothered his curiosity and tried to put out of his mind a growing sense that he pitied her, liked her.

Jean pushed down his curiosity and tried to ignore a growing feeling that he felt sorry for her and liked her.

“Are you a sheep herder?” he asked.

“Are you a shepherd?” he asked.

“Shore I am now an’ then. My father lives back heah in a canyon. He’s a sheepman. Lately there’s been herders shot at. Just now we’re short an’ I have to fill in. But I like shepherdin’ an’ I love the woods, and the Rim Rock an’ all the Tonto. If they were all, I’d shore be happy.”

“Sure, I’m here now and then. My dad lives back here in a canyon. He’s a sheep farmer. Lately, some herders have been shot at. Right now, we’re short on help, and I have to step in. But I enjoy shepherding, and I love the woods, the Rim Rock, and all of Tonto. If that were all I had, I’d definitely be happy.”

“Herders shot at!” exclaimed Jean, thoughtfully. “By whom? An’ what for?”

“Herders shot at!” Jean exclaimed, deep in thought. “By whom? And why?”

“Trouble brewin’ between the cattlemen down in the Basin an’ the sheepmen up on the Rim. Dad says there’ll shore be hell to pay. I tell him I hope the cattlemen chase him back to Texas.”

“There's trouble brewing between the cattlemen down in the Basin and the sheepmen up on the Rim. Dad says there will definitely be consequences. I tell him I hope the cattlemen drive him back to Texas.”

“Then— Are you on the ranchers’ side?” queried Jean, trying to pretend casual interest.

“Then— Are you on the ranchers’ side?” Jean asked, trying to sound casually interested.

“No. I’ll always be on my father’s side,” she replied, with spirit. “But I’m bound to admit I think the cattlemen have the fair side of the argument.”

“No. I’ll always be on my father’s side,” she replied, passionately. “But I have to admit I think the cattlemen have a fair point.”

“How so?”

"How's that?"

“Because there’s grass everywhere. I see no sense in a sheepman goin’ out of his way to surround a cattleman an’ sheep off his range. That started the row. Lord knows how it’ll end. For most all of them heah are from Texas.”

“Because there’s grass all over the place. I don’t see why a sheep rancher would go out of his way to corner a cattle rancher and push his sheep off their land. That’s what started the fight. God knows how it’ll end. Most of the folks here are from Texas.”

“So I was told,” replied Jean. “An’ I heard’ most all these Texans got run out of Texas. Any truth in that?”

“So I was told,” replied Jean. “And I heard that most of these Texans got kicked out of Texas. Is that true?”

“Shore I reckon there is,” she replied, seriously. “But, stranger, it might not be healthy for y’u to, say that anywhere. My dad, for one, was not run out of Texas. Shore I never can see why he came heah. He’s accumulated stock, but he’s not rich nor so well off as he was back home.”

“Sure, I think there is,” she responded earnestly. “But, stranger, it might not be safe for you to say that anywhere. My dad, for one, wasn’t chased out of Texas. I really can’t understand why he came here. He’s built up some cattle, but he’s not rich or as well off as he was back home.”

“Are you goin’ to stay here always?” queried Jean, suddenly.

“Are you going to stay here forever?” Jean asked abruptly.

“If I do so it ’ll be in my grave,” she answered, darkly. “But what’s the use of thinkin’? People stay places until they drift away. Y’u can never tell.... Well, stranger, this talk is keepin’ y’u.”

“If I do that, it’ll be when I’m dead,” she replied gloomily. “But what’s the point of thinking? People stick around until they gradually move on. You can never be sure.... Well, stranger, this conversation is holding you up.”

She seemed moody now, and a note of detachment crept into her voice. Jean rose at once and went for his horse. If this girl did not desire to talk further he certainly had no wish to annoy her. His mule had strayed off among the bleating sheep. Jean drove it back and then led his horse up to where the girl stood. She appeared taller and, though not of robust build, she was vigorous and lithe, with something about her that fitted the place. Jean was loath to bid her good-by.

She seemed upset now, and a hint of distance came into her voice. Jean immediately got up and went to get his horse. If this girl didn't want to talk any more, he definitely didn't want to bother her. His mule had wandered off among the bleating sheep. Jean brought it back and then led his horse over to where the girl was standing. She looked taller, and even though she wasn't heavily built, she was strong and agile, with something about her that matched the area. Jean was reluctant to say goodbye to her.

“Which way is the Rim?” he asked, turning to his saddle girths.

“Which way is the Rim?” he asked, adjusting his saddle girths.

“South,” she replied, pointing. “It’s only a mile or so. I’ll walk down with y’u.... Suppose y’u’re on the way to Grass Valley?”

“South,” she said, pointing. “It’s just about a mile or so. I’ll walk down with you.... Are you heading to Grass Valley?”

“Yes; I’ve relatives there,” he returned. He dreaded her next question, which he suspected would concern his name. But she did not ask. Taking up her rifle she turned away. Jean strode ahead to her side. “Reckon if you walk I won’t ride.”

“Yes; I have family there,” he replied. He was anxious about her next question, which he thought would be about his name. But she didn’t ask. Grabbing her rifle, she turned away. Jean walked alongside her. “If you walk, I guess I won’t ride.”

So he found himself beside a girl with the free step of a Mountaineer. Her bare, brown head came up nearly to his shoulder. It was a small, pretty head, graceful, well held, and the thick hair on it was a shiny, soft brown. She wore it in a braid, rather untidily and tangled, he thought, and it was tied with a string of buckskin. Altogether her apparel proclaimed poverty.

So he found himself next to a girl who walked with the carefree stride of a mountain climber. Her bare, tan head reached almost to his shoulder. It was a small, beautiful head, graceful and well-positioned, with thick, shiny, soft brown hair. She had it in a braid, which looked a bit messy and tangled, he noticed, and it was tied with a piece of buckskin. Overall, her clothing screamed poverty.

Jean let the conversation languish for a little. He wanted to think what to say presently, and then he felt a rather vague pleasure in stalking beside her. Her profile was straight cut and exquisite in line. From this side view the soft curve of lips could not be seen.

Jean allowed the conversation to fade for a moment. He wanted to figure out what to say next, and he felt a kind of vague pleasure in walking alongside her. Her profile was elegantly defined and beautiful in shape. From this angle, the gentle curve of her lips wasn’t visible.

She made several attempts to start conversation, all of which Jean ignored, manifestly to her growing constraint. Presently Jean, having decided what he wanted to say, suddenly began: “I like this adventure. Do you?”

She tried multiple times to start a conversation, but Jean clearly ignored her, which made her feel increasingly uncomfortable. Soon, Jean, having figured out what he wanted to say, suddenly spoke up: “I like this adventure. Do you?”

“Adventure! Meetin’ me in the woods?” And she laughed the laugh of youth. “Shore you must be hard up for adventure, stranger.”

“Adventure! You’re meeting me in the woods?” And she laughed the laugh of youth. “You must really be in need of some excitement, stranger.”

“Do you like it?” he persisted, and his eyes searched the half-averted face.

“Do you like it?” he asked again, his eyes scanning the partially turned face.

“I might like it,” she answered, frankly, “if—if my temper had not made a fool of me. I never meet anyone I care to talk to. Why should it not be pleasant to run across some one new—some one strange in this heah wild country?”

“I might like it,” she said honestly, “if—if my temper hadn’t made a fool of me. I never meet anyone I want to talk to. Why shouldn’t it be nice to come across someone new—someone different in this crazy wild country?”

“We are as we are,” said Jean, simply. “I didn’t think you made a fool of yourself. If I thought so, would I want to see you again?”

“We are who we are,” Jean said plainly. “I didn’t think you embarrassed yourself. If I thought that, would I want to see you again?”

“Do y’u?” The brown face flashed on him with surprise, with a light he took for gladness. And because he wanted to appear calm and friendly, not too eager, he had to deny himself the thrill of meeting those changing eyes.

“Do you?” The brown face looked at him in surprise, with a light he took for happiness. And because he wanted to seem calm and friendly, not too eager, he had to hold back the excitement of meeting those shifting eyes.

“Sure I do. Reckon I’m overbold on such short acquaintance. But I might not have another chance to tell you, so please don’t hold it against me.”

“Of course I do. I guess I'm being a bit too forward since we don't know each other well. But I might not get another opportunity to say this, so please don't hold it against me.”

This declaration over, Jean felt relief and something of exultation. He had been afraid he might not have the courage to make it. She walked on as before, only with her head bowed a little and her eyes downcast. No color but the gold-brown tan and the blue tracery of veins showed in her cheeks. He noticed then a slight swelling quiver of her throat; and he became alive to its graceful contour, and to how full and pulsating it was, how nobly it set into the curve of her shoulder. Here in her quivering throat was the weakness of her, the evidence of her sex, the womanliness that belied the mountaineer stride and the grasp of strong brown hands on a rifle. It had an effect on Jean totally inexplicable to him, both in the strange warmth that stole over him and in the utterance he could not hold back.

This declaration over, Jean felt relieved and a bit triumphant. He had feared he might not have the guts to say it. She continued walking as before, but with her head slightly bowed and her eyes downcast. Only the gold-brown tan and the blue veins were visible on her cheeks. He then noticed a slight trembling motion in her throat; he became aware of its graceful shape, how full and throbbing it was, and how beautifully it blended with the curve of her shoulder. In her quivering throat was her vulnerability, the unmistakable proof of her femininity that contradicted her confident stride and the strong brown hands gripping a rifle. It had an effect on Jean that he couldn't explain, both in the unexpected warmth that washed over him and in the words he couldn’t hold back.

“Girl, we’re strangers, but what of that? We’ve met, an’ I tell you it means somethin’ to me. I’ve known girls for months an’ never felt this way. I don’t know who you are an’ I don’t care. You betrayed a good deal to me. You’re not happy. You’re lonely. An’ if I didn’t want to see you again for my own sake I would for yours. Some things you said I’ll not forget soon. I’ve got a sister, an’ I know you have no brother. An’ I reckon ...”

“Girl, we’re strangers, but so what? We’ve met, and I want you to know it means something to me. I’ve known girls for months and never felt this way. I don’t know who you are, and I don’t care. You revealed a lot to me. You’re not happy. You’re lonely. And even if I didn’t want to see you again for my own sake, I would for yours. Some things you said I won’t forget anytime soon. I’ve got a sister, and I know you don’t have a brother. And I think...”

At this juncture Jean in his earnestness and quite without thought grasped her hand. The contact checked the flow of his speech and suddenly made him aghast at his temerity. But the girl did not make any effort to withdraw it. So Jean, inhaling a deep breath and trying to see through his bewilderment, held on bravely. He imagined he felt a faint, warm, returning pressure. She was young, she was friendless, she was human. By this hand in his Jean felt more than ever the loneliness of her. Then, just as he was about to speak again, she pulled her hand free.

At this moment, Jean, in his eagerness and without thinking, took her hand. The touch interrupted his speech and suddenly left him shocked at his boldness. But the girl didn’t try to pull away. So, Jean took a deep breath and, trying to navigate his confusion, held on firmly. He thought he felt a faint, warm pressure in return. She was young, she was alone, she was human. Through her hand in his, Jean felt her loneliness more than ever. Then, just as he was about to speak again, she pulled her hand away.

“Heah’s the Rim,” she said, in her quaint Southern drawl. “An’ there’s Y’ur Tonto Basin.”

“Heah’s the Rim,” she said, in her charming Southern accent. “And there’s Y’ur Tonto Basin.”

Jean had been intent only upon the girl. He had kept step beside her without taking note of what was ahead of him. At her words he looked up expectantly, to be struck mute.

Jean had been focused only on the girl. He had walked beside her without paying attention to what was in front of him. At her words, he looked up eagerly, only to be left speechless.

He felt a sheer force, a downward drawing of an immense abyss beneath him. As he looked afar he saw a black basin of timbered country, the darkest and wildest he had ever gazed upon, a hundred miles of blue distance across to an unflung mountain range, hazy purple against the sky. It seemed to be a stupendous gulf surrounded on three sides by bold, undulating lines of peaks, and on his side by a wall so high that he felt lifted aloft on the run of the sky.

He felt an intense pull, a downward force from a vast abyss below him. Looking far away, he saw a dark basin of wooded land, the darkest and wildest sight he'd ever seen, stretching a hundred miles of blue distance to a distant mountain range, hazy purple against the sky. It appeared to be an enormous chasm bordered on three sides by striking, rolling peaks, and on his side by a wall so high that he felt as if he were elevated into the sky.

“Southeast y’u see the Sierra Anchas,” said the girl pointing. “That notch in the range is the pass where sheep are driven to Phoenix an’ Maricopa. Those big rough mountains to the south are the Mazatzals. Round to the west is the Four Peaks Range. An’ y’u’re standin’ on the Rim.”

“Southeast, you can see the Sierra Anchas,” said the girl, pointing. “That notch in the range is the pass where sheep are driven to Phoenix and Maricopa. Those big, rugged mountains to the south are the Mazatzals. To the west is the Four Peaks Range. And you’re standing on the Rim.”

Jean could not see at first just what the Rim was, but by shifting his gaze westward he grasped this remarkable phenomenon of nature. For leagues and leagues a colossal red and yellow wall, a rampart, a mountain-faced cliff, seemed to zigzag westward. Grand and bold were the promontories reaching out over the void. They ran toward the westering sun. Sweeping and impressive were the long lines slanting away from them, sloping darkly spotted down to merge into the black timber. Jean had never seen such a wild and rugged manifestation of nature’s depths and upheavals. He was held mute.

Jean couldn't see at first what the Rim was, but when he shifted his gaze westward, he understood this amazing natural phenomenon. For miles and miles, a massive red and yellow wall, a rampart, a cliff that looked like a mountain, seemed to zigzag westward. The promontories were grand and bold, stretching out over the abyss. They were aimed at the setting sun. The long lines slanted away from them, darkly dotted as they descended to blend into the black timber. Jean had never witnessed such a wild and rugged display of nature's depths and upheavals. He was left speechless.

“Stranger, look down,” said the girl.

“Hey, stranger, look down,” said the girl.

Jean’s sight was educated to judge heights and depths and distances. This wall upon which he stood sheered precipitously down, so far that it made him dizzy to look, and then the craggy broken cliffs merged into red-slided, cedar-greened slopes running down and down into gorges choked with forests, and from which soared up a roar of rushing waters. Slope after slope, ridge beyond ridge, canyon merging into canyon—so the tremendous bowl sunk away to its black, deceiving depths, a wilderness across which travel seemed impossible.

Jean's vision was trained to assess heights, depths, and distances. The wall he stood on dropped steeply down, making him dizzy just to look over the edge, and then the jagged cliffs blended into red-tinted, cedar-covered slopes that continued down into valleys thick with forests, from which a roar of rushing water echoed up. Slope after slope, ridge after ridge, canyon blending into canyon—this massive bowl disappeared into its dark, misleading depths, a wilderness where traveling seemed impossible.

“Wonderful!” exclaimed Jean.

“Awesome!” exclaimed Jean.

“Indeed it is!” murmured the girl. “Shore that is Arizona. I reckon I love THIS. The heights an’ depths—the awfulness of its wilderness!”

“Absolutely!” the girl whispered. “For sure that is Arizona. I think I love THIS. The highs and lows—the sheer wildness of it!”

“An’ you want to leave it?”

“Do you want to leave it?”

“Yes an’ no. I don’t deny the peace that comes to me heah. But not often do I see the Basin, an’ for that matter, one doesn’t live on grand scenery.”

“Yes and no. I won’t deny the peace I find here. But I don’t often see the Basin, and besides, you can’t live on amazing views.”

“Child, even once in a while—this sight would cure any misery, if you only see. I’m glad I came. I’m glad you showed it to me first.”

“Kid, even just once in a while—this view would heal any sadness, if you’d only look. I’m really glad I came. I’m really glad you showed it to me first.”

She too seemed under the spell of a vastness and loneliness and beauty and grandeur that could not but strike the heart.

She also appeared to be affected by a sense of vastness, loneliness, beauty, and grandeur that was impossible not to feel in her heart.

Jean took her hand again. “Girl, say you will meet me here,” he said, his voice ringing deep in his ears.

Jean took her hand again. “Girl, say you’ll meet me here,” he said, his voice echoing in his ears.

“Shore I will,” she replied, softly, and turned to him. It seemed then that Jean saw her face for the first time. She was beautiful as he had never known beauty. Limned against that scene, she gave it life—wild, sweet, young life—the poignant meaning of which haunted yet eluded him. But she belonged there. Her eyes were again searching his, as if for some lost part of herself, unrealized, never known before. Wondering, wistful, hopeful, glad—they were eyes that seemed surprised, to reveal part of her soul.

“Sure I will,” she replied softly, turning to him. It felt like Jean was seeing her face for the first time. She was beautiful in a way he had never experienced before. Framed against that scene, she brought it to life—wild, sweet, young life—the deep meaning of which both haunted and eluded him. But she belonged there. Her eyes were searching his again, as if looking for some lost part of herself, something she had never realized or known before. Wondering, wistful, hopeful, glad—her eyes seemed surprised, revealing a part of her soul.

Then her red lips parted. Their tremulous movement was a magnet to Jean. An invisible and mighty force pulled him down to kiss them. Whatever the spell had been, that rude, unconscious action broke it.

Then her red lips opened. Their trembling movement drew Jean in. An invisible and powerful force pulled him down to kiss her. Whatever the enchantment had been, that abrupt, unintentional action shattered it.

He jerked away, as if he expected to be struck. “Girl—I—I”—he gasped in amaze and sudden-dawning contrition—“I kissed you—but I swear it wasn’t intentional—I never thought....”

He flinched, as if he expected to be hit. “Girl—I—I”—he stammered, stunned and suddenly remorseful—“I kissed you—but I promise it wasn't on purpose—I never thought....”

The anger that Jean anticipated failed to materialize. He stood, breathing hard, with a hand held out in unconscious appeal. By the same magic, perhaps, that had transfigured her a moment past, she was now invested again by the older character.

The anger that Jean expected didn’t show up. He stood there, breathing heavily, with a hand raised in an unconscious plea. By the same magic, maybe, that had transformed her just a moment ago, she was now once again taken over by her older persona.

“Shore I reckon my callin’ y’u a gentleman was a little previous,” she said, with a rather dry bitterness. “But, stranger, yu’re sudden.”

“Sure, I guess calling you a gentleman was a bit premature,” she said, with a rather dry bitterness. “But, stranger, you’re unexpected.”

“You’re not insulted?” asked Jean, hurriedly.

“You're not offended?” Jean asked quickly.

“Oh, I’ve been kissed before. Shore men are all alike.”

“Oh, I’ve been kissed before. Shore men are all the same.”

“They’re not,” he replied, hotly, with a subtle rush of disillusion, a dulling of enchantment. “Don’t you class me with other men who’ve kissed you. I wasn’t myself when I did it an’ I’d have gone on my knees to ask your forgiveness.... But now I wouldn’t—an’ I wouldn’t kiss you again, either—even if you—you wanted it.”

“They're not,” he responded passionately, feeling a wave of disillusionment wash over him, dulling the enchantment. “Don’t put me in the same category as other guys who’ve kissed you. I wasn’t really myself when I did it, and I would have gotten down on my knees to ask for your forgiveness.... But now I wouldn’t—and I wouldn’t kiss you again, either—even if you wanted me to.”

Jean read in her strange gaze what seemed to him a vague doubt, as if she was questioning him.

Jean read in her unusual gaze what appeared to him as a hazy doubt, as if she was questioning him.

“Miss, I take that back,” added Jean, shortly. “I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to be rude. It was a mean trick for me to kiss you. A girl alone in the woods who’s gone out of her way to be kind to me! I don’t know why I forgot my manners. An’ I ask your pardon.”

“Miss, I take that back,” Jean said quickly. “I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to be rude. It was a nasty thing for me to kiss you. A girl all alone in the woods who’s gone out of her way to be kind to me! I don’t know why I lost my manners. And I ask for your forgiveness.”

She looked away then, and presently pointed far out and down into the Basin.

She turned away and soon pointed far out and down into the Basin.

“There’s Grass Valley. That long gray spot in the black. It’s about fifteen miles. Ride along the Rim that way till y’u cross a trail. Shore y’u can’t miss it. Then go down.”

“There’s Grass Valley. That long gray area in the darkness. It’s about fifteen miles. Follow the Rim that way until you hit a trail. You definitely can’t miss it. Then head down.”

“I’m much obliged to you,” replied Jean, reluctantly accepting what he regarded as his dismissal. Turning his horse, he put his foot in the stirrup, then, hesitating, he looked across the saddle at the girl. Her abstraction, as she gazed away over the purple depths suggested loneliness and wistfulness. She was not thinking of that scene spread so wondrously before her. It struck Jean she might be pondering a subtle change in his feeling and attitude, something he was conscious of, yet could not define.

“I really appreciate it,” Jean replied, reluctantly taking what he saw as his dismissal. Turning his horse, he placed his foot in the stirrup, then, hesitating, he looked over the saddle at the girl. Her distant gaze, as she stared off into the deep purple, suggested loneliness and longing. She wasn’t focused on the stunning view spread out before her. It occurred to Jean that she might be contemplating a subtle shift in his feelings and attitude, something he was aware of but couldn’t quite put into words.

“Reckon this is good-by,” he said, with hesitation.

“Guess this is goodbye,” he said, hesitantly.

“ADIOS, SENOR,” she replied, facing him again. She lifted the little carbine to the hollow of her elbow and, half turning, appeared ready to depart.

“GOODBYE, SIR,” she said, turning to face him again. She raised the small carbine to the bend of her elbow and, half turning, seemed ready to leave.

“Adios means good-by?” he queried.

“Adios means goodbye?” he asked.

“Yes, good-by till to-morrow or good-by forever. Take it as y’u like.”

“Yes, goodbye until tomorrow or goodbye forever. Take it however you want.”

“Then you’ll meet me here day after to-morrow?” How eagerly he spoke, on impulse, without a consideration of the intangible thing that had changed him!

“Then you’ll meet me here the day after tomorrow?” He spoke so eagerly, on impulse, without considering the subtle thing that had changed him!

“Did I say I wouldn’t?”

“Did I say I wouldn't?”

“No. But I reckoned you’d not care to after—” he replied, breaking off in some confusion.

“No. But I figured you wouldn’t want to after—” he replied, trailing off awkwardly.

“Shore I’ll be glad to meet y’u. Day after to-morrow about mid-afternoon. Right heah. Fetch all the news from Grass Valley.”

“Sure, I’ll be happy to meet you. The day after tomorrow, around mid-afternoon. Right here. Bring all the news from Grass Valley.”

“All right. Thanks. That’ll be—fine,” replied Jean, and as he spoke he experienced a buoyant thrill, a pleasant lightness of enthusiasm, such as always stirred boyishly in him at a prospect of adventure. Before it passed he wondered at it and felt unsure of himself. He needed to think.

“All right. Thanks. That’ll be—fine,” replied Jean, and as he spoke he felt a rush of excitement, a nice lightness of enthusiasm that always stirred in him like a boy at the thought of an adventure. Before it faded, he wondered about it and felt uncertain. He needed to think.

“Stranger shore I’m not recollectin’ that y’u told me who y’u are,” she said.

“Stranger, I don't remember you telling me who you are,” she said.

“No, reckon I didn’t tell,” he returned. “What difference does that make? I said I didn’t care who or what you are. Can’t you feel the same about me?”

“No, I guess I didn’t mention it,” he replied. “What does it matter? I said I didn’t care who or what you are. Can’t you feel the same way about me?”

“Shore—I felt that way,” she replied, somewhat non-plussed, with the level brown gaze steadily on his face. “But now y’u make me think.”

“Sure—I felt that way,” she replied, somewhat taken aback, her steady brown gaze fixed on his face. “But now you’re making me think.”

“Let’s meet without knowin’ any more about each other than we do now.”

“Let’s meet without knowing any more about each other than we do right now.”

“Shore. I’d like that. In this big wild Arizona a girl—an’ I reckon a man—feels so insignificant. What’s a name, anyhow? Still, people an’ things have to be distinguished. I’ll call y’u ‘Stranger’ an’ be satisfied—if y’u say it’s fair for y’u not to tell who y’u are.”

“Sure. I’d like that. In this vast wild Arizona, a girl—and I guess a guy—feels so small. What’s in a name, anyway? Still, people and things need to be differentiated. I’ll call you ‘Stranger’ and be fine with it—if you say it’s fair for you not to share who you are.”

“Fair! No, it’s not,” declared Jean, forced to confession. “My name’s Jean—Jean Isbel.”

“Fair! No, it’s not,” said Jean, reluctantly admitting. “My name’s Jean—Jean Isbel.”

“ISBEL!” she exclaimed, with a violent start. “Shore y’u can’t be son of old Gass Isbel.... I’ve seen both his sons.”

“ISBEL!” she shouted, startled. “You can’t be the son of old Gass Isbel... I’ve seen both his sons.”

“He has three,” replied Jean, with relief, now the secret was out. “I’m the youngest. I’m twenty-four. Never been out of Oregon till now. On my way—”

“He has three,” Jean replied, feeling relieved that the secret was out. “I’m the youngest. I’m twenty-four. I’ve never left Oregon until now. I’m on my way—”

The brown color slowly faded out of her face, leaving her quite pale, with eyes that began to blaze. The suppleness of her seemed to stiffen.

The brown color slowly faded from her face, leaving her looking pretty pale, with eyes that started to blaze. The softness of her seemed to harden.

“My name’s Ellen Jorth,” she burst out, passionately. “Does it mean anythin’ to y’u?”

“My name’s Ellen Jorth,” she exclaimed, passionately. “Does it mean anything to you?”

“Never heard it in my life,” protested Jean. “Sure I reckoned you belonged to the sheep raisers who ’re on the outs with my father. That’s why I had to tell you I’m Jean Isbel.... Ellen Jorth. It’s strange an’ pretty.... Reckon I can be just as good a—a friend to you—”

“Never heard it in my life,” Jean said. “I figured you were part of the sheep raisers who are on bad terms with my dad. That’s why I had to tell you I’m Jean Isbel.... Ellen Jorth. It’s strange and pretty.... I think I can be just as good a friend to you—”

“No Isbel, can ever be a friend to me,” she said, with bitter coldness. Stripped of her ease and her soft wistfulness, she stood before him one instant, entirely another girl, a hostile enemy. Then she wheeled and strode off into the woods.

“No Isbel can ever be a friend to me,” she said, cold and bitter. Stripped of her ease and soft wistfulness, she stood before him for a moment, completely transformed into a hostile enemy. Then she turned and walked off into the woods.

Jean, in amaze, in consternation, watched her swiftly draw away with her lithe, free step, wanting to follow her, wanting to call to her; but the resentment roused by her suddenly avowed hostility held him mute in his tracks. He watched her disappear, and when the brown-and-green wall of forest swallowed the slender gray form he fought against the insistent desire to follow her, and fought in vain.

Jean, in shock and confusion, watched her quickly walk away with her effortless, graceful stride, wanting to follow her, wanting to call out to her; but the anger sparked by her sudden hostility left him speechless. He watched her fade away, and when the brown-and-green forest engulfed her slender gray figure, he struggled against the overwhelming urge to follow her, but it was a losing battle.




CHAPTER II

But Ellen Jorth’s moccasined feet did not leave a distinguishable trail on the springy pine needle covering of the ground, and Jean could not find any trace of her.

But Ellen Jorth’s moccasined feet didn’t leave a noticeable trail on the soft pine needle covering of the ground, and Jean couldn’t find any sign of her.

A little futile searching to and fro cooled his impulse and called pride to his rescue. Returning to his horse, he mounted, rode out behind the pack mule to start it along, and soon felt the relief of decision and action. Clumps of small pines grew thickly in spots on the Rim, making it necessary for him to skirt them; at which times he lost sight of the purple basin. Every time he came back to an opening through which he could see the wild ruggedness and colors and distances, his appreciation of their nature grew on him. Arizona from Yuma to the Little Colorado had been to him an endless waste of wind-scoured, sun-blasted barrenness. This black-forested rock-rimmed land of untrodden ways was a world that in itself would satisfy him. Some instinct in Jean called for a lonely, wild land, into the fastnesses of which he could roam at will and be the other strange self that he had always yearned to be but had never been.

A bit of pointless searching back and forth cooled his urge and brought pride to the forefront. He returned to his horse, got on, and rode out behind the pack mule to get it moving. Soon, he felt the relief of making a decision and taking action. Clumps of small pines grew thickly in some areas on the Rim, forcing him to go around them; during those times, he lost sight of the purple basin. Each time he found an opening where he could see the wild ruggedness, colors, and distances, his appreciation for their beauty deepened. Arizona, from Yuma to the Little Colorado, had seemed to him like an endless wasteland of wind-eroded and sun-scorched emptiness. This black-forested, rock-rimmed land of untouched paths was a world that could truly satisfy him. Some instinct in Jean longed for a remote, wild land, a place where he could wander freely and become the other unusual self he had always wanted to be but never had.

Every few moments there intruded into his flowing consciousness the flashing face of Ellen Jorth, the way she had looked at him, the things she had said. “Reckon I was a fool,” he soliloquized, with an acute sense of humiliation. “She never saw how much in earnest I was.” And Jean began to remember the circumstances with a vividness that disturbed and perplexed him.

Every few moments, the flashing image of Ellen Jorth interrupted his thoughts—the way she looked at him, the things she said. “I guess I was a fool,” he thought to himself, feeling a sharp sense of embarrassment. “She never realized how serious I was.” And Jean started to recall the details with a clarity that unsettled and confused him.

The accident of running across such a girl in that lonely place might be out of the ordinary—but it had happened. Surprise had made him dull. The charm of her appearance, the appeal of her manner, must have drawn him at the very first, but he had not recognized that. Only at her words, “Oh, I’ve been kissed before,” had his feelings been checked in their heedless progress. And the utterance of them had made a difference he now sought to analyze. Some personality in him, some voice, some idea had begun to defend her even before he was conscious that he had arraigned her before the bar of his judgment. Such defense seemed clamoring in him now and he forced himself to listen. He wanted, in his hurt pride, to justify his amazing surrender to a sweet and sentimental impulse.

The chance of running into a girl like her in such a remote place was unusual—but it happened. Surprise had left him feeling numb. The allure of her looks and the way she carried herself must have captivated him from the start, but he hadn’t realized it. Only when she said, “Oh, I’ve been kissed before,” did he feel a jolt to his emotions, interrupting their reckless advance. Her words made him aware of a shift he now tried to understand. A part of him, a voice, a thought, had started to defend her even before he realized he had put her on trial in his mind. That impulse to defend her was now clamoring in him, and he forced himself to pay attention. In his wounded pride, he wanted to make sense of why he had so easily given in to such a sweet and sentimental feeling.

He realized now that at first glance he should have recognized in her look, her poise, her voice the quality he called thoroughbred. Ragged and stained apparel did not prove her of a common sort. Jean had known a number of fine and wholesome girls of good family; and he remembered his sister. This Ellen Jorth was that kind of a girl irrespective of her present environment. Jean championed her loyally, even after he had gratified his selfish pride.

He now realized that at first glance he should have seen in her look, her grace, her voice the quality he called thoroughbred. Torn and dirty clothes didn’t make her ordinary. Jean had known several admirable and wholesome girls from good families, and he remembered his sister. This Ellen Jorth was that type of girl, no matter her current situation. Jean supported her loyally, even after he had satisfied his own selfish pride.

It was then—contending with an intangible and stealing glamour, unreal and fanciful, like the dream of a forbidden enchantment—that Jean arrived at the part in the little woodland drama where he had kissed Ellen Jorth and had been unrebuked. Why had she not resented his action? Dispelled was the illusion he had been dreamily and nobly constructing. “Oh, I’ve been kissed before!” The shock to him now exceeded his first dismay. Half bitterly she had spoken, and wholly scornful of herself, or of him, or of all men. For she had said all men were alike. Jean chafed under the smart of that, a taunt every decent man hated. Naturally every happy and healthy young man would want to kiss such red, sweet lips. But if those lips had been for others—never for him! Jean reflected that not since childish games had he kissed a girl—until this brown-faced Ellen Jorth came his way. He wondered at it. Moreover, he wondered at the significance he placed upon it. After all, was it not merely an accident? Why should he remember? Why should he ponder? What was the faint, deep, growing thrill that accompanied some of his thoughts?

It was then—struggling with an elusive and captivating allure, unreal and whimsical, like the fantasy of a forbidden charm—that Jean reached the moment in the little woodland story where he had kissed Ellen Jorth and faced no rejection. Why hadn't she been upset by his action? The illusion he had been dreamily and nobly building was shattered. “Oh, I’ve been kissed before!” The shock he felt now was greater than his initial surprise. She had spoken half bitterly, full of scorn for herself, for him, or for all men. She had claimed that all men were the same. Jean bristled at that, a jab every decent man despises. Naturally, any happy and healthy young man would want to kiss such red, sweet lips. But if those lips had belonged to others—never to him! Jean realized that not since childhood had he kissed a girl—until this brown-faced Ellen Jorth came into his life. He was puzzled by it. Moreover, he was baffled by the importance he placed on it. After all, wasn't it just a coincidence? Why should he remember? Why should he dwell on it? What was the faint, deepening thrill that accompanied some of his thoughts?

Riding along with busy mind, Jean almost crossed a well-beaten trail, leading through a pine thicket and down over the Rim. Jean’s pack mule led the way without being driven. And when Jean reached the edge of the bluff one look down was enough to fetch him off his horse. That trail was steep, narrow, clogged with stones, and as full of sharp corners as a crosscut saw. Once on the descent with a packed mule and a spirited horse, Jean had no time for mind wanderings and very little for occasional glimpses out over the cedar tops to the vast blue hollow asleep under a westering sun.

Riding along with a busy mind, Jean nearly crossed a well-trodden path that wound through a pine thicket and down the Rim. Jean's pack mule led the way without needing to be urged. When Jean reached the edge of the bluff, one look down was enough to make him dismount. The path was steep, narrow, blocked with stones, and had as many sharp turns as a crosscut saw. Once he started down with a loaded mule and a spirited horse, Jean had no time to let his thoughts wander and barely any opportunity to catch sight of the cedar treetops over the vast blue expanse resting under the setting sun.

The stones rattled, the dust rose, the cedar twigs snapped, the little avalanches of red earth slid down, the iron-shod hoofs rang on the rocks. This slope had been narrow at the apex in the Rim where the trail led down a crack, and it widened in fan shape as Jean descended. He zigzagged down a thousand feet before the slope benched into dividing ridges. Here the cedars and junipers failed and pines once more hid the sun. Deep ravines were black with brush. From somewhere rose a roar of running water, most pleasant to Jean’s ears. Fresh deer and bear tracks covered old ones made in the trail.

The stones rattled, the dust kicked up, the cedar branches snapped, little slides of red dirt tumbled down, and the iron-shod hooves rang on the rocks. This slope was narrow at the top in the Rim where the trail led down a crack and widened in a fan shape as Jean went down. He zigzagged down a thousand feet before the slope flattened into dividing ridges. Here, the cedars and junipers disappeared and the pines once again blocked out the sun. Deep ravines were dark with brush. From somewhere came the roar of running water, which was very pleasant to Jean’s ears. Fresh deer and bear tracks covered the old ones on the trail.

Those timbered ridges were but billows of that tremendous slope that now sheered above Jean, ending in a magnificent yellow wall of rock, greened in niches, stained by weather rust, carved and cracked and caverned. As Jean descended farther the hum of bees made melody, the roar of rapid water and the murmur of a rising breeze filled him with the content of the wild. Sheepmen like Colter and wild girls like Ellen Jorth and all that seemed promising or menacing in his father’s letter could never change the Indian in Jean. So he thought. Hard upon that conclusion rushed another—one which troubled with its stinging revelation. Surely these influences he had defied were just the ones to bring out in him the Indian he had sensed but had never known. The eventful day had brought new and bitter food for Jean to reflect upon.

Those timbered hills were just waves of that massive slope that now towered above Jean, ending in a stunning yellow rock wall, green in the cracks, stained by weather, carved, cracked, and filled with caves. As Jean moved further down, the buzzing of bees created a melody, the roar of rushing water and the whisper of a rising breeze filled him with the happiness of nature. Sheepmen like Colter and wild girls like Ellen Jorth, along with everything that was exciting or threatening in his father’s letter, could never change the Indian spirit in Jean. Or so he thought. Right after that conclusion, another thought hit him—one that troubled him with its sharp realization. Surely, these influences he had resisted were exactly what would awaken the Indian in him that he had felt but never truly understood. That memorable day had brought new and painful insights for Jean to ponder.

The trail landed him in the bowlder-strewn bed of a wide canyon, where the huge trees stretched a canopy of foliage which denied the sunlight, and where a beautiful brook rushed and foamed. Here at last Jean tasted water that rivaled his Oregon springs. “Ah,” he cried, “that sure is good!” Dark and shaded and ferny and mossy was this streamway; and everywhere were tracks of game, from the giant spread of a grizzly bear to the tiny, birdlike imprints of a squirrel. Jean heard familiar sounds of deer crackling the dead twigs; and the chatter of squirrels was incessant. This fragrant, cool retreat under the Rim brought back to him the dim recesses of Oregon forests. After all, Jean felt that he would not miss anything that he had loved in the Cascades. But what was the vague sense of all not being well with him—the essence of a faint regret—the insistence of a hovering shadow? And then flashed again, etched more vividly by the repetition in memory, a picture of eyes, of lips—of something he had to forget.

The trail led him into the rocky bed of a wide canyon, where massive trees created a canopy of leaves that blocked out the sunlight, and a lovely brook rushed and foamed. Here at last, Jean tasted water that rivaled his Oregon springs. “Ah,” he exclaimed, “that’s really good!” The stream was dark, shaded, filled with ferns and moss; everywhere he saw animal tracks, from the massive paws of a grizzly bear to the tiny, birdlike prints of a squirrel. Jean heard the familiar sounds of deer crunching dead twigs, and the chatter of squirrels was nonstop. This fragrant, cool spot under the Rim reminded him of the distant corners of Oregon's forests. Ultimately, Jean felt that he wouldn’t miss anything he had loved in the Cascades. But what was that vague feeling that something was off—an essence of faint regret—the nagging presence of a shadow? Then again, a picture flashed in his mind, more vividly etched by the repetition in memory—eyes, lips—something he had to forget.

Wild and broken as this rolling Basin floor had appeared from the Rim, the reality of traveling over it made that first impression a deceit of distance. Down here all was on a big, rough, broken scale. Jean did not find even a few rods of level ground. Bowlders as huge as houses obstructed the stream bed; spruce trees eight feet thick tried to lord it over the brawny pines; the ravine was a veritable canyon from which occasional glimpses through the foliage showed the Rim as a lofty red-tipped mountain peak.

Wild and rugged as this rolling basin floor looked from the rim, actually traveling across it made that first impression a trick of distance. Down here, everything was on a large, rough, uneven scale. Jean struggled to find even a few yards of flat ground. Boulders as big as houses blocked the stream bed; spruce trees eight feet wide towered over the sturdy pines; the ravine was like a true canyon, with occasional views through the trees revealing the rim as a tall, red-tipped mountain peak.

Jean’s pack mule became frightened at scent of a bear or lion and ran off down the rough trail, imperiling Jean’s outfit. It was not an easy task to head him off nor, when that was accomplished, to keep him to a trot. But his fright and succeeding skittishness at least made for fast traveling. Jean calculated that he covered ten miles under the Rim before the character of ground and forest began to change.

Jean's pack mule got spooked by the smell of a bear or lion and took off down the rough trail, putting Jean's gear at risk. It wasn't easy to catch up with him, and even once he did, keeping the mule to a trot was a challenge. But the mule's fear and nervousness at least made for quick travel. Jean estimated that he covered ten miles under the Rim before the terrain and forest started to change.

The trail had turned southeast. Instead of gorge after gorge, red-walled and choked with forest, there began to be rolling ridges, some high; others were knolls; and a thick cedar growth made up for a falling off of pine. The spruce had long disappeared. Juniper thickets gave way more and more to the beautiful manzanita; and soon on the south slopes appeared cactus and a scrubby live oak. But for the well-broken trail, Jean would have fared ill through this tough brush.

The trail had turned southeast. Instead of one gorge after another, with red walls and dense forest, there were now rolling ridges—some high, others just small hills—and a thick growth of cedar replaced the pine that had started to diminish. The spruce trees had long disappeared. Juniper thickets gradually gave way to the beautiful manzanita, and soon, on the south-facing slopes, cactus and scraggly live oak appeared. If it weren't for the well-worn trail, Jean would have struggled to make it through this tough underbrush.

Jean espied several deer, and again a coyote, and what he took to be a small herd of wild horses. No more turkey tracks showed in the dusty patches. He crossed a number of tiny brooklets, and at length came to a place where the trail ended or merged in a rough road that showed evidence of considerable travel. Horses, sheep, and cattle had passed along there that day. This road turned southward, and Jean began to have pleasurable expectations.

Jean spotted several deer, a coyote again, and what he thought was a small group of wild horses. There were no more turkey tracks visible in the dusty patches. He crossed a number of small streams and eventually reached a spot where the trail ended or merged into a rough road that showed signs of significant traffic. Horses, sheep, and cattle had passed through there that day. This road turned south, and Jean started to feel excited about what lay ahead.

The road, like the trail, led down grade, but no longer at such steep angles, and was bordered by cedar and pinyon, jack-pine and juniper, mescal and manzanita. Quite sharply, going around a ridge, the road led Jean’s eye down to a small open flat of marshy, or at least grassy, ground. This green oasis in the wilderness of red and timbered ridges marked another change in the character of the Basin. Beyond that the country began to spread out and roll gracefully, its dark-green forest interspersed with grassy parks, until Jean headed into a long, wide gray-green valley surrounded by black-fringed hills. His pulses quickened here. He saw cattle dotting the expanse, and here and there along the edge log cabins and corrals.

The road, like the trail, sloped down, but it wasn't as steep anymore, and it was lined with cedar, pinyon, jack-pine, juniper, mescal, and manzanita. As it turned sharply around a ridge, Jean's gaze was drawn to a small open flat of marshy, or at least grassy, land. This green oasis in the wild expanse of red and timbered ridges signified another shift in the character of the Basin. Beyond that, the landscape began to open up and roll gently, with its dark-green forest interspersed with grassy meadows, until Jean entered a long, wide gray-green valley surrounded by hills with dark fringes. His heart raced here. He spotted cattle scattered across the land, and here and there, along the edge, there were log cabins and corrals.

As a village, Grass Valley could not boast of much, apparently, in the way of population. Cabins and houses were widely scattered, as if the inhabitants did not care to encroach upon one another. But the one store, built of stone, and stamped also with the characteristic isolation, seemed to Jean to be a rather remarkable edifice. Not exactly like a fort did it strike him, but if it had not been designed for defense it certainly gave that impression, especially from the long, low side with its dark eye-like windows about the height of a man’s shoulder. Some rather fine horses were tied to a hitching rail. Otherwise dust and dirt and age and long use stamped this Grass Valley store and its immediate environment.

As a village, Grass Valley didn't have much to show in terms of population. The cabins and houses were spread out, as if the residents preferred not to intrude on one another. However, the one stone store, marked by its distinct isolation, appeared to Jean as quite an impressive building. It didn't strike him as exactly like a fort, but it certainly had a defensive vibe, especially with its long, low side and dark, eye-like windows at shoulder height. Some pretty nice horses were tied to a hitching rail. Aside from that, dust, dirt, and age from years of use were evident on the Grass Valley store and its surroundings.

Jean threw his bridle, and, getting down, mounted the low porch and stepped into the wide open door. A face, gray against the background of gloom inside, passed out of sight just as Jean entered. He knew he had been seen. In front of the long, rather low-ceiled store were four men, all absorbed, apparently, in a game of checkers. Two were playing and two were looking on. One of these, a gaunt-faced man past middle age, casually looked up as Jean entered. But the moment of that casual glance afforded Jean time enough to meet eyes he instinctively distrusted. They masked their penetration. They seemed neither curious nor friendly. They saw him as if he had been merely thin air.

Jean tossed his bridle aside, climbed down, made his way up the low porch, and walked through the wide open door. A gray face against the dimness inside vanished from view just as Jean stepped in. He knew he had been spotted. In front of the long, somewhat low-ceilinged store stood four men, seemingly absorbed in a game of checkers. Two were playing while the other two watched. One of the watchers, a gaunt-faced man in his middle age, glanced up casually as Jean entered. But that fleeting look gave Jean just enough time to lock eyes with someone he instinctively distrusted. The gaze was penetrating yet concealed. They seemed neither curious nor welcoming. They regarded him as if he were nothing more than thin air.

“Good evenin’,” said Jean.

“Good evening,” said Jean.

After what appeared to Jean a lapse of time sufficient to impress him with a possible deafness of these men, the gaunt-faced one said, “Howdy, Isbel!”

After what seemed to Jean to be a long enough pause to make him think these guys might be deaf, the thin-faced one said, “Hey, Isbel!”

The tone was impersonal, dry, easy, cool, laconic, and yet it could not have been more pregnant with meaning. Jean’s sharp sensibilities absorbed much. None of the slouch-sombreroed, long-mustached Texans—for so Jean at once classed them—had ever seen Jean, but they knew him and knew that he was expected in Grass Valley. All but the one who had spoken happened to have their faces in shadow under the wide-brimmed black hats. Motley-garbed, gun-belted, dusty-booted, they gave Jean the same impression of latent force that he had encountered in Colter.

The tone was impersonal, dry, easygoing, cool, and brief, yet it was full of meaning. Jean’s keen senses picked up on a lot. None of the slouch-hatted, mustached Texans—who Jean instantly categorized that way—had ever seen him, but they knew who he was and that he was expected in Grass Valley. All except for the one who spoke had their faces covered in shadow under their wide-brimmed black hats. Dressed in a mix of clothes, wearing gun belts and dusty boots, they gave Jean the same sense of hidden strength that he had felt with Colter.

“Will somebody please tell me where to find my father, Gaston Isbel?” inquired Jean, with as civil a tongue as he could command.

“Can someone please tell me where to find my dad, Gaston Isbel?” Jean asked, using as polite a tone as he could manage.

Nobody paid the slightest attention. It was the same as if Jean had not spoken. Waiting, half amused, half irritated, Jean shot a rapid glance around the store. The place had felt bare; and Jean, peering back through gloomy space, saw that it did not contain much. Dry goods and sacks littered a long rude counter; long rough shelves divided their length into stacks of canned foods and empty sections; a low shelf back of the counter held a generous burden of cartridge boxes, and next to it stood a rack of rifles. On the counter lay open cases of plug tobacco, the odor of which was second in strength only to that of rum.

Nobody paid any attention at all. It was like Jean hadn't said anything. Waiting, half amused and half annoyed, Jean quickly glanced around the store. The place felt empty; and looking back through the dim space, Jean noticed it didn't have much in it. Dry goods and sacks cluttered a long, rough counter; long, uneven shelves split their length into stacks of canned foods and empty spots; a low shelf behind the counter held a substantial load of cartridge boxes, and next to it was a rack of rifles. On the counter were open cases of plug tobacco, the smell of which was only slightly less strong than that of rum.

Jean’s swift-roving eye reverted to the men, three of whom were absorbed in the greasy checkerboard. The fourth man was the one who had spoken and he now deigned to look at Jean. Not much flesh was there stretched over his bony, powerful physiognomy. He stroked a lean chin with a big mobile hand that suggested more of bridle holding than familiarity with a bucksaw and plow handle. It was a lazy hand. The man looked lazy. If he spoke at all it would be with lazy speech, yet Jean had not encountered many men to whom he would have accorded more potency to stir in him the instinct of self-preservation.

Jean's quick eye shifted back to the men, three of whom were focused on the greasy checkerboard. The fourth man was the one who had spoken, and he now glanced at Jean. There wasn't much flesh on his bony, powerful face. He stroked a thin chin with a big, expressive hand that suggested more of holding a reins than familiarity with a saw and plow. It was a relaxed hand. The man looked relaxed. If he spoke at all, it would be with a slow drawl, yet Jean hadn't met many men he would consider more capable of triggering his instinct for self-preservation.

“Shore,” drawled this gaunt-faced Texan, “old Gass lives aboot a mile down heah.” With slow sweep of the big hand he indicated a general direction to the south; then, appearing to forget his questioner, he turned his attention to the game.

“Sure,” drawled this thin-faced Texan, “old Gass lives about a mile down here.” With a slow sweep of his big hand, he pointed in a general direction to the south; then, seeming to forget the person who asked, he turned his focus back to the game.

Jean muttered his thanks and, striding out, he mounted again, and drove the pack mule down the road. “Reckon I’ve ran into the wrong folds to-day,” he said. “If I remember dad right he was a man to make an’ keep friends. Somehow I’ll bet there’s goin’ to be hell.” Beyond the store were some rather pretty and comfortable homes, little ranch houses back in the coves of the hills. The road turned west and Jean saw his first sunset in the Tonto Basin. It was a pageant of purple clouds with silver edges, and background of deep rich gold. Presently Jean met a lad driving a cow. “Hello, Johnny!” he said, genially, and with a double purpose. “My name’s Jean Isbel. By Golly! I’m lost in Grass Valley. Will you tell me where my dad lives?”

Jean mumbled his thanks, then stepped out, mounted again, and led the pack mule down the road. “I guess I’ve run into the wrong crowd today,” he said. “If I remember my dad right, he was someone who made and kept friends. Somehow, I bet there’s going to be trouble.” Beyond the store, there were some pretty and cozy homes, small ranch houses nestled in the hills. The road turned west, and Jean saw his first sunset in the Tonto Basin. It was a stunning display of purple clouds with silver edges, set against a deep, rich gold background. Soon, Jean encountered a kid herding a cow. “Hey, Johnny!” he said cheerfully, with a double purpose. “I’m Jean Isbel. Wow! I’m lost in Grass Valley. Can you tell me where my dad lives?”

“Yep. Keep right on, an’ y’u cain’t miss him,” replied the lad, with a bright smile. “He’s lookin’ fer y’u.”

“Yep. Keep going straight, and you can’t miss him,” the guy said with a bright smile. “He’s looking for you.”

“How do you know, boy?” queried Jean, warmed by that smile.

“How do you know, kid?” Jean asked, warmed by that smile.

“Aw, I know. It’s all over the valley thet y’u’d ride in ter-day. Shore I wus the one thet tole yer dad an’ he give me a dollar.”

“Aw, I know. It’s all over the valley that you’d ride in today. Sure, I was the one that told your dad and he gave me a dollar.”

“Was he glad to hear it?” asked Jean, with a queer sensation in his throat.

“Was he happy to hear that?” asked Jean, with a strange feeling in his throat.

“Wal, he plumb was.”

"Well, he really was."

“An’ who told you I was goin’ to ride in to-day?”

“Who told you I was going to ride in today?”

“I heerd it at the store,” replied the lad, with an air of confidence. “Some sheepmen was talkin’ to Greaves. He’s the storekeeper. I was settin’ outside, but I heerd. A Mexican come down off the Rim ter-day an’ he fetched the news.” Here the lad looked furtively around, then whispered. “An’ thet greaser was sent by somebody. I never heerd no more, but them sheepmen looked pretty plumb sour. An’ one of them, comin’ out, give me a kick, darn him. It shore is the luckedest day fer us cowmen.”

“I heard it at the store,” the boy said confidently. “Some sheepmen were talking to Greaves. He’s the storekeeper. I was sitting outside, but I heard. A Mexican came down off the Rim today and brought the news.” The boy looked around furtively, then whispered, “And that guy was sent by someone. I didn’t hear any more, but those sheepmen looked really upset. And one of them, as he was leaving, kicked me, the jerk. It’s definitely the unluckiest day for us cowmen.”

“How’s that, Johnny?”

“How's that, Johnny?”

“Wal, that’s shore a big fight comin’ to Grass Valley. My dad says so an’ he rides fer yer dad. An’ if it comes now y’u’ll be heah.”

“Wow, there’s definitely a big fight coming to Grass Valley. My dad says so and he works for your dad. And if it happens now, you’ll be here.”

“Ahuh!” laughed Jean. “An’ what then, boy?”

“Yeah!” laughed Jean. “And what then, kid?”

The lad turned bright eyes upward. “Aw, now, yu’all cain’t come thet on me. Ain’t y’u an Injun, Jean Isbel? Ain’t y’u a hoss tracker thet rustlers cain’t fool? Ain’t y’u a plumb dead shot? Ain’t y’u wuss’ern a grizzly bear in a rough-an’-tumble? ... Now ain’t y’u, shore?”

The kid looked up with bright eyes. "Oh, come on, you can't pull that on me. Aren't you an Indian, Jean Isbel? Aren't you a horse tracker that rustlers can't trick? Aren't you a perfect shot? Aren't you tougher than a grizzly bear in a fight? ... Now, aren't you, for sure?"

Jean bade the flattering lad a rather sober good day and rode on his way. Manifestly a reputation somewhat difficult to live up to had preceded his entry into Grass Valley.

Jean gave the charming young man a somewhat serious good day and continued on his way. Clearly, a reputation that was a bit hard to maintain had preceded his arrival in Grass Valley.

Jean’s first sight of his future home thrilled him through. It was a big, low, rambling log structure standing well out from a wooded knoll at the edge of the valley. Corrals and barns and sheds lay off at the back. To the fore stretched broad pastures where numberless cattle and horses grazed. At sunset the scene was one of rich color. Prosperity and abundance and peace seemed attendant upon that ranch; lusty voices of burros braying and cows bawling seemed welcoming Jean. A hound bayed. The first cool touch of wind fanned Jean’s cheek and brought a fragrance of wood smoke and frying ham.

Jean’s first glimpse of his future home excited him completely. It was a large, low, sprawling log building sitting prominently on a wooded hill at the edge of the valley. Behind it were corrals, barns, and sheds. In front stretched wide pastures where countless cattle and horses grazed. At sunset, the scene was filled with rich colors. Prosperity, abundance, and peace seemed to surround that ranch; the lively sounds of donkeys braying and cows mooing felt like a warm welcome to Jean. A hound howled. The first cool breeze brushed against Jean’s cheek, carrying the scent of wood smoke and frying ham.

Horses in the Pasture romped to the fence and whistled at these newcomers. Jean espied a white-faced black horse that gladdened his sight. “Hello, Whiteface! I’ll sure straddle you,” called Jean. Then up the gentle slope he saw the tall figure of his father—the same as he had seen him thousands of times, bareheaded, shirt sleeved, striding with long step. Jean waved and called to him.

Horses in the pasture ran to the fence and whistled at the newcomers. Jean spotted a white-faced black horse that made him happy. “Hey, Whiteface! I’m definitely going to ride you,” called Jean. Then, up the gentle slope, he saw the tall figure of his dad—the same as he had seen him thousands of times, without a hat, in a short-sleeved shirt, walking with long strides. Jean waved and called out to him.

“Hi, You Prodigal!” came the answer. Yes, the voice of his father—and Jean’s boyhood memories flashed. He hurried his horse those last few rods. No—dad was not the same. His hair shone gray.

“Hey, You Prodigal!” came the reply. Yes, it was his father's voice—and Jean's childhood memories came rushing back. He urged his horse forward those last few steps. No—dad was different now. His hair was shining gray.

“Here I am, dad,” called Jean, and then he was dismounting. A deep, quiet emotion settled over him, stilling the hurry, the eagerness, the pang in his breast.

“Here I am, Dad,” called Jean, and then he got off the horse. A deep, quiet emotion washed over him, calming the rush, the excitement, the ache in his chest.

“Son, I shore am glad to see you,” said his father, and wrung his hand. “Wal, wal, the size of you! Shore you’ve grown, any how you favor your mother.”

“Son, I'm really glad to see you,” said his father, shaking his hand. “Wow, look at you! You've definitely grown, just like your mother.”

Jean felt in the iron clasp of hand, in the uplifting of the handsome head, in the strong, fine light of piercing eyes that there was no difference in the spirit of his father. But the old smile could not hide lines and shades strange to Jean.

Jean sensed in the firm grip of the hand, in the lift of the handsome head, and in the bright, intense light of the piercing eyes that there was no difference in his father's spirit. But the old smile couldn’t conceal the unfamiliar lines and shadows that Jean found strange.

“Dad, I’m as glad as you,” replied Jean, heartily. “It seems long we’ve been parted, now I see you. Are You well, dad, an’ all right?”

“Dad, I’m just as happy as you are,” Jean replied enthusiastically. “It feels like it’s been ages since we were apart, and now that I see you, I’m so glad. Are you doing well, Dad? Everything okay?”

“Not complainin’, son. I can ride all day same as ever,” he said. “Come. Never mind your hosses. They’ll be looked after. Come meet the folks.... Wal, wal, you got heah at last.”

“Not complaining, son. I can ride all day just like always,” he said. “Come on. Don’t worry about your horses. They’ll be taken care of. Come meet the family... Well, well, you finally made it.”

On the porch of the house a group awaited Jean’s coming, rather silently, he thought. Wide-eyed children were there, very shy and watchful. The dark face of his sister corresponded with the image of her in his memory. She appeared taller, more womanly, as she embraced him. “Oh, Jean, Jean, I’m glad you’ve come!” she cried, and pressed him close. Jean felt in her a woman’s anxiety for the present as well as affection for the past. He remembered his aunt Mary, though he had not seen her for years. His half brothers, Bill and Guy, had changed but little except perhaps to grow lean and rangy. Bill resembled his father, though his aspect was jocular rather than serious. Guy was smaller, wiry, and hard as rock, with snapping eyes in a brown, still face, and he had the bow-legs of a cattleman. Both had married in Arizona. Bill’s wife, Kate, was a stout, comely little woman, mother of three of the children. The other wife was young, a strapping girl, red headed and freckled, with wonderful lines of pain and strength in her face. Jean remembered, as he looked at her, that some one had written him about the tragedy in her life. When she was only a child the Apaches had murdered all her family. Then next to greet Jean were the little children, all shy, yet all manifestly impressed by the occasion. A warmth and intimacy of forgotten home emotions flooded over Jean. Sweet it was to get home to these relatives who loved him and welcomed him with quiet gladness. But there seemed more. Jean was quick to see the shadow in the eyes of the women in that household and to sense a strange reliance which his presence brought.

On the porch of the house, a group waited for Jean to arrive, rather quietly, he thought. Wide-eyed kids were there, very shy and watchful. The dark face of his sister matched the image he had of her in his memory. She seemed taller, more womanly, as she hugged him. “Oh, Jean, Jean, I’m so glad you’re here!” she cried, pulling him close. Jean felt in her a woman’s worry for the present mixed with affection for the past. He remembered his Aunt Mary, even though he hadn’t seen her for years. His half-brothers, Bill and Guy, had changed little, except maybe to grow lean and lanky. Bill looked like their father but had a more playful than serious demeanor. Guy was shorter, wiry, and tough as nails, with sharp eyes set in a still brown face, and he had the bowlegs of a rancher. Both had gotten married in Arizona. Bill’s wife, Kate, was a sturdy, attractive little woman and the mother of three of the kids. The other wife was young, a strong girl with red hair and freckles, her face showing lines of pain and strength. As Jean looked at her, he remembered someone had told him about the tragedy in her life. When she was just a child, the Apaches had killed her entire family. Next, the little kids greeted Jean, all shy but clearly impressed by the event. A warmth and intimacy of familiar home emotions washed over Jean. It felt nice to be back with these relatives who loved him and welcomed him with quiet joy. But there seemed to be more. Jean quickly noticed the shadow in the eyes of the women in that household and felt a strange reliance that his presence brought.

“Son, this heah Tonto is a land of milk an’ honey,” said his father, as Jean gazed spellbound at the bounteous supper.

“Son, this here Tonto is a land of milk and honey,” said his father, as Jean gazed spellbound at the plentiful dinner.

Jean certainly performed gastronomic feats on this occasion, to the delight of Aunt Mary and the wonder of the children. “Oh, he’s starv-ved to death,” whispered one of the little boys to his sister. They had begun to warm to this stranger uncle. Jean had no chance to talk, even had he been able to, for the meal-time showed a relaxation of restraint and they all tried to tell him things at once. In the bright lamplight his father looked easier and happier as he beamed upon Jean.

Jean definitely pulled off some culinary magic this time, delighting Aunt Mary and amazing the kids. “Oh, he’s starv-ed to death,” whispered one of the little boys to his sister. They were starting to warm up to this unfamiliar uncle. Jean didn’t get a chance to talk, even if he could have, because mealtime brought a sense of relaxation and everyone was trying to share stories with him all at once. Under the bright lamplight, his father appeared more relaxed and happier as he smiled at Jean.

After supper the men went into an adjoining room that appeared most comfortable and attractive. It was long, and the width of the house, with a huge stone fireplace, low ceiling of hewn timbers and walls of the same, small windows with inside shutters of wood, and home-made table and chairs and rugs.

After dinner, the men went into a nearby room that looked very cozy and inviting. It was long and the width of the house, featuring a large stone fireplace, a low ceiling made of wooden beams, and walls made of the same wood. There were small windows with wooden shutters inside, along with a homemade table, chairs, and rugs.

“Wal, Jean, do you recollect them shootin’-irons?” inquired the rancher, pointing above the fireplace. Two guns hung on the spreading deer antlers there. One was a musket Jean’s father had used in the war of the rebellion and the other was a long, heavy, muzzle-loading flintlock Kentucky, rifle with which Jean had learned to shoot.

“Hey, Jean, do you remember those guns?” the rancher asked, pointing above the fireplace. Two guns were hanging from the large deer antlers there. One was a musket that Jean’s father had used in the Civil War, and the other was a long, heavy, muzzle-loading flintlock Kentucky rifle that Jean had learned to shoot with.

“Reckon I do, dad,” replied Jean, and with reverent hands and a rush of memory he took the old gun down.

“Yeah, I do, Dad,” Jean replied, and with careful hands and a flood of memories, he took down the old gun.

“Jean, you shore handle thet old arm some clumsy,” said Guy Isbel, dryly. And Bill added a remark to the effect that perhaps Jean had been leading a luxurious and tame life back there in Oregon, and then added, “But I reckon he’s packin’ that six-shooter like a Texan.”

“Jean, you sure handle that old arm a bit awkwardly,” said Guy Isbel, dryly. And Bill chimed in with a comment suggesting that maybe Jean had been living a comfortable and laid-back life back in Oregon, and then added, “But I guess he’s carrying that six-shooter like a Texan.”

“Say, I fetched a gun or two along with me,” replied Jean, jocularly. “Reckon I near broke my poor mule’s back with the load of shells an’ guns. Dad, what was the idea askin’ me to pack out an arsenal?”

“Hey, I brought a couple of guns with me,” Jean said jokingly. “I think I almost broke my poor mule’s back with all the shells and guns. Dad, what were you thinking asking me to carry out an arsenal?”

“Son, shore all shootin’ arms an’ such are at a premium in the Tonto,” replied his father. “An’ I was givin’ you a hunch to come loaded.”

“Son, all kinds of firearms and stuff are in high demand in the Tonto,” replied his father. “And I was hinting that you should come prepared.”

His cool, drawling voice seemed to put a damper upon the pleasantries. Right there Jean sensed the charged atmosphere. His brothers were bursting with utterance about to break forth, and his father suddenly wore a look that recalled to Jean critical times of days long past. But the entrance of the children and the women folk put an end to confidences. Evidently the youngsters were laboring under subdued excitement. They preceded their mother, the smallest boy in the lead. For him this must have been both a dreadful and a wonderful experience, for he seemed to be pushed forward by his sister and brother and mother, and driven by yearnings of his own. “There now, Lee. Say, ‘Uncle Jean, what did you fetch us?’ The lad hesitated for a shy, frightened look at Jean, and then, gaining something from his scrutiny of his uncle, he toddled forward and bravely delivered the question of tremendous importance.

His cool, drawling voice seemed to dampen the friendly atmosphere. Right there, Jean sensed the tense mood. His brothers were about to burst out with words, and his father suddenly wore a look that reminded Jean of critical times from long ago. But the arrival of the children and the women quickly ended the shared confidences. Clearly, the kids were filled with a subdued excitement. They came in ahead of their mother, with the smallest boy leading the way. For him, this must have been both a scary and amazing experience, as he seemed to be pushed forward by his sister, brother, and mother, all while being driven by his own excitement. “Come on, Lee. Ask, ‘Uncle Jean, what did you bring us?’” The little boy paused for a shy, nervous glance at Jean, and then, finding some courage from looking at his uncle, he waddled forward and courageously asked the tremendously important question.

“What did I fetch you, hey?” cried Jean, in delight, as he took the lad up on his knee. “Wouldn’t you like to know? I didn’t forget, Lee. I remembered you all. Oh! the job I had packin’ your bundle of presents.... Now, Lee, make a guess.”

“What did I bring you, huh?” shouted Jean happily as he lifted the boy onto his knee. “Wouldn’t you like to know? I didn’t forget, Lee. I remembered all of you. Oh! The effort I had putting together your bundle of gifts... Now, Lee, take a guess.”

“I dess you fetched a dun,” replied Lee.

“I guess you got a donkey,” replied Lee.

“A dun!—I’ll bet you mean a gun,” laughed Jean. “Well, you four-year-old Texas gunman! Make another guess.”

“A dun!—I’ll bet you mean a gun,” laughed Jean. “Well, you little four-year-old Texas gunman! Make another guess.”

That appeared too momentous and entrancing for the other two youngsters, and, adding their shrill and joyous voices to Lee’s, they besieged Jean.

That seemed too significant and captivating for the other two kids, and, adding their loud and cheerful voices to Lee’s, they pestered Jean.

“Dad, where’s my pack?” cried Jean. “These young Apaches are after my scalp.”

“Dad, where's my pack?” yelled Jean. “These young Apaches are after my scalp.”

“Reckon the boys fetched it onto the porch,” replied the rancher.

“Guess the boys brought it onto the porch,” replied the rancher.

Guy Isbel opened the door and went out. “By golly! heah’s three packs,” he called. “Which one do you want, Jean?”

Guy Isbel opened the door and stepped outside. “Wow! Here are three packs,” he called. “Which one do you want, Jean?”

“It’s a long, heavy bundle, all tied up,” replied Jean.

“It’s a long, heavy package, all wrapped up,” replied Jean.

Guy came staggering in under a burden that brought a whoop from the youngsters and bright gleams to the eyes of the women. Jean lost nothing of this. How glad he was that he had tarried in San Francisco because of a mental picture of this very reception in far-off wild Arizona.

Guy stumbled in, struggling with a load that shocked the kids and lit up the women’s faces. Jean watched all of it, feeling grateful that he had stayed in San Francisco, imagining this exact welcoming moment in the distant wilds of Arizona.

When Guy deposited the bundle on the floor it jarred the room. It gave forth metallic and rattling and crackling sounds.

When Guy dropped the bundle on the floor, it shook the room. It made metallic, rattling, and crackling noises.

“Everybody stand back an’ give me elbow room,” ordered Jean, majestically. “My good folks, I want you all to know this is somethin’ that doesn’t happen often. The bundle you see here weighed about a hundred pounds when I packed it on my shoulder down Market Street in Frisco. It was stolen from me on shipboard. I got it back in San Diego an’ licked the thief. It rode on a burro from San Diego to Yuma an’ once I thought the burro was lost for keeps. It came up the Colorado River from Yuma to Ehrenberg an’ there went on top of a stage. We got chased by bandits an’ once when the horses were gallopin’ hard it near rolled off. Then it went on the back of a pack horse an’ helped wear him out. An’ I reckon it would be somewhere else now if I hadn’t fallen in with a freighter goin’ north from Phoenix to the Santa Fe Trail. The last lap when it sagged the back of a mule was the riskiest an’ full of the narrowest escapes. Twice my mule bucked off his pack an’ left my outfit scattered. Worst of all, my precious bundle made the mule top heavy comin’ down that place back here where the trail seems to drop off the earth. There I was hard put to keep sight of my pack. Sometimes it was on top an’ other times the mule. But it got here at last.... An’ now I’ll open it.”

“Everybody stand back and give me some space,” declared Jean confidently. “My good friends, I want you all to know this is something that doesn’t happen often. The bundle you see here weighed about a hundred pounds when I carried it on my shoulder down Market Street in San Francisco. It was stolen from me on the ship. I got it back in San Diego and dealt with the thief. It traveled on a donkey from San Diego to Yuma, and at one point, I thought the donkey was lost for good. It came up the Colorado River from Yuma to Ehrenberg and then went on top of a stagecoach. We were chased by bandits, and once when the horses were galloping hard, it almost rolled off. Then it went on the back of a pack horse and helped exhaust him. I guess it would be somewhere else now if I hadn’t teamed up with a freighter heading north from Phoenix to the Santa Fe Trail. The last stretch, when it weighed down the back of a mule, was the riskiest and had the narrowest escapes. Twice my mule bucked off its pack and left my stuff scattered. Worst of all, my precious bundle made the mule top-heavy coming down that spot back there where the trail seems to drop off the earth. There I was struggling to keep an eye on my pack. Sometimes it was on top and other times the mule was. But it made it here at last… And now I’ll open it.”

After this long and impressive harangue, which at least augmented the suspense of the women and worked the children into a frenzy, Jean leisurely untied the many knots round the bundle and unrolled it. He had packed that bundle for just such travel as it had sustained. Three cloth-bound rifles he laid aside, and with them a long, very heavy package tied between two thin wide boards. From this came the metallic clink. “Oo, I know what dem is!” cried Lee, breaking the silence of suspense. Then Jean, tearing open a long flat parcel, spread before the mute, rapt-eyed youngsters such magnificent things, as they had never dreamed of—picture books, mouth-harps, dolls, a toy gun and a toy pistol, a wonderful whistle and a fox horn, and last of all a box of candy. Before these treasures on the floor, too magical to be touched at first, the two little boys and their sister simply knelt. That was a sweet, full moment for Jean; yet even that was clouded by the something which shadowed these innocent children fatefully born in a wild place at a wild time. Next Jean gave to his sister the presents he had brought her—beautiful cloth for a dress, ribbons and a bit of lace, handkerchiefs and buttons and yards of linen, a sewing case and a whole box of spools of thread, a comb and brush and mirror, and lastly a Spanish brooch inlaid with garnets. “There, Ann,” said Jean, “I confess I asked a girl friend in Oregon to tell me some things my sister might like.” Manifestly there was not much difference in girls. Ann seemed stunned by this munificence, and then awakening, she hugged Jean in a way that took his breath. She was not a child any more, that was certain. Aunt Mary turned knowing eyes upon Jean. “Reckon you couldn’t have pleased Ann more. She’s engaged, Jean, an’ where girls are in that state these things mean a heap.... Ann, you’ll be married in that!” And she pointed to the beautiful folds of material that Ann had spread out.

After this long and impressive speech, which at least heightened the suspense for the women and got the children all worked up, Jean casually untied the many knots around the bundle and unrolled it. He had packed that bundle for exactly this kind of journey. He set aside three cloth-bound rifles and along with them a long, very heavy package tied between two thin boards. From it came a metallic clink. “Oh, I know what those are!” shouted Lee, breaking the suspenseful silence. Then Jean, tearing open a long flat package, revealed to the wide-eyed children incredible items they had never imagined—picture books, mouth harps, dolls, a toy gun and a toy pistol, a wonderful whistle, and a fox horn, and last but not least, a box of candy. Faced with these treasures on the floor, too magical to touch at first, the two little boys and their sister simply knelt. That was a sweet, full moment for Jean; yet even that was overshadowed by the ominous fate looming over these innocent children born in a wild place at a wild time. Next, Jean gave his sister the gifts he had brought for her—beautiful fabric for a dress, ribbons and a bit of lace, handkerchiefs and buttons and yards of linen, a sewing kit and a whole box of spools of thread, a comb and brush and mirror, and finally, a Spanish brooch inlaid with garnets. “There you go, Ann,” said Jean, “I admit I asked a girl friend in Oregon to suggest some things my sister might like.” Clearly, there wasn’t much difference in girls. Ann seemed stunned by this generosity, and then, coming to her senses, she hugged Jean in a way that took his breath away. She was definitely not a child anymore. Aunt Mary looked knowingly at Jean. “I bet you couldn't have pleased Ann more. She’s engaged, Jean, and when girls are in that state, these things mean a lot... Ann, you’ll be married in that!” And she pointed to the beautiful fabric Ann had spread out.

“What’s this?” demanded Jean. His sister’s blushes were enough to convict her, and they were mightily becoming, too.

“What’s this?” asked Jean. His sister’s blushes were enough to give her away, and they looked pretty good on her, too.

“Here, Aunt Mary,” went on Jean, “here’s yours, an’ here’s somethin’ for each of my new sisters.” This distribution left the women as happy and occupied, almost, as the children. It left also another package, the last one in the bundle. Jean laid hold of it and, lifting it, he was about to speak when he sustained a little shock of memory. Quite distinctly he saw two little feet, with bare toes peeping out of worn-out moccasins, and then round, bare, symmetrical ankles that had been scratched by brush. Next he saw Ellen Jorth’s passionate face as she looked when she had made the violent action so disconcerting to him. In this happy moment the memory seemed farther off than a few hours. It had crystallized. It annoyed while it drew him. As a result he slowly laid this package aside and did not speak as he had intended to.

“Here, Aunt Mary,” Jean continued, “here’s yours, and here’s something for each of my new sisters.” This sharing left the women just as happy and engaged as the children. It also left one last package, the final one in the bundle. Jean picked it up and was about to say something when a sudden memory hit him. He clearly saw two little feet with bare toes sticking out of worn-out moccasins, and then rounded, bare ankles that had been scratched by bushes. Next, he remembered Ellen Jorth’s passionate expression from when she had made the sudden move that had caught him off guard. In this joyful moment, the memory felt more distant than just a few hours ago. It had frozen in time. It both bothered and attracted him. So, he slowly set the package aside and didn’t say anything as he had planned.

“Dad, I reckon I didn’t fetch a lot for you an’ the boys,” continued Jean. “Some knives, some pipes an’ tobacco. An’ sure the guns.”

“Dad, I guess I didn’t bring back much for you and the guys,” continued Jean. “A few knives, some pipes and tobacco. And of course the guns.”

“Shore, you’re a regular Santa Claus, Jean,” replied his father. “Wal, wal, look at the kids. An’ look at Mary. An’ for the land’s sake look at Ann! Wal, wal, I’m gettin’ old. I’d forgotten the pretty stuff an’ gimcracks that mean so much to women. We’re out of the world heah. It’s just as well you’ve lived apart from us, Jean, for comin’ back this way, with all that stuff, does us a lot of good. I cain’t say, son, how obliged I am. My mind has been set on the hard side of life. An’ it’s shore good to forget—to see the smiles of the women an’ the joy of the kids.”

“Sure, you’re just like Santa Claus, Jean,” his father replied. “Well, well, look at the kids. And check out Mary. And for goodness’ sake, look at Ann! Well, well, I’m getting old. I’d forgotten about all the nice things and trinkets that mean so much to women. We’re really out of touch here. It’s probably for the best that you’ve lived separately from us, Jean, because coming back here with all that stuff is really uplifting for us. I can’t tell you, son, how grateful I am. My mind has been focused on the tough side of life. And it’s definitely nice to forget all that—to see the smiles on the women’s faces and the joy in the kids.”

At this juncture a tall young man entered the open door. He looked a rider. All about him, even his face, except his eyes, seemed old, but his eyes were young, fine, soft, and dark.

At that moment, a tall young man walked through the open door. He looked like a rider. Everything about him, even his face, except for his eyes, seemed aged, but his eyes were young, beautiful, gentle, and dark.

“How do, y’u-all!” he said, evenly.

“How’s it going, everyone!” he said, casually.

Ann rose from her knees. Then Jean did not need to be told who this newcomer was.

Ann got up from her knees. Then Jean didn't need anyone to tell her who this newcomer was.

“Jean, this is my friend, Andrew Colmor.”

“Jean, this is my friend, Andrew Colmor.”

Jean knew when he met Colmor’s grip and the keen flash of his eyes that he was glad Ann had set her heart upon one of their kind. And his second impression was something akin to the one given him in the road by the admiring lad. Colmor’s estimate of him must have been a monument built of Ann’s eulogies. Jean’s heart suffered misgivings. Could he live up to the character that somehow had forestalled his advent in Grass Valley? Surely life was measured differently here in the Tonto Basin.

Jean knew when he felt Colmor's grip and saw the sharp flash in his eyes that he was glad Ann had fallen for someone like him. His second impression was similar to what he felt on the road from the admiring young man. Colmor’s view of him must have been built on Ann’s praises. Jean's heart was filled with doubt. Could he really measure up to the reputation that had somehow preceded his arrival in Grass Valley? Life in the Tonto Basin had to be different.

The children, bundling their treasures to their bosoms, were dragged off to bed in some remote part of the house, from which their laughter and voices came back with happy significance. Jean forthwith had an interested audience. How eagerly these lonely pioneer people listened to news of the outside world! Jean talked until he was hoarse. In their turn his hearers told him much that had never found place in the few and short letters he had received since he had been left in Oregon. Not a word about sheepmen or any hint of rustlers! Jean marked the omission and thought all the more seriously of probabilities because nothing was said. Altogether the evening was a happy reunion of a family of which all living members were there present. Jean grasped that this fact was one of significant satisfaction to his father.

The children, clutching their treasures to their chests, were taken off to bed in some far corner of the house, from which their laughter and voices echoed back with joyful meaning. Jean immediately had an engaged audience. How eagerly these isolated settlers listened to news from the outside world! Jean talked until his voice was hoarse. In turn, his listeners shared much that had never been included in the few brief letters he had received since arriving in Oregon. Not a word about sheepmen or any hint of rustlers! Jean noted the omission and considered the implications of what wasn’t said even more seriously. Overall, the evening was a joyful reunion of a family that had all its living members present. Jean understood that this fact brought significant satisfaction to his father.

“Shore we’re all goin’ to live together heah,” he declared. “I started this range. I call most of this valley mine. We’ll run up a cabin for Ann soon as she says the word. An’ you, Jean, where’s your girl? I shore told you to fetch her.”

“Sure, we're all going to live together here,” he said. “I started this ranch. I consider most of this valley mine. We’ll build a cabin for Ann as soon as she gives the green light. And you, Jean, where’s your girl? I definitely told you to bring her.”

“Dad, I didn’t have one,” replied Jean.

“Dad, I didn't have one,” replied Jean.

“Wal, I wish you had,” returned the rancher. “You’ll go courtin’ one of these Tonto hussies that I might object to.”

“Well, I wish you had,” replied the rancher. “You’ll be dating one of those Tonto girls that I might not approve of.”

“Why, father, there’s not a girl in the valley Jean would look twice at,” interposed Ann Isbel, with spirit.

“Why, Dad, there isn’t a girl in the valley Jean would even glance at,” chimed in Ann Isbel, full of energy.

Jean laughed the matter aside, but he had an uneasy memory. Aunt Mary averred, after the manner of relatives, that Jean would play havoc among the women of the settlement. And Jean retorted that at least one member of the Isbels; should hold out against folly and fight and love and marriage, the agents which had reduced the family to these few present. “I’ll be the last Isbel to go under,” he concluded.

Jean brushed off the comment with a laugh, but he couldn’t shake an uneasy memory. Aunt Mary insisted, as relatives often do, that Jean would cause trouble among the women in the community. Jean shot back that at least one member of the Isbel family should resist foolishness and the temptations of romance and marriage, the forces that had dwindled the family to just this small group. “I’ll be the last Isbel to fall,” he concluded.

“Son, you’re talkin’ wisdom,” said his father. “An’ shore that reminds me of the uncle you’re named after. Jean Isbel! ... Wal, he was my youngest brother an’ shore a fire-eater. Our mother was a French creole from Louisiana, an’ Jean must have inherited some of his fightin’ nature from her. When the war of the rebellion started Jean an’ I enlisted. I was crippled before we ever got to the front. But Jean went through three Years before he was killed. His company had orders to fight to the last man. An’ Jean fought an’ lived long enough just to be that last man.”

“Son, you’re talking wisdom,” said his father. “And that reminds me of the uncle you’re named after. Jean Isbel! ... Well, he was my youngest brother and definitely a tough guy. Our mother was a French Creole from Louisiana, and Jean must have inherited some of her fighting spirit. When the Civil War started, Jean and I enlisted. I was injured before we even reached the front lines. But Jean fought for three years before he was killed. His company had orders to fight to the last man. And Jean fought and lived long enough to be that last man.”

At length Jean was left alone with his father.

At last, Jean was left alone with his dad.

“Reckon you’re used to bunkin’ outdoors?” queried the rancher, rather abruptly.

“Do you think you’re used to sleeping outside?” the rancher asked, rather abruptly.

“Most of the time,” replied Jean.

“Most of the time,” Jean replied.

“Wal, there’s room in the house, but I want you to sleep out. Come get your beddin’ an’ gun. I’ll show you.”

“Well, there’s space in the house, but I want you to sleep outside. Come get your bedding and gun. I’ll show you.”

They went outside on the porch, where Jean shouldered his roll of tarpaulin and blankets. His rifle, in its saddle sheath, leaned against the door. His father took it up and, half pulling it out, looked at it by the starlight. “Forty-four, eh? Wal, wal, there’s shore no better, if a man can hold straight.” At the moment a big gray dog trotted up to sniff at Jean. “An’ heah’s your bunkmate, Shepp. He’s part lofer, Jean. His mother was a favorite shepherd dog of mine. His father was a big timber wolf that took us two years to kill. Some bad wolf packs runnin’ this Basin.”

They stepped outside onto the porch, where Jean slung his roll of tarps and blankets over his shoulder. His rifle, still in its sheath, rested against the door. His father picked it up and, pulling it halfway out, examined it in the starlight. “Forty-four, huh? Well, well, there's definitely nothing better, if a man can aim straight.” Just then, a big gray dog came over to sniff at Jean. “And here’s your buddy, Shepp. He’s part loper, Jean. His mother was my favorite shepherd dog. His father was a huge timber wolf that took us two years to track down. There are some dangerous wolf packs running around this Basin.”

The night was cold and still, darkly bright under moon and stars; the smell of hay seemed to mingle with that of cedar. Jean followed his father round the house and up a gentle slope of grass to the edge of the cedar line. Here several trees with low-sweeping thick branches formed a dense, impenetrable shade.

The night was cold and quiet, brightly dark under the moon and stars; the smell of hay mixed with the scent of cedar. Jean followed his dad around the house and up a gentle grassy slope to the edge of the cedar trees. Here, several trees with low-hanging thick branches created a dense, impenetrable shade.

“Son, your uncle Jean was scout for Liggett, one of the greatest rebels the South had,” said the rancher. “An’ you’re goin’ to be scout for the Isbels of Tonto. Reckon you’ll find it ’most as hot as your uncle did.... Spread your bed inside. You can see out, but no one can see you. Reckon there’s been some queer happenin’s ’round heah lately. If Shepp could talk he’d shore have lots to tell us. Bill an’ Guy have been sleepin’ out, trailin’ strange hoss tracks, an’ all that. But shore whoever’s been prowlin’ around heah was too sharp for them. Some bad, crafty, light-steppin’ woodsmen ’round heah, Jean.... Three mawnin’s ago, just after daylight, I stepped out the back door an’ some one of these sneaks I’m talkin’ aboot took a shot at me. Missed my head a quarter of an inch! To-morrow I’ll show you the bullet hole in the doorpost. An’ some of my gray hairs that ’re stickin’ in it!”

“Son, your uncle Jean was a scout for Liggett, one of the biggest rebels the South had,” said the rancher. “And you’re going to be a scout for the Isbels of Tonto. I reckon you’ll find it almost as hot as your uncle did… Spread your bed inside. You can see out, but no one can see you. I think there have been some strange happenings around here lately. If Shepp could talk, he’d sure have a lot to tell us. Bill and Guy have been sleeping outside, tracking strange horse prints, and all that. But whoever’s been sneaking around here has been too clever for them. There are some bad, sly, light-footed woodsmen around here, Jean… Three mornings ago, just after sunrise, I stepped out the back door and one of these sneaks I’m talking about took a shot at me. Missed my head by a quarter of an inch! Tomorrow I’ll show you the bullet hole in the doorpost. And some of my gray hairs that are stuck in it!”

“Dad!” ejaculated Jean, with a hand outstretched. “That’s awful! You frighten me.”

“Dad!” exclaimed Jean, reaching out her hand. “That’s terrible! You scare me.”

“No time to be scared,” replied his father, calmly. “They’re shore goin’ to kill me. That’s why I wanted you home.... In there with you, now! Go to sleep. You shore can trust Shepp to wake you if he gets scent or sound.... An’ good night, my son. I’m sayin’ that I’ll rest easy to-night.”

“No time to be scared,” his father replied calmly. “They’re definitely going to kill me. That’s why I wanted you home... Get in there with you, now! Go to sleep. You can definitely trust Shepp to wake you up if he senses or hears anything... And good night, my son. I’m saying that I’ll rest easy tonight.”

Jean mumbled a good night and stood watching his father’s shining white head move away under the starlight. Then the tall, dark form vanished, a door closed, and all was still. The dog Shepp licked Jean’s hand. Jean felt grateful for that warm touch. For a moment he sat on his roll of bedding, his thought still locked on the shuddering revelation of his father’s words, “They’re shore goin’ to kill me.” The shock of inaction passed. Jean pushed his pack in the dark opening and, crawling inside, he unrolled it and made his bed.

Jean mumbled goodnight and watched his father's shining white head disappear under the starlight. Then the tall, dark figure was gone, a door closed, and everything went quiet. The dog, Shepp, licked Jean’s hand. Jean appreciated that warm touch. For a moment, he sat on his roll of bedding, his mind still focused on the shocking revelation of his father’s words, “They’re sure going to kill me.” The shock of inaction faded away. Jean pushed his pack into the dark opening and crawled inside, unrolling it to make his bed.

When at length he was comfortably settled for the night he breathed a long sigh of relief. What bliss to relax! A throbbing and burning of his muscles seemed to begin with his rest. The cool starlit night, the smell of cedar, the moan of wind, the silence—an were real to his senses. After long weeks of long, arduous travel he was home. The warmth of the welcome still lingered, but it seemed to have been pierced by an icy thrust. What lay before him? The shadow in the eyes of his aunt, in the younger, fresher eyes of his sister—Jean connected that with the meaning of his father’s tragic words. Far past was the morning that had been so keen, the breaking of camp in the sunlit forest, the riding down the brown aisles under the pines, the music of bleating lambs that had called him not to pass by. Thought of Ellen Jorth recurred. Had he met her only that morning? She was up there in the forest, asleep under the starlit pines. Who was she? What was her story? That savage fling of her skirt, her bitter speech and passionate flaming face—they haunted Jean. They were crystallizing into simpler memories, growing away from his bewilderment, and therefore at once sweeter and more doubtful. “Maybe she meant differently from what I thought,” Jean soliloquized. “Anyway, she was honest.” Both shame and thrill possessed him at the recall of an insidious idea—dare he go back and find her and give her the last package of gifts he had brought from the city? What might they mean to poor, ragged, untidy, beautiful Ellen Jorth? The idea grew on Jean. It could not be dispelled. He resisted stubbornly. It was bound to go to its fruition. Deep into his mind had sunk an impression of her need—a material need that brought spirit and pride to abasement. From one picture to another his memory wandered, from one speech and act of hers to another, choosing, selecting, casting aside, until clear and sharp as the stars shone the words, “Oh, I’ve been kissed before!” That stung him now. By whom? Not by one man, but by several, by many, she had meant. Pshaw! he had only been sympathetic and drawn by a strange girl in the woods. To-morrow he would forget. Work there was for him in Grass Valley. And he reverted uneasily to the remarks of his father until at last sleep claimed him.

When he finally settled in for the night, he let out a long sigh of relief. What bliss it was to relax! As he rested, he felt a throbbing and burning in his muscles. The cool, starlit night, the smell of cedar, the sound of the wind, the silence—it all felt so real to him. After weeks of hard travel, he was home. The warmth of the welcome still lingered, but it seemed to have been pierced by an icy jab. What lay ahead for him? He could see the shadow in his aunt's eyes and the younger, brighter eyes of his sister—Jean connected that to the meaning behind his father's tragic words. Gone was the morning that had been so bright, the breaking of camp in the sunlit forest, the ride down the brown paths under the pines, the music of bleating lambs calling him not to pass by. Thoughts of Ellen Jorth came back to him. Had they really met only that morning? She was up there in the forest, sleeping under the starlit pines. Who was she? What was her story? That wild flick of her skirt, her bitter words, and her passionate, fiery face haunted Jean. They were turning into clearer memories, growing away from his confusion, making them both sweeter and more uncertain. “Maybe she meant something different than I thought,” Jean mused. “Either way, she was honest.” Both shame and excitement filled him as he recalled a tempting thought—should he go back and find her to give her the last package of gifts he brought from the city? What might they mean to poor, ragged, untidy, beautiful Ellen Jorth? The thought took hold of Jean. It wouldn’t leave his mind. He resisted stubbornly. It was going to play out. Deep in his mind was the image of her need—a material need that stripped spirit and pride down to nothing. His memory drifted from one image to another, recalling her words and actions, choosing and discarding until clear as the stars were the words, “Oh, I’ve been kissed before!” That stung him. By whom? Not by one man, but by several, by many, she meant. Nonsense! He had just been sympathetic and drawn to a strange girl in the woods. Tomorrow, he would forget. He had work to do in Grass Valley. And he uneasily returned to his father's remarks until sleep finally took him.

A cold nose against his cheek, a low whine, awakened Jean. The big dog Shepp was beside him, keen, wary, intense. The night appeared far advanced toward dawn. Far away a cock crowed; the near-at-hand one answered in clarion voice. “What is it, Shepp?” whispered Jean, and he sat up. The dog smelled or heard something suspicious to his nature, but whether man or animal Jean could not tell.

A cold nose pressed against his cheek and a low whine woke Jean up. The big dog Shepp was next to him, alert, cautious, and focused. It felt like the night was almost over and dawn was near. In the distance, a rooster crowed, and another nearby answered loudly. “What is it, Shepp?” Jean whispered as he sat up. The dog sensed or heard something off, but Jean couldn’t tell if it was a person or an animal.




CHAPTER III

The morning star, large, intensely blue-white, magnificent in its dominance of the clear night sky, hung over the dim, dark valley ramparts. The moon had gone down and all the other stars were wan, pale ghosts.

The morning star, big and a bright blue-white, stood out beautifully in the clear night sky, hovering over the shadowy, dark valley walls. The moon had set, and all the other stars were faint, pale shadows.

Presently the strained vacuum of Jean’s ears vibrated to a low roar of many hoofs. It came from the open valley, along the slope to the south. Shepp acted as if he wanted the word to run. Jean laid a hand on the dog. “Hold on, Shepp,” he whispered. Then hauling on his boots and slipping into his coat Jean took his rifle and stole out into the open. Shepp appeared to be well trained, for it was evident that he had a strong natural tendency to run off and hunt for whatever had roused him. Jean thought it more than likely that the dog scented an animal of some kind. If there were men prowling around the ranch Shepp, might have been just as vigilant, but it seemed to Jean that the dog would have shown less eagerness to leave him, or none at all.

Right now, Jean's ears felt the tension as they picked up the low sound of many hooves. It was coming from the open valley, down the slope to the south. Shepp seemed like he wanted to take off running. Jean placed a hand on the dog. “Hold on, Shepp,” he whispered. Then, putting on his boots and slipping into his coat, Jean grabbed his rifle and quietly stepped outside. Shepp seemed well-trained, as it was clear he had a strong instinct to dash off and chase whatever caught his attention. Jean figured it was likely that the dog picked up on some kind of animal scent. If there were people lurking around the ranch, Shepp could have been just as alert, but Jean felt that the dog would have been less eager to leave his side, or not eager at all.

In the stillness of the morning it took Jean a moment to locate the direction of the wind, which was very light and coming from the south. In fact that little breeze had borne the low roar of trampling hoofs. Jean circled the ranch house to the right and kept along the slope at the edge of the cedars. It struck him suddenly how well fitted he was for work of this sort. All the work he had ever done, except for his few years in school, had been in the open. All the leisure he had ever been able to obtain had been given to his ruling passion for hunting and fishing. Love of the wild had been born in Jean. At this moment he experienced a grim assurance of what his instinct and his training might accomplish if directed to a stern and daring end. Perhaps his father understood this; perhaps the old Texan had some little reason for his confidence.

In the quiet of the morning, Jean took a moment to feel the direction of the light breeze coming from the south. That gentle wind was carrying the distant sound of thundering hooves. Jean moved to the right of the ranch house and followed the slope by the edge of the cedars. It suddenly struck him how well-suited he was for this kind of work. Most of his life, aside from his few years in school, had been spent outdoors. All the free time he managed to find went into his passion for hunting and fishing. A love for the wild was ingrained in Jean. In that moment, he felt a strong confidence in what his instincts and training could achieve if focused on a tough and daring challenge. Maybe his father understood this; perhaps the old Texan had some reason for his faith in him.

Every few paces Jean halted to listen. All objects, of course, were indistinguishable in the dark-gray obscurity, except when he came close upon them. Shepp showed an increasing eagerness to bolt out into the void. When Jean had traveled half a mile from the house he heard a scattered trampling of cattle on the run, and farther out a low strangled bawl of a calf. “Ahuh!” muttered Jean. “Cougar or some varmint pulled down that calf.” Then he discharged his rifle in the air and yelled with all his might. It was necessary then to yell again to hold Shepp back.

Every few steps, Jean stopped to listen. In the dark gray of the night, everything was pretty much unrecognizable, except when he got close to it. Shepp was getting more and more eager to run off into the darkness. After Jean had walked half a mile from the house, he heard the distant sound of cattle running and, further away, a weak, strangled cry of a calf. “Ahuh!” Jean muttered. “A cougar or some other creature got that calf.” Then he fired his rifle into the air and yelled as loud as he could. He had to yell again to keep Shepp from running away.

Thereupon Jean set forth down the valley, and tramped out and across and around, as much to scare away whatever had been after the stock as to look for the wounded calf. More than once he heard cattle moving away ahead of him, but he could not see them. Jean let Shepp go, hoping the dog would strike a trail. But Shepp neither gave tongue nor came back. Dawn began to break, and in the growing light Jean searched around until at last he stumbled over a dead calf, lying in a little bare wash where water ran in wet seasons. Big wolf tracks showed in the soft earth. “Lofers,” said Jean, as he knelt and just covered one track with his spread hand. “We had wolves in Oregon, but not as big as these.... Wonder where that half-wolf dog, Shepp, went. Wonder if he can be trusted where wolves are concerned. I’ll bet not, if there’s a she-wolf runnin’ around.”

Jean set out down the valley, trudging around and about, both to scare off whatever had been after the livestock and to find the injured calf. Several times, he heard cattle moving away in front of him, but he couldn’t see them. He let Shepp go, hoping the dog would pick up a scent. But Shepp neither barked nor returned. Dawn started to break, and in the growing light, Jean searched until he finally stumbled upon a dead calf, lying in a small dry creek bed where water flowed in wet seasons. There were large wolf tracks in the soft dirt. “Lofers,” Jean said as he knelt and covered one track with his hand. “We had wolves in Oregon, but not this big… I wonder where that half-wolf dog, Shepp, went. I wonder if he can be trusted with wolves around. I bet he can’t if there’s a she-wolf nearby.”

Jean found tracks of two wolves, and he trailed them out of the wash, then lost them in the grass. But, guided by their direction, he went on and climbed a slope to the cedar line, where in the dusty patches he found the tracks again. “Not scared much,” he muttered, as he noted the slow trotting tracks. “Well, you old gray lofers, we’re goin’ to clash.” Jean knew from many a futile hunt that wolves were the wariest and most intelligent of wild animals in the quest. From the top of a low foothill he watched the sun rise; and then no longer wondered why his father waxed eloquent over the beauty and location and luxuriance of this grassy valley. But it was large enough to make rich a good many ranchers. Jean tried to restrain any curiosity as to his father’s dealings in Grass Valley until the situation had been made clear.

Jean found tracks of two wolves and followed them out of the wash, then lost them in the grass. But, guided by their direction, he continued and climbed a slope to the cedar line, where he found the tracks again in the dusty patches. “Not scared much,” he muttered as he observed the slow trotting tracks. “Well, you old gray loafers, we’re going to clash.” Jean knew from many unsuccessful hunts that wolves were the most cautious and clever of wild animals in the chase. From the top of a low foothill, he watched the sun rise and then understood why his father spoke so passionately about the beauty, location, and richness of this grassy valley. But it was big enough to make a lot of ranchers wealthy. Jean tried to suppress any curiosity about his father’s dealings in Grass Valley until the situation was clear.

Moreover, Jean wanted to love this wonderful country. He wanted to be free to ride and hunt and roam to his heart’s content; and therefore he dreaded hearing his father’s claims. But Jean threw off forebodings. Nothing ever turned out so badly as it presaged. He would think the best until certain of the worst. The morning was gloriously bright, and already the frost was glistening wet on the stones. Grass Valley shone like burnished silver dotted with innumerable black spots. Burros were braying their discordant messages to one another; the colts were romping in the fields; stallions were whistling; cows were bawling. A cloud of blue smoke hung low over the ranch house, slowly wafting away on the wind. Far out in the valley a dark group of horsemen were riding toward the village. Jean glanced thoughtfully at them and reflected that he seemed destined to harbor suspicion of all men new and strange to him. Above the distant village stood the darkly green foothills leading up to the craggy slopes, and these ending in the Rim, a red, black-fringed mountain front, beautiful in the morning sunlight, lonely, serene, and mysterious against the level skyline. Mountains, ranges, distances unknown to Jean, always called to him—to come, to seek, to explore, to find, but no wild horizon ever before beckoned to him as this one. And the subtle vague emotion that had gone to sleep with him last night awoke now hauntingly. It took effort to dispel the desire to think, to wonder.

Moreover, Jean wanted to love this amazing country. He wanted to be free to ride, hunt, and explore to his heart’s content; and so he dreaded hearing his father’s demands. But Jean shook off his worries. Nothing ever turned out as badly as it seemed. He would stay positive until he had to face the worst. The morning was brilliantly bright, and the frost was already shimmering on the stones. Grass Valley sparkled like polished silver dotted with countless black spots. Burros were braying their chaotic messages to one another; colts were playing in the fields; stallions were whistling; cows were mooing. A cloud of blue smoke hung low over the ranch house, slowly drifting away on the wind. Far out in the valley, a dark group of horsemen was riding towards the village. Jean looked at them thoughtfully and realized he seemed destined to be suspicious of all new and strange people. Above the distant village stood the dark green foothills leading up to the jagged slopes, which ended at the Rim—a red mountain front with black edges, beautiful in the morning sunlight, lonely, serene, and mysterious against the flat skyline. Mountains, ranges, distances unknown to Jean, always called to him—to come, to seek, to explore, to discover—but no wild horizon had ever drawn him in like this one. And the subtle, vague feeling that had gone to sleep with him last night came alive now, haunting him. It took effort to shake off the urge to think, to wonder.

Upon his return to the house, he went around on the valley side, so as to see the place by light of day. His father had built for permanence; and evidently there had been three constructive periods in the history of that long, substantial, picturesque log house. But few nails and little sawed lumber and no glass had been used. Strong and skillful hands, axes and a crosscut saw, had been the prime factors in erecting this habitation of the Isbels.

Upon returning to the house, he walked around to the valley side to see the place in daylight. His father had built it to last; and it was clear that there had been three significant building phases in the history of that long, sturdy, beautiful log house. There were few nails, minimal processed lumber, and no glass used. Strong, skilled hands, along with axes and a crosscut saw, had been the main tools in constructing this home of the Isbels.

“Good mawnin’, son,” called a cheery voice from the porch. “Shore we-all heard you shoot; an’ the crack of that forty-four was as welcome as May flowers.”

“Good morning, son,” called a cheerful voice from the porch. “We definitely heard you shoot; the blast from that forty-four was as welcome as May flowers.”

Bill Isbel looked up from a task over a saddle girth and inquired pleasantly if Jean ever slept of nights. Guy Isbel laughed and there was warm regard in the gaze he bent on Jean.

Bill Isbel looked up from working on a saddle girth and asked casually if Jean ever got any sleep at night. Guy Isbel chuckled, and there was a fondness in the way he looked at Jean.

“You old Indian!” he drawled, slowly. “Did you get a bead on anythin’?”

“You old Indian!” he said slowly. “Did you catch sight of anything?”

“No. I shot to scare away what I found to be some of your lofers,” replied Jean. “I heard them pullin’ down a calf. An’ I found tracks of two whoppin’ big wolves. I found the dead calf, too. Reckon the meat can be saved. Dad, you must lose a lot of stock here.”

“No. I shot to scare off some of your loafers,” replied Jean. “I heard them dragging down a calf. And I found tracks of two huge wolves. I also found the dead calf. I think the meat can be salvaged. Dad, you must be losing a lot of livestock here.”

“Wal, son, you shore hit the nail on the haid,” replied the rancher. “What with lions an’ bears an’ lofers—an’ two-footed lofers of another breed—I’ve lost five thousand dollars in stock this last year.”

“Yeah, kid, you really nailed it,” said the rancher. “With lions and bears and loafers—and two-legged loafers of a different kind—I’ve lost five thousand dollars in livestock this past year.”

“Dad! You don’t mean it!” exclaimed Jean, in astonishment. To him that sum represented a small fortune.

“Dad! You can’t be serious!” Jean exclaimed, shocked. To him, that amount was a small fortune.

“I shore do,” answered his father.

“I really do,” answered his father.

Jean shook his head as if he could not understand such an enormous loss where there were keen able-bodied men about. “But that’s awful, dad. How could it happen? Where were your herders an’ cowboys? An’ Bill an’ Guy?”

Jean shook his head as if he couldn't comprehend such a huge loss with so many capable men around. “But that’s terrible, Dad. How could it happen? Where were your herders and cowboys? And Bill and Guy?”

Bill Isbel shook a vehement fist at Jean and retorted in earnest, having manifestly been hit in a sore spot. “Where was me an’ Guy, huh? Wal, my Oregon brother, we was heah, all year, sleepin’ more or less aboot three hours out of every twenty-four—ridin’ our boots off—an’ we couldn’t keep down that loss.”

Bill Isbel shook his fist angrily at Jean and replied seriously, clearly having been touched on a sensitive subject. “Where were me and Guy, huh? Well, my brother from Oregon, we were here all year, sleeping about three hours out of every twenty-four—working ourselves to the bone—and we couldn’t handle that loss.”

“Jean, you-all have a mighty tumble comin’ to you out heah,” said Guy, complacently.

“Jean, you all have a big fall coming to you out here,” said Guy, smugly.

“Listen, son,” spoke up the rancher. “You want to have some hunches before you figure on our troubles. There’s two or three packs of lofers, an’ in winter time they are hell to deal with. Lions thick as bees, an’ shore bad when the snow’s on. Bears will kill a cow now an’ then. An’ whenever an’ old silvertip comes mozyin’ across from the Mazatzals he kills stock. I’m in with half a dozen cattlemen. We all work together, an’ the whole outfit cain’t keep these vermints down. Then two years ago the Hash Knife Gang come into the Tonto.”

“Listen, son,” the rancher said. “You need to be aware of a few things before you figure out our troubles. There are two or three packs of troublemakers, and in the winter, they’re really tough to deal with. The mountain lions are as numerous as bees, and they’re especially dangerous when the snow is on the ground. Bears will occasionally kill a cow too. And whenever an old silvertip comes wandering over from the Mazatzals, it ends up killing livestock. I’m working with about six other cattlemen. We all team up, but even with the whole group, we can’t keep these pests under control. Then two years ago, the Hash Knife Gang came into the Tonto.”

“Hash Knife Gang? What a pretty name!” replied Jean. “Who’re they?”

“Hash Knife Gang? What a nice name!” replied Jean. “Who are they?”

“Rustlers, son. An’ shore the real old Texas brand. The old Lone Star State got too hot for them, an’ they followed the trail of a lot of other Texans who needed a healthier climate. Some two hundred Texans around heah, Jean, an’ maybe a matter of three hundred inhabitants in the Tonto all told, good an’ bad. Reckon it’s aboot half an’ half.”

“Rustlers, son. And sure, the real old Texas brand. The old Lone Star State got too hot for them, and they followed the trail of a lot of other Texans who needed a healthier climate. There are about two hundred Texans around here, Jean, and maybe a total of three hundred people in the Tonto, both good and bad. I guess it’s about half and half.”

A cheery call from the kitchen interrupted the conversation of the men.

A cheerful shout from the kitchen interrupted the men's conversation.

“You come to breakfast.”

"Join us for breakfast."

During the meal the old rancher talked to Bill and Guy about the day’s order of work; and from this Jean gathered an idea of what a big cattle business his father conducted. After breakfast Jean’s brothers manifested keen interest in the new rifles. These were unwrapped and cleaned and taken out for testing. The three rifles were forty-four calibre Winchesters, the kind of gun Jean had found most effective. He tried them out first, and the shots he made were satisfactory to him and amazing to the others. Bill had used an old Henry rifle. Guy did not favor any particular rifle. The rancher pinned his faith to the famous old single-shot buffalo gun, mostly called needle gun. “Wal, reckon I’d better stick to mine. Shore you cain’t teach an old dog new tricks. But you boys may do well with the forty-fours. Pack ’em on your saddles an’ practice when you see a coyote.”

During the meal, the old rancher talked to Bill and Guy about the day's tasks, and from this, Jean got a sense of the large cattle business his father ran. After breakfast, Jean's brothers showed a strong interest in the new rifles. They unwrapped and cleaned them, then took them out to test. The three rifles were .44 caliber Winchesters, the type of gun Jean had found most effective. He tested them first, and the shots he made were satisfying for him and impressive to the others. Bill used an old Henry rifle, while Guy didn't prefer any specific rifle. The rancher relied on the well-known old single-shot buffalo gun, often called a needle gun. “Well, I guess I’d better stick to mine. You can’t teach an old dog new tricks. But you boys might do well with the .44s. Strap them on your saddles and practice when you see a coyote.”

Jean found it difficult to convince himself that this interest in guns and marksmanship had any sinister propulsion back of it. His father and brothers had always been this way. Rifles were as important to pioneers as plows, and their skillful use was an achievement every frontiersman tried to attain. Friendly rivalry had always existed among the members of the Isbel family: even Ann Isbel was a good shot. But such proficiency in the use of firearms—and life in the open that was correlative with it—had not dominated them as it had Jean. Bill and Guy Isbel were born cattlemen—chips of the old block. Jean began to hope that his father’s letter was an exaggeration, and particularly that the fatalistic speech of last night, “they are goin’ to kill me,” was just a moody inclination to see the worst side. Still, even as Jean tried to persuade himself of this more hopeful view, he recalled many references to the peculiar reputation of Texans for gun-throwing, for feuds, for never-ending hatreds. In Oregon the Isbels had lived among industrious and peaceful pioneers from all over the States; to be sure, the life had been rough and primitive, and there had been fights on occasions, though no Isbel had ever killed a man. But now they had become fixed in a wilder and sparsely settled country among men of their own breed. Jean was afraid his hopes had only sentiment to foster them. Nevertheless, be forced back a strange, brooding, mental state and resolutely held up the brighter side. Whatever the evil conditions existing in Grass Valley, they could be met with intelligence and courage, with an absolute certainty that it was inevitable they must pass away. Jean refused to consider the old, fatal law that at certain wild times and wild places in the West certain men had to pass away to change evil conditions.

Jean found it hard to convince himself that his interest in guns and marksmanship had any dark motives behind it. His father and brothers had always been this way. Rifles were just as vital to pioneers as plows, and honing that skill was something every frontiersman aimed for. There had always been friendly competition among the Isbel family: even Ann Isbel was a good shot. But while proficiency with firearms—and the outdoor life that came with it—hadn’t controlled them, it had consumed Jean. Bill and Guy Isbel were born cattlemen—just like their father. Jean started to hope that his father's letter was an over-exaggeration, especially that gloomy statement from last night, “they are going to kill me,” was just a temporary downer. Still, as Jean tried to convince himself of this brighter perspective, he remembered many references to Texans' notorious reputations for gunfights, feuds, and endless grudges. In Oregon, the Isbels had lived among hardworking and peaceful pioneers from all over the country; sure, life was rough and primitive, and there had been fights here and there, but no Isbel had ever killed a man. Now, though, they were settled in a wilder, less populated area with others like themselves. Jean feared that his hopes were purely sentimental. Still, he pushed back a strange, heavy mindset and focused on the silver lining. Whatever the bad situation in Grass Valley was, it could be confronted with intelligence and courage, knowing with absolute certainty that it would eventually change. Jean refused to accept the old, grim belief that in certain wild times and places in the West, some men had to disappear to improve the situation.

“Wal, Jean, ride around the range with the boys,” said the rancher. “Meet some of my neighbors, Jim Blaisdell, in particular. Take a look at the cattle. An’ pick out some hosses for yourself.”

“Wal, Jean, ride around the range with the guys,” said the rancher. “Get to know some of my neighbors, especially Jim Blaisdell. Check out the cattle. And pick out some horses for yourself.”

“I’ve seen one already,” declared Jean, quickly. “A black with white face. I’ll take him.”

“I’ve seen one already,” Jean said quickly. “A black one with a white face. I’ll take him.”

“Shore you know a hoss. To my eye he’s my pick. But the boys don’t agree. Bill ‘specially has degenerated into a fancier of pitchin’ hosses. Ann can ride that black. You try him this mawnin’.... An’, son, enjoy yourself.”

“Sure you know a horse. To my eye, he’s my favorite. But the guys don’t agree. Bill especially has turned into a fan of flashy horses. Ann can ride that black one. You should try him this morning... And, son, have fun.”

True to his first impression, Jean named the black horse Whiteface and fell in love with him before ever he swung a leg over him. Whiteface appeared spirited, yet gentle. He had been trained instead of being broken. Of hard hits and quirts and spurs he had no experience. He liked to do what his rider wanted him to do.

True to his first impression, Jean named the black horse Whiteface and fell in love with him before he even climbed onto his back. Whiteface seemed energetic but gentle. He had been trained rather than mistreated. He had no experience with hard hits, whips, or spurs. He enjoyed doing what his rider asked of him.

A hundred or more horses grazed in the grassy meadow, and as Jean rode on among them it was a pleasure to see stallions throw heads and ears up and whistle or snort. Whole troops of colts and two-year-olds raced with flying tails and manes.

A hundred or more horses grazed in the grassy meadow, and as Jean rode among them it was a pleasure to see stallions raise their heads and ears, whistling or snorting. Whole groups of colts and two-year-olds raced with their tails and manes flying.

Beyond these pastures stretched the range, and Jean saw the gray-green expanse speckled by thousands of cattle. The scene was inspiring. Jean’s brothers led him all around, meeting some of the herders and riders employed on the ranch, one of whom was a burly, grizzled man with eyes reddened and narrowed by much riding in wind and sun and dust. His name was Evans and he was father of the lad whom Jean had met near the village. Everts was busily skinning the calf that had been killed by the wolves. “See heah, y’u Jean Isbel,” said Everts, “it shore was aboot time y’u come home. We-all heahs y’u hev an eye fer tracks. Wal, mebbe y’u can kill Old Gray, the lofer thet did this job. He’s pulled down nine calves as’ yearlin’s this last two months thet I know of. An’ we’ve not hed the spring round-up.”

Beyond these pastures stretched the range, and Jean saw the gray-green expanse dotted with thousands of cattle. The scene was inspiring. Jean’s brothers showed him around, introducing him to some of the herders and riders who worked on the ranch, one of whom was a burly, grizzled man with eyes reddened and narrowed from long days riding in the wind, sun, and dust. His name was Evans, and he was the father of the boy Jean had met near the village. Evans was busy skinning the calf that had been killed by the wolves. “Hey there, Jean Isbel,” said Evans, “it sure was about time you came home. We all hear you have an eye for tracks. Well, maybe you can take down Old Gray, the coyote that did this. He’s taken down nine calves and yearlings in the last two months that I know of. And we haven’t even had the spring round-up yet.”

Grass Valley widened to the southeast. Jean would have been backward about estimating the square miles in it. Yet it was not vast acreage so much as rich pasture that made it such a wonderful range. Several ranches lay along the western slope of this section. Jean was informed that open parks and swales, and little valleys nestling among the foothills, wherever there was water and grass, had been settled by ranchers. Every summer a few new families ventured in.

Grass Valley expanded to the southeast. Jean would have struggled to estimate its square mileage. However, it wasn't the size of the land but the lush pastures that made it such a fantastic range. Several ranches were situated along the western slope of this area. Jean learned that open meadows, dips, and small valleys nestled among the foothills, wherever there was water and grass, had been claimed by ranchers. Each summer, a few new families took the plunge and moved in.

Blaisdell struck Jean as being a lionlike type of Texan, both in his broad, bold face, his huge head with its upstanding tawny hair like a mane, and in the speech and force that betokened the nature of his heart. He was not as old as Jean’s father. He had a rolling voice, with the same drawling intonation characteristic of all Texans, and blue eyes that still held the fire of youth. Quite a marked contrast he presented to the lean, rangy, hard-jawed, intent-eyed men Jean had begun to accept as Texans.

Blaisdell struck Jean as a lion-like Texan, with his broad, bold face, a huge head topped with standing tawny hair like a mane, and a speech that showed the strength of his character. He wasn't as old as Jean's father. He had a deep voice, with the same drawling intonation typical of all Texans, and blue eyes that still sparkled with youthful energy. He was quite a contrast to the lean, tough, hard-jawed, intense-eyed men Jean had started to think of as Texans.

Blaisdell took time for a curious scrutiny and study of Jean, that, frank and kindly as it was, and evidently the adjustment of impressions gotten from hearsay, yet bespoke the attention of one used to judging men for himself, and in this particular case having reasons of his own for so doing.

Blaisdell took a moment to closely observe and analyze Jean, and although his gaze was open and friendly, it clearly reflected a mix of ideas he'd picked up from rumors. It showed that he was someone who usually formed his own opinions about people, and in this specific situation, he had his own reasons for doing so.

“Wal, you’re like your sister Ann,” said Blaisdell. “Which you may take as a compliment, young man. Both of you favor your mother. But you’re an Isbel. Back in Texas there are men who never wear a glove on their right hands, an’ shore I reckon if one of them met up with you sudden he’d think some graves had opened an’ he’d go for his gun.”

“Well, you’re just like your sister Ann,” Blaisdell said. “You can take that as a compliment, young man. Both of you look like your mother. But you’re an Isbel. Back in Texas, there are guys who never wear a glove on their right hands, and I bet if one of them ran into you unexpectedly, he’d think some graves had opened up and he’d reach for his gun.”

Blaisdell’s laugh pealed out with deep, pleasant roll. Thus he planted in Jean’s sensitive mind a significant thought-provoking idea about the past-and-gone Isbels.

Blaisdell's laugh echoed with a deep, pleasant resonance. This planted a significant, thought-provoking idea about the long-gone Isbels in Jean's sensitive mind.

His further remarks, likewise, were exceedingly interesting to Jean. The settling of the Tonto Basin by Texans was a subject often in dispute. His own father had been in the first party of adventurous pioneers who had traveled up from the south to cross over the Reno Pass of the Mazatzals into the Basin. “Newcomers from outside get impressions of the Tonto accordin’ to the first settlers they meet,” declared Blaisdell. “An’ shore it’s my belief these first impressions never change, just so strong they are! Wal, I’ve heard my father say there were men in his wagon train that got run out of Texas, but he swore he wasn’t one of them. So I reckon that sort of talk held good for twenty years, an’ for all the Texans who emigrated, except, of course, such notorious rustlers as Daggs an’ men of his ilk. Shore we’ve got some bad men heah. There’s no law. Possession used to mean more than it does now. Daggs an’ his Hash Knife Gang have begun to hold forth with a high hand. No small rancher can keep enough stock to pay for his labor.”

His additional comments were really interesting to Jean. The settling of the Tonto Basin by Texans was a topic that often sparked debates. His own father had been part of the first group of adventurous pioneers that traveled up from the south to cross over the Reno Pass of the Mazatzals into the Basin. “Newcomers from outside get their impressions of the Tonto based on the first settlers they meet,” Blaisdell said. “And I truly believe those first impressions never change, they're just too strong! Well, I’ve heard my father say there were guys in his wagon train who got kicked out of Texas, but he insisted he wasn’t one of them. So I guess that kind of talk lasted for twenty years, and for all the Texans who moved here, except, of course, for those infamous rustlers like Daggs and his crew. We definitely have some bad guys around here. There’s no law. Owning land used to mean more than it does now. Daggs and his Hash Knife Gang have started to take charge. No small rancher can keep enough cattle to cover his expenses.”

At the time of which Blaisdell spoke there were not many sheepmen and cattlemen in the Tonto, considering its vast area. But these, on account of the extreme wildness of the broken country, were limited to the comparatively open Grass Valley and its adjacent environs. Naturally, as the inhabitants increased and stock raising grew in proportion the grazing and water rights became matters of extreme importance. Sheepmen ran their flocks up on the Rim in summer time and down into the Basin in winter time. A sheepman could throw a few thousand sheep round a cattleman’s ranch and ruin him. The range was free. It was as fair for sheepmen to graze their herds anywhere as it was for cattlemen. This of course did not apply to the few acres of cultivated ground that a rancher could call his own; but very few cattle could have been raised on such limited area. Blaisdell said that the sheepmen were unfair because they could have done just as well, though perhaps at more labor, by keeping to the ridges and leaving the open valley and little flats to the ranchers. Formerly there had been room enough for all; now the grazing ranges were being encroached upon by sheepmen newly come to the Tonto. To Blaisdell’s way of thinking the rustler menace was more serious than the sheeping-off of the range, for the simple reason that no cattleman knew exactly who the rustlers were and for the more complex and significant reason that the rustlers did not steal sheep.

At the time Blaisdell was talking about, there weren’t many sheep and cattle ranchers in the Tonto, considering how large the area was. However, due to the rough terrain, they were mostly limited to the relatively open Grass Valley and its surroundings. Naturally, as the population grew and raising livestock became more common, grazing and water rights became extremely important. Sheep herders moved their flocks to the Rim in the summer and down to the Basin in the winter. A sheep owner could surround a cattle ranch with thousands of sheep and ruin the rancher. The land was open. It was just as fair for sheep herders to graze their flocks anywhere as it was for cattle ranchers. This, of course, didn’t apply to the few acres of farmland that a rancher could call his own, but very few cattle could be raised on such a small area. Blaisdell argued that the sheep herders were unfair because they could have managed just as well, albeit with more effort, by sticking to the ridges and leaving the open valley and small flat areas for the ranchers. There used to be enough space for everyone; now the sheep herders, who were new to the Tonto, were taking over the grazing lands. Blaisdell believed that the threat from cattle rustlers was more serious than the sheep grazing issues because no cattle rancher knew exactly who the rustlers were, and even more importantly, rustlers didn’t steal sheep.

“Texas was overstocked with bad men an’ fine steers,” concluded Blaisdell. “Most of the first an’ some of the last have struck the Tonto. The sheepmen have now got distributin’ points for wool an’ sheep at Maricopa an’ Phoenix. They’re shore waxin’ strong an’ bold.”

“Texas had too many bad guys and great cattle,” Blaisdell concluded. “Most of the bad ones and some of the good have headed to the Tonto. The sheep ranchers now have distribution points for wool and sheep in Maricopa and Phoenix. They’re definitely getting strong and confident.”

“Ahuh! ... An’ what’s likely to come of this mess?” queried Jean.

“Uh-huh! ... And what’s probably going to happen with this mess?” asked Jean.

“Ask your dad,” replied Blaisdell.

“Ask your dad,” Blaisdell replied.

“I will. But I reckon I’d be obliged for your opinion.”

“I will. But I think I’d appreciate your opinion.”

“Wal, short an’ sweet it’s this: Texas cattlemen will never allow the range they stocked to be overrun by sheepmen.”

“Well, to keep it simple: Texas cattlemen will never let their grazing land be taken over by sheep farmers.”

“Who’s this man Greaves?” went on Jean. “Never run into anyone like him.”

“Who’s this guy Greaves?” Jean continued. “I’ve never met anyone like him.”

“Greaves is hard to figure. He’s a snaky customer in deals. But he seems to be good to the poor people ’round heah. Says he’s from Missouri. Ha-ha! He’s as much Texan as I am. He rode into the Tonto without even a pack to his name. An’ presently he builds his stone house an’ freights supplies in from Phoenix. Appears to buy an’ sell a good deal of stock. For a while it looked like he was steerin’ a middle course between cattlemen an’ sheepmen. Both sides made a rendezvous of his store, where he heard the grievances of each. Laterly he’s leanin’ to the sheepmen. Nobody has accused him of that yet. But it’s time some cattleman called his bluff.”

“Greaves is tough to figure out. He’s a slippery guy in business. But he seems to help the poor folks around here. Claims he’s from Missouri. Ha! He’s as much Texan as I am. He came into the Tonto without even a pack to his name. And now he’s built his stone house and ships supplies in from Phoenix. He appears to trade a lot of stock. For a while, it seemed like he was trying to balance things between cattlemen and sheepmen. Both sides would meet at his store, where he listened to their complaints. Lately, he’s been leaning toward the sheepmen. No one has called him out on it yet. But it’s time for a cattleman to challenge him.”

“Of course there are honest an’ square sheepmen in the Basin?” queried Jean.

“Of course there are honest and decent sheep farmers in the Basin?” asked Jean.

“Yes, an’ some of them are not unreasonable. But the new fellows that dropped in on us the last few year—they’re the ones we’re goin’ to clash with.”

“Yes, and some of them aren’t unreasonable. But the new guys who joined us over the last few years—they’re the ones we’re going to clash with.”

“This—sheepman, Jorth?” went on Jean, in slow hesitation, as if compelled to ask what he would rather not learn.

“This—sheepman, Jorth?” Jean continued, hesitating slowly, as if he had to ask something he really didn’t want to know.

“Jorth must be the leader of this sheep faction that’s harryin’ us ranchers. He doesn’t make threats or roar around like some of them. But he goes on raisin’ an’ buyin’ more an’ more sheep. An’ his herders have been grazin’ down all around us this winter. Jorth’s got to be reckoned with.”

“Jorth has to be the leader of this sheep group that’s bothering us ranchers. He doesn’t make threats or go around shouting like some of them. But he keeps raising and buying more and more sheep. And his herders have been grazing all around us this winter. Jorth has to be taken seriously.”

“Who is he?”

"Who's he?"

“Wal, I don’t know enough to talk aboot. Your dad never said so, but I think he an’ Jorth knew each other in Texas years ago. I never saw Jorth but once. That was in Greaves’s barroom. Your dad an’ Jorth met that day for the first time in this country. Wal, I’ve not known men for nothin’. They just stood stiff an’ looked at each other. Your dad was aboot to draw. But Jorth made no sign to throw a gun.”

"Well, I don't know enough to say much. Your dad never mentioned it, but I think he and Jorth knew each other in Texas a long time ago. I only saw Jorth once. That was in Greaves’s bar. Your dad and Jorth met that day for the first time in this country. Well, I haven't known men for nothing. They just stood there stiff and stared at each other. Your dad was about to draw. But Jorth didn’t show any sign of wanting to pull a gun."

Jean saw the growing and weaving and thickening threads of a tangle that had already involved him. And the sudden pang of regret he sustained was not wholly because of sympathies with his own people.

Jean saw the growing, weaving, and thickening threads of a tangle that had already ensnared him. And the sudden pang of regret he felt wasn't entirely due to sympathy for his own people.

“The other day back up in the woods on the Rim I ran into a sheepman who said his name was Colter. Who is he?

“The other day up in the woods on the Rim, I ran into a sheep herder who said his name was Colter. Who is he?

“Colter? Shore he’s a new one. What’d he look like?”

“Colter? Yeah, he’s new. What does he look like?”

Jean described Colter with a readiness that spoke volumes for the vividness of his impressions.

Jean described Colter with an eagerness that clearly showed how strong his impressions were.

“I don’t know him,” replied Blaisdell. “But that only goes to prove my contention—any fellow runnin’ wild in the woods can say he’s a sheepman.”

“I don’t know him,” replied Blaisdell. “But that just proves my point—any guy wandering around in the woods can claim he’s a sheep farmer.”

“Colter surprised me by callin’ me by my name,” continued Jean. “Our little talk wasn’t exactly friendly. He said a lot about my bein’ sent for to run sheep herders out of the country.”

“Colter surprised me by calling me by my name,” continued Jean. “Our little talk wasn’t exactly friendly. He said a lot about my being sent for to run sheep herders out of the country.”

“Shore that’s all over,” replied Blaisdell, seriously. “You’re a marked man already.”

“Sure, that's all done,” Blaisdell replied seriously. “You’re already a marked man.”

“What started such rumor?”

"What started this rumor?"

“Shore you cain’t prove it by me. But it’s not taken as rumor. It’s got to the sheepmen as hard as bullets.”

“Sure you can’t prove it by me. But it’s not considered a rumor. It’s hit the sheepmen as hard as bullets.”

“Ahuh! That accunts for Colter’s seemin’ a little sore under the collar. Well, he said they were goin’ to run sheep over Grass Valley, an’ for me to take that hunch to my dad.”

“Ahuh! That explains why Colter seems a bit sensitive. Well, he said they were planning to run sheep through Grass Valley and told me to pass that tip along to my dad.”

Blaisdell had his chair tilted back and his heavy boots against a post of the porch. Down he thumped. His neck corded with a sudden rush of blood and his eyes changed to blue fire.

Blaisdell had his chair tilted back with his heavy boots resting against a post on the porch. He thumped down with a sudden rush of blood coursing through his neck, and his eyes blazed with blue fire.

“The hell he did!” he ejaculated, in furious amaze.

“The hell he did!” he exclaimed, in furious disbelief.

Jean gauged the brooding, rankling hurt of this old cattleman by his sudden break from the cool, easy Texan manner. Blaisdell cursed under his breath, swung his arms violently, as if to throw a last doubt or hope aside, and then relapsed to his former state. He laid a brown hand on Jean’s knee.

Jean assessed the deep, simmering hurt of this old cattleman by his sudden departure from the relaxed, easygoing Texan demeanor. Blaisdell muttered under his breath, swung his arms in frustration, as if to cast away any lingering doubt or hope, and then returned to his previous state. He rested a weathered hand on Jean’s knee.

“Two years ago I called the cards,” he said, quietly. “It means a Grass Valley war.”

“Two years ago, I read the cards,” he said softly. “It means a Grass Valley war.”

Not until late that afternoon did Jean’s father broach the subject uppermost in his mind. Then at an opportune moment he drew Jean away into the cedars out of sight.

Not until late that afternoon did Jean’s father bring up the topic he was really thinking about. Then, at the right moment, he took Jean aside into the cedars where they wouldn't be seen.

“Son, I shore hate to make your home-comin’ unhappy,” he said, with evidence of agitation, “but so help me God I have to do it!”

“Son, I really hate to ruin your homecoming,” he said, showing signs of distress, “but I swear I have to do it!”

“Dad, you called me Prodigal, an’ I reckon you were right. I’ve shirked my duty to you. I’m ready now to make up for it,” replied Jean, feelingly.

“Dad, you called me Prodigal, and I guess you were right. I’ve neglected my duty to you. I’m ready now to make up for it,” replied Jean, with sincerity.

“Wal, wal, shore thats fine-spoken, my boy.... Let’s set down heah an’ have a long talk. First off, what did Jim Blaisdell tell you?”

“Well, well, that’s really well said, my boy.... Let’s sit down here and have a long talk. First off, what did Jim Blaisdell tell you?”

Briefly Jean outlined the neighbor rancher’s conversation. Then Jean recounted his experience with Colter and concluded with Blaisdell’s reception of the sheepman’s threat. If Jean expected to see his father rise up like a lion in his wrath he made a huge mistake. This news of Colter and his talk never struck even a spark from Gaston Isbel.

Briefly, Jean summarized the neighbor rancher’s conversation. Then he shared his experience with Colter and wrapped up with Blaisdell’s reaction to the sheepman’s threat. If Jean thought his father would rise up like a lion in anger, he was seriously mistaken. The news about Colter and his discussion didn’t even faze Gaston Isbel.

“Wal,” he began, thoughtfully, “reckon there are only two points in Jim’s talk I need touch on. There’s shore goin’ to be a Grass Valley war. An’ Jim’s idea of the cause of it seems to be pretty much the same as that of all the other cattlemen. It ’ll go down a black blot on the history page of the Tonto Basin as a war between rival sheepmen an’ cattlemen. Same old fight over water an’ grass! ... Jean, my son, that is wrong. It ’ll not be a war between sheepmen an’ cattlemen. But a war of honest ranchers against rustlers maskin’ as sheep-raisers! ... Mind you, I don’t belittle the trouble between sheepmen an’ cattlemen in Arizona. It’s real an’ it’s vital an’ it’s serious. It ’ll take law an’ order to straighten out the grazin’ question. Some day the government will keep sheep off of cattle ranges.... So get things right in your mind, my son. You can trust your dad to tell the absolute truth. In this fight that ’ll wipe out some of the Isbels—maybe all of them—you’re on the side of justice an’ right. Knowin’ that, a man can fight a hundred times harder than he who knows he is a liar an’ a thief.”

“Wal,” he started, thinking carefully, “I guess there are only two points in Jim’s talk I need to mention. There’s definitely going to be a war in Grass Valley. And Jim’s idea of why it’s happening seems pretty much the same as all the other cattlemen’s views. It’ll be a dark mark on the history of the Tonto Basin as a battle between rival sheepmen and cattlemen. Same old struggle over water and grazing land! ... Jean, my son, that’s not right. It won’t be a war between sheepmen and cattlemen. It’ll be a fight of honest ranchers against rustlers posing as sheep-raisers! ... Now, I don’t downplay the issues between sheepmen and cattlemen in Arizona. It’s real, it’s crucial, and it’s serious. It’ll take law and order to resolve the grazing problem. One day, the government will keep sheep off cattle ranges.... So get your facts straight, my son. You can count on your dad to tell you the absolute truth. In this fight that might take out some of the Isbels—maybe all of them—you’re on the side of justice and what’s right. Knowing that, a man can fight a hundred times harder than someone who knows he is a liar and a thief.”

The old rancher wiped his perspiring face and breathed slowly and deeply. Jean sensed in him the rise of a tremendous emotional strain. Wonderingly he watched the keen lined face. More than material worries were at the root of brooding, mounting thoughts in his father’s eyes.

The old rancher wiped the sweat from his face and took slow, deep breaths. Jean felt a huge emotional tension rising in him. He watched his father’s sharply lined face with curiosity. There was more than just financial concerns behind the troubled, growing thoughts in his father’s eyes.

“Now next take what Jim said aboot your comin’ to chase these sheep-herders out of the valley.... Jean, I started that talk. I had my tricky reasons. I know these greaser sheep-herders an’ I know the respect Texans have for a gunman. Some say I bragged. Some say I’m an old fool in his dotage, ravin’ aboot a favorite son. But they are people who hate me an’ are afraid. True, son, I talked with a purpose, but shore I was mighty cold an’ steady when I did it. My feelin’ was that you’d do what I’d do if I were thirty years younger. No, I reckoned you’d do more. For I figured on your blood. Jean, you’re Indian, an’ Texas an’ French, an’ you’ve trained yourself in the Oregon woods. When you were only a boy, few marksmen I ever knew could beat you, an’ I never saw your equal for eye an’ ear, for trackin’ a hoss, for all the gifts that make a woodsman.... Wal, rememberin’ this an’ seein’ the trouble ahaid for the Isbels, I just broke out whenever I had a chance. I bragged before men I’d reason to believe would take my words deep. For instance, not long ago I missed some stock, an’, happenin’ into Greaves’s place one Saturday night, I shore talked loud. His barroom was full of men an’ some of them were in my black book. Greaves took my talk a little testy. He said. ‘Wal, Gass, mebbe you’re right aboot some of these cattle thieves livin’ among us, but ain’t they jest as liable to be some of your friends or relatives as Ted Meeker’s or mine or any one around heah?’ That was where Greaves an’ me fell out. I yelled at him: ‘No, by God, they’re not! My record heah an’ that of my people is open. The least I can say for you, Greaves, an’ your crowd, is that your records fade away on dim trails.’ Then he said, nasty-like, ‘Wal, if you could work out all the dim trails in the Tonto you’d shore be surprised.’ An’ then I roared. Shore that was the chance I was lookin’ for. I swore the trails he hinted of would be tracked to the holes of the rustlers who made them. I told him I had sent for you an’ when you got heah these slippery, mysterious thieves, whoever they were, would shore have hell to pay. Greaves said he hoped so, but he was afraid I was partial to my Indian son. Then we had hot words. Blaisdell got between us. When I was leavin’ I took a partin’ fling at him. ‘Greaves, you ought to know the Isbels, considerin’ you’re from Texas. Maybe you’ve got reasons for throwin’ taunts at my claims for my son Jean. Yes, he’s got Indian in him an’ that ’ll be the worse for the men who will have to meet him. I’m tellin’ you, Greaves, Jean Isbel is the black sheep of the family. If you ride down his record you’ll find he’s shore in line to be another Poggin, or Reddy Kingfisher, or Hardin’, or any of the Texas gunmen you ought to remember.... Greaves, there are men rubbin’ elbows with you right heah that my Indian son is goin’ to track down!’”

“Now next, let’s talk about what Jim said about your coming to chase these sheep herders out of the valley…. Jean, I sparked that conversation. I had my reasons. I know these sheep herders and I know the respect Texans have for a gunman. Some say I bragged. Some say I’m just an old fool in his dotage, raving about a favorite son. But those are people who hate me and are afraid. True, son, I spoke with a purpose, but I was incredibly calm and steady when I did it. I felt that you’d do what I’d do if I were thirty years younger. No, I figured you’d do even more. Because I had faith in your blood. Jean, you’re part Indian, part Texan, and part French, and you’ve trained yourself in the Oregon woods. When you were just a boy, few marksmen I ever knew could beat you, and I’ve never seen anyone match your skills for tracking a horse or the many gifts that make a great woodsman.... Well, remembering this and seeing the trouble ahead for the Isbels, I spoke out whenever I had the chance. I bragged in front of men I had reason to believe would take my words seriously. For instance, not long ago I noticed some cattle missing, and happening to drop by Greaves’s place one Saturday night, I sure talked loudly. His barroom was packed with men, and some of them were in my black book. Greaves took my talk a little harshly. He said, ‘Well, Gass, maybe you’re right about some of these cattle thieves living among us, but aren't they just as likely to be some of your friends or relatives as Ted Meeker’s or mine or anyone else around here?’ That’s where Greaves and I clashed. I yelled at him: ‘No, by God, they’re not! My record here and that of my people is clear. The least I can say for you, Greaves, and your crowd, is that your records fade away in the shadows.’ Then he said, nastily, ‘Well, if you could uncover all the hidden trails in the Tonto, you’d be surprised.’ And then I exploded. Sure, that was the chance I was waiting for. I swore the trails he hinted at would lead straight to the hiding places of the rustlers who made them. I told him I had sent for you and when you got here, those slippery, mysterious thieves, whoever they were, would surely have hell to pay. Greaves said he hoped so, but he was worried I was biased towards my Indian son. Then we exchanged heated words. Blaisdell stepped in between us. As I was leaving, I took one last jab at him. ‘Greaves, you ought to know the Isbels, considering you’re from Texas. Maybe you’ve got reasons for throwing shade at my claims for my son Jean. Yes, he has Indian heritage, and that’ll spell trouble for the men who will have to face him. I’m telling you, Greaves, Jean Isbel is the black sheep of the family. If you look into his record, you’ll find he’s on track to be another Poggin, or Reddy Kingfisher, or Hardin’, or any of the Texas gunmen you ought to remember.... Greaves, there are men standing next to you right here that my Indian son is going to track down!’”

Jean bent his head in stunned cognizance of the notoriety with which his father had chosen to affront any and all Tonto Basin men who were under the ban of his suspicion. What a terrible reputation and trust to have saddled upon him! Thrills and strange, heated sensations seemed to rush together inside Jean, forming a hot ball of fire that threatened to explode. A retreating self made feeble protests. He saw his own pale face going away from this older, grimmer man.

Jean lowered his head in shocked realization of the infamous way his father had chosen to confront all the Tonto Basin men he suspected. What a terrible reputation to carry! Exciting yet strange, intense feelings rushed through Jean, creating a hot ball of fire inside him that felt like it might explode. A fading part of him protested weakly. He could see his own pale face drifting away from this older, more serious man.

“Son, if I could have looked forward to anythin’ but blood spillin’ I’d never have given you such a name to uphold,” continued the rancher. “What I’m goin’ to tell you now is my secret. My other sons an’ Ann have never heard it. Jim Blaisdell suspects there’s somethin’ strange, but he doesn’t know. I’ll shore never tell anyone else but you. An’ you must promise to keep my secret now an’ after I am gone.”

“Son, if I could have looked forward to anything but violence, I would have never given you a name to carry,” the rancher continued. “What I’m about to share with you is my secret. My other sons and Ann have never heard it. Jim Blaisdell suspects something odd, but he doesn’t know. I’ll definitely never tell anyone else but you. And you have to promise to keep my secret now and after I’m gone.”

“I promise,” said Jean.

“I promise,” Jean said.

“Wal, an’ now to get it out,” began his father, breathing hard. His face twitched and his hands clenched. “The sheepman heah I have to reckon with is Lee Jorth, a lifelong enemy of mine. We were born in the same town, played together as children, an’ fought with each other as boys. We never got along together. An’ we both fell in love with the same girl. It was nip an’ tuck for a while. Ellen Sutton belonged to one of the old families of the South. She was a beauty, an’ much courted, an’ I reckon it was hard for her to choose. But I won her an’ we became engaged. Then the war broke out. I enlisted with my brother Jean. He advised me to marry Ellen before I left. But I would not. That was the blunder of my life. Soon after our partin’ her letters ceased to come. But I didn’t distrust her. That was a terrible time an’ all was confusion. Then I got crippled an’ put in a hospital. An’ in aboot a year I was sent back home.”

“Okay, now let’s get to the point,” his father started, breathing heavily. His face twitched and his hands clenched. “The sheepman I have to deal with here is Lee Jorth, a lifelong enemy of mine. We were born in the same town, played together as kids, and fought with each other as boys. We never got along. And we both fell in love with the same girl. It was a close call for a while. Ellen Sutton came from one of the old families of the South. She was beautiful, and many wanted her attention, so I imagine it was tough for her to choose. But I won her over and we got engaged. Then the war broke out. I signed up with my brother Jean. He suggested I marry Ellen before I left. But I refused. That was the biggest mistake of my life. Soon after we parted, her letters stopped coming. But I didn’t doubt her. It was an awful time and everything was chaotic. Then I got injured and was sent to a hospital. About a year later, I was sent back home.”

At this juncture Jean refrained from further gaze at his father’s face.

At this point, Jean stopped looking at his father's face.

“Lee Jorth had gotten out of goin’ to war,” went on the rancher, in lower, thicker voice. “He’d married my sweetheart, Ellen.... I knew the story long before I got well. He had run after her like a hound after a hare.... An’ Ellen married him. Wal, when I was able to get aboot I went to see Jorth an’ Ellen. I confronted them. I had to know why she had gone back on me. Lee Jorth hadn’t changed any with all his good fortune. He’d made Ellen believe in my dishonor. But, I reckon, lies or no lies, Ellen Sutton was faithless. In my absence he had won her away from me. An’ I saw that she loved him as she never had me. I reckon that killed all my generosity. If she’d been imposed upon an’ weaned away by his lies an’ had regretted me a little I’d have forgiven, perhaps. But she worshiped him. She was his slave. An’ I, wal, I learned what hate was.

“Lee Jorth got out of going to war,” the rancher continued in a low, heavy voice. “He married my sweetheart, Ellen.... I knew the story long before I got better. He chased after her like a dog after a rabbit.... And Ellen married him. Well, when I was able to get around, I went to see Jorth and Ellen. I confronted them. I had to know why she had turned her back on me. Lee Jorth hadn’t changed at all with all his good fortune. He made Ellen believe I was dishonorable. But, I guess, whether it was lies or not, Ellen Sutton was unfaithful. In my absence, he won her away from me. And I saw that she loved him in a way she never loved me. I guess that killed any generosity I had. If she had been tricked and swayed by his lies and had missed me even a little, I might have forgiven her, maybe. But she adored him. She was his servant. And me, well, I learned what hate really was.

“The war ruined the Suttons, same as so many Southerners. Lee Jorth went in for raisin’ cattle. He’d gotten the Sutton range an’ after a few years he began to accumulate stock. In those days every cattleman was a little bit of a thief. Every cattleman drove in an’ branded calves he couldn’t swear was his. Wal, the Isbels were the strongest cattle raisers in that country. An’ I laid a trap for Lee Jorth, caught him in the act of brandin’ calves of mine I’d marked, an’ I proved him a thief. I made him a rustler. I ruined him. We met once. But Jorth was one Texan not strong on the draw, at least against an Isbel. He left the country. He had friends an’ relatives an’ they started him at stock raisin’ again. But he began to gamble an’ he got in with a shady crowd. He went from bad to worse an’ then he came back home. When I saw the change in proud, beautiful Ellen Sutton, an’ how she still worshiped Jorth, it shore drove me near mad between pity an’ hate.... Wal, I reckon in a Texan hate outlives any other feelin’. There came a strange turn of the wheel an’ my fortunes changed. Like most young bloods of the day, I drank an’ gambled. An’ one night I run across Jorth an’ a card-sharp friend. He fleeced me. We quarreled. Guns were thrown. I killed my man.... Aboot that period the Texas Rangers had come into existence.... An’, son, when I said I never was run out of Texas I wasn’t holdin’ to strict truth. I rode out on a hoss.

“The war destroyed the Suttons, just like it did for many Southerners. Lee Jorth got into raising cattle. He took over the Sutton range and after a few years, he started building up his herd. Back then, every cattleman had a bit of a shady side. Every cattleman would drive in and brand calves he couldn't truly claim as his. Well, the Isbels were the top cattle ranchers in that area. I set a trap for Lee Jorth, caught him branding my marked calves, and exposed him as a thief. I branded him a rustler. I ruined him. We met once. But Jorth wasn't particularly quick on the draw, at least not against an Isbel. He left town. He had friends and family who got him started again in cattle raising. But he began gambling and fell in with a bad crowd. He went from bad to worse and then came back home. When I saw the change in proud, beautiful Ellen Sutton and how she still adored Jorth, it drove me nearly mad with a mix of pity and hate…. Well, I guess in Texas, hate outlasts any other feeling. Then a strange twist of fate occurred, and my fortunes changed. Like most young men of the time, I drank and gambled. One night, I ran into Jorth and a card shark buddy of his. He cleaned me out. We fought. Guns were drawn. I killed my man.... Around that time, the Texas Rangers had just been formed.... And, son, when I said I was never run out of Texas, I wasn’t exactly being completely honest. I rode out on a horse.”

“I went to Oregon. There I married soon, an’ there Bill an’ Guy were born. Their mother did not live long. An’ next I married your mother, Jean. She had some Indian blood, which, for all I could see, made her only the finer. She was a wonderful woman an’ gave me the only happiness I ever knew. You remember her, of course, an’ those home days in Oregon. I reckon I made another great blunder when I moved to Arizona. But the cattle country had always called me. I had heard of this wild Tonto Basin an’ how Texans were settlin’ there. An’ Jim Blaisdell sent me word to come—that this shore was a garden spot of the West. Wal, it is. An’ your mother was gone—

“I went to Oregon. There, I got married soon after, and that’s where Bill and Guy were born. Their mother didn’t live long. Then, I married your mother, Jean. She had some Indian blood, which, as far as I could see, only made her more special. She was an amazing woman and gave me the only happiness I ever experienced. You remember her, of course, and those days at home in Oregon. I guess I made another big mistake when I moved to Arizona. But the cattle country had always called to me. I had heard about this wild Tonto Basin and how Texans were settling there. Jim Blaisdell sent me word to come—that this place was a beautiful spot in the West. Well, it is. And your mother was gone—

“Three years ago Lee Jorth drifted into the Tonto. An’, strange to me, along aboot a year or so after his comin’ the Hash Knife Gang rode up from Texas. Jorth went in for raisin’ sheep. Along with some other sheepmen he lives up in the Rim canyons. Somewhere back in the wild brakes is the hidin’ place of the Hash Knife Gang. Nobody but me, I reckon, associates Colonel Jorth, as he’s called, with Daggs an’ his gang. Maybe Blaisdell an’ a few others have a hunch. But that’s no matter. As a sheepman Jorth has a legitimate grievance with the cattlemen. But what could be settled by a square consideration for the good of all an’ the future Jorth will never settle. He’ll never settle because he is now no longer an honest man. He’s in with Daggs. I cain’t prove this, son, but I know it. I saw it in Jorth’s face when I met him that day with Greaves. I saw more. I shore saw what he is up to. He’d never meet me at an even break. He’s dead set on usin’ this sheep an’ cattle feud to ruin my family an’ me, even as I ruined him. But he means more, Jean. This will be a war between Texans, an’ a bloody war. There are bad men in this Tonto—some of the worst that didn’t get shot in Texas. Jorth will have some of these fellows.... Now, are we goin’ to wait to be sheeped off our range an’ to be murdered from ambush?”

“Three years ago, Lee Jorth came to the Tonto. And, strangely, about a year after he arrived, the Hash Knife Gang rolled in from Texas. Jorth started raising sheep. He lives in the Rim canyons with some other sheepmen. Somewhere deep in the wild hills is the Hash Knife Gang's hideout. I guess no one but me connects Colonel Jorth, as he's called, with Daggs and his gang. Maybe Blaisdell and a few others have an idea, but that's not the point. As a sheepman, Jorth has a real issue with the cattlemen. But what could be worked out for everyone's benefit and the future, Jorth will never agree to. He'll never settle because he is no longer an honest man. He's mixed up with Daggs. I can't prove this, kid, but I know it. I saw it in Jorth's face when I met him that day with Greaves. I saw more. I definitely saw what he was planning. He'd never face me fairly. He's determined to use this sheep and cattle feud to destroy my family and me, just like I ruined him. But he wants more, Jean. This will turn into a war between Texans, and a bloody one at that. There are dangerous men in this Tonto—some of the worst that didn't get shot in Texas. Jorth will have some of them... Now, are we going to wait to be run off our land and ambushed?”

“No, we are not,” replied Jean, quietly.

“No, we’re not,” Jean replied quietly.

“Wal, come down to the house,” said the rancher, and led the way without speaking until he halted by the door. There he placed his finger on a small hole in the wood at about the height of a man’s head. Jean saw it was a bullet hole and that a few gray hairs stuck to its edges. The rancher stepped closer to the door-post, so that his head was within an inch of the wood. Then he looked at Jean with eyes in which there glinted dancing specks of fire, like wild sparks.

“Come on down to the house,” said the rancher, and led the way without saying anything until he stopped by the door. There, he pointed to a small hole in the wood at about head height. Jean noticed it was a bullet hole, with a few gray hairs caught on its edges. The rancher leaned closer to the door frame, bringing his head within an inch of the wood. Then he looked at Jean with eyes that sparkled with wild, dancing flecks of fire.

“Son, this sneakin’ shot at me was made three mawnin’s ago. I recollect movin’ my haid just when I heard the crack of a rifle. Shore was surprised. But I got inside quick.”

“Son, this sneak attack on me happened three mornings ago. I remember moving my head just when I heard the crack of a rifle. I was really surprised. But I got inside quickly.”

Jean scarcely heard the latter part of this speech. He seemed doubled up inwardly, in hot and cold convulsions of changing emotion. A terrible hold upon his consciousness was about to break and let go. The first shot had been fired and he was an Isbel. Indeed, his father had made him ten times an Isbel. Blood was thick. His father did not speak to dull ears. This strife of rising tumult in him seemed the effect of years of calm, of peace in the woods, of dreamy waiting for he knew not what. It was the passionate primitive life in him that had awakened to the call of blood ties.

Jean barely registered the latter part of the speech. He felt twisted up inside, caught in a mix of intense emotions. A heavy grip on his awareness was about to break free. The first shot had been fired, and he was an Isbel. In fact, his father had made him an Isbel ten times over. Blood runs deep. His father didn’t talk to unresponsive ears. This internal struggle felt like the result of years of calm, of peace in the woods, of dreamy anticipation for something he didn’t quite understand. It was the passionate, primal part of him that had awakened to the pull of family ties.

“That’s aboot all, son,” concluded the rancher. “You understand now why I feel they’re goin’ to kill me. I feel it heah.” With solemn gesture he placed his broad hand over his heart. “An’, Jean, strange whispers come to me at night. It seems like your mother was callin’ or tryin’ to warn me. I cain’t explain these queer whispers. But I know what I know.”

"That's about it, son," the rancher concluded. "You understand now why I feel they're going to kill me. I feel it here." With a serious gesture, he placed his broad hand over his heart. "And, Jean, strange whispers come to me at night. It feels like your mother was calling or trying to warn me. I can't explain these weird whispers. But I know what I know."

“Jorth has his followers. You must have yours,” replied Jean, tensely.

“Jorth has his followers. You need to have yours,” Jean replied, anxiously.

“Shore, son, an’ I can take my choice of the best men heah,” replied the rancher, with pride. “But I’ll not do that. I’ll lay the deal before them an’ let them choose. I reckon it ’ll not be a long-winded fight. It ’ll be short an bloody, after the way of Texans. I’m lookin’ to you, Jean, to see that an Isbel is the last man!”

“Sure, son, and I can pick the best men here,” replied the rancher, proud of himself. “But I won’t do that. I’ll present the deal to them and let them decide. I don’t think it will be a long fight. It will be quick and violent, like Texans do. I’m counting on you, Jean, to ensure that an Isbel is the last man standing!”

“My God—dad! is there no other way? Think of my sister Ann—of my brothers’ wives—of—of other women! Dad, these damned Texas feuds are cruel, horrible!” burst out Jean, in passionate protest.

“My God—Dad! Is there no other way? Think of my sister Ann—of my brothers’ wives—of other women! Dad, these damn Texas feuds are cruel and horrible!” Jean exclaimed, passionately protesting.

“Jean, would it be any easier for our women if we let these men shoot us down in cold blood?”

“Jean, would it be any easier for our women if we just let these men kill us without mercy?”

“Oh no—no, I see, there’s no hope of—of.... But, dad, I wasn’t thinkin’ about myself. I don’t care. Once started I’ll—I’ll be what you bragged I was. Only it’s so hard to-to give in.”

“Oh no—no, I get it, there’s no hope of—of.... But, Dad, I wasn't thinking about myself. I don't care. Once I start, I’ll—I’ll be what you bragged I was. It’s just so hard to-to give in.”

Jean leaned an arm against the side of the cabin and, bowing his face over it, he surrendered to the irresistible contention within his breast. And as if with a wrench that strange inward hold broke. He let down. He went back. Something that was boyish and hopeful—and in its place slowly rose the dark tide of his inheritance, the savage instinct of self-preservation bequeathed by his Indian mother, and the fierce, feudal blood lust of his Texan father.

Jean rested an arm against the side of the cabin and, lowering his face over it, gave in to the overwhelming struggle inside him. It felt as though that strange inner grip was suddenly released. He let go. He stepped back. What had been boyish and hopeful was gradually replaced by the dark tide of his heritage, the primal instinct for self-preservation passed down from his Indian mother, and the intense, feudal bloodlust of his Texan father.

Then as he raised himself, gripped by a sickening coldness in his breast, he remembered Ellen Jorth’s face as she had gazed dreamily down off the Rim—so soft, so different, with tremulous lips, sad, musing, with far-seeing stare of dark eyes, peering into the unknown, the instinct of life still unlived. With confused vision and nameless pain Jean thought of her.

Then as he lifted himself up, filled with a nauseating chill in his chest, he remembered Ellen Jorth’s face as she had looked dreamily down off the Rim—so gentle, so unique, with quivering lips, a sad, thoughtful expression, and a deep gaze from her dark eyes, looking into the unknown, the instinct for life still unfulfilled. With blurry vision and an indescribable ache, Jean thought of her.

“Dad, it’s hard on—the—the young folks,” he said, bitterly. “The sins of the father, you know. An’ the other side. How about Jorth? Has he any children?”

“Dad, it’s tough on—the—the young people,” he said, bitterly. “The sins of the father, you know. And the other side. What about Jorth? Does he have any kids?”

What a curious gleam of surprise and conjecture Jean encountered in his father’s gaze!

What a strange look of surprise and speculation Jean saw in his father's eyes!

“He has a daughter. Ellen Jorth. Named after her mother. The first time I saw Ellen Jorth I thought she was a ghost of the girl I had loved an’ lost. Sight of her was like a blade in my side. But the looks of her an’ what she is—they don’t gibe. Old as I am, my heart—Bah! Ellen Jorth is a damned hussy!”

“He has a daughter. Ellen Jorth. Named after her mother. The first time I saw Ellen Jorth, I thought she was a ghost of the girl I had loved and lost. Seeing her was like a knife in my side. But how she looks and who she is—they don’t match. As old as I am, my heart—Ugh! Ellen Jorth is a damn hussy!”

Jean Isbel went off alone into the cedars. Surrender and resignation to his father’s creed should have ended his perplexity and worry. His instant and burning resolve to be as his father had represented him should have opened his mind to slow cunning, to the craft of the Indian, to the development of hate. But there seemed to be an obstacle. A cloud in the way of vision. A face limned on his memory.

Jean Isbel walked alone into the cedars. Accepting his father's beliefs should have put an end to his confusion and anxiety. His immediate and intense determination to be just like his father should have made him open to the cleverness of the Indian, to cultivating hatred. But something seemed to block him. A haze obstructing his view. A face etched in his memory.

Those damning words of his father’s had been a shock—how little or great he could not tell. Was it only a day since he had met Ellen Jorth? What had made all the difference? Suddenly like a breath the fragrance of her hair came back to him. Then the sweet coolness of her lips! Jean trembled. He looked around him as if he were pursued or surrounded by eyes, by instincts, by fears, by incomprehensible things.

Those harsh words from his father had hit him hard—he couldn't tell if it had been a little or a lot. Had it really only been a day since he met Ellen Jorth? What had changed everything? Suddenly, like a whisper, the scent of her hair returned to him. Then the sweet coolness of her lips! Jean trembled. He glanced around as if he were being chased or surrounded by eyes, instincts, fears, and things he couldn't understand.

“Ahuh! That must be what ails me,” he muttered. “The look of her—an’ that kiss—they’ve gone hard me. I should never have stopped to talk. An’ I’m to kill her father an’ leave her to God knows what.”

“Yeah! That’s definitely what’s bothering me,” he muttered. “The way she looks—and that kiss—they’ve really affected me. I shouldn’t have stopped to talk. And I’m supposed to kill her father and leave her to who knows what.”

Something was wrong somewhere. Jean absolutely forgot that within the hour he had pledged his manhood, his life to a feud which could be blotted out only in blood. If he had understood himself he would have realized that the pledge was no more thrilling and unintelligible in its possibilities than this instinct which drew him irresistibly.

Something was off somewhere. Jean completely forgot that within the hour he had committed his manhood, his life to a feud that could only be settled in blood. If he had understood himself, he would have realized that the promise was no more exciting and confusing in its possibilities than this instinct that pulled him in irresistibly.

“Ellen Jorth! So—my dad calls her a damned hussy! So—that explains the—the way she acted—why she never hit me when I kissed her. An’ her words, so easy an’ cool-like. Hussy? That means she’s bad—bad! Scornful of me—maybe disappointed because my kiss was innocent! It was, I swear. An’ all she said: ‘Oh, I’ve been kissed before.’”

“Ellen Jorth! So—my dad calls her a total hussy! So—that explains the way she acted—why she never pushed me away when I kissed her. And her words, so easy and casual. Hussy? That means she’s trouble—trouble! She looked down on me—maybe disappointed because my kiss was innocent! It was, I swear. And all she said: ‘Oh, I’ve been kissed before.’”

Jean grew furious with himself for the spreading of a new sensation in his breast that seemed now to ache. Had he become infatuated, all in a day, with this Ellen Jorth? Was he jealous of the men who had the privilege of her kisses? No! But his reply was hot with shame, with uncertainty. The thing that seemed wrong was outside of himself. A blunder was no crime. To be attracted by a pretty girl in the woods—to yield to an impulse was no disgrace, nor wrong. He had been foolish over a girl before, though not to such a rash extent. Ellen Jorth had stuck in his consciousness, and with her a sense of regret.

Jean was really angry with himself for feeling a new sensation in his chest that now seemed to hurt. Had he really become infatuated with this Ellen Jorth all in one day? Was he jealous of the guys who got to kiss her? No! But his response was filled with shame and uncertainty. The problem seemed to be outside of him. Making a mistake wasn't a crime. Being attracted to a pretty girl in the woods and giving in to an impulse wasn't disgraceful or wrong. He had been foolish over a girl before, though not to such a reckless degree. Ellen Jorth had lingered in his mind, bringing with her a feeling of regret.

Then swiftly rang his father’s bitter words, the revealing: “But the looks of her an’ what she is—they don’t gibe!” In the import of these words hid the meaning of the wrong that troubled him. Broodingly he pondered over them.

Then quickly echoed his father's angry words, the revealing: “But the way she looks and who she really is—they don’t match!” The implication of these words held the meaning of the wrong that bothered him. Deep in thought, he reflected on them.

“The looks of her. Yes, she was pretty. But it didn’t dawn on me at first. I—I was sort of excited. I liked to look at her, but didn’t think.” And now consciously her face was called up, infinitely sweet and more impelling for the deliberate memory. Flash of brown skin, smooth and clear; level gaze of dark, wide eyes, steady, bold, unseeing; red curved lips, sad and sweet; her strong, clean, fine face rose before Jean, eager and wistful one moment, softened by dreamy musing thought, and the next stormily passionate, full of hate, full of longing, but the more mysterious and beautiful.

“The way she looked. Yes, she was beautiful. But I didn’t realize it at first. I—I was kind of excited. I liked looking at her, but didn’t think much about it.” And now, intentionally, her face came to mind, incredibly sweet and even more captivating for the focused memory. A flash of brown skin, smooth and clear; a steady gaze from dark, wide eyes, confident and unseeing; red curved lips, both sad and sweet; her strong, clean, fine face appeared before Jean, eager and longing one moment, softened by dreamy contemplation, and the next full of stormy passion, filled with hate, filled with yearning, yet even more mysterious and beautiful.

“She looks like that, but she’s bad,” concluded Jean, with bitter finality. “I might have fallen in love with Ellen Jorth if—if she’d been different.”

“She looks like that, but she’s trouble,” Jean concluded bitterly. “I might have fallen for Ellen Jorth if—if she’d been different.”

But the conviction forced upon Jean did not dispel the haunting memory of her face nor did it wholly silence the deep and stubborn voice of his consciousness. Later that afternoon he sought a moment with his sister.

But the conviction placed on Jean didn’t erase the lingering memory of her face, nor did it completely quiet the deep and stubborn voice of his conscience. Later that afternoon, he looked for a moment with his sister.

“Ann, did you ever meet Ellen Jorth?” he asked.

“Ann, have you ever met Ellen Jorth?” he asked.

“Yes, but not lately,” replied Ann.

“Yes, but not recently,” replied Ann.

“Well, I met her as I was ridin’ along yesterday. She was herdin’ sheep,” went on Jean, rapidly. “I asked her to show me the way to the Rim. An’ she walked with me a mile or so. I can’t say the meetin’ was not interestin’, at least to me.... Will you tell me what you know about her?”

“Well, I ran into her while I was riding yesterday. She was herding sheep,” Jean continued quickly. “I asked her to show me how to get to the Rim. And she walked with me for about a mile. I can’t say the meeting wasn’t interesting, at least for me... Will you tell me what you know about her?”

“Sure, Jean,” replied his sister, with her dark eyes fixed wonderingly and kindly on his troubled face. “I’ve heard a great deal, but in this Tonto Basin I don’t believe all I hear. What I know I’ll tell you. I first met Ellen Jorth two years ago. We didn’t know each other’s names then. She was the prettiest girl I ever saw. I liked her. She liked me. She seemed unhappy. The next time we met was at a round-up. There were other girls with me and they snubbed her. But I left them and went around with her. That snub cut her to the heart. She was lonely. She had no friends. She talked about herself—how she hated the people, but loved Arizona. She had nothin’ fit to wear. I didn’t need to be told that she’d been used to better things. Just when it looked as if we were goin’ to be friends she told me who she was and asked me my name. I told her. Jean, I couldn’t have hurt her more if I’d slapped her face. She turned white. She gasped. And then she ran off. The last time I saw her was about a year ago. I was ridin’ a short-cut trail to the ranch where a friend lived. And I met Ellen Jorth ridin’ with a man I’d never seen. The trail was overgrown and shady. They were ridin’ close and didn’t see me right off. The man had his arm round her. She pushed him away. I saw her laugh. Then he got hold of her again and was kissin’ her when his horse shied at sight of mine. They rode by me then. Ellen Jorth held her head high and never looked at me.”

“Sure, Jean,” his sister replied, her dark eyes looking at his troubled face with curiosity and kindness. “I’ve heard a lot, but in this Tonto Basin, I don’t believe everything I hear. What I know, I’ll share with you. I first met Ellen Jorth two years ago. We didn’t know each other’s names back then. She was the prettiest girl I ever saw. I liked her, and she liked me. She seemed unhappy. The next time we met was at a round-up. I was with some other girls who ignored her, but I left them and spent time with her. That rejection cut her deeply. She was lonely and had no friends. She talked about herself—how she hated the people but loved Arizona. She had nothing nice to wear. I could tell she was used to better things. Just when it seemed like we were going to be friends, she told me who she was and asked my name. I told her. Jean, I couldn’t have hurt her more if I’d slapped her. She turned pale, gasped, and then ran off. The last time I saw her was about a year ago. I was taking a shortcut trail to the ranch where a friend lived when I saw Ellen Jorth riding with a man I didn’t recognize. The trail was overgrown and shady. They were close together and didn’t notice me at first. The man had his arm around her, but she pushed him away. I saw her laugh. Then he grabbed her again and was kissing her when his horse got startled by mine. They rode past me then. Ellen Jorth held her head high and didn’t look at me.”

“Ann, do you think she’s a bad girl?” demanded Jean, bluntly.

“Ann, do you think she’s a bad person?” Jean asked, straightforwardly.

“Bad? Oh, Jean!” exclaimed Ann, in surprise and embarrassment.

“Bad? Oh, Jean!” Ann exclaimed, surprised and embarrassed.

“Dad said she was a damned hussy.”

“Dad said she was a total slut.”

“Jean, dad hates the Jorths.”

“Jean, dad dislikes the Jorths.”

“Sister, I’m askin’ you what you think of Ellen Jorth. Would you be friends with her if you could?”

“Sister, I’m asking you what you think of Ellen Jorth. Would you be friends with her if you could?”

“Yes.”

"Yep."

“Then you don’t believe she’s bad.”

“Then you don’t think she’s bad.”

“No. Ellen Jorth is lonely, unhappy. She has no mother. She lives alone among rough men. Such a girl can’t keep men from handlin’ her and kissin’ her. Maybe she’s too free. Maybe she’s wild. But she’s honest, Jean. You can trust a woman to tell. When she rode past me that day her face was white and proud. She was a Jorth and I was an Isbel. She hated herself—she hated me. But no bad girl could look like that. She knows what’s said of her all around the valley. But she doesn’t care. She’d encourage gossip.”

“No. Ellen Jorth is lonely and unhappy. She has no mother. She lives alone among rough men. A girl like her can’t stop men from touching and kissing her. Maybe she’s too carefree. Maybe she’s wild. But she’s honest, Jean. You can trust a woman to be straightforward. When she rode past me that day, her face was pale and proud. She was a Jorth, and I was an Isbel. She hated herself—she hated me. But no bad girl could look like that. She knows what people say about her all around the valley. But she doesn’t care. She’d stir up gossip.”

“Thank you, Ann,” replied Jean, huskily. “Please keep this—this meetin’ of mine with her all to yourself, won’t you?”

“Thank you, Ann,” Jean replied in a husky voice. “Please keep this—this meeting of mine with her all to yourself, okay?”

“Why, Jean, of course I will.”

“Sure, Jean, I'll definitely do that.”

Jean wandered away again, peculiarly grateful to Ann for reviving and upholding something in him that seemed a wavering part of the best of him—a chivalry that had demanded to be killed by judgment of a righteous woman. He was conscious of an uplift, a gladdening of his spirit. Yet the ache remained. More than that, he found himself plunged deeper into conjecture, doubt. Had not the Ellen Jorth incident ended? He denied his father’s indictment of her and accepted the faith of his sister. “Reckon that’s aboot all, as dad says,” he soliloquized. Yet was that all? He paced under the cedars. He watched the sun set. He listened to the coyotes. He lingered there after the call for supper; until out of the tumult of his conflicting emotions and ponderings there evolved the staggering consciousness that he must see Ellen Jorth again.

Jean wandered off again, oddly grateful to Ann for bringing back and supporting a part of him that felt like the best version of himself— a sense of chivalry that seemed to be crushed by the judgment of a righteous woman. He felt uplifted, his spirit lightened. Yet the ache remained. Even more so, he found himself sinking deeper into uncertainty and doubt. Hadn’t the Ellen Jorth situation come to an end? He rejected his father's accusations against her and embraced his sister's faith. “I guess that’s about it, as Dad says,” he thought to himself. But was that really all? He walked under the cedars, watched the sun set, and listened to the coyotes. He stayed there after the call for dinner; until from the chaos of his conflicting feelings and thoughts emerged the overwhelming realization that he had to see Ellen Jorth again.




CHAPTER IV

Ellen Jorth hurried back into the forest, hotly resentful of the accident that had thrown her in contact with an Isbel.

Ellen Jorth rushed back into the forest, feeling angry about the incident that had brought her face to face with an Isbel.

Disgust filled her—disgust that she had been amiable to a member of the hated family that had ruined her father. The surprise of this meeting did not come to her while she was under the spell of stronger feeling. She walked under the trees, swiftly, with head erect, looking straight before her, and every step seemed a relief.

Disgust overwhelmed her—disgust that she had been friendly to someone from the family she despised for ruining her father. The shock of this encounter didn't hit her while she was caught up in stronger emotions. She walked quickly under the trees, with her head held high, looking straight ahead, and each step felt like a release.

Upon reaching camp, her attention was distracted from herself. Pepe, the Mexican boy, with the two shepherd dogs, was trying to drive sheep into a closer bunch to save the lambs from coyotes. Ellen loved the fleecy, tottering little lambs, and at this season she hated all the prowling beast of the forest. From this time on for weeks the flock would be besieged by wolves, lions, bears, the last of which were often bold and dangerous. The old grizzlies that killed the ewes to eat only the milk-bags were particularly dreaded by Ellen. She was a good shot with a rifle, but had orders from her father to let the bears alone. Fortunately, such sheep-killing bears were but few, and were left to be hunted by men from the ranch. Mexican sheep herders could not be depended upon to protect their flocks from bears. Ellen helped Pepe drive in the stragglers, and she took several shots at coyotes skulking along the edge of the brush. The open glade in the forest was favorable for herding the sheep at night, and the dogs could be depended upon to guard the flock, and in most cases to drive predatory beasts away.

Upon arriving at the camp, she found her focus shifting away from herself. Pepe, the Mexican boy with two shepherd dogs, was trying to herd the sheep closer together to protect the lambs from coyotes. Ellen adored the fluffy, wobbly little lambs, and during this time of year, she hated all the lurking predators in the forest. For weeks to come, the flock would be threatened by wolves, lions, and bears, the latter of which could be especially bold and dangerous. The old grizzly bears that killed ewes just to eat their milk bags were particularly feared by Ellen. She was an excellent shot with a rifle but had been instructed by her father to leave the bears alone. Thankfully, fewer bears preyed on sheep, and those were typically hunted by men from the ranch. Mexican sheep herders couldn’t always be counted on to protect their flocks from bears. Ellen helped Pepe round up the stragglers and took several shots at coyotes sneaking around the edge of the brush. The open glade in the forest was ideal for herding the sheep at night, and the dogs could be relied upon to guard the flock and usually to scare off predatory animals.

After this task, which brought the time to sunset, Ellen had supper to cook and eat. Darkness came, and a cool night wind set in. Here and there a lamb bleated plaintively. With her work done for the day, Ellen sat before a ruddy camp fire, and found her thoughts again centering around the singular adventure that had befallen her. Disdainfully she strove to think of something else. But there was nothing that could dispel the interest of her meeting with Jean Isbel. Thereupon she impatiently surrendered to it, and recalled every word and action which she could remember. And in the process of this meditation she came to an action of hers, recollection of which brought the blood tingling to her neck and cheeks, so unusually and burningly that she covered them with her hands. “What did he think of me?” she mused, doubtfully. It did not matter what he thought, but she could not help wondering. And when she came to the memory of his kiss she suffered more than the sensation of throbbing scarlet cheeks. Scornfully and bitterly she burst out, “Shore he couldn’t have thought much good of me.”

After finishing her chores, which brought her to sunset, Ellen had dinner to cook and eat. Darkness fell, and a cool night breeze began to blow. Here and there, a lamb bleated softly. With her work done for the day, Ellen sat in front of a glowing campfire, and her thoughts returned to the unusual adventure she had experienced. She tried to think of something else with disdain. But nothing could shake her interest in her encounter with Jean Isbel. Finally, she gave in to her thoughts and recalled every word and action she could remember. During this reflection, she remembered something she did that made her cheeks and neck tingle with an unusual heat, so much so that she covered them with her hands. “What did he think of me?” she wondered anxiously. It shouldn’t matter what he thought, but she couldn’t help but wonder. And when she remembered his kiss, she felt more than just the sensation of her flushed cheeks. Bitterly, she exclaimed, “There’s no way he thought much of me.”

The half hour following this reminiscence was far from being pleasant. Proud, passionate, strong-willed Ellen Jorth found herself a victim of conflicting emotions. The event of the day was too close. She could not understand it. Disgust and disdain and scorn could not make this meeting with Jean Isbel as if it had never been. Pride could not efface it from her mind. The more she reflected, the harder she tried to forget, the stronger grew a significance of interest. And when a hint of this dawned upon her consciousness she resented it so forcibly that she lost her temper, scattered the camp fire, and went into the little teepee tent to roll in her blankets.

The half hour after this memory was anything but pleasant. Proud, passionate, strong-willed Ellen Jorth found herself caught in a whirlwind of conflicting emotions. The day’s events were still too fresh. She couldn’t make sense of it. Disgust, disdain, and scorn couldn’t erase her meeting with Jean Isbel as if it had never happened. Pride couldn’t wipe it from her mind. The more she thought about it, the harder she tried to forget, the stronger her feelings of interest became. And when a hint of this realization hit her, she resented it so much that she lost her temper, scattered the campfire, and went into the little teepee tent to curl up in her blankets.

Thus settled snug and warm for the night, with a shepherd dog curled at the opening of her tent, she shut her eyes and confidently bade sleep end her perplexities. But sleep did not come at her invitation. She found herself wide awake, keenly sensitive to the sputtering of the camp fire, the tinkling of bells on the rams, the bleating of lambs, the sough of wind in the pines, and the hungry sharp bark of coyotes off in the distance. Darkness was no respecter of her pride. The lonesome night with its emphasis of solitude seemed to induce clamoring and strange thoughts, a confusing ensemble of all those that had annoyed her during the daytime. Not for long hours did sheer weariness bring her to slumber.

Thus settled snug and warm for the night, with a shepherd dog curled at the entrance of her tent, she closed her eyes and confidently asked sleep to ease her worries. But sleep didn’t come at her request. She found herself wide awake, acutely aware of the crackling campfire, the jingling of the bells on the rams, the bleating of lambs, the whisper of wind in the pines, and the sharp, hungry barks of coyotes in the distance. Darkness didn’t care about her pride. The lonely night, highlighting her solitude, seemed to provoke loud and strange thoughts, a confusing mix of all the annoyances that had troubled her during the day. It wasn’t long before sheer exhaustion finally brought her sleep.

Ellen awakened late and failed of her usual alacrity. Both Pepe and the shepherd dog appeared to regard her with surprise and solicitude. Ellen’s spirit was low this morning; her blood ran sluggishly; she had to fight a mournful tendency to feel sorry for herself. And at first she was not very successful. There seemed to be some kind of pleasure in reveling in melancholy which her common sense told her had no reason for existence. But states of mind persisted in spite of common sense.

Ellen woke up late and didn’t have her usual energy. Both Pepe and the shepherd dog looked at her with surprise and concern. Ellen felt down this morning; her energy felt heavy; she struggled against a sad urge to feel sorry for herself. At first, she wasn’t very good at it. It seemed like there was some kind of enjoyment in wallowing in her sadness, even though her common sense told her it didn’t make any sense. But her feelings stuck around, no matter what her common sense said.

“Pepe, when is Antonio comin’ back?” she asked.

“Pepe, when is Antonio coming back?” she asked.

The boy could not give her a satisfactory answer. Ellen had willingly taken the sheep herder’s place for a few days, but now she was impatient to go home. She looked down the green-and-brown aisles of the forest until she was tired. Antonio did not return. Ellen spent the day with the sheep; and in the manifold task of caring for a thousand new-born lambs she forgot herself. This day saw the end of lambing-time for that season. The forest resounded to a babel of baas and bleats. When night came she was glad to go to bed, for what with loss of sleep, and weariness she could scarcely keep her eyes open.

The boy couldn't give her a satisfactory answer. Ellen had gladly taken the shepherd's place for a few days, but now she was eager to go home. She stared down the green and brown paths of the forest until she grew tired. Antonio didn’t come back. Ellen spent the day with the sheep, and in the countless tasks of taking care of a thousand newborn lambs, she forgot about herself. This day marked the end of lambing season for that year. The forest echoed with a mix of baas and bleats. When night came, she was happy to go to bed, because between lack of sleep and exhaustion, she could barely keep her eyes open.

The following morning she awakened early, bright, eager, expectant, full of bounding life, strangely aware of the beauty and sweetness of the scented forest, strangely conscious of some nameless stimulus to her feelings.

The next morning, she woke up early, feeling bright, eager, and hopeful, full of vibrant energy, oddly aware of the beauty and sweetness of the fragrant forest, and strangely conscious of an unnamed spark in her emotions.

Not long was Ellen in associating this new and delightful variety of sensations with the fact that Jean Isbel had set to-day for his ride up to the Rim to see her. Ellen’s joyousness fled; her smiles faded. The spring morning lost its magic radiance.

Not long after, Ellen connected this new and delightful mix of feelings with the fact that Jean Isbel had chosen today for his ride up to the Rim to see her. Ellen’s happiness vanished; her smiles disappeared. The spring morning lost its magical glow.

“Shore there’s no sense in my lyin’ to myself,” she soliloquized, thoughtfully. “It’s queer of me—feelin’ glad aboot him—without knowin’. Lord! I must be lonesome! To be glad of seein’ an Isbel, even if he is different!”

“Sure, there’s no point in lying to myself,” she reflected, thoughtfully. “It’s strange for me—feeling happy about him—without knowing. Wow! I must be lonely! To be happy about seeing an Isbel, even if he is different!”

Soberly she accepted the astounding reality. Her confidence died with her gayety; her vanity began to suffer. And she caught at her admission that Jean Isbel was different; she resented it in amaze; she ridiculed it; she laughed at her naive confession. She could arrive at no conclusion other than that she was a weak-minded, fluctuating, inexplicable little fool.

Soberly, she accepted the shocking reality. Her confidence faded with her happiness; her vanity started to take a hit. And she realized that Jean Isbel was different; she resented this in disbelief; she mocked it; she laughed at her own naive admission. She could only conclude that she was a weak-minded, indecisive, inexplicable little fool.

But for all that she found her mind had been made up for her, without consent or desire, before her will had been consulted; and that inevitably and unalterably she meant to see Jean Isbel again. Long she battled with this strange decree. One moment she won a victory over, this new curious self, only to lose it the next. And at last out of her conflict there emerged a few convictions that left her with some shreds of pride. She hated all Isbels, she hated any Isbel, and particularly she hated Jean Isbel. She was only curious—intensely curious to see if he would come back, and if he did come what he would do. She wanted only to watch him from some covert. She would not go near him, not let him see her or guess of her presence.

But despite that, she realized her mind had been made up for her, without her consent or desire, before her will had been taken into account; and that inevitably and unchangeably she was determined to see Jean Isbel again. She struggled for a long time with this strange fate. One moment she would gain the upper hand over this new, curious part of herself, only to lose it the next. In the end, from her inner turmoil emerged a few beliefs that left her with some remnants of pride. She hated all Isbels, she hated any Isbel, and especially she hated Jean Isbel. She was only curious—intensely curious to see if he would come back, and if he did, what he would do. She only wanted to watch him from some hidden spot. She wouldn't get close to him, nor would she let him see her or suspect her presence.

Thus she assuaged her hurt vanity—thus she stifled her miserable doubts.

Thus she eased her wounded pride—thus she silenced her unhappy doubts.

Long before the sun had begun to slant westward toward the mid-afternoon Jean Isbel had set as a meeting time Ellen directed her steps through the forest to the Rim. She felt ashamed of her eagerness. She had a guilty conscience that no strange thrills could silence. It would be fun to see him, to watch him, to let him wait for her, to fool him.

Long before the sun started to dip in the west toward mid-afternoon, Jean Isbel had set a meeting time. Ellen made her way through the forest to the Rim. She felt ashamed of how eager she was. She couldn’t shake off the guilty feelings that no strange excitement could quiet. It would be fun to see him, to observe him, to make him wait for her, to trick him.

Like an Indian, she chose the soft pine-needle mats to tread upon, and her light-moccasined feet left no trace. Like an Indian also she made a wide detour, and reached the Rim a quarter of a mile west of the spot where she had talked with Jean Isbel; and here, turning east, she took care to step on the bare stones. This was an adventure, seemingly the first she had ever had in her life. Assuredly she had never before come directly to the Rim without halting to look, to wonder, to worship. This time she scarcely glanced into the blue abyss. All absorbed was she in hiding her tracks. Not one chance in a thousand would she risk. The Jorth pride burned even while the feminine side of her dominated her actions. She had some difficult rocky points to cross, then windfalls to round, and at length reached the covert she desired. A rugged yellow point of the Rim stood somewhat higher than the spot Ellen wanted to watch. A dense thicket of jack pines grew to the very edge. It afforded an ambush that even the Indian eyes Jean Isbel was credited with could never penetrate. Moreover, if by accident she made a noise and excited suspicion, she could retreat unobserved and hide in the huge rocks below the Rim, where a ferret could not locate her.

Like an Indian, she chose the soft pine-needle mats to step on, and her light-moccasined feet left no trace. Like an Indian too, she took a wide detour and reached the Rim a quarter of a mile west of where she had talked with Jean Isbel; and here, turning east, she made sure to step on the bare stones. This was an adventure, seemingly the first she had ever had in her life. Clearly, she had never before come directly to the Rim without stopping to look, to wonder, to worship. This time, she barely glanced into the blue abyss. Completely focused on hiding her tracks, she didn't want to risk one chance in a thousand. The Jorth pride burned even as her feminine side drove her actions. She had some tricky rocky sections to cross, then fallen trees to navigate, and finally reached the hiding place she wanted. A rugged yellow point of the Rim was a bit higher than where Ellen wanted to watch. A thick thicket of jack pines grew right to the edge, providing a cover that even the keen eyes Jean Isbel was said to have couldn't penetrate. Plus, if she accidentally made a noise and raised suspicion, she could retreat unnoticed and hide among the massive rocks below the Rim, where even a ferret couldn't find her.

With her plan decided upon, Ellen had nothing to do but wait, so she repaired to the other side of the pine thicket and to the edge of the Rim where she could watch and listen. She knew that long before she saw Isbel she would hear his horse. It was altogether unlikely that he would come on foot.

With her plan set, Ellen had nothing to do but wait, so she went to the other side of the pine thicket and to the edge of the Rim where she could watch and listen. She knew that long before she saw Isbel, she would hear his horse. It was very unlikely that he would come on foot.

“Shore, Ellen Jorth, y’u’re a queer girl,” she mused. “I reckon I wasn’t well acquainted with y’u.”

“Shore, Ellen Jorth, you’re an odd girl,” she thought. “I guess I wasn’t very familiar with you.”

Beneath her yawned a wonderful deep canyon, rugged and rocky with but few pines on the north slope, thick with dark green timber on the south slope. Yellow and gray crags, like turreted castles, stood up out of the sloping forest on the side opposite her. The trees were all sharp, spear pointed. Patches of light green aspens showed strikingly against the dense black. The great slope beneath Ellen was serrated with narrow, deep gorges, almost canyons in themselves. Shadows alternated with clear bright spaces. The mile-wide mouth of the canyon opened upon the Basin, down into a world of wild timbered ranges and ravines, valleys and hills, that rolled and tumbled in dark-green waves to the Sierra Anchas.

Beneath her was a stunning deep canyon, rugged and rocky with only a few pines on the north slope, and thick, dark green trees on the south slope. Yellow and gray cliffs, resembling turreted castles, stood out from the sloping forest on the opposite side. The trees were all sharp and pointed like spears. Patches of light green aspens stood out vividly against the dense black. The vast slope below Ellen was jagged with narrow, deep gorges, almost canyons in themselves. Shadows mingled with bright, clear areas. The mile-wide mouth of the canyon opened to the Basin, leading into a world of wild, wooded ranges and ravines, valleys and hills, rolling and tumbling in dark-green waves toward the Sierra Anchas.

But for once Ellen seemed singularly unresponsive to this panorama of wildness and grandeur. Her ears were like those of a listening deer, and her eyes continually reverted to the open places along the Rim. At first, in her excitement, time flew by. Gradually, however, as the sun moved westward, she began to be restless. The soft thud of dropping pine cones, the rustling of squirrels up and down the shaggy-barked spruces, the cracking of weathered bits of rock, these caught her keen ears many times and brought her up erect and thrilling. Finally she heard a sound which resembled that of an unshod hoof on stone. Stealthily then she took her rifle and slipped back through the pine thicket to the spot she had chosen. The little pines were so close together that she had to crawl between their trunks. The ground was covered with a soft bed of pine needles, brown and fragrant. In her hurry she pricked her ungloved hand on a sharp pine cone and drew the blood. She sucked the tiny wound. “Shore I’m wonderin’ if that’s a bad omen,” she muttered, darkly thoughtful. Then she resumed her sinuous approach to the edge of the thicket, and presently reached it.

But for once, Ellen seemed completely unresponsive to the wild and grand scenery around her. Her ears were alert like a listening deer, and her eyes kept darting to the open areas along the Rim. Initially, in her excitement, time flew by. However, as the sun moved westward, she started to feel restless. The soft thud of falling pine cones, the rustling of squirrels climbing up and down the shaggy-barked spruces, and the cracking of weathered bits of rock caught her sharp ears many times, making her sit up straight with excitement. Finally, she heard a sound that resembled an unshod hoof on stone. Silently, she grabbed her rifle and slipped back through the pine thicket to the spot she had picked. The little pines were so close together that she had to crawl between their trunks. The ground was covered with a soft layer of brown, fragrant pine needles. In her hurry, she pricked her ungloved hand on a sharp pine cone and drew blood. She sucked on the small wound. “I’m starting to wonder if that’s a bad omen,” she muttered, deep in thought. Then she continued her cautious approach to the edge of the thicket and eventually reached it.

Ellen lay flat a moment to recover her breath, then raised herself on her elbows. Through an opening in the fringe of buck brush she could plainly see the promontory where she had stood with Jean Isbel, and also the approaches by which he might come. Rather nervously she realized that her covert was hardly more than a hundred feet from the promontory. It was imperative that she be absolutely silent. Her eyes searched the openings along the Rim. The gray form of a deer crossed one of these, and she concluded it had made the sound she had heard. Then she lay down more comfortably and waited. Resolutely she held, as much as possible, to her sensorial perceptions. The meaning of Ellen Jorth lying in ambush just to see an Isbel was a conundrum she refused to ponder in the present. She was doing it, and the physical act had its fascination. Her ears, attuned to all the sounds of the lonely forest, caught them and arranged them according to her knowledge of woodcraft.

Ellen lay flat for a moment to catch her breath, then propped herself up on her elbows. Through an opening in the brush, she could clearly see the promontory where she had stood with Jean Isbel, as well as the paths he might take to get there. A bit nervously, she realized that her hiding spot was barely a hundred feet from the promontory. It was crucial that she remained completely silent. Her eyes scanned the openings along the Rim. She saw the gray shape of a deer move through one of them and figured it was the source of the sound she had heard. Then she settled down more comfortably and waited. She focused as much as possible on her sensory perceptions. The idea of Ellen Jorth lying in wait just to catch a glimpse of an Isbel was a puzzle she chose not to think about right now. She was doing it, and the experience had its own allure. Her ears, tuned to all the sounds of the desolate forest, picked them up and organized them according to her knowledge of nature.

A long hour passed by. The sun had slanted to a point halfway between the zenith and the horizon. Suddenly a thought confronted Ellen Jorth: “He’s not comin’,” she whispered. The instant that idea presented itself she felt a blank sense of loss, a vague regret—something that must have been disappointment. Unprepared for this, she was held by surprise for a moment, and then she was stunned. Her spirit, swift and rebellious, had no time to rise in her defense. She was a lonely, guilty, miserable girl, too weak for pride to uphold, too fluctuating to know her real self. She stretched there, burying her face in the pine needles, digging her fingers into them, wanting nothing so much as that they might hide her. The moment was incomprehensible to Ellen, and utterly intolerable. The sharp pine needles, piercing her wrists and cheeks, and her hot heaving breast, seemed to give her exquisite relief.

A long hour passed. The sun had angled to a spot halfway between the peak and the horizon. Suddenly, a thought hit Ellen Jorth: “He’s not coming,” she whispered. As soon as that idea crossed her mind, she felt a hollow sense of loss, a vague regret—something like disappointment. Caught off guard, she was stunned for a moment. Her spirit, quick and rebellious, had no time to rise to her defense. She was a lonely, guilty, miserable girl, too weak for pride to support her, too uncertain to know her true self. She lay there, burying her face in the pine needles, digging her fingers into them, wanting nothing more than for them to hide her. The moment was incomprehensible to Ellen and completely unbearable. The sharp pine needles, digging into her wrists and cheeks, and her hot, heaving chest, seemed to give her a twisted sense of relief.

The shrill snort of a horse sounded near at hand. With a shock Ellen’s body stiffened. Then she quivered a little and her feelings underwent swift change. Cautiously and noiselessly she raised herself upon her elbows and peeped through the opening in the brush. She saw a man tying a horse to a bush somewhat back from the Rim. Drawing a rifle from its saddle sheath he threw it in the hollow of his arm and walked to the edge of the precipice. He gazed away across the Basin and appeared lost in contemplation or thought. Then he turned to look back into the forest, as if he expected some one.

The loud snort of a horse sounded close by. Ellen's body stiffened in surprise. Then she shivered a bit and her emotions changed quickly. Carefully and silently, she propped herself up on her elbows and peeked through the opening in the brush. She saw a man tying a horse to a bush a little way back from the Rim. Taking a rifle from its saddle sheath, he tucked it under his arm and walked to the edge of the cliff. He stared out across the Basin, seemingly lost in thought. Then he turned to look back into the forest, as if he was waiting for someone.

Ellen recognized the lithe figure, the dark face so like an Indian’s. It was Isbel. He had come. Somehow his coming seemed wonderful and terrible. Ellen shook as she leaned on her elbows. Jean Isbel, true to his word, in spite of her scorn, had come back to see her. The fact seemed monstrous. He was an enemy of her father. Long had range rumor been bandied from lip to lip—old Gass Isbel had sent for his Indian son to fight the Jorths. Jean Isbel—son of a Texan—unerring shot—peerless tracker—a bad and dangerous man! Then there flashed over Ellen a burning thought—if it were true, if he was an enemy of her father’s, if a fight between Jorth and Isbel was inevitable, she ought to kill this Jean Isbel right there in his tracks as he boldly and confidently waited for her. Fool he was to think she would come. Ellen sank down and dropped her head until the strange tremor of her arms ceased. That dark and grim flash of thought retreated. She had not come to murder a man from ambush, but only to watch him, to try to see what he meant, what he thought, to allay a strange curiosity.

Ellen recognized the slender figure, the dark face reminiscent of an Indian’s. It was Isbel. He had arrived. His presence felt both amazing and frightening. Ellen trembled as she leaned on her elbows. Jean Isbel, despite her disdain, had returned to see her. The reality felt monstrous. He was an enemy of her father. For a long time, rumors had circulated—that old Gass Isbel had summoned his Indian son to fight the Jorths. Jean Isbel—son of a Texan—an expert shot—an unmatched tracker—a bad and dangerous man! Then a burning thought struck Ellen—if it were true, if he was indeed her father’s enemy, and a conflict between the Jorths and Isbels was unavoidable, she should kill this Jean Isbel right then and there as he confidently awaited her. What a fool he was to think she would show up. Ellen sank down and lowered her head until the strange trembling in her arms stopped. That dark and grim thought faded away. She hadn’t come to murder a man from hiding, but only to observe him, to try to understand what he meant, what he thought, to satisfy a strange curiosity.

After a while she looked again. Isbel was sitting on an upheaved section of the Rim, in a comfortable position from which he could watch the openings in the forest and gaze as well across the west curve of the Basin to the Mazatzals. He had composed himself to wait. He was clad in a buckskin suit, rather new, and it certainly showed off to advantage, compared with the ragged and soiled apparel Ellen remembered. He did not look so large. Ellen was used to the long, lean, rangy Arizonians and Texans. This man was built differently. He had the widest shoulders of any man she had ever seen, and they made him appear rather short. But his lithe, powerful limbs proved he was not short. Whenever he moved the muscles rippled. His hands were clasped round a knee—brown, sinewy hands, very broad, and fitting the thick muscular wrists. His collar was open, and he did not wear a scarf, as did the men Ellen knew. Then her intense curiosity at last brought her steady gaze to Jean Isbel’s head and face. He wore a cap, evidently of some thin fur. His hair was straight and short, and in color a dead raven black. His complexion was dark, clear tan, with no trace of red. He did not have the prominent cheek bones nor the high-bridged nose usual with white men who were part Indian. Still he had the Indian look. Ellen caught that in the dark, intent, piercing eyes, in the wide, level, thoughtful brows, in the stern impassiveness of his smooth face. He had a straight, sharp-cut profile.

After a while, she looked again. Isbel was sitting on a raised section of the Rim, in a comfortable position where he could watch the openings in the forest and also gaze across the western curve of the Basin to the Mazatzals. He had settled in to wait. He was wearing a buckskin suit, which looked pretty new, and it certainly stood out compared to the ragged, dirty clothes that Ellen remembered. He didn't seem so large. Ellen was used to the tall, lean Arizonians and Texans. This man was built differently. He had the broadest shoulders of anyone she had ever seen, which made him look somewhat short. But his toned, powerful limbs showed he was not short. Whenever he moved, his muscles rippled. His hands were clasped around a knee—brown, sinewy hands that were very wide and fit his thick muscular wrists. His collar was open, and he wasn't wearing a scarf like the men Ellen knew. Then her intense curiosity finally drew her steady gaze to Jean Isbel’s head and face. He wore a cap made of some thin fur. His hair was straight and short, a color that was a dull raven black. His complexion was a dark, clear tan with no hint of redness. He didn't have the prominent cheekbones or the high-bridged nose typical of white men with some Indian heritage. Still, he had an Indian look. Ellen noticed it in his dark, intent, piercing eyes, in his wide, level, thoughtful brows, and in the stern, expressionless nature of his smooth face. He had a straight, sharp profile.

Ellen whispered to herself: “I saw him right the other day. Only, I’d not admit it.... The finest-lookin’ man I ever saw in my life is a damned Isbel! Was that what I come out heah for?”

Ellen whispered to herself, “I saw him just the other day. But I wouldn’t admit it... The best-looking guy I’ve ever seen in my life is a damn Isbel! Was that why I came out here?”

She lowered herself once more and, folding her arms under her breast, she reclined comfortably on them, and searched out a smaller peephole from which she could spy upon Isbel. And as she watched him the new and perplexing side of her mind waxed busier. Why had he come back? What did he want of her? Acquaintance, friendship, was impossible for them. He had been respectful, deferential toward her, in a way that had strangely pleased, until the surprising moment when he had kissed her. That had only disrupted her rather dreamy pleasure in a situation she had not experienced before. All the men she had met in this wild country were rough and bold; most of them had wanted to marry her, and, failing that, they had persisted in amorous attentions not particularly flattering or honorable. They were a bad lot. And contact with them had dulled some of her sensibilities. But this Jean Isbel had seemed a gentleman. She struggled to be fair, trying to forget her antipathy, as much to understand herself as to give him due credit. True, he had kissed her, crudely and forcibly. But that kiss had not been an insult. Ellen’s finer feeling forced her to believe this. She remembered the honest amaze and shame and contrition with which he had faced her, trying awkwardly to explain his bold act. Likewise she recalled the subtle swift change in him at her words, “Oh, I’ve been kissed before!” She was glad she had said that. Still—was she glad, after all?

She lowered herself once more and, folding her arms under her chest, she comfortably reclined on them and looked for a smaller peephole to spy on Isbel. As she watched him, her mind became increasingly busy with new and confusing thoughts. Why had he come back? What did he want from her? Friendship or a connection was impossible for them. He had been respectful and polite in a way that oddly pleased her, until the surprising moment when he kissed her. That had disrupted her dreamy enjoyment in a situation she had never faced before. All the men she had encountered in this wild country were rough and bold; most had wanted to marry her, and when that didn’t work out, they pursued her with advances that were anything but flattering or honorable. They were not good people. And being around them had dulled some of her sensitivities. But Jean Isbel seemed like a gentleman. She tried to be fair, attempting to forget her dislike, both to understand herself and to give him the credit he deserved. True, he had kissed her, in a crude and forceful way. But that kiss hadn’t felt like an insult. Ellen’s feelings pushed her to believe this. She remembered the honest surprise, shame, and regret with which he had confronted her, awkwardly trying to explain his bold move. She also recalled the quick change in him when she said, “Oh, I've been kissed before!” She was glad she had said that. But still—was she really glad, after all?

She watched him. Every little while he shifted his gaze from the blue gulf beneath him to the forest. When he turned thus the sun shone on his face and she caught the piercing gleam of his dark eyes. She saw, too, that he was listening. Watching and listening for her! Ellen had to still a tumult within her. It made her feel very young, very shy, very strange. All the while she hated him because he manifestly expected her to come. Several times he rose and walked a little way into the woods. The last time he looked at the westering sun and shook his head. His confidence had gone. Then he sat and gazed down into the void. But Ellen knew he did not see anything there. He seemed an image carved in the stone of the Rim, and he gave Ellen a singular impression of loneliness and sadness. Was he thinking of the miserable battle his father had summoned him to lead—of what it would cost—of its useless pain and hatred? Ellen seemed to divine his thoughts. In that moment she softened toward him, and in her soul quivered and stirred an intangible something that was like pain, that was too deep for her understanding. But she felt sorry for an Isbel until the old pride resurged. What if he admired her? She remembered his interest, the wonder and admiration, the growing light in his eyes. And it had not been repugnant to her until he disclosed his name. “What’s in a name?” she mused, recalling poetry learned in her girlhood. “‘A rose by any other name would smell as sweet’.... He’s an Isbel—yet he might be splendid—noble.... Bah! he’s not—and I’d hate him anyhow.”

She watched him. Every now and then, he looked away from the blue gulf beneath him to the forest. When he turned, the sun illuminated his face, and she caught the sharp gleam of his dark eyes. She noticed he was also listening—watching and listening for her! Ellen had to calm the storm inside her. It made her feel very young, very shy, very strange. All the while, she hated him because he clearly expected her to approach. Several times, he got up and walked a bit into the woods. The last time, he glanced at the setting sun and shook his head. His confidence had faded. Then he sat down and stared into the emptiness. But Ellen knew he didn’t see anything there. He seemed like a figure carved from the stone of the Rim, and he gave Ellen a powerful sense of loneliness and sadness. Was he thinking about the miserable battle his father had called him to lead—about what it would cost—about its pointless pain and hatred? Ellen felt as if she could sense his thoughts. In that moment, she softened toward him, and deep within her, something intangible stirred, something that felt like pain and was too profound for her to understand. But she felt sorry for an Isbel until her old pride resurfaced. What if he admired her? She recalled his interest, the wonder and admiration, the growing light in his eyes. It hadn’t repulsed her until he revealed his name. “What’s in a name?” she thought, remembering a poem from her youth. “‘A rose by any other name would smell as sweet’... He’s an Isbel—yet he might be wonderful—noble... Ugh! he’s not—and I’d hate him anyway.”

All at once Ellen felt cold shivers steal over her. Isbel’s piercing gaze was directed straight at her hiding place. Her heart stopped beating. If he discovered her there she felt that she would die of shame. Then she became aware that a blue jay was screeching in a pine above her, and a red squirrel somewhere near was chattering his shrill annoyance. These two denizens of the woods could be depended upon to espy the wariest hunter and make known his presence to their kind. Ellen had a moment of more than dread. This keen-eyed, keen-eared Indian might see right through her brushy covert, might hear the throbbing of her heart. It relieved her immeasurably to see him turn away and take to pacing the promontory, with his head bowed and his hands behind his back. He had stopped looking off into the forest. Presently he wheeled to the west, and by the light upon his face Ellen saw that the time was near sunset. Turkeys were beginning to gobble back on the ridge.

All of a sudden, Ellen felt cold shivers creep over her. Isbel’s intense gaze was fixed directly on her hiding spot. Her heart stopped pounding. If he found her there, she felt like she would die of embarrassment. Then she noticed a blue jay screeching in a pine tree above her, and a red squirrel nearby was chattering in agitation. These two creatures of the woods were sure to spot the most cautious hunter and announce his presence to their kind. Ellen experienced more than just fear. This sharp-eyed, sharp-eared Indian might see right through her brushy hiding place, might hear her heart racing. She felt a huge sense of relief when he turned away and started pacing the promontory, with his head down and his hands behind his back. He had stopped looking out into the forest. Soon, he turned west, and by the light on his face, Ellen realized it was almost sunset. Turkeys were beginning to gobble back on the ridge.

Isbel walked to his horse and appeared to be untying something from the back of his saddle. When he came back Ellen saw that he carried a small package apparently wrapped in paper. With this under his arm he strode off in the direction of Ellen’s camp and soon disappeared in the forest.

Isbel walked over to his horse and seemed to be untying something from the back of his saddle. When he returned, Ellen noticed he was holding a small package that looked like it was wrapped in paper. With this tucked under his arm, he marched off toward Ellen’s camp and quickly vanished into the forest.

For a little while Ellen lay there in bewilderment. If she had made conjectures before, they were now multiplied. Where was Jean Isbel going? Ellen sat up suddenly. “Well, shore this heah beats me,” she said. “What did he have in that package? What was he goin’ to do with it?”

For a little while, Ellen lay there feeling confused. If she had been guessing before, now her thoughts were racing even more. Where was Jean Isbel heading? Ellen sat up abruptly. “Well, this really confuses me,” she said. “What did he have in that package? What was he planning to do with it?”

It took no little will power to hold her there when she wanted to steal after him through the woods and find out what he meant. But his reputation influenced even her and she refused to pit her cunning in the forest against his. It would be better to wait until he returned to his horse. Thus decided, she lay back again in her covert and gave her mind over to pondering curiosity. Sooner than she expected she espied Isbel approaching through the forest, empty handed. He had not taken his rifle. Ellen averted her glance a moment and thrilled to see the rifle leaning against a rock. Verily Jean Isbel had been far removed from hostile intent that day. She watched him stride swiftly up to his horse, untie the halter, and mount. Ellen had an impression of his arrowlike straight figure, and sinuous grace and ease. Then he looked back at the promontory, as if to fix a picture of it in his mind, and rode away along the Rim. She watched him out of sight. What ailed her? Something was wrong with her, but she recognized only relief.

It took quite a bit of willpower to keep her there when all she wanted to do was sneak after him through the woods and figure out what he meant. But his reputation even influenced her, and she didn’t want to match her wits against his in the forest. It was better to wait until he returned to his horse. With that decided, she lay back in her hiding spot and let her mind wander with curiosity. Sooner than she expected, she spotted Isbel coming through the forest, empty-handed. He hadn’t brought his rifle. Ellen quickly looked away for a moment and felt a thrill seeing the rifle leaning against a rock. Clearly, Jean Isbel had no hostile intentions that day. She watched him move quickly to his horse, untie the halter, and mount up. Ellen noted his straight, arrow-like figure, and his fluid grace and ease. Then he looked back at the promontory, as if trying to capture the image in his mind, and rode away along the Rim. She watched until he was out of sight. What was wrong with her? Something felt off, but all she sensed was relief.

When Isbel had been gone long enough to assure Ellen that she might safely venture forth she crawled through the pine thicket to the Rim on the other side of the point. The sun was setting behind the Black Range, shedding a golden glory over the Basin. Westward the zigzag Rim reached like a streamer of fire into the sun. The vast promontories jutted out with blazing beacon lights upon their stone-walled faces. Deep down, the Basin was turning shadowy dark blue, going to sleep for the night.

When Isbel had been gone long enough to reassure Ellen that it was safe to go out, she crawled through the pine thicket to the Rim on the other side of the point. The sun was setting behind the Black Range, casting a golden glow over the Basin. Westward, the zigzag Rim stretched like a stream of fire into the sun. The large promontories jutted out, shining with bright lights on their stone-faced walls. Down below, the Basin was turning a dark blue, settling down for the night.

Ellen bent swift steps toward her camp. Long shafts of gold preceded her through the forest. Then they paled and vanished. The tips of pines and spruces turned gold. A hoarse-voiced old turkey gobbler was booming his chug-a-lug from the highest ground, and the softer chick of hen turkeys answered him. Ellen was almost breathless when she arrived. Two packs and a couple of lop-eared burros attested to the fact of Antonio’s return. This was good news for Ellen. She heard the bleat of lambs and tinkle of bells coming nearer and nearer. And she was glad to feel that if Isbel had visited her camp, most probably it was during the absence of the herders.

Ellen quickly made her way back to her camp. Long shafts of gold filtered through the trees ahead of her, but then they faded and disappeared. The tops of the pines and spruces glowed with gold. A raspy old turkey gobbler was calling out from the highest point, and the softer calls of hen turkeys responded to him. Ellen was nearly out of breath when she arrived. Two packs and a couple of floppy-eared donkeys confirmed that Antonio had returned. This was great news for Ellen. She heard the bleating of lambs and the sound of bells getting closer and closer, and she felt relieved knowing that if Isbel had come by her camp, it was likely while the herders were away.

The instant she glanced into her tent she saw the package Isbel had carried. It lay on her bed. Ellen stared blankly. “The—the impudence of him!” she ejaculated. Then she kicked the package out of the tent. Words and action seemed to liberate a dammed-up hot fury. She kicked the package again, and thought she would kick it into the smoldering camp-fire. But somehow she stopped short of that. She left the thing there on the ground.

The moment she looked into her tent, she spotted the package Isbel had brought. It was on her bed. Ellen stared in disbelief. “The—how dare he!” she exclaimed. Then she kicked the package out of the tent. Speaking and acting seemed to release a pent-up rage. She kicked the package again, and thought about kicking it into the smoldering campfire. But somehow she stopped before doing that. She left it on the ground.

Pepe and Antonio hove in sight, driving in the tumbling woolly flock. Ellen did not want them to see the package, so with contempt for herself, and somewhat lessening anger, she kicked it back into the tent. What was in it? She peeped inside the tent, devoured by curiosity. Neat, well wrapped and tied packages like that were not often seen in the Tonto Basin. Ellen decided she would wait until after supper, and at a favorable moment lay it unopened on the fire. What did she care what it contained? Manifestly it was a gift. She argued that she was highly incensed with this insolent Isbel who had the effrontery to approach her with some sort of present.

Pepe and Antonio appeared, driving through the fluffy, chaotic flock. Ellen didn’t want them to see the package, so feeling some disdain for herself and slightly less anger, she kicked it back into the tent. What was inside? She peeked into the tent, overwhelmed by curiosity. Neatly wrapped and tied packages like that were rare in the Tonto Basin. Ellen decided to wait until after dinner and then, at the right moment, place it unopened on the fire. What did she care what it held? Clearly, it was a gift. She told herself she was really angry with that rude Isbel who had the nerve to approach her with some kind of offering.

It developed that the usually cheerful Antonio had returned taciturn and gloomy. All Ellen could get out of him was that the job of sheep herder had taken on hazards inimical to peace-loving Mexicans. He had heard something he would not tell. Ellen helped prepare the supper and she ate in silence. She had her own brooding troubles. Antonio presently told her that her father had said she was not to start back home after dark. After supper the herders repaired to their own tents, leaving Ellen the freedom of her camp-fire. Wherewith she secured the package and brought it forth to burn. Feminine curiosity rankled strong in her breast. Yielding so far as to shake the parcel and press it, and finally tear a corner off the paper, she saw some words written in lead pencil. Bending nearer the blaze, she read, “For my sister Ann.” Ellen gazed at the big, bold hand-writing, quite legible and fairly well done. Suddenly she tore the outside wrapper completely off. From printed words on the inside she gathered that the package had come from a store in San Francisco. “Reckon he fetched home a lot of presents for his folks—the kids—and his sister,” muttered Ellen. “That was nice of him. Whatever this is he shore meant it for sister Ann.... Ann Isbel. Why, she must be that black-eyed girl I met and liked so well before I knew she was an Isbel.... His sister!”

It turned out that the usually cheerful Antonio had come back quiet and downcast. All Ellen could get from him was that being a sheep herder had some dangers that peaceful Mexicans weren't used to. He had heard something he wouldn’t share. Ellen helped get dinner ready and ate in silence. She had her own worries weighing on her mind. Antonio then told her that her father said she shouldn’t head back home after dark. After dinner, the herders went to their own tents, leaving Ellen alone by the campfire. She secured the package and brought it out to burn. Her curiosity burned strong within her. She shook the parcel and pressed it, finally tearing a corner off the paper, revealing some words written in pencil. Leaning closer to the fire, she read, “For my sister Ann.” Ellen stared at the big, clear handwriting, which was very readable and neatly done. Suddenly, she ripped the outer wrapper off completely. From the printed words on the inside, she realized that the package had come from a store in San Francisco. “I guess he brought home a lot of gifts for his family—the kids—and his sister,” Ellen muttered. “That was nice of him. Whatever this is, he clearly meant it for sister Ann... Ann Isbel. Wow, she must be that black-eyed girl I met and liked so much before I knew she was an Isbel... his sister!”

Whereupon for the second time Ellen deposited the fascinating package in her tent. She could not burn it up just then. She had other emotions besides scorn and hate. And memory of that soft-voiced, kind-hearted, beautiful Isbel girl checked her resentment. “I wonder if he is like his sister,” she said, thoughtfully. It appeared to be an unfortunate thought. Jean Isbel certainly resembled his sister. “Too bad they belong to the family that ruined dad.”

Whereupon for the second time, Ellen placed the intriguing package in her tent. She couldn’t burn it right then. She felt other emotions besides disdain and anger. The memory of that soft-spoken, kind-hearted, beautiful Isbel girl held back her resentment. “I wonder if he’s like his sister,” she said, thinking. It seemed like an unfortunate thought. Jean Isbel certainly looked like his sister. “Too bad they belong to the family that ruined Dad.”

Ellen went to bed without opening the package or without burning it. And to her annoyance, whatever way she lay she appeared to touch this strange package. There was not much room in the little tent. First she put it at her head beside her rifle, but when she turned over her cheek came in contact with it. Then she felt as if she had been stung. She moved it again, only to touch it presently with her hand. Next she flung it to the bottom of her bed, where it fell upon her feet, and whatever way she moved them she could not escape the pressure of this undesirable and mysterious gift.

Ellen went to bed without opening the package or burning it. And to her frustration, no matter how she lay, she kept touching this odd package. There wasn't much space in the small tent. First, she placed it by her head next to her rifle, but when she turned over, her cheek brushed against it. Then she felt as if she had been stung. She moved it again, only to feel it with her hand a moment later. Next, she tossed it to the bottom of her bed, where it landed on her feet, and no matter how she moved them, she couldn't escape the pressure of this unwanted and mysterious gift.

By and by she fell asleep, only to dream that the package was a caressing hand stealing about her, feeling for hers, and holding it with soft, strong clasp. When she awoke she had the strangest sensation in her right palm. It was moist, throbbing, hot, and the feel of it on her cheek was strangely thrilling and comforting. She lay awake then. The night was dark and still. Only a low moan of wind in the pines and the faint tinkle of a sheep bell broke the serenity. She felt very small and lonely lying there in the deep forest, and, try how she would, it was impossible to think the same then as she did in the clear light of day. Resentment, pride, anger—these seemed abated now. If the events of the day had not changed her, they had at least brought up softer and kinder memories and emotions than she had known for long. Nothing hurt and saddened her so much as to remember the gay, happy days of her childhood, her sweet mother, her, old home. Then her thought returned to Isbel and his gift. It had been years since anyone had made her a gift. What could this one be? It did not matter. The wonder was that Jean Isbel should bring it to her and that she could be perturbed by its presence. “He meant it for his sister and so he thought well of me,” she said, in finality.

Eventually, she fell asleep, only to dream that the package was a gentle hand reaching out for hers and holding it in a soft, strong grip. When she woke up, she felt the strangest sensation in her right palm. It was moist, pulsing, warm, and when it touched her cheek, it was oddly thrilling and comforting. She lay there awake. The night was dark and quiet. Only a low moan of wind in the pines and the faint tinkling of a sheep bell disturbed the peace. Lying there in the deep forest, she felt incredibly small and lonely, and no matter how hard she tried, it was impossible to think the same way she did in the bright light of day. Resentment, pride, and anger—those feelings all seemed to fade now. If the events of the day hadn’t changed her, they had at least brought back softer and kinder memories and feelings than she had felt in a long time. Nothing hurt her more than remembering the joyful, happy days of her childhood, her sweet mother, her old home. Then her thoughts turned to Isbel and his gift. It had been years since anyone had given her a gift. What could this one be? It didn’t matter. The amazing thing was that Jean Isbel had brought it to her and that it had unsettled her. “He meant it for his sister, so he thinks well of me,” she concluded.

Morning brought Ellen further vacillation. At length she rolled the obnoxious package inside her blankets, saying that she would wait until she got home and then consign it cheerfully to the flames. Antonio tied her pack on a burro. She did not have a horse, and therefore had to walk the several miles, to her father’s ranch.

Morning brought Ellen more indecision. Eventually, she rolled the annoying package inside her blankets, saying that she would wait until she got home and then happily toss it into the fire. Antonio tied her pack onto a donkey. She didn’t have a horse, so she had to walk the several miles to her father’s ranch.

She set off at a brisk pace, leading the burro and carrying her rifle. And soon she was deep in the fragrant forest. The morning was clear and cool, with just enough frost to make the sunlit grass sparkle as if with diamonds. Ellen felt fresh, buoyant, singularly full of, life. Her youth would not be denied. It was pulsing, yearning. She hummed an old Southern tune and every step seemed one of pleasure in action, of advance toward some intangible future happiness. All the unknown of life before her called. Her heart beat high in her breast and she walked as one in a dream. Her thoughts were swift-changing, intimate, deep, and vague, not of yesterday or to-day, nor of reality.

She set off at a quick pace, leading the donkey and carrying her rifle. Soon, she was deep in the fragrant forest. The morning was clear and cool, with just enough frost to make the sunlit grass sparkle like diamonds. Ellen felt fresh, energetic, and incredibly alive. Her youth was undeniable. It was pulsing, longing. She hummed an old Southern tune, and every step felt like a joy in movement, a step toward some vague future happiness. All the unknowns of life ahead called to her. Her heart raced in her chest, and she walked as if in a dream. Her thoughts were rapidly changing, personal, deep, and unclear, not focused on yesterday or today, nor on reality.

The big, gray, white-tailed squirrels crossed ahead of her on the trail, scampered over the piny ground to hop on tree trunks, and there they paused to watch her pass. The vociferous little red squirrels barked and chattered at her. From every thicket sounded the gobble of turkeys. The blue jays squalled in the tree tops. A deer lifted its head from browsing and stood motionless, with long ears erect, watching her go by.

The big gray squirrels with white tails crossed her path on the trail, dashed over the pine-covered ground to hop onto tree trunks, where they stopped to watch her walk by. The noisy little red squirrels barked and chattered at her. From every thicket came the sound of turkeys gobbling. The blue jays squawked in the treetops. A deer raised its head from eating and stood still, with its long ears up, watching her pass.

Thus happily and dreamily absorbed, Ellen covered the forest miles and soon reached the trail that led down into the wild brakes of Chevelon Canyon. It was rough going and less conducive to sweet wanderings of mind. Ellen slowly lost them. And then a familiar feeling assailed her, one she never failed to have upon returning to her father’s ranch—a reluctance, a bitter dissatisfaction with her home, a loyal struggle against the vague sense that all was not as it should be.

Thus happily and dreamily absorbed, Ellen covered the forest miles and soon reached the trail that led down into the wild thickets of Chevelon Canyon. It was tough going and not really good for sweet daydreams. Ellen slowly lost those thoughts. Then a familiar feeling hit her, one she always experienced when returning to her dad’s ranch—a reluctance, a bitter dissatisfaction with her home, and a quiet struggle against the vague sense that things weren’t quite right.

At the head of this canyon in a little, level, grassy meadow stood a rude one-room log shack, with a leaning red-stone chimney on the outside. This was the abode of a strange old man who had long lived there. His name was John Sprague and his occupation was raising burros. No sheep or cattle or horses did he own, not even a dog. Rumor had said Sprague was a prospector, one of the many who had searched that country for the Lost Dutchman gold mine. Sprague knew more about the Basin and Rim than any of the sheepmen or ranchers. From Black Butte to the Cibique and from Chevelon Butte to Reno Pass he knew every trail, canyon, ridge, and spring, and could find his way to them on the darkest night. His fame, however, depended mostly upon the fact that he did nothing but raise burros, and would raise none but black burros with white faces. These burros were the finest bred in all the Basin and were in great demand. Sprague sold a few every year. He had made a present of one to Ellen, although he hated to part with them. This old man was Ellen’s one and only friend.

At the top of this canyon, in a small, flat, grassy meadow, stood a rough one-room log cabin with a leaning red-stone chimney on the outside. This was the home of a peculiar old man who had lived there for a long time. His name was John Sprague, and he made his living by raising burros. He owned no sheep, cattle, or horses, not even a dog. Rumor had it that Sprague was a prospector, one of the many who had searched that area for the Lost Dutchman gold mine. Sprague knew more about the Basin and Rim than any of the sheep herders or ranchers. From Black Butte to the Cibique and from Chevelon Butte to Reno Pass, he was familiar with every trail, canyon, ridge, and spring, and could navigate them even on the darkest night. His reputation, however, mainly came from the fact that he only raised burros, specifically black burros with white faces. These burros were the best bred in the entire Basin and were in high demand. Sprague sold a few each year. He had even given one as a gift to Ellen, even though he hated to part with them. This old man was Ellen’s one and only friend.

Upon her trip out to the Rim with the sheep, Uncle John, as Ellen called him, had been away on one of his infrequent visits to Grass Valley. It pleased her now to see a blue column of smoke lazily lifting from the old chimney and to hear the discordant bray of burros. As she entered the clearing Sprague saw her from the door of his shack.

Upon her trip out to the Rim with the sheep, Uncle John, as Ellen called him, had been away on one of his rare visits to Grass Valley. It made her happy to see a blue column of smoke slowly rising from the old chimney and to hear the noisy bray of the donkeys. As she walked into the clearing, Sprague saw her from the door of his shack.

“Hello, Uncle John!” she called.

“Hey, Uncle John!” she called.

“Wal, if it ain’t Ellen!” he replied, heartily. “When I seen thet white-faced jinny I knowed who was leadin’ her. Where you been, girl?”

“Wow, if it isn’t Ellen!” he said warmly. “When I saw that white-faced donkey, I knew who was leading her. Where have you been, girl?”

Sprague was a little, stoop-shouldered old man, with grizzled head and face, and shrewd gray eyes that beamed kindly on her over his ruddy cheeks. Ellen did not like the tobacco stain on his grizzled beard nor the dirty, motley, ragged, ill-smelling garb he wore, but she had ceased her useless attempts to make him more cleanly.

Sprague was a small, stoop-shouldered old man with gray hair and a weathered face, and sharp gray eyes that looked kindly at her over his rosy cheeks. Ellen didn't like the tobacco stains on his gray beard or the dirty, mismatched, ragged clothes he wore, but she had stopped her futile efforts to make him cleaner.

“I’ve been herdin’ sheep,” replied Ellen. “And where have y’u been, uncle? I missed y’u on the way over.”

“I’ve been herding sheep,” replied Ellen. “And where have you been, Uncle? I missed you on the way over.”

“Been packin’ in some grub. An’ I reckon I stayed longer in Grass Valley than I recollect. But thet was only natural, considerin’—”

“Been packing in some food. And I guess I stayed longer in Grass Valley than I remember. But that was only natural, considering—”

“What?” asked Ellen, bluntly, as the old man paused.

“What?” Ellen asked directly as the old man paused.

Sprague took a black pipe out of his vest pocket and began rimming the bowl with his fingers. The glance he bent on Ellen was thoughtful and earnest, and so kind that she feared it was pity. Ellen suddenly burned for news from the village.

Sprague pulled a black pipe from his vest pocket and started rubbing the bowl with his fingers. The look he gave Ellen was serious and sincere, so warm that she worried it was just pity. Ellen suddenly felt a strong desire to hear news from the village.

“Wal, come in an’ set down, won’t you?” he asked.

“Wall, come in and sit down, will you?” he asked.

“No, thanks,” replied Ellen, and she took a seat on the chopping block. “Tell me, uncle, what’s goin’ on down in the Valley?”

“No, thanks,” replied Ellen, and she sat down on the chopping block. “Tell me, uncle, what’s happening down in the Valley?”

“Nothin’ much yet—except talk. An’ there’s a heap of thet.”

“Nothin’ much yet—just talk. And there’s a lot of that.”

“Humph! There always was talk,” declared Ellen, contemptuously. “A nasty, gossipy, catty hole, that Grass Valley!”

“Humph! There’s always been talk,” Ellen said with disdain. “That Grass Valley is a nasty, gossip-filled, catty place!”

“Ellen, thar’s goin’ to be war—a bloody war in the ole Tonto Basin,” went on Sprague, seriously.

“Ellen, there’s going to be war—a bloody war in the old Tonto Basin,” continued Sprague, seriously.

“War! ... Between whom?”

“War! ... Against who?”

“The Isbels an’ their enemies. I reckon most people down thar, an’ sure all the cattlemen, air on old Gass’s side. Blaisdell, Gordon, Fredericks, Blue—they’ll all be in it.”

“The Isbels and their enemies. I think most people down there, and definitely all the cattlemen, are on old Gass’s side. Blaisdell, Gordon, Fredericks, Blue—they’ll all be involved.”

“Who are they goin’ to fight?” queried Ellen, sharply.

“Who are they going to fight?” Ellen asked sharply.

“Wal, the open talk is thet the sheepmen are forcin’ this war. But thar’s talk not so open, an’ I reckon not very healthy for any man to whisper hyarbouts.”

“Well, the open talk is that the sheepmen are pushing for this war. But there’s talk that isn’t so open, and I think it’s not very good for anyone to whisper about it around here.”

“Uncle John, y’u needn’t be afraid to tell me anythin’,” said Ellen. “I’d never give y’u away. Y’u’ve been a good friend to me.”

“Uncle John, you don’t need to be afraid to tell me anything,” said Ellen. “I’d never betray you. You’ve been a good friend to me.”

“Reckon I want to be, Ellen,” he returned, nodding his shaggy head. “It ain’t easy to be fond of you as I am an’ keep my mouth shet.... I’d like to know somethin’. Hev you any relatives away from hyar thet you could go to till this fight’s over?”

“Looks like I want to be, Ellen,” he said, nodding his messy head. “It’s not easy to care about you as much as I do and keep my mouth shut.... I’d like to know something. Do you have any relatives far from here that you could go to until this fight is over?”

“No. All I have, so far as I know, are right heah.”

“No. All I have, as far as I know, is right here.”

“How aboot friends?”

“How about friends?”

“Uncle John, I have none,” she said, sadly, with bowed head.

“Uncle John, I have none,” she said sadly, looking down.

“Wal, wal, I’m sorry. I was hopin’ you might git away.”

“Wow, wow, I’m sorry. I was hoping you might get away.”

She lifted her face. “Shore y’u don’t think I’d run off if my dad got in a fight?” she flashed.

She lifted her face. “You really don’t think I’d bail if my dad got into a fight?” she shot back.

“I hope you will.”

"I hope you will."

“I’m a Jorth,” she said, darkly, and dropped her head again.

“I’m a Jorth,” she said quietly, looking down again.

Sprague nodded gloomily. Evidently he was perplexed and worried, and strongly swayed by affection for her.

Sprague nodded sadly. Clearly, he was confused and anxious, and deeply affected by his feelings for her.

“Would you go away with me?” he asked. “We could pack over to the Mazatzals an’ live thar till this blows over.”

“Will you come away with me?” he asked. “We could head over to the Mazatzals and live there until this blows over.”

“Thank y’u, Uncle John. Y’u’re kind and good. But I’ll stay with my father. His troubles are mine.”

“Thank you, Uncle John. You’re kind and good. But I’ll stay with my dad. His troubles are mine.”

“Ahuh! ... Wal, I might hev reckoned so.... Ellen, how do you stand on this hyar sheep an’ cattle question?”

“Uh-huh! ... Well, I might have thought so.... Ellen, what’s your take on this whole sheep and cattle issue?”

“I think what’s fair for one is fair for another. I don’t like sheep as much as I like cattle. But that’s not the point. The range is free. Suppose y’u had cattle and I had sheep. I’d feel as free to run my sheep anywhere as y’u were to ran your cattle.”

“I believe what's fair for one person should be fair for another. I prefer cattle over sheep. But that's not the main issue. The range is open. Imagine you had cattle and I had sheep. I would feel just as free to run my sheep anywhere as you would to run your cattle.”

“Right. But what if you throwed your sheep round my range an’ sheeped off the grass so my cattle would hev to move or starve?”

“Right. But what if you threw your sheep onto my land and ate up the grass so my cattle would have to move or starve?”

“Shore I wouldn’t throw my sheep round y’ur range,” she declared, stoutly.

“Sure, I wouldn’t let my sheep wander around your area,” she stated confidently.

“Wal, you’ve answered half of the question. An’ now supposin’ a lot of my cattle was stolen by rustlers, but not a single one of your sheep. What ’d you think then?”

“Well, you’ve answered half of the question. And now let’s say a lot of my cattle were stolen by rustlers, but not a single one of your sheep. What would you think then?”

“I’d shore think rustlers chose to steal cattle because there was no profit in stealin’ sheep.”

“I’d definitely think rustlers choose to steal cattle because there’s no profit in stealing sheep.”

“Egzactly. But wouldn’t you hev a queer idee aboot it?”

“Exactly. But wouldn’t you have a strange idea about it?”

“I don’t know. Why queer? What ’re y’u drivin’ at, Uncle John?”

“I don’t know. Why queer? What are you getting at, Uncle John?”

“Wal, wouldn’t you git kind of a hunch thet the rustlers was—say a leetle friendly toward the sheepmen?”

“Well, wouldn’t you get the feeling that the rustlers were—let’s say a little friendly toward the sheepmen?”

Ellen felt a sudden vibrating shock. The blood rushed to her temples. Trembling all over, she rose.

Ellen felt a sudden jolt. The blood rushed to her temples. Shaking all over, she got up.

“Uncle John!” she cried.

“Uncle John!” she exclaimed.

“Now, girl, you needn’t fire up thet way. Set down an’ don’t—”

“Now, girl, you don’t need to get all worked up like that. Sit down and don’t—”

“Dare y’u insinuate my father has—”

“Dare you suggest my father has—”

“Ellen, I ain’t insinuatin’ nothin’,” interrupted the old man. “I’m jest askin’ you to think. Thet’s all. You’re ’most grown into a young woman now. An’ you’ve got sense. Thar’s bad times ahead, Ellen. An’ I hate to see you mix in them.”

“Ellen, I'm not implying anything,” interrupted the old man. “I’m just asking you to think. That’s all. You’re almost a young woman now. And you’ve got common sense. There are tough times ahead, Ellen. And I hate to see you get involved in them.”

“Oh, y’u do make me think,” replied Ellen, with smarting tears in her eyes. “Y’u make me unhappy. Oh, I know my dad is not liked in this cattle country. But it’s unjust. He happened to go in for sheep raising. I wish he hadn’t. It was a mistake. Dad always was a cattleman till we came heah. He made enemies—who—who ruined him. And everywhere misfortune crossed his trail.... But, oh, Uncle John, my dad is an honest man.”

“Oh, you really make me think,” replied Ellen, with tears filling her eyes. “You make me so unhappy. Oh, I know my dad isn’t well-liked in this cattle country. But it’s not fair. He just got into sheep farming. I wish he hadn’t. It was a mistake. Dad was always a cattleman until we got here. He made enemies—who—who did him in. And everywhere misfortune followed him... But oh, Uncle John, my dad is a good man.”

“Wal, child, I—I didn’t mean to—to make you cry,” said the old man, feelingly, and he averted his troubled gaze. “Never mind what I said. I’m an old meddler. I reckon nothin’ I could do or say would ever change what’s goin’ to happen. If only you wasn’t a girl! ... Thar I go ag’in. Ellen, face your future an’ fight your way. All youngsters hev to do thet. An’ it’s the right kind of fight thet makes the right kind of man or woman. Only you must be sure to find yourself. An’ by thet I mean to find the real, true, honest-to-God best in you an’ stick to it an’ die fightin’ for it. You’re a young woman, almost, an’ a blamed handsome one. Which means you’ll hev more trouble an’ a harder fight. This country ain’t easy on a woman when once slander has marked her.

“Well, kid, I—I didn’t mean to make you cry,” said the old man, sincerely, as he looked away, troubled. “Forget what I said. I’m just an old meddler. I guess nothing I could do or say will change what’s going to happen. If only you weren’t a girl! ... There I go again. Ellen, face your future and fight your way through. All young people have to do that. And it’s the right kind of fight that shapes the right kind of man or woman. Just make sure you find yourself. By that, I mean you need to discover the real, true, honest-to-God best in you and stick to it, fighting for it until the end. You’re almost a young woman now, and a really beautiful one at that. Which means you’ll have more trouble and a tougher fight ahead. This country isn’t kind to a woman once slander marks her.

“What do I care for the talk down in that Basin?” returned Ellen. “I know they think I’m a hussy. I’ve let them think it. I’ve helped them to.”

“Why should I care about the gossip down in that Basin?” Ellen shot back. “I know they think I’m a loose woman. I’ve let them believe it. I’ve even encouraged it.”

“You’re wrong, child,” said Sprague, earnestly. “Pride an’ temper! You must never let anyone think bad of you, much less help them to.”

“You're wrong, kid,” said Sprague, seriously. “Pride and temper! You should never let anyone think poorly of you, let alone help them do so.”

“I hate everybody down there,” cried Ellen, passionately. “I hate them so I’d glory in their thinkin’ me bad.... My mother belonged to the best blood in Texas. I am her daughter. I know WHO AND WHAT I AM. That uplifts me whenever I meet the sneaky, sly suspicions of these Basin people. It shows me the difference between them and me. That’s what I glory in.”

“I hate everyone down there,” Ellen shouted, filled with emotion. “I hate them so much that I take pride in them thinking I’m bad... My mother came from the best family in Texas. I am her daughter. I know WHO AND WHAT I AM. That gives me strength whenever I face the sneaky, sly doubts of these Basin people. It shows me the difference between them and me. That’s what I pride myself on.”

“Ellen, you’re a wild, headstrong child,” rejoined the old man, in severe tones. “Word has been passed ag’in’ your good name—your honor.... An’ hevn’t you given cause fer thet?”

“Ellen, you’re a wild, headstrong kid,” the old man replied in a serious tone. “People have been talking about your reputation—your honor... And haven’t you given them a reason for that?”

Ellen felt her face blanch and all her blood rush back to her heart in sickening force. The shock of his words was like a stab from a cold blade. If their meaning and the stem, just light of the old man’s glance did not kill her pride and vanity they surely killed her girlishness. She stood mute, staring at him, with her brown, trembling hands stealing up toward her bosom, as if to ward off another and a mortal blow.

Ellen felt her face go pale and all the blood rush back to her heart with a sickening intensity. The shock of his words hit her like a stab from a cold blade. If the meaning of his words and the harshness of the old man’s glance didn’t destroy her pride and vanity, they definitely stripped away her youthful innocence. She stood there in silence, staring at him, her brown, trembling hands moving up toward her chest, as if to protect herself from another potentially devastating blow.

“Ellen!” burst out Sprague, hoarsely. “You mistook me. Aw, I didn’t mean—what you think, I swear.... Ellen, I’m old an’ blunt. I ain’t used to wimmen. But I’ve love for you, child, an’ respect, jest the same as if you was my own.... An’ I KNOW you’re good.... Forgive me.... I meant only hevn’t you been, say, sort of—careless?”

“Ellen!” Sprague shouted, his voice rough. “You misunderstood me. Aw, I didn’t mean—what you think, I swear... Ellen, I’m old and straightforward. I’m not used to women. But I have love for you, child, and respect, just as if you were my own... And I KNOW you’re good... Forgive me... I only meant haven’t you been, say, kind of—careless?”

“Care-less?” queried Ellen, bitterly and low.

“Care-less?” Ellen asked, bitter and soft.

“An’ powerful thoughtless an’—an’ blind—lettin’ men kiss you an’ fondle you—when you’re really a growed-up woman now?”

“It's really thoughtless and—blind—allowing men to kiss you and touch you—when you're actually a grown woman now?”

“Yes—I have,” whispered Ellen.

“Yes, I have,” whispered Ellen.

“Wal, then, why did you let them?

“Well, then, why did you let them?

“I—I don’t know.... I didn’t think. The men never let me alone—never—never! I got tired everlastingly pushin’ them away. And sometimes—when they were kind—and I was lonely for something I—I didn’t mind if one or another fooled round me. I never thought. It never looked as y’u have made it look.... Then—those few times ridin’ the trail to Grass Valley—when people saw me—then I guess I encouraged such attentions.... Oh, I must be—I am a shameless little hussy!”

“I—I don’t know.... I didn’t think. The guys never left me alone—never—never! I got so tired constantly pushing them away. And sometimes—when they were nice—and I was lonely for something—I—I didn’t mind if one or another flirted with me. I never thought about it. It never looked the way you made it look.... Then—those few times riding the trail to Grass Valley—when people saw me—then I guess I encouraged that kind of attention.... Oh, I must be—I am a shameless little hussy!”

“Hush thet kind of talk,” said the old man, as he took her hand. “Ellen, you’re only young an’ lonely an’ bitter. No mother—no friends—no one but a lot of rough men! It’s a wonder you hev kept yourself good. But now your eyes are open, Ellen. They’re brave an’ beautiful eyes, girl, an’ if you stand by the light in them you will come through any trouble. An’ you’ll be happy. Don’t ever forgit that. Life is hard enough, God knows, but it’s unfailin’ true in the end to the man or woman who finds the best in them an’ stands by it.”

“Hush that kind of talk,” said the old man, as he took her hand. “Ellen, you’re just young, lonely, and bitter. No mother—no friends—no one but a bunch of rough men! It’s a wonder you’ve kept yourself decent. But now your eyes are open, Ellen. They’re brave and beautiful eyes, girl, and if you hold on to the light in them, you’ll get through any trouble. And you’ll be happy. Don’t ever forget that. Life is hard enough, God knows, but it’s always true in the end for the person who finds the best in themselves and sticks to it.”

“Uncle John, y’u talk so—so kindly. Yu make me have hope. There seemed really so little for me to live for—hope for.... But I’ll never be a coward again—nor a thoughtless fool. I’ll find some good in me—or make some—and never fail it, come what will. I’ll remember your words. I’ll believe the future holds wonderful things for me.... I’m only eighteen. Shore all my life won’t be lived heah. Perhaps this threatened fight over sheep and cattle will blow over.... Somewhere there must be some nice girl to be a friend—a sister to me.... And maybe some man who’d believe, in spite of all they say—that I’m not a hussy.”

“Uncle John, you talk so—so kindly. You give me hope. There really seemed to be so little for me to live for—hope for.... But I’ll never be a coward again—nor a thoughtless fool. I’ll find some good in me—or make some—and never fail it, no matter what. I’ll remember your words. I’ll believe the future has wonderful things in store for me.... I’m only eighteen. I’m sure I won’t spend my whole life here. Maybe this fight over sheep and cattle will fade away.... Somewhere there must be a nice girl who can be a friend—a sister to me.... And maybe there’s a guy out there who’ll believe, despite everything they say—that I’m not a slut.”

“Wal, Ellen, you remind me of what I was wantin’ to tell you when you just got here.... Yestiddy I heerd you called thet name in a barroom. An’ thar was a fellar thar who raised hell. He near killed one man an’ made another plumb eat his words. An’ he scared thet crowd stiff.”

“Well, Ellen, you remind me of what I wanted to tell you when you first got here.... Yesterday, I heard you call that name in a bar. And there was a guy there who caused a big scene. He nearly killed one man and made another completely take back what he said. And he scared that crowd to death.”

Old John Sprague shook his grizzled head and laughed, beaming upon Ellen as if the memory of what he had seen had warmed his heart.

Old John Sprague shook his gray head and laughed, smiling at Ellen as if the memory of what he had witnessed had filled his heart with warmth.

“Was it—y’u?” asked Ellen, tremulously.

“Was it you?” asked Ellen, nervously.

“Me? Aw, I wasn’t nowhere. Ellen, this fellar was quick as a cat in his actions an’ his words was like lightnin’.’

"Me? Oh, I wasn’t anywhere. Ellen, this guy was as quick as a cat in his actions and his words were like lightning."

“Who? she whispered.

"Who?" she whispered.

“Wal, no one else but a stranger jest come to these parts—an Isbel, too. Jean Isbel.”

“Well, no one but a stranger just showed up around here—an Isbel, too. Jean Isbel.”

“Oh!” exclaimed Ellen, faintly.

“Oh!” Ellen exclaimed, faintly.

“In a barroom full of men—almost all of them in sympathy with the sheep crowd—most of them on the Jorth side—this Jean Isbel resented an insult to Ellen Jorth.”

“In a bar full of men—almost all of them supportive of the sheep crowd—most of them on the Jorth side—this Jean Isbel was upset by an insult to Ellen Jorth.”

“No!” cried Ellen. Something terrible was happening to her mind or her heart.

“No!” cried Ellen. Something terrible was happening to her mind or her heart.

“Wal, he sure did,” replied the old man, “an’ it’s goin’ to be good fer you to hear all about it.”

“Sure did,” the old man replied, “and it’s going to be good for you to hear all about it.”




CHAPTER V

Old John Sprague launched into his narrative with evident zest.

Old John Sprague jumped into his story with clear enthusiasm.

“I hung round Greaves’ store most of two days. An’ I heerd a heap. Some of it was jest plain ole men’s gab, but I reckon I got the drift of things concernin’ Grass Valley. Yestiddy mornin’ I was packin’ my burros in Greaves’ back yard, takin’ my time carryin’ out supplies from the store. An’ as last when I went in I seen a strange fellar was thar. Strappin’ young man—not so young, either—an’ he had on buckskin. Hair black as my burros, dark face, sharp eyes—you’d took him fer an Injun. He carried a rifle—one of them new forty-fours—an’ also somethin’ wrapped in paper thet he seemed partickler careful about. He wore a belt round his middle an’ thar was a bowie-knife in it, carried like I’ve seen scouts an’ Injun fighters hev on the frontier in the ‘seventies. That looked queer to me, an’ I reckon to the rest of the crowd thar. No one overlooked the big six-shooter he packed Texas fashion. Wal, I didn’t hev no idee this fellar was an Isbel until I heard Greaves call him thet.

“I hung around Greaves’ store for most of two days. And I heard a lot. Some of it was just typical old men’s talk, but I think I got the gist of things regarding Grass Valley. Yesterday morning, I was packing my burros in Greaves’ backyard, taking my time carrying out supplies from the store. And finally, when I went in, I saw a stranger there. A strapping young man—not that young, really—and he was wearing buckskin. His hair was as black as my burros, he had a dark face, sharp eyes—you’d think he was an Indian. He was carrying a rifle—one of those new .44s—and also something wrapped in paper that he seemed particularly careful about. He had a belt around his waist, and there was a bowie knife in it, carried like I’ve seen scouts and Indian fighters do on the frontier in the ‘70s. That looked odd to me, and I guess to the rest of the crowd there too. No one missed the big six-shooter he carried in a Texas style. Well, I had no idea this guy was an Isbel until I heard Greaves call him that."

“‘Isbel,’ said Greaves, ‘reckon your money’s counterfeit hyar. I cain’t sell you anythin’.’

“‘Isbel,’ said Greaves, ‘I think your money is fake. I can’t sell you anything.’”

“‘Counterfeit? Not much,’ spoke up the young fellar, an’ he flipped some gold twenties on the bar, where they rung like bells. ‘Why not? Ain’t this a store? I want a cinch strap.’

“‘Counterfeit? Not really,’ said the young guy, and he tossed some gold twenties onto the bar, where they rang like bells. ‘Why not? Isn’t this a store? I want a cinch strap.’”

“Greaves looked particular sour thet mornin’. I’d been watchin’ him fer two days. He hedn’t hed much sleep, fer I hed my bed back of the store, an’ I heerd men come in the night an’ hev long confabs with him. Whatever was in the wind hedn’t pleased him none. An’ I calkilated thet young Isbel wasn’t a sight good fer Greaves’ sore eyes, anyway. But he paid no more attention to Isbel. Acted jest as if he hedn’t heerd Isbel say he wanted a cinch strap.

Greaves looked especially sour that morning. I had been watching him for two days. He hadn't gotten much sleep, since I had my bed behind the store, and I heard men coming in at night and having long discussions with him. Whatever was going on certainly didn't please him. And I figured that young Isbel wasn't exactly easy on Greaves' sore eyes, either. But he paid no more attention to Isbel. He acted just as if he hadn't heard Isbel say he wanted a cinch strap.

“I stayed inside the store then. Thar was a lot of fellars I’d seen, an’ some I knowed. Couple of card games goin’, an’ drinkin’, of course. I soon gathered thet the general atmosphere wasn’t friendly to Jean Isbel. He seen thet quick enough, but he didn’t leave. Between you an’ me I sort of took a likin’ to him. An’ I sure watched him as close as I could, not seemin’ to, you know. Reckon they all did the same, only you couldn’t see it. It got jest about the same as if Isbel hedn’t been in thar, only you knowed it wasn’t really the same. Thet was how I got the hunch the crowd was all sheepmen or their friends. The day before I’d heerd a lot of talk about this young Isbel, an’ what he’d come to Grass Valley fer, an’ what a bad hombre he was. An’ when I seen him I was bound to admit he looked his reputation.

"I stayed inside the store then. There were a lot of guys I’d seen, and some I knew. A couple of card games were going on, and drinking, of course. I quickly realized that the general vibe wasn’t friendly towards Jean Isbel. He noticed that pretty quickly, but he didn’t leave. Between you and me, I kind of took a liking to him. And I definitely kept an eye on him as closely as I could, trying not to make it obvious, you know? I figured they all did the same thing, but you couldn’t see it. It got to be just about the same as if Isbel hadn’t been there, but you knew it wasn’t really the same. That’s when I got the feeling that the crowd was all sheepmen or their friends. The day before, I had heard a lot of talk about this young Isbel, why he had come to Grass Valley, and what a bad guy he was. And when I saw him, I had to admit he looked the part."

“Wal, pretty soon in come two more fellars, an’ I knowed both of them. You know them, too, I’m sorry to say. Fer I’m comin’ to facts now thet will shake you. The first fellar was your father’s Mexican foreman, Lorenzo, and the other was Simm Bruce. I reckon Bruce wasn’t drunk, but he’d sure been lookin’ on red licker. When he seen Isbel darn me if he didn’t swell an’ bustle all up like a mad ole turkey gobbler.

“Well, pretty soon in walked two more guys, and I knew both of them. You know them, too, unfortunately. I’m getting to some facts now that will shock you. The first guy was your father’s Mexican foreman, Lorenzo, and the other was Simm Bruce. I guess Bruce wasn’t drunk, but he sure had been eyeing some hard liquor. When he saw Isbel, I swear he puffed up and strutted around like a crazy old turkey gobbler.”

“‘Greaves,’ he said, ‘if thet fellar’s Jean Isbel I ain’t hankerin’ fer the company y’u keep.’ An’ he made no bones of pointin’ right at Isbel. Greaves looked up dry an’ sour an’ he bit out spiteful-like: ‘Wal, Simm, we ain’t hed a hell of a lot of choice in this heah matter. Thet’s Jean Isbel shore enough. Mebbe you can persuade him thet his company an’ his custom ain’t wanted round heah!’

“‘Greaves,’ he said, ‘if that guy is Jean Isbel, I don’t want to be around you.’ And he didn’t hesitate to point directly at Isbel. Greaves looked up, dry and sour, and snapped back bitterly: ‘Well, Simm, we haven’t had much choice in this matter. That’s definitely Jean Isbel. Maybe you can convince him that his company and business aren’t wanted around here!’”

“Jean Isbel set on the counter an took it all in, but he didn’t say nothin’. The way he looked at Bruce was sure enough fer me to see thet thar might be a surprise any minnit. I’ve looked at a lot of men in my day, an’ can sure feel events comin’. Bruce got himself a stiff drink an’ then he straddles over the floor in front of Isbel.

“Jean Isbel set it down on the counter and took it all in, but he didn’t say a word. The way he looked at Bruce made me realize that there could be a surprise any minute. I’ve seen a lot of men in my day and can definitely sense when something's about to happen. Bruce poured himself a stiff drink and then walked across the floor in front of Isbel.”

“‘Air you Jean Isbel, son of ole Gass Isbel?’ asked Bruce, sort of lolling back an’ givin’ a hitch to his belt.

“‘Are you Jean Isbel, son of old Gass Isbel?’ asked Bruce, sort of leaning back and adjusting his belt.”

“‘Yes sir, you’ve identified me,’ said Isbel, nice an’ polite.

“‘Yes sir, you’ve identified me,’ said Isbel, nice and polite.”

“‘My name’s Bruce. I’m rangin’ sheep heahaboots, an’ I hev interest in Kurnel Lee Jorth’s bizness.’

“‘My name’s Bruce. I’m herding sheep around here, and I’m interested in Colonel Lee Jorth’s business.’”

“‘Hod do, Mister Bruce,’ replied Isbel, very civil ant cool as you please. Bruce hed an eye fer the crowd thet was now listenin’ an’ watchin’. He swaggered closer to Isbel.

“‘How do you do, Mister Bruce,’ replied Isbel, very polite and cool as you please. Bruce had an eye for the crowd that was now listening and watching. He swaggered closer to Isbel.”

“‘We heerd y’u come into the Tonto Basin to run us sheepmen off the range. How aboot thet?’

“‘We heard you came into the Tonto Basin to run us sheepmen off the range. How about that?’”

“‘Wal, you heerd wrong,’ said Isbel, quietly. ‘I came to work fer my father. Thet work depends on what happens.’

“‘Well, you heard wrong,’ Isbel said quietly. ‘I came to work for my father. That work depends on what happens.’”

“Bruce began to git redder of face, an’ he shook a husky hand in front of Isbel. ‘I’ll tell y’u this heah, my Nez Perce Isbel—’ an’ when he sort of choked fer more wind Greaves spoke up, ‘Simm, I shore reckon thet Nez Perce handle will stick.’ An’ the crowd haw-hawed. Then Bruce got goin’ ag’in. ‘I’ll tell y’u this heah, Nez Perce. Thar’s been enough happen already to run y’u out of Arizona.’

“Bruce started to get red in the face, and he shook a strong hand in front of Isbel. ‘I’ll tell you this here, my Nez Perce Isbel—’ and when he sort of choked for breath, Greaves spoke up, ‘Simm, I sure think that Nez Perce name will stick.’ And the crowd laughed. Then Bruce got going again. ‘I’ll tell you this here, Nez Perce. There’s been enough happen already to run you out of Arizona.’”

“‘Wal, you don’t say! What, fer instance?, asked Isbel, quick an’ sarcastic.

“‘Well, you don’t say! What, for example?’ asked Isbel, quick and sarcastic.

“Thet made Bruce bust out puffin’ an’ spittin’: ‘Wha-tt, fer instance? Huh! Why, y’u darn half-breed, y’u’ll git run out fer makin’ up to Ellen Jorth. Thet won’t go in this heah country. Not fer any Isbel.’

“Thet made Bruce break out coughing and spitting: ‘What, for example? Huh! You damn half-breed, you’ll get chased out for flirting with Ellen Jorth. That won't fly in this here country. Not for any Isbel.’”

“‘You’re a liar,’ called Isbel, an’ like a big cat he dropped off the counter. I heerd his moccasins pat soft on the floor. An’ I bet to myself thet he was as dangerous as he was quick. But his voice an’ his looks didn’t change even a leetle.

“‘You’re a liar,’ Isbel shouted, and like a big cat, he jumped off the counter. I heard his moccasins softly pat on the floor. I bet to myself that he was as dangerous as he was fast. But his voice and his looks didn’t change even a little.”

“‘I’m not a liar,’ yelled Bruce. ‘I’ll make y’u eat thet. I can prove what I say.... Y’u was seen with Ellen Jorth—up on the Rim—day before yestiddy. Y’u was watched. Y’u was with her. Y’u made up to her. Y’u grabbed her an’ kissed her! ... An’ I’m heah to say, Nez Perce, thet y’u’re a marked man on this range.’

“‘I’m not a liar,’ yelled Bruce. ‘I’ll make you eat that. I can prove what I say... You were seen with Ellen Jorth—up on the Rim—two days ago. You were watched. You were with her. You made advances towards her. You grabbed her and kissed her!... And I’m here to say, Nez Perce, that you’re a marked man on this range.’”

“‘Who saw me?’ asked Isbel, quiet an’ cold. I seen then thet he’d turned white in the face.

“‘Who saw me?’ asked Isbel, quiet and cold. I saw then that he’d turned pale.”

“‘Yu cain’t lie out of it,’ hollered Bruce, wavin’ his hands. ‘We got y’u daid to rights. Lorenzo saw y’u—follered y’u—watched y’u.’ Bruce pointed at the grinnin’ greaser. ‘Lorenzo is Kurnel Jorth’s foreman. He seen y’u maulin’ of Ellen Jorth. An’ when he tells the Kurnel an’ Tad Jorth an’ Jackson Jorth! ... Haw! Haw! Haw! Why, hell ’d be a cooler place fer yu then this heah Tonto.’

“‘You can’t talk your way out of this,’ yelled Bruce, waving his hands. ‘We’ve got you dead to rights. Lorenzo saw you—followed you—watched you.’ Bruce pointed at the grinning guy. ‘Lorenzo is Colonel Jorth’s foreman. He saw you attacking Ellen Jorth. And when he tells the Colonel and Tad Jorth and Jackson Jorth! ... Ha! Ha! Ha! Well, hell would be a cooler place for you than this here Tonto.’”

“Greaves an’ his gang hed come round, sure tickled clean to thar gizzards at this mess. I noticed, howsomever, thet they was Texans enough to keep back to one side in case this Isbel started any action.... Wal, Isbel took a look at Lorenzo. Then with one swift grab he jerked the little greaser off his feet an’ pulled him close. Lorenzo stopped grinnin’. He began to look a leetle sick. But it was plain he hed right on his side.

“Greaves and his crew showed up, clearly thrilled about this mess. I noticed, however, that they were Texans enough to hang back just in case Isbel decided to do something... Well, Isbel took a look at Lorenzo. Then with one quick motion, he yanked the little guy off his feet and pulled him in close. Lorenzo stopped smiling. He started to look a bit sick. But it was obvious he had the right on his side."

“‘You say you saw me?’ demanded Isbel.

“‘You say you saw me?’ Isbel asked.

“‘Si, senor,’ replied Lorenzo.

“‘Yes, sir,’ replied Lorenzo."

“What did you see?’

"What did you see?"

“‘I see senor an’ senorita. I hide by manzanita. I see senorita like grande senor ver mooch. She like senor keese. She—’

“‘I see you, sir and miss. I hide by the manzanita. I see the young lady like a big sir wants to see. She likes the gentleman’s kiss. She—’”

“Then Isbel hit the little greaser a back-handed crack in the mouth. Sure it was a crack! Lorenzo went over the counter backward an’ landed like a pack load of wood. An’ he didn’t git up.

“Then Isbel slapped the little greaser hard in the mouth. Sure it was a slap! Lorenzo fell over the counter backwards and landed like a load of firewood. And he didn’t get up.

“‘Mister Bruce,’ said Isbel, ‘an’ you fellars who heerd thet lyin’ greaser, I did meet Ellen Jorth. An’ I lost my head. I—I kissed her.... But it was an accident. I meant no insult. I apologized—I tried to explain my crazy action.... Thet was all. The greaser lied. Ellen Jorth was kind enough to show me the trail. We talked a little. Then—I suppose—because she was young an’ pretty an’ sweet—I lost my head. She was absolutely innocent. Thet damned greaser told a bare-faced lie when he said she liked me. The fact was she despised me. She said so. An’ when she learned I was Jean Isbel she turned her back on me an’ walked away.”’

“‘Mister Bruce,’ said Isbel, ‘and you guys who heard that lying jerk, I did meet Ellen Jorth. And I lost my mind. I—I kissed her... But it was an accident. I didn't mean any harm. I apologized—I tried to explain my crazy behavior... That was it. The jerk lied. Ellen Jorth was nice enough to show me the way. We talked a little. Then—I guess—because she was young, pretty, and sweet—I lost my mind. She was completely innocent. That damn liar told a bold-faced lie when he said she liked me. The truth was, she hated me. She said so. And when she found out I was Jean Isbel, she turned her back on me and walked away.”’

At this point of his narrative the old man halted as if to impress Ellen not only with what just had been told, but particularly with what was to follow. The reciting of this tale had evidently given Sprague an unconscious pleasure. He glowed. He seemed to carry the burden of a secret that he yearned to divulge. As for Ellen, she was deadlocked in breathless suspense. All her emotions waited for the end. She begged Sprague to hurry.

At this point in his story, the old man paused as if he wanted to emphasize not just what he had just told Ellen, but especially what was coming next. recounting this tale seemed to bring Sprague an unintentional joy. He beamed with excitement. It was as if he held a secret he was eager to share. Meanwhile, Ellen was caught in a state of breathless anticipation. All her emotions were on edge, waiting for the conclusion. She urged Sprague to speed up.

“Wal, I wish I could skip the next chapter an’ hev only the last to tell,” rejoined the old man, and he put a heavy, but solicitous, hand upon hers.... Simm Bruce haw-hawed loud an’ loud.... ‘Say, Nez Perce,’ he calls out, most insolent-like, ‘we air too good sheepmen heah to hev the wool pulled over our eyes. We shore know what y’u meant by Ellen Jorth. But y’u wasn’t smart when y’u told her y’u was Jean Isbel! ... Haw-haw!’

“Man, I wish I could skip the next chapter and just have the last one to tell,” the old man replied, placing a heavy but caring hand on hers.... Simm Bruce laughed loudly.... “Hey, Nez Perce,” he shouted, quite arrogantly, “we're too smart here to have the wool pulled over our eyes. We definitely know what you meant by Ellen Jorth. But you weren't clever when you told her you were Jean Isbel! ... Ha ha!”

“Isbel flashed a strange, surprised look from the red-faced Bruce to Greaves and to the other men. I take it he was wonderin’ if he’d heerd right or if they’d got the same hunch thet ’d come to him. An’ I reckon he determined to make sure.

“Isbel gave a strange, surprised look from the red-faced Bruce to Greaves and to the other men. I guess he was wondering if he’d heard right or if they had the same feeling that had come to him. And I think he decided to find out for sure.

“‘Why wasn’t I smart?’ he asked.

“‘Why wasn’t I smart?’ he asked.

“‘Shore y’u wasn’t smart if y’u was aimin’ to be one of Ellen Jorth’s lovers,’ said Bruce, with a leer. ‘Fer if y’u hedn’t give y’urself away y’u could hev been easy enough.’

“‘You definitely weren't smart if you were trying to be one of Ellen Jorth’s lovers,’ said Bruce, with a smirk. ‘Because if you hadn't exposed yourself, you could have easily been one.’”

“Thar was no mistakin’ Bruce’s meanin’ an’ when he got it out some of the men thar laughed. Isbel kept lookin’ from one to another of them. Then facin’ Greaves, he said, deliberately: ‘Greaves, this drunken Bruce is excuse enough fer a show-down. I take it that you are sheepmen, an’ you’re goin’ on Jorth’s side of the fence in the matter of this sheep rangin’.’

“ There was no mistaking Bruce’s meaning and when he said it, some of the men there laughed. Isbel kept looking from one to another of them. Then facing Greaves, he said deliberately: ‘Greaves, this drunken Bruce is excuse enough for a showdown. I take it that you are sheepmen, and you’re going on Jorth’s side of the fence regarding this sheep ranging.’”

“‘Wal, Nez Perce, I reckon you hit plumb center,’ said Greaves, dryly. He spread wide his big hands to the other men, as if to say they’d might as well own the jig was up.

“‘Well, Nez Perce, I guess you hit the nail on the head,’ said Greaves, dryly. He spread his big hands wide to the other men, as if to say they might as well admit the game was up.”

“‘All right. You’re Jorth’s backers. Have any of you a word to say in Ellen Jorth’s defense? I tell you the Mexican lied. Believin’ me or not doesn’t matter. But this vile-mouthed Bruce hinted against thet girl’s honor.’

“’Okay. You’re Jorth’s supporters. Does any of you have anything to say in defense of Ellen Jorth? I swear the Mexican lied. Whether you believe me or not doesn’t matter. But this foul-mouthed Bruce made insinuations about that girl’s honor.’”

“Ag’in some of the men laughed, but not so noisy, an’ there was a nervous shufflin’ of feet. Isbel looked sort of queer. His neck had a bulge round his collar. An’ his eyes was like black coals of fire. Greaves spread his big hands again, as if to wash them of this part of the dirty argument.

“Again some of the men laughed, but it wasn't as loud, and there was a nervous shuffling of feet. Isbel looked a bit strange. His neck had a bulge around his collar. And his eyes were like black coals of fire. Greaves spread his big hands again, as if to wash them of this part of the dirty argument.”

“‘When it comes to any wimmen I pass—much less play a hand fer a wildcat like Jorth’s gurl,’ said Greaves, sort of cold an’ thick. ‘Bruce shore ought to know her. Accordin’ to talk heahaboots an’ what HE says, Ellen Jorth has been his gurl fer two years.’

“‘When it comes to any women I pass—let alone play a hand for a wildcat like Jorth’s girl,’ said Greaves, somewhat cold and detached. ‘Bruce should definitely know her. According to the gossip around here and what HE says, Ellen Jorth has been his girl for two years.’”

“Then Isbel turned his attention to Bruce an’ I fer one begun to shake in my boots.

“Then Isbel focused on Bruce and me, and I for one started to shake in my boots.”

“‘Say thet to me!’ he called.

“‘Say that to me!’ he called.

“‘Shore she’s my gurl, an’ thet’s why Im a-goin’ to hev y’u run off this range.’

“‘Sure she’s my girl, and that’s why I’m going to have you run off this range.’”

“Isbel jumped at Bruce. ‘You damned drunken cur! You vile-mouthed liar! ... I may be an Isbel, but by God you cain’t slander thet girl to my face! ... Then he moved so quick I couldn’t see what he did. But I heerd his fist hit Bruce. It sounded like an ax ag’in’ a beef. Bruce fell clear across the room. An’ by Jinny when he landed Isbel was thar. As Bruce staggered up, all bloody-faced, bellowin’ an’ spittin’ out teeth Isbel eyed Greaves’s crowd an’ said: ‘If any of y’u make a move it ’ll mean gun-play.’ Nobody moved, thet’s sure. In fact, none of Greaves’s outfit was packin’ guns, at least in sight. When Bruce got all the way up—he’s a tall fellar—why Isbel took a full swing at him an’ knocked him back across the room ag’in’ the counter. Y’u know when a fellar’s hurt by the way he yells. Bruce got thet second smash right on his big red nose.... I never seen any one so quick as Isbel. He vaulted over thet counter jest the second Bruce fell back on it, an’ then, with Greaves’s gang in front so he could catch any moves of theirs, he jest slugged Bruce right an’ left, an’ banged his head on the counter. Then as Bruce sunk limp an’ slipped down, lookin’ like a bloody sack, Isbel let him fall to the floor. Then he vaulted back over the counter. Wipin’ the blood off his hands, he throwed his kerchief down in Bruce’s face. Bruce wasn’t dead or bad hurt. He’d jest been beaten bad. He was moanin’ an’ slobberin’. Isbel kicked him, not hard, but jest sort of disgustful. Then he faced thet crowd. ‘Greaves, thet’s what I think of your Simm Bruce. Tell him next time he sees me to run or pull a gun.’ An’ then Isbel grabbed his rifle an’ package off the counter an’ went out. He didn’t even look back. I seen him nount his horse an’ ride away.... Now, girl, what hev you to say?”

“Isbel jumped at Bruce. ‘You damn drunken dog! You filthy liar! ... I might be an Isbel, but you can’t slander that girl to my face! ... Then he moved so fast I couldn’t see what he did. But I heard his fist hit Bruce. It sounded like an axe against beef. Bruce fell clear across the room. And by Jinny when he landed Isbel was there. As Bruce staggered up, all bloodied and spitting out teeth, Isbel glared at Greaves’s group and said: ‘If any of you make a move, it’ll mean gunplay.’ Nobody moved, that’s for sure. In fact, none of Greaves’s crew had guns on them, at least not in sight. When Bruce finally got up—he’s a tall guy—Isbel took a full swing at him and knocked him back across the room against the counter. You can tell when a guy’s hurt by how he yells. Bruce got that second hit right on his big red nose.... I’ve never seen anyone as quick as Isbel. He jumped over that counter just as Bruce fell back on it, and then, with Greaves’s gang in front of him to catch any moves they made, he just pounded Bruce right and left, and bashed his head on the counter. Then as Bruce sank down, looking like a bloody sack, Isbel let him drop to the floor. Then he jumped back over the counter. Wiping the blood off his hands, he threw his handkerchief down in Bruce’s face. Bruce wasn’t dead or seriously hurt. He’d just been beaten badly. He was moaning and drooling. Isbel kicked him, not hard, but just disgustedly. Then he faced that crowd. ‘Greaves, that’s what I think of your Simm Bruce. Tell him next time he sees me to run or pull a gun.’ And then Isbel grabbed his rifle and package off the counter and went out. He didn’t even look back. I saw him mount his horse and ride away.... Now, girl, what do you have to say?”

Ellen could only say good-by and the word was so low as to be almost inaudible. She ran to her burro. She could not see very clearly through tear-blurred eyes, and her shaking fingers were all thumbs. It seemed she had to rush away—somewhere, anywhere—not to get away from old John Sprague, but from herself—this palpitating, bursting self whose feet stumbled down the trail. All—all seemed ended for her. That interminable story! It had taken so long. And every minute of it she had been helplessly torn asunder by feelings she had never known she possessed. This Ellen Jorth was an unknown creature. She sobbed now as she dragged the burro down the canyon trail. She sat down only to rise. She hurried only to stop. Driven, pursued, barred, she had no way to escape the flaying thoughts, no time or will to repudiate them. The death of her girlhood, the rending aside of a veil of maiden mystery only vaguely instinctively guessed, the barren, sordid truth of her life as seen by her enlightened eyes, the bitter realization of the vileness of men of her clan in contrast to the manliness and chivalry of an enemy, the hard facts of unalterable repute as created by slander and fostered by low minds, all these were forces in a cataclysm that had suddenly caught her heart and whirled her through changes immense and agonizing, to bring her face to face with reality, to force upon her suspicion and doubt of all she had trusted, to warn her of the dark, impending horror of a tragic bloody feud, and lastly to teach her the supreme truth at once so glorious and so terrible—that she could not escape the doom of womanhood.

Ellen could only say goodbye, and her voice was so quiet it was almost inaudible. She ran to her donkey. With tear-filled eyes, everything looked blurry, and her shaking fingers felt clumsy. It felt like she had to hurry away—anywhere, just to escape—not from old John Sprague, but from herself—this overwhelming, bursting self whose feet stumbled down the path. Everything seemed over for her. That never-ending story! It had taken so long. And every minute of it, she had been helplessly torn apart by feelings she never knew she had. This Ellen Jorth was a stranger to herself. She sobbed now as she pulled the donkey down the canyon trail. She sat down only to get back up again. She rushed only to stop. Driven, chased, blocked, she had no way to escape the tormenting thoughts, no time or strength to push them away. The end of her girlhood, the tearing away of a veil of maiden mystery she had only vaguely sensed, the harsh, ugly truth of her life as seen by her newfound clarity, the bitter realization of the ugliness of men from her background compared to the courage and nobility of an outsider, the hard realities of her tarnished reputation built by gossip and fueled by shallow minds—these were all forces in a whirlwind that had suddenly seized her heart and spun her through immense and painful changes, bringing her face to face with reality, forcing her to question and doubt everything she had trusted, warning her of the dark, looming horror of a tragic bloody feud, and finally teaching her the ultimate truth that was both glorious and terrifying—that she could not escape the fate of womanhood.

About noon that day Ellen Jorth arrived at the Knoll, which was the location of her father’s ranch. Three canyons met there to form a larger one. The knoll was a symmetrical hill situated at the mouth of the three canyons. It was covered with brush and cedars, with here and there lichened rocks showing above the bleached grass. Below the Knoll was a wide, grassy flat or meadow through which a willow-bordered stream cut its rugged boulder-strewn bed. Water flowed abundantly at this season, and the deep washes leading down from the slopes attested to the fact of cloudbursts and heavy storms. This meadow valley was dotted with horses and cattle, and meandered away between the timbered slopes to lose itself in a green curve. A singular feature of this canyon was that a heavy growth of spruce trees covered the slope facing northwest; and the opposite slope, exposed to the sun and therefore less snowbound in winter, held a sparse growth of yellow pines. The ranch house of Colonel Jorth stood round the rough corner of the largest of the three canyons, and rather well hidden, it did not obtrude its rude and broken-down log cabins, its squalid surroundings, its black mud-holes of corrals upon the beautiful and serene meadow valley.

About noon that day, Ellen Jorth arrived at the Knoll, where her father’s ranch was located. Three canyons met there to form a larger one. The knoll was a symmetrical hill at the mouth of the three canyons, covered with brush and cedars, with patches of lichened rocks poking through the bleached grass. Below the Knoll was a wide, grassy flat or meadow intersected by a willow-lined stream, cutting through its rugged, boulder-strewn path. Water flowed abundantly this season, and the deep washes running down from the slopes showed signs of cloudbursts and heavy storms. This meadow valley was dotted with horses and cattle, winding away between the forested slopes until it disappeared in a green curve. A unique feature of this canyon was that a dense growth of spruce trees covered the slope facing northwest, while the opposite slope, which received more sunlight and was less snow-covered in winter, was home to a sparse growth of yellow pines. Colonel Jorth's ranch house sat around the rough corner of the largest of the three canyons, and because it was somewhat hidden, it didn't intrude on the beauty of the serene meadow valley with its broken-down log cabins, shabby surroundings, and black mud-holes of corrals.

Ellen Jorth approached her home slowly, with dragging, reluctant steps; and never before in the three unhappy years of her existence there had the ranch seemed so bare, so uncared for, so repugnant to her. As she had seen herself with clarified eyes, so now she saw her home. The cabin that Ellen lived in with her father was a single-room structure with one door and no windows. It was about twenty feet square. The huge, ragged, stone chimney had been built on the outside, with the wide open fireplace set inside the logs. Smoke was rising from the chimney. As Ellen halted at the door and began unpacking her burro she heard the loud, lazy laughter of men. An adjoining log cabin had been built in two sections, with a wide roofed hall or space between them. The door in each cabin faced the other, and there was a tall man standing in one. Ellen recognized Daggs, a neighbor sheepman, who evidently spent more time with her father than at his own home, wherever that was. Ellen had never seen it. She heard this man drawl, “Jorth, heah’s your kid come home.”

Ellen Jorth approached her home slowly, with heavy, reluctant steps; and never before in the three unhappy years of her life there had the ranch seemed so empty, so neglected, so uninviting to her. Just as she had seen herself clearly, she now saw her home. The cabin where Ellen lived with her father was a single-room structure with one door and no windows. It was about twenty feet square. The large, ragged stone chimney was built on the outside, with a wide open fireplace inside the logs. Smoke was rising from the chimney. As Ellen stopped at the door and started unpacking her burro, she heard the loud, lazy laughter of men. An adjoining log cabin had been built in two sections, with a wide roofed space between them. The door in each cabin faced the other, and there was a tall man standing in one. Ellen recognized Daggs, a neighbor sheepman, who clearly spent more time with her father than at his own home, wherever that was. Ellen had never seen it. She heard him drawl, “Jorth, here’s your kid come home.”

Ellen carried her bed inside the cabin, and unrolled it upon a couch built of boughs in the far corner. She had forgotten Jean Isbel’s package, and now it fell out under her sight. Quickly she covered it. A Mexican woman, relative of Antonio, and the only servant about the place, was squatting Indian fashion before the fireplace, stirring a pot of beans. She and Ellen did not get along well together, and few words ever passed between them. Ellen had a canvas curtain stretched upon a wire across a small triangular corner, and this afforded her a little privacy. Her possessions were limited in number. The crude square table she had constructed herself. Upon it was a little old-fashioned walnut-framed mirror, a brush and comb, and a dilapidated ebony cabinet which contained odds and ends the sight of which always brought a smile of derisive self-pity to her lips. Under the table stood an old leather trunk. It had come with her from Texas, and contained clothing and belongings of her mother’s. Above the couch on pegs hung her scant wardrobe. A tiny shelf held several worn-out books.

Ellen brought her bed into the cabin and spread it out on a couch made of branches in the far corner. She had forgotten Jean Isbel’s package, which now fell into view. Quickly, she covered it up. A Mexican woman, a relative of Antonio and the only servant around, was squatting in front of the fireplace, stirring a pot of beans. She and Ellen didn’t get along well, and they hardly ever spoke. Ellen had a canvas curtain stretched across a small triangular corner, giving her a bit of privacy. She didn't have many possessions. The simple square table was something she had built herself. On it sat a small, old-fashioned walnut-framed mirror, a brush and comb, and a worn-out ebony cabinet filled with odds and ends that always made her smile in a mix of derision and self-pity. Beneath the table was an old leather trunk that had come with her from Texas, packed with clothes and belongings of her mother’s. Above the couch, her limited wardrobe hung on pegs, and a tiny shelf held several tattered books.

When her father slept indoors, which was seldom except in winter, he occupied a couch in the opposite corner. A rude cupboard had been built against the logs next to the fireplace. It contained supplies and utensils. Toward the center, somewhat closer to the door, stood a crude table and two benches. The cabin was dark and smelled of smoke, of the stale odors of past cooked meals, of the mustiness of dry, rotting timber. Streaks of light showed through the roof where the rough-hewn shingles had split or weathered. A strip of bacon hung upon one side of the cupboard, and upon the other a haunch of venison. Ellen detested the Mexican woman because she was dirty. The inside of the cabin presented the same unkempt appearance usual to it after Ellen had been away for a few days. Whatever Ellen had lost during the retrogression of the Jorths, she had kept her habits of cleanliness, and straightway upon her return she set to work.

When her father slept indoors, which was rare except in winter, he took a couch in the opposite corner. A rough cupboard had been built against the logs next to the fireplace. It held supplies and utensils. Toward the center, closer to the door, stood a simple table and two benches. The cabin was dark and smelled of smoke, stale odors from past meals, and the mustiness of dry, rotting wood. Strips of light peeked through the roof where the rough shingles had cracked or weathered. A strip of bacon hung on one side of the cupboard, and on the other hung a haunch of venison. Ellen couldn't stand the Mexican woman because she was dirty. The inside of the cabin looked just as messy as it usually did after Ellen had been away for a few days. Whatever Ellen had lost during the decline of the Jorths, she had held onto her habits of cleanliness, and as soon as she got back, she got to work.

The Mexican woman sullenly slouched away to her own quarters outside and Ellen was left to the satisfaction of labor. Her mind was as busy as her hands. As she cleaned and swept and dusted she heard from time to time the voices of men, the clip-clop of shod horses, the bellow of cattle. And a considerable time elapsed before she was disturbed.

The Mexican woman walked away gloomily to her own space outside, leaving Ellen to focus on her work. Her mind was just as active as her hands. As she cleaned, swept, and dusted, she periodically heard the voices of men, the sound of horses' hooves, and the lowing of cattle. A good amount of time passed before she was interrupted.

A tall shadow darkened the doorway.

A tall shadow loomed in the doorway.

“Howdy, little one!” said a lazy, drawling voice. “So y’u-all got home?”

“Hey there, kid!” said a lazy, drawn-out voice. “So you all made it home?”

Ellen looked up. A superbly built man leaned against the doorpost. Like most Texans, he was light haired and light eyed. His face was lined and hard. His long, sandy mustache hid his mouth and drooped with a curl. Spurred, booted, belted, packing a heavy gun low down on his hip, he gave Ellen an entirely new impression. Indeed, she was seeing everything strangely.

Ellen looked up. A well-built man leaned against the doorframe. Like most Texans, he had light hair and light eyes. His face was tough and weathered. His long, sandy mustache covered his mouth and had a slight curl at the end. Wearing spurs, boots, a belt, and carrying a heavy gun low on his hip, he left Ellen with a completely different impression. In fact, everything seemed unusual to her.

“Hello, Daggs!” replied Ellen. “Where’s my dad?”

“Hey, Daggs!” Ellen responded. “Where’s my dad?”

“He’s playin’ cairds with Jackson an’ Colter. Shore’s playin’ bad, too, an’ it’s gone to his haid.”

“He’s playing cards with Jackson and Colter. Sure is playing badly, too, and it’s gone to his head.”

“Gamblin’?” queried Ellen.

“Gambling?” asked Ellen.

“Mah child, when’d Kurnel Jorth ever play for fun?” said Daggs, with a lazy laugh. “There’s a stack of gold on the table. Reckon yo’ uncle Jackson will win it. Colter’s shore out of luck.”

“Kid, when has Colonel Jorth ever played for fun?” Daggs said with a relaxed laugh. “There’s a pile of gold on the table. I bet your uncle Jackson will win it. Colter’s definitely out of luck.”

Daggs stepped inside. He was graceful and slow. His long’ spurs clinked. He laid a rather compelling hand on Ellen’s shoulder.

Daggs stepped inside. He moved with a graceful slowness. His long spurs clinked. He placed a rather persuasive hand on Ellen’s shoulder.

“Heah, mah gal, give us a kiss,” he said.

“Hey, my girl, give us a kiss,” he said.

“Daggs, I’m not your girl,” replied Ellen as she slipped out from under his hand.

“Daggs, I’m not your girl,” Ellen said as she moved out from under his hand.

Then Daggs put his arm round her, not with violence or rudeness, but with an indolent, affectionate assurance, at once bold and self-contained. Ellen, however, had to exert herself to get free of him, and when she had placed the table between them she looked him square in the eyes.

Then Daggs wrapped his arm around her, not roughly or rudely, but with a lazy, caring confidence that was both daring and composed. Ellen, however, had to make an effort to break free from him, and when she set the table between them, she looked him straight in the eyes.

“Daggs, y’u keep your paws off me,” she said.

“Daggs, you keep your hands off me,” she said.

“Aw, now, Ellen, I ain’t no bear,” he remonstrated. “What’s the matter, kid?”

“Aw, come on, Ellen, I’m not a bear,” he said. “What’s wrong, kid?”

“I’m not a kid. And there’s nothin’ the matter. Y’u’re to keep your hands to yourself, that’s all.”

“I’m not a kid. And there’s nothing wrong. You need to keep your hands to yourself, that’s all.”

He tried to reach her across the table, and his movements were lazy and slow, like his smile. His tone was coaxing.

He leaned across the table towards her, his movements slow and relaxed, just like his smile. His voice was gentle and encouraging.

“Mah dear, shore you set on my knee just the other day, now, didn’t you?”

“Hey there, you were sitting on my lap just the other day, right?”

Ellen felt the blood sting her cheeks.

Ellen felt the blood rush to her cheeks.

“I was a child,” she returned.

“I was a kid,” she replied.

“Wal, listen to this heah grown-up young woman. All in a few days! ... Doon’t be in a temper, Ellen.... Come, give us a kiss.”

“Wow, listen to this grown-up woman. All in just a few days! ... Don’t be upset, Ellen.... Come on, give us a kiss.”

She deliberately gazed into his eyes. Like the eyes of an eagle, they were clear and hard, just now warmed by the dalliance of the moment, but there was no light, no intelligence in them to prove he understood her. The instant separated Ellen immeasurably from him and from all of his ilk.

She intentionally looked into his eyes. Like an eagle's, they were sharp and unyielding, just now softened by the flirtation of the moment, but there was no spark, no understanding in them to show that he got her. That moment created a vast distance between Ellen and him, as well as everyone like him.

“Daggs, I was a child,” she said. “I was lonely—hungry for affection—I was innocent. Then I was careless, too, and thoughtless when I should have known better. But I hardly understood y’u men. I put such thoughts out of my mind. I know now—know what y’u mean—what y’u have made people believe I am.”

“Daggs, I was just a kid,” she said. “I was lonely—craving love—I was naive. Then I was reckless, too, and inconsiderate when I should have been wiser. But I barely understood men like you. I pushed those thoughts aside. I get it now—I understand what you mean—what you’ve convinced people I am.”

“Ahuh! Shore I get your hunch,” he returned, with a change of tone. “But I asked you to marry me?”

“Uh-huh! I get your point,” he replied, with a shift in tone. “But I asked you to marry me?”

“Yes y’u did. The first day y’u got heah to my dad’s house. And y’u asked me to marry y’u after y’u found y’u couldn’t have your way with me. To y’u the one didn’t mean any more than the other.”

“Yes, you did. The first day you got here to my dad’s house. And you asked me to marry you after you realized you couldn’t get your way with me. To you, one didn’t mean any more than the other.”

“Shore I did more than Simm Bruce an’ Colter,” he retorted. “They never asked you to marry.”

“Sure, I did more than Simm Bruce and Colter,” he shot back. “They never asked you to marry.”

“No, they didn’t. And if I could respect them at all I’d do it because they didn’t ask me.”

“No, they didn’t. And if I could respect them at all, it would be because they didn’t ask me.”

“Wal, I’ll be dog-goned!” ejaculated Daggs, thoughtfully, as he stroked his long mustache.

“Wow, I can’t believe it!” exclaimed Daggs, thoughtfully, as he stroked his long mustache.

“I’ll say to them what I’ve said to y’u,” went on Ellen. “I’ll tell dad to make y’u let me alone. I wouldn’t marry one of y’u—y’u loafers to save my life. I’ve my suspicions about y’u. Y’u’re a bad lot.”

“I’ll tell them what I’ve told you,” Ellen continued. “I’ll have Dad make you leave me alone. I wouldn’t marry any of you—you're all just lazy good-for-nothings. I have my doubts about you. You’re no good.”

Daggs changed subtly. The whole indolent nonchalance of the man vanished in an instant.

Daggs changed noticeably. The entire lazy indifference of the man disappeared in an instant.

“Wal, Miss Jorth, I reckon you mean we’re a bad lot of sheepmen?” he queried, in the cool, easy speech of a Texan.

“Well, Miss Jorth, I guess you think we're a bad bunch of sheep farmers?” he asked, in the relaxed, laid-back tone of a Texan.

“No,” flashed Ellen. “Shore I don’t say sheepmen. I say y’u’re a BAD LOT.”

“No,” Ellen shot back. “I’m not talking about sheepmen. I’m saying you’re a BAD LOT.”

“Oh, the hell you say!” Daggs spoke as he might have spoken to a man; then turning swiftly on his heel he left her. Outside he encountered Ellen’s father. She heard Daggs speak: “Lee, your little wildcat is shore heah. An’ take mah hunch. Somebody has been talkin’ to her.”

“Oh, no way!” Daggs said as if he were talking to a man; then he quickly turned and walked away from her. Outside, he ran into Ellen’s dad. She heard Daggs say, “Lee, your little wildcat is right here. And trust me on this—someone's been talking to her.”

“Who has?” asked her father, in his husky voice. Ellen knew at once that he had been drinking.

“Who has?” her father asked, his voice raspy. Ellen immediately realized he had been drinking.

“Lord only knows,” replied Daggs. “But shore it wasn’t any friends of ours.”

“God only knows,” replied Daggs. “But it definitely wasn’t any friends of ours.”

“We cain’t stop people’s tongues,” said Jorth, resignedly

“We can’t stop people from talking,” said Jorth, resignedly.

“Wal, I ain’t so shore,” continued Daggs, with his slow, cool laugh. “Reckon I never yet heard any daid men’s tongues wag.”

“Well, I’m not so sure,” continued Daggs, with his slow, cool laugh. “I guess I’ve never heard any dead men’s tongues wag.”

Then the musical tinkle of his spurs sounded fainter. A moment later Ellen’s father entered the cabin. His dark, moody face brightened at sight of her. Ellen knew she was the only person in the world left for him to love. And she was sure of his love. Her very presence always made him different. And through the years, the darker their misfortunes, the farther he slipped away from better days, the more she loved him.

Then the sound of his spurs faded away. A moment later, Ellen’s father walked into the cabin. His dark, brooding face lit up when he saw her. Ellen knew she was the only person left for him to care about. And she was certain of his love. Just being there always changed him. Over the years, as their misfortunes grew and he slipped further away from better days, her love for him only deepened.

“Hello, my Ellen!” he said, and he embraced her. When he had been drinking he never kissed her. “Shore I’m glad you’re home. This heah hole is bad enough any time, but when you’re gone it’s black.... I’m hungry.”

“Hello, my Ellen!” he said, and he hugged her. When he had been drinking, he never kissed her. “I'm sure glad you're home. This place is tough enough as it is, but when you’re gone, it feels empty... I’m hungry.”

Ellen laid food and drink on the table; and for a little while she did not look directly at him. She was concerned about this new searching power of her eyes. In relation to him she vaguely dreaded it.

Ellen set food and drinks on the table; and for a moment, she avoided looking directly at him. She was worried about this new intense ability of her gaze. When it came to him, she felt a vague sense of dread about it.

Lee Jorth had once been a singularly handsome man. He was tall, but did not have the figure of a horseman. His dark hair was streaked with gray, and was white over his ears. His face was sallow and thin, with deep lines. Under his round, prominent, brown eyes, like deadened furnaces, were blue swollen welts. He had a bitter mouth and weak chin, not wholly concealed by gray mustache and pointed beard. He wore a long frock coat and a wide-brimmed sombrero, both black in color, and so old and stained and frayed that along with the fashion of them they betrayed that they had come from Texas with him. Jorth always persisted in wearing a white linen shirt, likewise a relic of his Southern prosperity, and to-day it was ragged and soiled as usual.

Lee Jorth had once been an exceptionally handsome man. He was tall, but didn’t have the build of a horseman. His dark hair was streaked with gray and was white over his ears. His face was pale and thin, with deep lines. Under his round, prominent brown eyes, which looked like dead furnaces, were blue swollen welts. He had a bitter mouth and a weak chin, which were not completely hidden by his gray mustache and pointed beard. He wore a long black frock coat and a wide-brimmed sombrero, both so old, stained, and frayed that they clearly showed they had come from Texas with him. Jorth always insisted on wearing a white linen shirt, also a reminder of his Southern prosperity, and today it was as ragged and dirty as usual.

Ellen watched her father eat and waited for him to speak. It occured to her strangely that he never asked about the sheep or the new-born lambs. She divined with a subtle new woman’s intuition that he cared nothing for his sheep.

Ellen watched her father eat and waited for him to speak. It struck her oddly that he never asked about the sheep or the newborn lambs. She sensed with a new woman's intuition that he didn’t care at all for his sheep.

“Ellen, what riled Daggs?” inquired her father, presently. “He shore had fire in his eye.”

“Ellen, what upset Daggs?” her father asked after a moment. “He definitely had fire in his eyes.”

Long ago Ellen had betrayed an indignity she had suffered at the hands of a man. Her father had nearly killed him. Since then she had taken care to keep her troubles to herself. If her father had not been blind and absorbed in his own brooding he would have seen a thousand things sufficient to inflame his Southern pride and temper.

Long ago, Ellen had revealed a humiliating experience she endured at the hands of a man. Her father had almost killed him. Since then, she had made sure to keep her struggles to herself. If her father hadn’t been blind and lost in his own thoughts, he would have noticed countless things that could have ignited his Southern pride and anger.

“Daggs asked me to marry him again and I said he belonged to a bad lot,” she replied.

“Daggs asked me to marry him again, and I said he was part of a bad crowd,” she replied.

Jorth laughed in scorn. “Fool! My God! Ellen, I must have dragged you low—that every damned ru—er—sheepman—who comes along thinks he can marry you.”

Jorth laughed derisively. “Idiot! My God! Ellen, I must have brought you down—so that every damn rancher who comes along thinks he can marry you.”

At the break in his words, the incompleted meaning, Ellen dropped her eyes. Little things once never noted by her were now come to have a fascinating significance.

At the pause in his speech, the unfinished idea, Ellen looked down. Little things she had never paid attention to before now took on a captivating significance.

“Never mind, dad,” she replied. “They cain’t marry me.”

“Never mind, Dad,” she replied. “They can't marry me.”

“Daggs said somebody had been talkin’ to you. How aboot that?”

“Daggs said someone had been talking to you. How about that?”

“Old John Sprague has just gotten back from Grass Valley,” said Ellen. “I stopped in to see him. Shore he told me all the village gossip.”

“Old John Sprague just got back from Grass Valley,” said Ellen. “I stopped by to see him. Sure, he told me all the village gossip.”

“Anythin’ to interest me?” he queried, darkly.

“Anything to interest me?” he asked, grimly.

“Yes, dad, I’m afraid a good deal,” she said, hesitatingly. Then in accordance with a decision Ellen had made she told him of the rumored war between sheepmen and cattlemen; that old Isbel had Blaisdell, Gordon, Fredericks, Blue and other well-known ranchers on his side; that his son Jean Isbel had come from Oregon with a wonderful reputation as fighter and scout and tracker; that it was no secret how Colonel Lee Jorth was at the head of the sheepmen; that a bloody war was sure to come.

“Yes, Dad, I'm really worried,” she said hesitantly. Then, following a decision Ellen had made, she told him about the rumored conflict between the sheepmen and the cattlemen; that old Isbel had Blaisdell, Gordon, Fredericks, Blue, and other well-known ranchers on his side; that his son Jean Isbel had come from Oregon with a great reputation as a fighter, scout, and tracker; that it was no secret Colonel Lee Jorth was leading the sheepmen; that a bloody war was definitely on the way.

“Hah!” exclaimed Jorth, with a stain of red in his sallow cheek. “Reckon none of that is news to me. I knew all that.”

“Hah!” exclaimed Jorth, with a flush of red in his pale cheek. “I guess none of that is news to me. I already knew all that.”

Ellen wondered if he had heard of her meeting with Jean Isbel. If not he would hear as soon as Simm Bruce and Lorenzo came back. She decided to forestall them.

Ellen wondered if he had heard about her meeting with Jean Isbel. If he hadn't, he would find out as soon as Simm Bruce and Lorenzo got back. She decided to get ahead of them.

“Dad, I met Jean Isbel. He came into my camp. Asked the way to the Rim. I showed him. We—we talked a little. And shore were gettin’ acquainted when—when he told me who he was. Then I left him—hurried back to camp.”

“Dad, I met Jean Isbel. He came into my camp. Asked for directions to the Rim. I showed him. We—well, we talked a bit. And we were really getting to know each other when—when he told me who he was. Then I left him—rushed back to camp.”

“Colter met Isbel down in the woods,” replied Jorth, ponderingly. “Said he looked like an Indian—a hard an’ slippery customer to reckon with.”

“Colter met Isbel down in the woods,” Jorth replied, thinking it over. “He said he looked like an Indian—a tough and slippery guy to deal with.”

“Shore I guess I can indorse what Colter said,” returned Ellen, dryly. She could have laughed aloud at her deceit. Still she had not lied.

“Sure, I guess I can agree with what Colter said,” Ellen replied dryly. She could have laughed out loud at her deception. Still, she hadn’t lied.

“How’d this heah young Isbel strike you?” queried her father, suddenly glancing up at her.

“How did this young Isbel impress you?” her father asked, suddenly looking up at her.

Ellen felt the slow, sickening, guilty rise of blood in her face. She was helpless to stop it. But her father evidently never saw it. He was looking at her without seeing her.

Ellen felt the slow, nauseating, guilty flush spread across her face. She couldn’t do anything to stop it. But her father clearly didn’t notice. He was looking at her without really seeing her.

“He—he struck me as different from men heah,” she stammered.

“He—he seemed different from the men here,” she stammered.

“Did Sprague tell you aboot this half-Indian Isbel—aboot his reputation?”

“Did Sprague tell you about this half-Indian Isbel—about his reputation?”

“Yes.”

"Yeah."

“Did he look to you like a real woodsman?”

“Did he seem like a real woodsman to you?”

“Indeed he did. He wore buckskin. He stepped quick and soft. He acted at home in the woods. He had eyes black as night and sharp as lightnin’. They shore saw about all there was to see.”

“Yeah, he did. He wore leather. He moved quickly and quietly. He felt at home in the woods. His eyes were as black as night and as sharp as lightning. They really noticed everything there was to see.”

Jorth chewed at his mustache and lost himself in brooding thought.

Jorth thumbed his mustache and got lost in deep thought.

“Dad, tell me, is there goin’ to be a war?” asked Ellen, presently.

“Dad, tell me, is there going to be a war?” asked Ellen, currently.

What a red, strange, rolling flash blazed in his eyes! His body jerked.

What a strange, red, swirling flash lit up his eyes! His body jolted.

“Shore. You might as well know.”

“Sure. You might as well know.”

“Between sheepmen and cattlemen?”

"Between sheep farmers and cattle ranchers?"

“Yes.”

“Yeah.”

“With y’u, dad, at the haid of one faction and Gaston Isbel the other?”

“Are you with Dad leading one side and Gaston Isbel leading the other?”

“Daughter, you have it correct, so far as you go.”

“Daughter, you’re on the right track, as far as you’ve gotten.”

“Oh! ... Dad, can’t this fight be avoided?”

“Oh! ... Dad, can’t we avoid this fight?”

“You forget you’re from Texas,” he replied.

"You forget you're from Texas," he said.

“Cain’t it be helped?” she repeated, stubbornly.

“Can’t it be helped?” she repeated, stubbornly.

“No!” he declared, with deep, hoarse passion.

“No!” he declared, with intense, raspy emotion.

“Why not?”

"Why not?"

“Wal, we sheepmen are goin’ to run sheep anywhere we like on the range. An’ cattlemen won’t stand for that.”

“Well, we sheep herders are going to graze our sheep wherever we want on the range. And the cattle ranchers won’t accept that.”

“But, dad, it’s so foolish,” declared Ellen, earnestly. “Y’u sheepmen do not have to run sheep over the cattle range.”

“But, Dad, that’s so foolish,” Ellen said earnestly. “You sheepmen don’t have to run your sheep over the cattle range.”

“I reckon we do.”

"I think we do."

“Dad, that argument doesn’t go with me. I know the country. For years to come there will be room for both sheep and cattle without overrunnin’. If some of the range is better in water and grass, then whoever got there first should have it. That shore is only fair. It’s common sense, too.”

“Dad, that argument doesn’t work for me. I know the area. For years to come, there will be space for both sheep and cattle without overcrowding. If some of the land has better water and grass, then whoever got there first should have it. That’s only fair. It just makes sense, too.”

“Ellen, I reckon some cattle people have been prejudicin’ you,” said Jorth, bitterly.

“Ellen, I think some ranchers have been judging you unfairly,” Jorth said, bitterly.

“Dad!” she cried, hotly.

“Dad!” she shouted, angrily.

This had grown to be an ordeal for Jorth. He seemed a victim of contending tides of feeling. Some will or struggle broke within him and the change was manifest. Haggard, shifty-eyed, with wabbling chin, he burst into speech.

This had become a struggle for Jorth. He felt like a victim of conflicting emotions. Something inside him snapped, and the change was obvious. Looking exhausted, with darting eyes and a trembling chin, he suddenly started to speak.

“See heah, girl. You listen. There’s a clique of ranchers down in the Basin, all those you named, with Isbel at their haid. They have resented sheepmen comin’ down into the valley. They want it all to themselves. That’s the reason. Shore there’s another. All the Isbels are crooked. They’re cattle an’ horse thieves—have been for years. Gaston Isbel always was a maverick rustler. He’s gettin’ old now an’ rich, so he wants to cover his tracks. He aims to blame this cattle rustlin’ an’ horse stealin’ on to us sheepmen, an’ run us out of the country.”

“Listen up, girl. There’s a group of ranchers down in the Basin, all those you mentioned, with Isbel leading them. They’re not happy about sheepmen coming down into the valley. They want it all for themselves. That’s the reason. Of course, there’s another reason. The Isbels are all crooked. They’ve been cattle and horse thieves for years. Gaston Isbel was always a rogue rustler. He’s getting old now and rich, so he wants to cover his tracks. He plans to blame this cattle rustling and horse stealing on us sheepmen, and drive us out of the area.”

Gravely Ellen Jorth studied her father’s face, and the newly found truth-seeing power of her eyes did not fail her. In part, perhaps in all, he was telling lies. She shuddered a little, loyally battling against the insidious convictions being brought to fruition. Perhaps in his brooding over his failures and troubles he leaned toward false judgments. Ellen could not attach dishonor to her father’s motives or speeches. For long, however, something about him had troubled her, perplexed her. Fearfully she believed she was coming to some revelation, and, despite her keen determination to know, she found herself shrinking.

Gravely, Ellen Jorth studied her father’s face, and the newfound ability of her eyes to see the truth didn't let her down. In part, maybe in whole, he was lying. She shuddered a bit, loyally fighting against the subtle beliefs that were taking shape. Perhaps, while he was caught up in his failures and troubles, he leaned toward incorrect judgments. Ellen couldn’t associate dishonor with her father’s motives or words. For a long time, though, something about him had bothered her, confused her. Fearfully, she felt like she was on the verge of a revelation, and despite her strong desire to know, she found herself pulling back.

“Dad, mother told me before she died that the Isbels had ruined you,” said Ellen, very low. It hurt her so to see her father cover his face that she could hardly go on. “If they ruined you they ruined all of us. I know what we had once—what we lost again and again—and I see what we are come to now. Mother hated the Isbels. She taught me to hate the very name. But I never knew how they ruined you—or why—or when. And I want to know now.”

“Dad, Mom told me before she died that the Isbels had destroyed you,” said Ellen, very quietly. It hurt her so much to see her father cover his face that she could barely continue. “If they destroyed you, they destroyed all of us. I remember what we once had—what we lost over and over—and I see what we’ve become now. Mom hated the Isbels. She taught me to hate their name. But I never understood how they destroyed you—or why—or when. And I want to know now.”

Then it was not the face of a liar that Jorth disclosed. The present was forgotten. He lived in the past. He even seemed younger ‘in the revivifying flash of hate that made his face radiant. The lines burned out. Hate gave him back the spirit of his youth.

Then it wasn't the face of a liar that Jorth showed. The present faded away. He was stuck in the past. He even looked younger "in the refreshing burst of hate that lit up his face. The lines disappeared. Hate restored the energy of his youth.

“Gaston Isbel an’ I were boys together in Weston, Texas,” began Jorth, in swift, passionate voice. “We went to school together. We loved the same girl—your mother. When the war broke out she was engaged to Isbel. His family was rich. They influenced her people. But she loved me. When Isbel went to war she married me. He came back an’ faced us. God! I’ll never forget that. Your mother confessed her unfaithfulness—by Heaven! She taunted him with it. Isbel accused me of winnin’ her by lies. But she took the sting out of that.

“Gaston Isbel and I were boys together in Weston, Texas,” Jorth started, his voice quick and intense. “We went to school together. We loved the same girl—your mother. When the war broke out, she was engaged to Isbel. His family was wealthy, and they had influence over hers. But she loved me. When Isbel went to war, she married me. He came back and confronted us. God! I’ll never forget that. Your mother admitted her unfaithfulness—by Heaven! She taunted him about it. Isbel accused me of winning her with lies. But she took the sting out of that.

“Isbel never forgave her an’ he hounded me to ruin. He made me out a card-sharp, cheatin’ my best friends. I was disgraced. Later he tangled me in the courts—he beat me out of property—an’ last by convictin’ me of rustlin’ cattle he run me out of Texas.”

“Isbel never forgave her and he drove me to ruin. He portrayed me as a con artist, cheating my closest friends. I was disgraced. Later he dragged me into court—he took my property—and finally, by convicting me of cattle rustling, he forced me out of Texas.”

Black and distorted now, Jorth’s face was a spectacle to make Ellen sick with a terrible passion of despair and hate. The truth of her father’s ruin and her own were enough. What mattered all else? Jorth beat the table with fluttering, nerveless hands that seemed all the more significant for their lack of physical force.

Black and distorted now, Jorth’s face was a sight that made Ellen feel sick with a horrifying mix of despair and anger. The reality of her father’s downfall and her own was more than enough. What else mattered? Jorth slammed the table with shaky, limp hands that seemed even more impactful because of their lack of strength.

“An’ so help me God, it’s got to be wiped out in blood!” he hissed.

“Seriously, it has to be wiped out in blood!” he hissed.

That was his answer to the wavering and nobility of Ellen. And she in her turn had no answer to make. She crept away into the corner behind the curtain, and there on her couch in the semidarkness she lay with strained heart, and a resurging, unconquerable tumult in her mind. And she lay there from the middle of that afternoon until the next morning.

That was his response to Ellen's uncertainty and strength. And she, for her part, had no reply. She quietly retreated to the corner behind the curtain, and there on her couch in the dim light, she lay with a racing heart and an overwhelming chaos in her mind. She stayed there from the middle of that afternoon until the next morning.

When she awakened she expected to be unable to rise—she hoped she could not—but life seemed multiplied in her, and inaction was impossible. Something young and sweet and hopeful that had been in her did not greet the sun this morning. In their place was a woman’s passion to learn for herself, to watch events, to meet what must come, to survive.

When she woke up, she thought she wouldn't be able to get up—she hoped she couldn't—but life felt vibrant within her, and doing nothing was not an option. Something youthful, sweet, and hopeful that had once been inside her didn't welcome the sun this morning. Instead, she felt a woman's determination to learn for herself, to observe what was happening, to face what was coming, and to survive.

After breakfast, at which she sat alone, she decided to put Isbel’s package out of the way, so that it would not be subjecting her to continual annoyance. The moment she picked it up the old curiosity assailed her.

After breakfast, where she sat by herself, she decided to move Isbel’s package out of the way so it wouldn’t keep bothering her. The moment she picked it up, her old curiosity hit her again.

“Shore I’ll see what it is, anyway,” she muttered, and with swift hands she opened the package. The action disclosed two pairs of fine, soft shoes, of a style she had never seen, and four pairs of stockings, two of strong, serviceable wool, and the others of a finer texture. Ellen looked at them in amaze. Of all things in the world, these would have been the last she expected to see. And, strangely, they were what she wanted and needed most. Naturally, then, Ellen made the mistake of taking them in her hands to feel their softness and warmth.

“Sure, I’ll see what it is anyway,” she murmured, and with quick hands, she opened the package. Inside were two pairs of fine, soft shoes in a style she had never seen before, along with four pairs of stockings—two made of durable wool and the others of a finer material. Ellen stared at them in disbelief. Of all the things in the world, these were the last things she expected to find. Yet, oddly enough, they were exactly what she wanted and needed most. Naturally, Ellen then made the mistake of picking them up to feel their softness and warmth.

“Shore! He saw my bare legs! And he brought me these presents he’d intended for his sister.... He was ashamed for me—sorry for me.... And I thought he looked at me bold-like, as I’m used to be looked at heah! Isbel or not, he’s shore...”

“Sure! He saw my bare legs! And he brought me these gifts he’d meant for his sister... He felt ashamed for me—sorry for me... And I thought he looked at me daringly, like I’m used to being looked at around here! Whether he’s Isbel or not, he’s sure...”

But Ellen Jorth could not utter aloud the conviction her intelligence tried to force upon her.

But Ellen Jorth couldn't voice the belief that her mind was trying to push on her.

“It’d be a pity to burn them,” she mused. “I cain’t do it. Sometime I might send them to Ann Isbel.”

“It’d be a shame to burn them,” she thought. “I can’t do it. Maybe someday I’ll send them to Ann Isbel.”

Whereupon she wrapped them up again and hid them in the bottom of the old trunk, and slowly, as she lowered the lid, looking darkly, blankly at the wall, she whispered: “Jean Isbel! ... I hate him!”

Whereupon she wrapped them up again and hid them in the bottom of the old trunk, and slowly, as she lowered the lid, staring blankly at the wall, she whispered: “Jean Isbel! ... I hate him!”

Later when Ellen went outdoors she carried her rifle, which was unusual for her, unless she intended to go into the woods.

Later, when Ellen went outside, she carried her rifle, which was unusual for her unless she planned to head into the woods.

The morning was sunny and warm. A group of shirt-sleeved men lounged in the hall and before the porch of the double cabin. Her father was pacing up and down, talking forcibly. Ellen heard his hoarse voice. As she approached he ceased talking and his listeners relaxed their attention. Ellen’s glance ran over them swiftly—Daggs, with his superb head, like that of a hawk, uncovered to the sun; Colter with his lowered, secretive looks, his sand-gray lean face; Jackson Jorth, her uncle, huge, gaunt, hulking, with white in his black beard and hair, and the fire of a ghoul in his hollow eyes; Tad Jorth, another brother of her father’s, younger, red of eye and nose, a weak-chinned drinker of rum. Three other limber-legged Texans lounged there, partners of Daggs, and they were sun-browned, light-haired, blue-eyed men singularly alike in appearance, from their dusty high-heeled boots to their broad black sombreros. They claimed to be sheepmen. All Ellen could be sure of was that Rock Wells spent most of his time there, doing nothing but look for a chance to waylay her; Springer was a gambler; and the third, who answered to the strange name of Queen, was a silent, lazy, watchful-eyed man who never wore a glove on his right hand and who never was seen without a gun within easy reach of that hand.

The morning was bright and warm. A group of men in short sleeves lounged in the hall and on the porch of the double cabin. Her father was pacing back and forth, speaking emphatically. Ellen heard his raspy voice. As she got closer, he stopped talking and the others relaxed their focus. Ellen quickly scanned the group—Daggs, with his striking hawk-like head exposed to the sun; Colter, with his downcast, secretive gaze and lean, sand-gray face; Jackson Jorth, her uncle, large and gaunt, with gray in his black beard and hair, and the eerie intensity of a ghoul in his hollow eyes; and Tad Jorth, another of her father's brothers, younger, red-eyed and red-nosed, a weak-chinned rum drinker. Three other slim, agile Texans were hanging around, Daggs' partners, all sun-tanned, light-haired, and blue-eyed, oddly similar in appearance, from their dusty high-heeled boots to their wide black sombreros. They claimed to be sheepmen. All Ellen could be sure of was that Rock Wells spent most of his time there, doing nothing but looking for a chance to ambush her; Springer was a gambler; and the third, with the unusual name of Queen, was a quiet, lazy man with watchful eyes, who never wore a glove on his right hand and was always seen with a gun easily accessible in that hand.

“Howdy, Ellen. Shore you ain’t goin’ to say good mawnin’ to this heah bad lot?” drawled Daggs, with good-natured sarcasm.

“Hey, Ellen. Are you really not going to say good morning to this bunch?” Daggs said with friendly sarcasm.

“Why, shore! Good morning, y’u hard-working industrious MANANA sheep raisers,” replied Ellen, coolly.

“Why, sure! Good morning, you hard-working, industrious MANANA sheep raisers,” replied Ellen, coolly.

Daggs stared. The others appeared taken back by a greeting so foreign from any to which they were accustomed from her. Jackson Jorth let out a gruff haw-haw. Some of them doffed their sombreros, and Rock Wells managed a lazy, polite good morning. Ellen’s father seemed most significantly struck by her greeting, and the least amused.

Daggs stared. The others seemed surprised by a greeting so different from what they were used to from her. Jackson Jorth let out a rough laugh. Some of them took off their hats, and Rock Wells offered a laid-back, polite good morning. Ellen's father looked the most taken aback by her greeting and the least amused.

“Ellen, I’m not likin’ your talk,” he said, with a frown.

“Ellen, I’m not liking what you’re saying,” he said, with a frown.

“Dad, when y’u play cards don’t y’u call a spade a spade?”

“Dad, when you play cards, don’t you call a spade a spade?”

“Why, shore I do.”

"Sure I do."

“Well, I’m calling spades spades.”

“Well, I’m calling it like it is.”

“Ahuh!” grunted Jorth, furtively dropping his eyes. “Where you goin’ with your gun? I’d rather you hung round heah now.”

“Uh-huh!” grunted Jorth, quickly looking down. “Where are you going with your gun? I’d prefer you stick around here now.”

“Reckon I might as well get used to packing my gun all the time,” replied Ellen. “Reckon I’ll be treated more like a man.”

“Guess I might as well get used to carrying my gun all the time,” replied Ellen. “I figure I’ll be treated more like a man.”

Then the event Ellen had been expecting all morning took place. Simm Bruce and Lorenzo rode around the slope of the Knoll and trotted toward the cabin. Interest in Ellen was relegated to the background.

Then the event Ellen had been expecting all morning happened. Simm Bruce and Lorenzo rode around the slope of the Knoll and trotted toward the cabin. Interest in Ellen faded into the background.

“Shore they’re bustin’ with news,” declared Daggs.

“Sure they’re full of news,” declared Daggs.

“They been ridin’ some, you bet,” remarked another.

"They've been riding a bit, you bet," said another.

“Huh!” exclaimed Jorth. “Bruce shore looks queer to me.”

“Huh!” exclaimed Jorth. “Bruce really looks strange to me.”

“Red liquor,” said Tad Jorth, sententiously. “You-all know the brand Greaves hands out.”

“Red liquor,” said Tad Jorth, in a serious tone. “You all know the brand Greaves gives out.”

“Naw, Simm ain’t drunk,” said Jackson Jorth. “Look at his bloody shirt.”

“Nah, Simm isn’t drunk,” said Jackson Jorth. “Look at his bloody shirt.”

The cool, indolent interest of the crowd vanished at the red color pointed out by Jackson Jorth. Daggs rose in a single springy motion to his lofty height. The face Bruce turned to Jorth was swollen and bruised, with unhealed cuts. Where his right eye should have been showed a puffed dark purple bulge. His other eye, however, gleamed with hard and sullen light. He stretched a big shaking hand toward Jorth.

The cool, lazy interest of the crowd disappeared at the red color pointed out by Jackson Jorth. Daggs jumped up in one smooth motion to his tall height. The face Bruce turned to Jorth was swollen and bruised, with unhealed cuts. Instead of his right eye, there was a puffy dark purple lump. However, his other eye shone with a hard, gloomy light. He reached out a large, trembling hand toward Jorth.

“Thet Nez Perce Isbel beat me half to death,” he bellowed.

“The Nez Perce Isbel basically beat me to within an inch of my life,” he shouted.

Jorth stared hard at the tragic, almost grotesque figure, at the battered face. But speech failed him. It was Daggs who answered Bruce.

Jorth stared intently at the tragic, almost grotesque figure, at the battered face. But he couldn't find the words. It was Daggs who responded to Bruce.

“Wal, Simm, I’ll be damned if you don’t look it.”

“Wow, Simm, I can’t believe you actually look like that.”

“Beat you! What with?” burst out Jorth, explosively.

“Beat you! With what?” Jorth exclaimed, bursting with energy.

“I thought he was swingin’ an ax, but Greaves swore it was his fists,” bawled Bruce, in misery and fury.

“I thought he was swinging an axe, but Greaves insisted it was his fists,” Bruce yelled, filled with misery and rage.

“Where was your gun?” queried Jorth, sharply.

"Where was your gun?" asked Jorth, sharply.

“Gun? Hell!” exclaimed Bruce, flinging wide his arms. “Ask Lorenzo. He had a gun. An’ he got a biff in the jaw before my turn come. Ask him?”

“Gun? No way!” Bruce exclaimed, throwing his arms wide. “Ask Lorenzo. He had a gun. And he took a hit to the jaw before it was my turn. Ask him?”

Attention thus directed to the Mexican showed a heavy discolored swelling upon the side of his olive-skinned face. Lorenzo looked only serious.

Attention now turned to the Mexican revealed a large, discolored swelling on the side of his olive-skinned face. Lorenzo looked simply serious.

“Hah! Speak up,” shouted Jorth, impatiently.

“Hah! Speak up,” shouted Jorth, impatiently.

“Senor Isbel heet me ver quick,” replied Lorenzo, with expressive gesture. “I see thousand stars—then moocho black—all like night.”

“Mr. Isbel greeted me very quickly,” replied Lorenzo, with an expressive gesture. “I see a thousand stars—then a lot of darkness—all just like night.”

At that some of Daggs’s men lolled back with dry crisp laughter. Daggs’s hard face rippled with a smile. But there was no humor in anything for Colonel Jorth.

At that moment, some of Daggs’s men lounged back with dry, sharp laughter. Daggs’s tough face broke into a smile. But there was no humor for Colonel Jorth.

“Tell us what come off. Quick!” he ordered. “Where did it happen? Why? Who saw it? What did you do?”

“Tell us what happened. Quick!” he ordered. “Where did it take place? Why? Who saw it? What did you do?”

Bruce lapsed into a sullen impressiveness. “Wal, I happened in Greaves’s store an’ run into Jean Isbel. Shore was lookin’ fer him. I had my mind made up what to do, but I got to shootin’ off my gab instead of my gun. I called him Nez Perce—an’ I throwed all thet talk in his face about old Gass Isbel sendin’ fer him—an’ I told him he’d git run out of the Tonto. Reckon I was jest warmin’ up.... But then it all happened. He slugged Lorenzo jest one. An’ Lorenzo slid peaceful-like to bed behind the counter. I hadn’t time to think of throwin’ a gun before he whaled into me. He knocked out two of my teeth. An’ I swallered one of them.”

Bruce fell into a gloomy intensity. “Well, I was in Greaves’s store and ran into Jean Isbel. I was definitely looking for him. I had my mind set on what to do, but I started talking instead of shooting. I called him Nez Perce—and I threw all that talk about old Gass Isbel sending for him right in his face—and I warned him he’d get kicked out of the Tonto. I guess I was just getting started... But then everything changed. He hit Lorenzo just once. And Lorenzo peacefully slid down to the floor behind the counter. I didn’t have time to think about drawing my gun before he hit me. He knocked out two of my teeth. And I swallowed one of them.”

Ellen stood in the background behind three of the men and in the shadow. She did not join in the laugh that followed Bruce’s remarks. She had known that he would lie. Uncertain yet of her reaction to this, but more bitter and furious as he revealed his utter baseness, she waited for more to be said.

Ellen stood off to the side behind three of the men and in the shadows. She didn’t join in the laughter that followed Bruce’s comments. She had known he would lie. Unsure of how to react to this, but feeling more bitter and angry as he showed his complete disregard for decency, she waited for more to be said.

“Wal, I’ll be doggoned,” drawled Daggs.

“Wow, I can't believe it,” said Daggs.

“What do you make of this kind of fightin’?” queried Jorth,

“What do you think of this kind of fighting?” asked Jorth,

“Darn if I know,” replied Daggs in perplexity. “Shore an’ sartin it’s not the way of a Texan. Mebbe this young Isbel really is what old Gass swears he is. Shore Bruce ain’t nothin’ to give an edge to a real gun fighter. Looks to me like Isbel bluffed Greaves an’ his gang an’ licked your men without throwin’ a gun.”

“Damned if I know,” Daggs replied, confused. “Sure and certain it’s not how a Texan acts. Maybe this young Isbel really is what old Gass says he is. Sure, Bruce isn’t anything to give a real gunfighter an advantage. It looks to me like Isbel called Greaves and his gang’s bluff and took down your men without even drawing a gun.”

“Maybe Isbel doesn’t want the name of drawin’ first blood,” suggested Jorth.

“Maybe Isbel doesn’t want the title of being the first to draw blood,” suggested Jorth.

“That ’d be like Gass,” spoke up Rock Wells, quietly. “I onct rode fer Gass in Texas.”

“That would be like Gass,” said Rock Wells softly. “I once rode for Gass in Texas.”

“Say, Bruce,” said Daggs, “was this heah palaverin’ of yours an’ Jean Isbel’s aboot the old stock dispute? Aboot his father’s range an’ water? An’ partickler aboot, sheep?”

“Hey, Bruce,” said Daggs, “was this conversation of yours and Jean Isbel’s about the old stock dispute? About his father’s range and water? And especially about sheep?”

“Wal—I—I yelled a heap,” declared Bruce, haltingly, “but I don’t recollect all I said—I was riled.... Shore, though it was the same old argyment thet’s been fetchin’ us closer an’ closer to trouble.”

“Wal—I—I shouted a lot,” Bruce said hesitantly, “but I don’t remember everything I said—I was upset.... Sure, though, it was the same old argument that’s been bringing us closer and closer to trouble.”

Daggs removed his keen hawklike gaze from Bruce. “Wal, Jorth, all I’ll say is this. If Bruce is tellin’ the truth we ain’t got a hell of a lot to fear from this young Isbel. I’ve known a heap of gun fighters in my day. An’ Jean Isbel don’t ran true to class. Shore there never was a gunman who’d risk cripplin’ his right hand by sluggin’ anybody.”

Daggs shifted his sharp, hawklike gaze away from Bruce. “Well, Jorth, all I’ll say is this. If Bruce is telling the truth, we don’t have much to fear from this young Isbel. I’ve known a lot of gunfighters in my day. And Jean Isbel doesn’t measure up. There’s never been a gunman who’d risk crippling his right hand by hitting anyone.”

“Wal,” broke in Bruce, sullenly. “You-all can take it daid straight or not. I don’t give a damn. But you’ve shore got my hunch thet Nez Perce Isbel is liable to handle any of you fellars jest as he did me, an’ jest as easy. What’s more, he’s got Greaves figgered. An’ you-all know thet Greaves is as deep in—”

“Wal,” interrupted Bruce, gloomily. “You all can take it straight or not. I don’t care. But you’ve definitely got my feeling that Nez Perce Isbel is likely to deal with any of you guys just like he did me, and just as easily. What’s more, he understands Greaves. And you all know that Greaves is as deep in—”

“Shut up that kind of gab,” demanded Jorth, stridently. “An’ answer me. Was the row in Greaves’s barroom aboot sheep?”

“Shut up with that kind of talk,” Jorth said loudly. “And answer me. Was the commotion in Greaves’s bar about sheep?”

“Aw, hell! I said so, didn’t I?” shouted Bruce, with a fierce uplift of his distorted face.

“Aw, come on! I said that, didn't I?” shouted Bruce, his twisted face contorting with intensity.

Ellen strode out from the shadow of the tall men who had obscured her.

Ellen stepped out from the shadow of the tall men who had blocked her view.

“Bruce, y’u’re a liar,” she said, bitingly.

“Bruce, you’re a liar,” she said sharply.

The surprise of her sudden appearance seemed to root Bruce to the spot. All but the discolored places on his face turned white. He held his breath a moment, then expelled it hard. His effort to recover from the shock was painfully obvious. He stammered incoherently.

The shock of her sudden appearance seemed to freeze Bruce in place. All except the bruised spots on his face went pale. He held his breath for a moment, then exhaled sharply. His struggle to regain his composure was painfully clear. He stumbled over his words.

“Shore y’u’re more than a liar, too,” cried Ellen, facing him with blazing eyes. And the rifle, gripped in both hands, seemed to declare her intent of menace. “That row was not about sheep.... Jean Isbel didn’t beat y’u for anythin’ about sheep.... Old John Sprague was in Greaves’s store. He heard y’u. He saw Jean Isbel beat y’u as y’u deserved.... An’ he told ME!”

“Sure, you’re more than a liar, too,” Ellen shouted, glaring at him with fiery eyes. And the rifle, held firmly in both hands, seemed to signal her intent to threaten. “That fight wasn’t about sheep... Jean Isbel didn’t hit you for anything related to sheep... Old John Sprague was in Greaves’s store. He heard you. He saw Jean Isbel beat you as you deserved... And he told ME!”

Ellen saw Bruce shrink in fear of his life; and despite her fury she was filled with disgust that he could imagine she would have his blood on her hands. Then she divined that Bruce saw more in the gathering storm in her father’s eyes than he had to fear from her.

Ellen watched Bruce cower in fear for his life; and even though she was furious, she felt disgusted that he could think she would want to harm him. Then she realized that Bruce feared more from the growing anger in her father's eyes than he did from her.

“Girl, what the hell are y’u sayin’?” hoarsely called Jorth, in dark amaze.

“Girl, what the hell are you saying?” Jorth called hoarsely, in dark amazement.

“Dad, y’u leave this to me,” she retorted.

“Dad, you leave this to me,” she replied.

Daggs stepped beside Jorth, significantly on his right side. “Let her alone Lee,” he advised, coolly. “She’s shore got a hunch on Bruce.”

Daggs stepped next to Jorth, specifically on his right side. “Leave her alone, Lee,” he suggested, calmly. “She definitely has a feeling about Bruce.”

“Simm Bruce, y’u cast a dirty slur on my name,” cried Ellen, passionately.

“Simm Bruce, you’ve tarnished my reputation,” Ellen shouted passionately.

It was then that Daggs grasped Jorth’s right arm and held it tight, “Jest what I thought,” he said. “Stand still, Lee. Let’s see the kid make him showdown.”

It was then that Daggs grabbed Jorth’s right arm and held it tightly, “Just what I thought,” he said. “Stay still, Lee. Let’s see the kid make him confront him.”

“That’s what jean Isbel beat y’u for,” went on Ellen. “For slandering a girl who wasn’t there.... Me! Y’u rotten liar!”

“That’s what Jean Isbel beat you for,” Ellen continued. “For slandering a girl who wasn’t there... Me! You rotten liar!”

“But, Ellen, it wasn’t all lies,” said Bruce, huskily. “I was half drunk—an’ horrible jealous.... You know Lorenzo seen Isbel kissin’ you. I can prove thet.”

“But, Ellen, not everything was a lie,” Bruce said in a husky voice. “I was half drunk—and really jealous... You know Lorenzo saw Isbel kissing you. I can prove that.”

Ellen threw up her head and a scarlet wave of shame and wrath flooded her face.

Ellen lifted her head, and a wave of shame and anger rushed to her face.

“Yes,” she cried, ringingly. “He saw Jean Isbel kiss me. Once! ... An’ it was the only decent kiss I’ve had in years. He meant no insult. I didn’t know who he was. An’ through his kiss I learned a difference between men.... Y’u made Lorenzo lie. An’ if I had a shred of good name left in Grass Valley you dishonored it.... Y’u made him think I was your girl! Damn y’u! I ought to kill y’u.... Eat your words now—take them back—or I’ll cripple y’u for life!”

“Yes,” she exclaimed loudly. “He saw Jean Isbel kiss me. Just once! ... And it was the only decent kiss I’ve had in years. He didn’t mean any harm. I didn’t even know who he was. And through that kiss, I realized there’s a difference between men.... You made Lorenzo lie. And if I had any good reputation left in Grass Valley, you ruined it.... You made him believe I was your girl! Damn you! I should kill you.... Take back your words now—or I’ll make you pay for it!”

Ellen lowered the cocked rifle toward his feet.

Ellen pointed the cocked rifle down toward his feet.

“Shore, Ellen, I take back—all I said,” gulped Bruce. He gazed at the quivering rifle barrel and then into the face of Ellen’s father. Instinct told him where his real peril lay.

“Sure, Ellen, I take back everything I said,” Bruce stammered. He looked at the shaking rifle barrel and then into the face of Ellen’s father. Instinct warned him where his real danger was.

Here the cool and tactful Daggs showed himself master of the situation.

Here, the calm and diplomatic Daggs showed he was in control of the situation.

“Heah, listen!” he called. “Ellen, I reckon Bruce was drunk an’ out of his haid. He’s shore ate his words. Now, we don’t want any cripples in this camp. Let him alone. Your dad got me heah to lead the Jorths, an’ that’s my say to you.... Simm, you’re shore a low-down lyin’ rascal. Keep away from Ellen after this or I’ll bore you myself.... Jorth, it won’t be a bad idee for you to forget you’re a Texan till you cool off. Let Bruce stop some Isbel lead. Shore the Jorth-Isbel war is aboot on, an’ I reckon we’d be smart to believe old Gass’s talk aboot his Nez Perce son.”

“Hey, listen!” he called. “Ellen, I think Bruce was drunk and out of his mind. He’s definitely regretting what he said. Now, we don’t want any trouble in this camp. Just leave him alone. Your dad brought me here to lead the Jorths, and that’s my word to you... Simm, you’re really a low-down lying scoundrel. Stay away from Ellen from now on or I’ll take care of you myself... Jorth, it might be a good idea for you to forget you’re a Texan until you cool off. Let Bruce handle some Isbel business. The Jorth-Isbel conflict is about to start, and I think we’d be wise to pay attention to old Gass’s talk about his Nez Perce son.”




CHAPTER VI

From this hour Ellen Jorth bent all of her lately awakened intelligence and will to the only end that seemed to hold possible salvation for her. In the crisis sure to come she did not want to be blind or weak. Dreaming and indolence, habits born in her which were often a comfort to one as lonely as she, would ill fit her for the hard test she divined and dreaded. In the matter of her father’s fight she must stand by him whatever the issue or the outcome; in what pertained to her own principles, her womanhood, and her soul she stood absolutely alone.

From this moment on, Ellen Jorth focused all her recently awakened intelligence and determination on the only thing that seemed to offer her salvation. In the crisis she expected, she didn’t want to be blind or weak. Daydreaming and laziness, habits that often comforted someone as lonely as she was, would not prepare her for the tough challenge she sensed and feared. Regarding her father's struggle, she had to support him no matter what happened; when it came to her own beliefs, her womanhood, and her soul, she was completely on her own.

Therefore, Ellen put dreams aside, and indolence of mind and body behind her. Many tasks she found, and when these were done for a day she kept active in other ways, thus earning the poise and peace of labor.

Therefore, Ellen set her dreams aside and pushed away the laziness of her mind and body. She found many tasks to take on, and when those were completed for the day, she stayed active in other ways, earning the balance and tranquility that comes from hard work.

Jorth rode off every day, sometimes with one or two of the men, often with a larger number. If he spoke of such trips to Ellen it was to give an impression of visiting the ranches of his neighbors or the various sheep camps. Often he did not return the day he left. When he did get back he smelled of rum and appeared heavy from need of sleep. His horses were always dust and sweat covered. During his absences Ellen fell victim to anxious dread until he returned. Daily he grew darker and more haggard of face, more obsessed by some impending fate. Often he stayed up late, haranguing with the men in the dim-lit cabin, where they drank and smoked, but seldom gambled any more. When the men did not gamble something immediate and perturbing was on their minds. Ellen had not yet lowered herself to the deceit and suspicion of eavesdropping, but she realized that there was a climax approaching in which she would deliberately do so.

Jorth rode out every day, sometimes with one or two guys, often with more. If he mentioned these trips to Ellen, it was to give the impression he was visiting neighboring ranches or different sheep camps. Often, he didn’t come back the same day he left. When he did return, he smelled like rum and looked worn out from lack of sleep. His horses were always covered in dust and sweat. During his absences, Ellen felt anxious until he got back. Each day, he looked more haggard and obsessed with some looming fate. He often stayed up late, arguing with the guys in the dim cabin, where they drank and smoked, but rarely gambled anymore. When the men weren’t gambling, something troubling was on their minds. Ellen hadn’t resorted to the deceit and suspicion of eavesdropping yet, but she knew she was nearing a point where she would intentionally do it.

In those closing May days Ellen learned the significance of many things that previously she had taken as a matter of course. Her father did not run a ranch. There was absolutely no ranching done, and little work. Often Ellen had to chop wood herself. Jorth did not possess a plow. Ellen was bound to confess that the evidence of this lack dumfounded her. Even old John Sprague raised some hay, beets, turnips. Jorth’s cattle and horses fared ill during the winter. Ellen remembered how they used to clean up four-inch oak saplings and aspens. Many of them died in the snow. The flocks of sheep, however, were driven down into the Basin in the fall, and across the Reno Pass to Phoenix and Maricopa.

In those late May days, Ellen realized the importance of many things she had previously taken for granted. Her father didn’t run a ranch. There was absolutely no ranching happening, and not much work to do. Often, Ellen had to chop wood herself. Jorth didn’t own a plow. Ellen had to admit that the evidence of this absence amazed her. Even old John Sprague grew some hay, beets, and turnips. Jorth’s cattle and horses struggled during the winter. Ellen remembered how they used to clear out four-inch oak saplings and aspens. Many of them died in the snow. However, the flocks of sheep were driven down into the Basin in the fall and across the Reno Pass to Phoenix and Maricopa.

Ellen could not discover a fence post on the ranch, nor a piece of salt for the horses and cattle, nor a wagon, nor any sign of a sheep-shearing outfit. She had never seen any sheep sheared. Ellen could never keep track of the many and different horses running loose and hobbled round the ranch. There were droves of horses in the woods, and some of them wild as deer. According to her long-established understanding, her father and her uncles were keen on horse trading and buying.

Ellen couldn't find a fence post on the ranch, or a piece of salt for the horses and cattle, or a wagon, or any sign of a sheep-shearing setup. She had never seen sheep being sheared. Ellen could never keep track of the many different horses running loose and hobbled around the ranch. There were herds of horses in the woods, some as wild as deer. According to her long-standing understanding, her father and her uncles were really into horse trading and buying.

Then the many trails leading away from the Jorth ranch—these grew to have a fascination for Ellen; and the time came when she rode out on them to see for herself where they led. The sheep ranch of Daggs, supposed to be only a few miles across the ridges, down in Bear Canyon, never materialized at all for Ellen. This circumstance so interested her that she went up to see her friend Sprague and got him to direct her to Bear Canyon, so that she would be sure not to miss it. And she rode from the narrow, maple-thicketed head of it near the Rim down all its length. She found no ranch, no cabin, not even a corral in Bear Canyon. Sprague said there was only one canyon by that name. Daggs had assured her of the exact location on his place, and so had her father. Had they lied? Were they mistaken in the canyon? There were many canyons, all heading up near the Rim, all running and widening down for miles through the wooded mountain, and vastly different from the deep, short, yellow-walled gorges that cut into the Rim from the Basin side. Ellen investigated the canyons within six or eight miles of her home, both to east and to west. All she discovered was a couple of old log cabins, long deserted. Still, she did not follow out all the trails to their ends. Several of them led far into the deepest, roughest, wildest brakes of gorge and thicket that she had seen. No cattle or sheep had ever been driven over these trails.

Then the many trails leading away from the Jorth ranch began to fascinate Ellen, and eventually, she rode out on them to see where they led. The sheep ranch of Daggs, thought to be just a few miles across the ridges, down in Bear Canyon, never showed up for Ellen. This intrigued her so much that she went to visit her friend Sprague and asked him to point her to Bear Canyon, so she wouldn’t miss it. She rode from the narrow, maple-thicketed head of it near the Rim all the way down its length. She found no ranch, no cabin, not even a corral in Bear Canyon. Sprague mentioned there was only one canyon by that name. Daggs had assured her of the exact location on his property, and so had her father. Had they lied? Were they confused about the canyon? There were many canyons, all starting near the Rim, all running and widening down for miles through the wooded mountains, completely different from the deep, short, yellow-walled gorges that cut into the Rim from the Basin side. Ellen checked out the canyons within six or eight miles of her home, both east and west. All she found were a couple of old log cabins that had been abandoned long ago. Still, she didn’t explore all the trails to their ends. Several of them led deep into the roughest, wildest thickets and gorges she had ever seen. No cattle or sheep had ever been driven along these trails.

This riding around of Ellen’s at length got to her father’s ears. Ellen expected that a bitter quarrel would ensue, for she certainly would refuse to be confined to the camp; but her father only asked her to limit her riding to the meadow valley, and straightway forgot all about it. In fact, his abstraction one moment, his intense nervousness the next, his harder drinking and fiercer harangues with the men, grew to be distressing for Ellen. They presaged his further deterioration and the ever-present evil of the growing feud.

This news about Ellen's riding eventually reached her father. Ellen feared there would be a nasty argument, as she was determined not to stay limited to the camp; however, her father simply asked her to keep her riding to the meadow valley and then immediately forgot about it. In reality, his distraction one moment, intense nervousness the next, along with his increased drinking and more aggressive speeches to the men, became distressing for Ellen. These changes indicated his ongoing decline and the constant threat of the escalating feud.

One day Jorth rode home in the early morning, after an absence of two nights. Ellen heard the clip-clop of, horses long before she saw them.

One day, Jorth rode home in the early morning after being away for two nights. Ellen heard the clip-clop of horses long before she saw them.

“Hey, Ellen! Come out heah,” called her father.

“Hey, Ellen! Come out here,” called her father.

Ellen left her work and went outside. A stranger had ridden in with her father, a young giant whose sharp-featured face appeared marked by ferret-like eyes and a fine, light, fuzzy beard. He was long, loose jointed, not heavy of build, and he had the largest hands and feet Ellen had ever seen. Next Ellen espied a black horse they had evidently brought with them. Her father was holding a rope halter. At once the black horse struck Ellen as being a beauty and a thoroughbred.

Ellen finished her work and stepped outside. A stranger had arrived with her father, a young giant whose sharp features were accentuated by ferret-like eyes and a light, fluffy beard. He was tall and lanky, not heavily built, and he had the biggest hands and feet Ellen had ever seen. Next, Ellen noticed a black horse that they had clearly brought along. Her father was holding a rope halter. Immediately, Ellen thought the black horse was stunning and seemed like a thoroughbred.

“Ellen, heah’s a horse for you,” said Jorth, with something of pride. “I made a trade. Reckon I wanted him myself, but he’s too gentle for me an’ maybe a little small for my weight.”

“Ellen, here’s a horse for you,” said Jorth, with a hint of pride. “I made a trade. I probably wanted him for myself, but he’s too gentle for me and maybe a little small for my weight.”

Delight visited Ellen for the first time in many days. Seldom had she owned a good horse, and never one like this.

Delight came to see Ellen for the first time in many days. She had rarely owned a good horse, and never one like this.

“Oh, dad!” she exclaimed, in her gratitude.

“Oh, Dad!” she exclaimed, feeling grateful.

“Shore he’s yours on one condition,” said her father.

“Sure, he’s yours on one condition,” her father said.

“What’s that?” asked Ellen, as she laid caressing hands on the restless horse.

“What’s that?” asked Ellen, gently stroking the restless horse.

“You’re not to ride him out of the canyon.”

“You’re not to take him out of the canyon.”

“Agreed.... All daid black, isn’t he, except that white face? What’s his name, dad?

“Agreed.... All dead black, isn’t he, except for that white face? What’s his name, Dad?

“I forgot to ask,” replied Jorth, as he began unsaddling his own horse. “Slater, what’s this heah black’s name?”

“I forgot to ask,” replied Jorth, as he started unsaddling his own horse. “Slater, what’s this black's name?”

The lanky giant grinned. “I reckon it was Spades.”

The tall giant smiled. “I think it was Spades.”

“Spades?” ejaculated Ellen, blankly. “What a name! ... Well, I guess it’s as good as any. He’s shore black.”

“Spades?” Ellen exclaimed, staring blankly. “What a name! ... I guess it’s as good as any. He’s definitely black.”

“Ellen, keep him hobbled when you’re not ridin’ him,” was her father’s parting advice as he walked off with the stranger.

“Ellen, make sure he stays hobbled when you’re not riding him,” her father said as he walked off with the stranger.

Spades was wet and dusty and his satiny skin quivered. He had fine, dark, intelligent eyes that watched Ellen’s every move. She knew how her father and his friends dragged and jammed horses through the woods and over the rough trails. It did not take her long to discover that this horse had been a pet. Ellen cleaned his coat and brushed him and fed him. Then she fitted her bridle to suit his head and saddled him. His evident response to her kindness assured her that he was gentle, so she mounted and rode him, to discover he had the easiest gait she had ever experienced. He walked and trotted to suit her will, but when left to choose his own gait he fell into a graceful little pace that was very easy for her. He appeared quite ready to break into a run at her slightest bidding, but Ellen satisfied herself on this first ride with his slower gaits.

Spades was wet and dusty, and his smooth skin trembled. He had deep, dark, intelligent eyes that followed Ellen’s every move. She knew how her dad and his friends would drag and push horses through the woods and over rough trails. It didn’t take her long to figure out that this horse had once been a pet. Ellen cleaned his coat, brushed him, and fed him. Then she adjusted her bridle to fit his head and saddled him up. His clear response to her kindness reassured her that he was gentle, so she got on and rode him, finding that he had the smoothest gait she had ever felt. He walked and trotted to her command, but when allowed to choose his own pace, he settled into a graceful little stride that was very comfortable for her. He seemed completely ready to break into a run at her slightest cue, but Ellen was content with his slower gaits on this first ride.

“Spades, y’u’ve shore cut out my burro Jinny,” said Ellen, regretfully. “Well, I reckon women are fickle.”

“Spades, you’ve really taken my donkey Jinny,” said Ellen, with a hint of regret. “Well, I guess women can be unpredictable.”

Next day she rode up the canyon to show Spades to her friend John Sprague. The old burro breeder was not at home. As his door was open, however, and a fire smoldering, Ellen concluded he would soon return. So she waited. Dismounting, she left Spades free to graze on the new green grass that carpeted the ground. The cabin and little level clearing accentuated the loneliness and wildness of the forest. Ellen always liked it here and had once been in the habit of visiting the old man often. But of late she had stayed away, for the reason that Sprague’s talk and his news and his poorly hidden pity depressed her.

The next day, she rode up the canyon to show Spades to her friend John Sprague. The old burro breeder wasn't home. Since his door was open and a fire was smoldering, Ellen figured he'd be back soon. So she waited. Dismounting, she let Spades graze on the new green grass covering the ground. The cabin and the small clearing highlighted the loneliness and wildness of the forest. Ellen always liked it here and had often visited the old man. But lately, she had stayed away because Sprague's conversations, his news, and his poorly concealed pity brought her down.

Presently she heard hoof beats on the hard, packed trail leading down the canyon in the direction from which she had come. Scarcely likely was it that Sprague should return from this direction. Ellen thought her father had sent one of the herders for her. But when she caught a glimpse of the approaching horseman, down in the aspens, she failed to recognize him. After he had passed one of the openings she heard his horse stop. Probably the man had seen her; at least she could not otherwise account for his stopping. The glimpse she had of him had given her the impression that he was bending over, peering ahead in the trail, looking for tracks. Then she heard the rider come on again, more slowly this time. At length the horse trotted out into the opening, to be hauled up short. Ellen recognized the buckskin-clad figure, the broad shoulders, the dark face of Jean Isbel.

Right now, she heard hoofbeats on the hard, packed trail leading down the canyon toward where she had come from. It was unlikely that Sprague would return from that direction. Ellen thought her dad had sent one of the herders after her. But when she caught a glimpse of the approaching horseman down among the aspens, she didn’t recognize him. After he passed one of the clearings, she heard his horse stop. He must have seen her; otherwise, she couldn’t explain why he would stop. From her brief view of him, it looked like he was bending over, peering ahead on the trail, searching for tracks. Then she heard the rider continue on, more slowly this time. Finally, the horse trotted out into the clearing and came to an abrupt halt. Ellen recognized the buckskin-clad figure, the broad shoulders, and the dark face of Jean Isbel.

Ellen felt prey to the strangest quaking sensation she had ever suffered. It took violence of her new-born spirit to subdue that feeling.

Ellen experienced the strangest shaking sensation she'd ever felt. It took the strength of her newly awakened spirit to calm that feeling.

Isbel rode slowly across the clearing toward her. For Ellen his approach seemed singularly swift—so swift that her surprise, dismay, conjecture, and anger obstructed her will. The outwardly calm and cold Ellen Jorth was a travesty that mocked her—that she felt he would discern.

Isbel rode slowly across the clearing toward her. For Ellen, his approach felt incredibly fast—so fast that her surprise, disappointment, uncertainty, and anger paralyzed her. The outwardly calm and cold Ellen Jorth was a façade that mocked her, and she sensed he would see through it.

The moment Isbel drew close enough for Ellen to see his face she experienced a strong, shuddering repetition of her first shock of recognition. He was not the same. The light, the youth was gone. This, however, did not cause her emotion. Was it not a sudden transition of her nature to the dominance of hate? Ellen seemed to feel the shadow of her unknown self standing with her.

The moment Isbel got close enough for Ellen to see his face, she felt a strong wave of the shock she had first experienced when she recognized him. He was different. The brightness, the youthfulness was gone. But that didn’t make her feel any emotional impact. Was this not a sudden shift in her nature towards the power of hate? Ellen seemed to sense the shadow of her unknown self standing there with her.

Isbel halted his horse. Ellen had been standing near the trunk of a fallen pine and she instinctively backed against it. How her legs trembled! Isbel took off his cap and crushed it nervously in his bare, brown hand.

Isbel stopped his horse. Ellen had been standing by the trunk of a fallen pine, and she instinctively pressed her back against it. How her legs shook! Isbel removed his cap and nervously squeezed it in his bare, brown hand.

“Good mornin’, Miss Ellen!” he said.

“Good morning, Miss Ellen!” he said.

Ellen did not return his greeting, but queried, almost breathlessly, “Did y’u come by our ranch?”

Ellen didn’t respond to his greeting but asked, almost breathlessly, “Did you stop by our ranch?”

“No. I circled,” he replied.

“No. I circled back,” he replied.

“Jean Isbel! What do y’u want heah?” she demanded.

“Jean Isbel! What do you want here?” she demanded.

“Don’t you know?” he returned. His eyes were intensely black and piercing. They seemed to search Ellen’s very soul. To meet their gaze was an ordeal that only her rousing fury sustained.

“Don’t you know?” he replied. His eyes were deep black and piercing. They seemed to search Ellen’s very soul. Meeting their gaze was a challenge that only her rising anger kept her going.

Ellen felt on her lips a scornful allusion to his half-breed Indian traits and the reputation that had preceded him. But she could not utter it.

Ellen felt a contemptuous hint about his mixed Indian heritage and the reputation that came before him on her lips. But she couldn’t say it.

“No,” she replied.

“No,” she said.

“It’s hard to call a woman a liar,” he returned, bitterly. But you must be—seein’ you’re a Jorth.

“It’s tough to call a woman a liar,” he replied, bitterly. “But you have to—since you’re a Jorth.”

“Liar! Not to y’u, Jean Isbel,” she retorted. “I’d not lie to y’u to save my life.”

“Liar! Not to you, Jean Isbel,” she shot back. “I wouldn’t lie to you to save my life.”

He studied her with keen, sober, moody intent. The dark fire of his eyes thrilled her.

He watched her closely with serious, intense focus. The deep spark in his eyes excited her.

“If that’s true, I’m glad,” he said.

“If that’s true, I’m glad,” he said.

“Shore it’s true. I’ve no idea why y’u came heah.”

“Sure it's true. I have no idea why you came here.”

Ellen did have a dawning idea that she could not force into oblivion. But if she ever admitted it to her consciousness, she must fail in the contempt and scorn and fearlessness she chose to throw in this man’s face.

Ellen had a growing realization that she couldn't push away. But if she ever acknowledged it in her mind, she'd lose the disdain, scorn, and bravado she decided to show this man.

“Does old Sprague live here?” asked Isbel.

“Does old Sprague live here?” Isbel asked.

“Yes. I expect him back soon.... Did y’u come to see him?”

“Yeah. I expect him back soon.... Did you come to see him?”

“No.... Did Sprague tell you anythin’ about the row he saw me in?”

“No... Did Sprague tell you anything about the fight he saw me in?”

“He—did not,” replied Ellen, lying with stiff lips. She who had sworn she could not lie! She felt the hot blood leaving her heart, mounting in a wave. All her conscious will seemed impelled to deceive. What had she to hide from Jean Isbel? And a still, small voice replied that she had to hide the Ellen Jorth who had waited for him that day, who had spied upon him, who had treasured a gift she could not destroy, who had hugged to her miserable heart the fact that he had fought for her name.

“He—did not,” replied Ellen, her lips tight. She, who had sworn she couldn’t lie! She felt the heat rushing from her heart, building up inside her. All her conscious will seemed driven to deceive. What did she have to hide from Jean Isbel? And a quiet voice answered that she had to hide the Ellen Jorth who had waited for him that day, who had watched him, who had cherished a gift she couldn’t throw away, who had clung to her miserable heart the fact that he had fought for her name.

“I’m glad of that,” Isbel was saying, thoughtfully.

“I’m glad to hear that,” Isbel said, thoughtfully.

“Did you come heah to see me?” interrupted Ellen. She felt that she could not endure this reiterated suggestion of fineness, of consideration in him. She would betray herself—betray what she did not even realize herself. She must force other footing—and that should be the one of strife between the Jorths and Isbels.

“Did you come here to see me?” interrupted Ellen. She felt that she couldn’t handle this constant suggestion of his kindness and thoughtfulness. She would reveal her true feelings—feelings she wasn’t even fully aware of herself. She had to change the dynamics—and it should be one of conflict between the Jorths and Isbels.

“No—honest, I didn’t, Miss Ellen,” he rejoined, humbly. “I’ll tell you, presently, why I came. But it wasn’t to see you.... I don’t deny I wanted ... but that’s no matter. You didn’t meet me that day on the Rim.”

“No—seriously, I didn’t, Miss Ellen,” he replied, modestly. “I’ll explain soon why I came. But it wasn’t to see you.... I won’t deny I wanted to... but that’s beside the point. You didn’t meet me that day on the Rim.”

“Meet y’u!” she echoed, coldly. “Shore y’u never expected me?”

“Nice to meet you!” she repeated, coldly. “Sure you never expected me?”

“Somehow I did,” he replied, with those penetrating eyes on her. “I put somethin’ in your tent that day. Did you find it?”

“Somehow I did,” he replied, his intense gaze locked on her. “I put something in your tent that day. Did you find it?”

“Yes,” she replied, with the same casual coldness.

“Yes,” she replied, with the same casual indifference.

“What did you do with it?”

“What did you do with it?”

“I kicked it out, of course,” she replied.

“I kicked it out, of course,” she said.

She saw him flinch.

She noticed him flinch.

“And you never opened it?”

“And you never opened it?”

“Certainly not,” she retorted, as if forced. “Doon’t y’u know anythin’ about—about people? ... Shore even if y’u are an Isbel y’u never were born in Texas.”

“Of course not,” she shot back, as if she had to. “Don’t you know anything about—about people? ... Sure, even if you are an Isbel, you were never born in Texas.”

“Thank God I wasn’t!” he replied. “I was born in a beautiful country of green meadows and deep forests and white rivers, not in a barren desert where men live dry and hard as the cactus. Where I come from men don’t live on hate. They can forgive.”

“Thank God I wasn’t!” he replied. “I was born in a beautiful country of green meadows, deep forests, and clear rivers, not in a barren desert where people live dry and tough like the cactus. Where I come from, people don’t survive on hate. They can forgive.”

“Forgive! ... Could y’u forgive a Jorth?”

“Forgive! ... Can you forgive a Jorth?”

“Yes, I could.”

"Yeah, I could."

“Shore that’s easy to say—with the wrongs all on your side,” she declared, bitterly.

“Sure, that's easy for you to say—especially when all the faults are on your side,” she said, bitterly.

“Ellen Jorth, the first wrong was on your side,” retorted Jean, his voice fall. “Your father stole my father’s sweetheart—by lies, by slander, by dishonor, by makin’ terrible love to her in his absence.”

“Ellen Jorth, the first mistake was yours,” Jean shot back, his voice low. “Your dad took my dad’s girlfriend—through lies, through slander, through dishonor, by making a big romantic move on her while he was away.”

“It’s a lie,” cried Ellen, passionately.

“It’s a lie,” Ellen shouted, passionately.

“It is not,” he declared, solemnly.

"It isn't," he said seriously.

“Jean Isbel, I say y’u lie!”

“Jean Isbel, I say you’re lying!”

“No! I say you’ve been lied to,” he thundered.

“No! I’m telling you, you’ve been lied to,” he shouted.

The tremendous force of his spirit seemed to fling truth at Ellen. It weakened her.

The powerful energy of his spirit felt like it was throwing truth at Ellen. It made her feel weak.

“But—mother loved dad—best.”

“But—mom loved dad—most.”

“Yes, afterward. No wonder, poor woman! ... But it was the action of your father and your mother that ruined all these lives. You’ve got to know the truth, Ellen Jorth.... All the years of hate have borne their fruit. God Almighty can never save us now. Blood must be spilled. The Jorths and the Isbels can’t live on the same earth.... And you’ve got to know the truth because the worst of this hell falls on you and me.”

“Yes, later. No surprise, poor woman! ... But it was your father and mother’s actions that destroyed all these lives. You need to know the truth, Ellen Jorth.... All those years of hatred have taken their toll. God can’t save us now. Blood has to be shed. The Jorths and the Isbels can’t coexist on the same land.... And you need to know the truth because the worst of this hell is on you and me.”

The hate that he spoke of alone upheld her.

The hate he talked about was what kept her going.

“Never, Jean Isbel!” she cried. “I’ll never know truth from y’u.... I’ll never share anythin’ with y’u—not even hell.”

“Never, Jean Isbel!” she shouted. “I’ll never know what’s true with you.... I won’t share anything with you—not even hell.”

Isbel dismounted and stood before her, still holding his bridle reins. The bay horse champed his bit and tossed his head.

Isbel got off his horse and faced her, still holding the reins. The bay horse chewed on his bit and shook his head.

“Why do you hate me so?” he asked. “I just happen to be my father’s son. I never harmed you or any of your people. I met you ... fell in love with you in a flash—though I never knew it till after.... Why do you hate me so terribly?”

“Why do you hate me so much?” he asked. “I’m just my father’s son. I never hurt you or any of your people. I met you ... fell in love with you instantly—though I didn't realize it until later.... Why do you hate me so deeply?”

Ellen felt a heavy, stifling pressure within her breast. “Y’u’re an Isbel.... Doon’t speak of love to me.”

Ellen felt a heavy, suffocating weight in her chest. “You're an Isbel... Don’t talk to me about love.”

“I didn’t intend to. But your—your hate seems unnatural. And we’ll probably never meet again.... I can’t help it. I love you. Love at first sight! Jean Isbel and Ellen Jorth! Strange, isn’t it? ... It was all so strange. My meetin’ you so lonely and unhappy, my seein’ you so sweet and beautiful, my thinkin’ you so good in spite of—”

“I didn’t mean to. But your—your anger feels unnatural. And we probably won’t see each other again... I can’t help it. I love you. Love at first sight! Jean Isbel and Ellen Jorth! Isn’t it kind of strange? ... Everything was so unusual. Meeting you when I was so lonely and unhappy, seeing you as so sweet and beautiful, thinking of you as so good despite—”

“Shore it was strange,” interrupted Ellen, with scornful laugh. She had found her defense. In hurting him she could hide her own hurt. “Thinking me so good in spite of— Ha-ha! And I said I’d been kissed before!”

“Sure, it was weird,” interrupted Ellen with a mocking laugh. She had found her defense. By hurting him, she could hide her own pain. “Thinking I’m so good despite— Ha-ha! And I said I’d been kissed before!”

“Yes, in spite of everything,” he said.

"Yeah, despite everything," he said.

Ellen could not look at him as he loomed over her. She felt a wild tumult in her heart. All that crowded to her lips for utterance was false.

Ellen couldn't meet his gaze as he towered over her. She felt a chaotic storm in her heart. Everything that rushed to her lips to say felt untrue.

“Yes—kissed before I met you—and since,” she said, mockingly. “And I laugh at what y’u call love, Jean Isbel.”

“Yes—kissed before I met you—and since,” she said, teasingly. “And I laugh at what you call love, Jean Isbel.”

“Laugh if you want—but believe it was sweet, honorable—the best in me,” he replied, in deep earnestness.

“Laugh if you want—but know that it was genuine, honorable—the best part of me,” he replied, with deep sincerity.

“Bah!” cried Ellen, with all the force of her pain and shame and hate.

“Ugh!” cried Ellen, filled with all her pain, shame, and hatred.

“By Heaven, you must be different from what I thought!” exclaimed Isbel, huskily.

“By Heaven, you have to be different from what I thought!” exclaimed Isbel, in a husky voice.

“Shore if I wasn’t, I’d make myself.... Now, Mister Jean Isbel, get on your horse an’ go!”

“Sure if I wasn’t, I’d make myself.... Now, Mister Jean Isbel, get on your horse and go!”

Something of composure came to Ellen with these words of dismissal, and she glanced up at him with half-veiled eyes. His changed aspect prepared her for some blow.

Something of calmness came to Ellen with these words of dismissal, and she looked up at him with partially hidden eyes. His altered appearance prepared her for some shock.

“That’s a pretty black horse.”

“That’s a nice black horse.”

“Yes,” replied Ellen, blankly.

“Yes,” Ellen replied, blankly.

“Do you like him?”

"Are you into him?"

“I—I love him.”

"I love him."

“All right, I’ll give him to you then. He’ll have less work and kinder treatment than if I used him. I’ve got some pretty hard rides ahead of me.”

“All right, I'll hand him over to you then. He'll have less work and better treatment than if I kept him. I've got some tough rides ahead of me.”

“Y’u—y’u give—” whispered Ellen, slowly stiffening. “Yes. He’s mine,” replied Isbel. With that he turned to whistle. Spades threw up his head, snorted, and started forward at a trot. He came faster the closer he got, and if ever Ellen saw the joy of a horse at sight of a beloved master she saw it then. Isbel laid a hand on the animal’s neck and caressed him, then, turning back to Ellen, he went on speaking: “I picked him from a lot of fine horses of my father’s. We got along well. My sister Ann rode him a good deal.... He was stolen from our pasture day before yesterday. I took his trail and tracked him up here. Never lost his trail till I got to your ranch, where I had to circle till I picked it up again.”

“Y-y-you give—” whispered Ellen, slowly stiffening. “Yes. He’s mine,” replied Isbel. With that, he turned to whistle. Spades raised his head, snorted, and started forward at a trot. He came faster the closer he got, and if Ellen ever saw the joy of a horse at the sight of a beloved master, she saw it then. Isbel laid a hand on the animal’s neck and petted him, then, turning back to Ellen, he continued speaking: “I picked him from a group of fine horses my father owned. We got along well. My sister Ann rode him a lot... He was stolen from our pasture the day before yesterday. I followed his trail and tracked him up here. I never lost his trail until I got to your ranch, where I had to circle until I picked it up again.”

“Stolen—pasture—tracked him up heah?” echoed Ellen, without any evidence of emotion whatever. Indeed, she seemed to have been turned to stone.

“Stolen—pasture—tracked him up here?” echoed Ellen, without showing any emotion at all. In fact, she seemed completely turned to stone.

“Trackin’ him was easy. I wish for your sake it ’d been impossible,” he said, bluntly.

“Tracking him was easy. I wish for your sake it had been impossible,” he said, bluntly.

“For my sake?” she echoed, in precisely the same tone,

“For my sake?” she repeated, using exactly the same tone,

Manifestly that tone irritated Isbel beyond control. He misunderstood it. With a hand far from gentle he pushed her bent head back so he could look into her face.

Manifestly that tone irritated Isbel beyond control. He misunderstood it. With a rough hand, he pushed her bent head back so he could look into her face.

“Yes, for your sake!” he declared, harshly. “Haven’t you sense enough to see that? ... What kind of a game do you think you can play with me?”

“Yes, for your sake!” he said, sharply. “Don’t you have enough sense to see that? ... What kind of game do you think you can play with me?”

“Game I ... Game of what?” she asked.

“Game I ... Game of what?” she asked.

“Why, a—a game of ignorance—innocence—any old game to fool a man who’s tryin’ to be decent.”

“Why, a—a game of ignorance—innocence—any old game to trick a man who’s trying to be decent.”

This time Ellen mutely looked her dull, blank questioning. And it inflamed Isbel.

This time, Ellen silently met her dull, empty gaze filled with questions. And it infuriated Isbel.

“You know your father’s a horse thief!” he thundered.

“You know your dad’s a horse thief!” he shouted.

Outwardly Ellen remained the same. She had been prepared for an unknown and a terrible blow. It had fallen. And her face, her body, her hands, locked with the supreme fortitude of pride and sustained by hate, gave no betrayal of the crashing, thundering ruin within her mind and soul. Motionless she leaned there, meeting the piercing fire of Isbel’s eyes, seeing in them a righteous and terrible scorn. In one flash the naked truth seemed blazed at her. The faith she had fostered died a sudden death. A thousand perplexing problems were solved in a second of whirling, revealing thought.

Outwardly, Ellen looked the same. She had been bracing herself for an unknown and devastating blow. It had hit her. And her face, her body, her hands, rigid with an overwhelming sense of pride and fueled by hatred, revealed nothing of the crashing, thunderous destruction inside her mind and soul. She stood still, facing the piercing intensity of Isbel’s eyes, recognizing in them a righteous and fierce scorn. In an instant, the stark truth struck her. The belief she had nurtured died a quick death. A thousand confusing problems were resolved in a moment of whirlwind, clarifying thought.

“Ellen Jorth, you know your father’s in with this Hash Knife Gang of rustlers,” thundered Isbel.

“Ellen Jorth, you know your dad is involved with that Hash Knife Gang of cattle rustlers,” shouted Isbel.

“Shore,” she replied, with the cool, easy, careless defiance of a Texan.

“Sure,” she replied, with the cool, easy, careless defiance of a Texan.

“You know he’s got this Daggs to lead his faction against the Isbels?”

“You know he has this Daggs to lead his group against the Isbels?”

“Shore.”

“Beach.”

“You know this talk of sheepmen buckin’ the cattlemen is all a blind?”

“You know this talk about sheep farmers pushing back against the cattle ranchers is all a joke?”

“Shore,” reiterated Ellen.

"Sure," reiterated Ellen.

Isbel gazed darkly down upon her. With his anger spent for the moment, he appeared ready to end the interview. But he seemed fascinated by the strange look of her, by the incomprehensible something she emanated. Havoc gleamed in his pale, set face. He shook his dark head and his broad hand went to his breast.

Isbel looked down at her with a dark expression. With his anger momentarily faded, he seemed about to wrap up the conversation. However, he appeared intrigued by her unusual appearance, by the mysterious vibe she gave off. Chaos sparkled in his pale, rigid face. He shook his dark head, and his large hand went to his chest.

“To think I fell in love with such as you!” he exclaimed, and his other hand swept out in a tragic gesture of helpless pathos and impotence.

“To think I fell in love with someone like you!” he exclaimed, and his other hand swept out in a dramatic gesture of helplessness and frustration.

The hell Isbel had hinted at now possessed Ellen—body, mind, and soul. Disgraced, scorned by an Isbel! Yet loved by him! In that divination there flamed up a wild, fierce passion to hurt, to rend, to flay, to fling back upon him a stinging agony. Her thought flew upon her like whips. Pride of the Jorths! Pride of the old Texan blue blood! It lay dead at her feet, killed by the scornful words of the last of that family to whom she owed her degradation. Daughter of a horse thief and rustler! Dark and evil and grim set the forces within her, accepting her fate, damning her enemies, true to the blood of the Jorths. The sins of the father must be visited upon the daughter.

The hell Isbel had alluded to now consumed Ellen—body, mind, and soul. Disgraced, ridiculed by an Isbel! Yet loved by him! In that insight, a wild, intense desire arose to hurt, to tear apart, to flay, to throw back at him a sharp pain. Her thoughts attacked her like whips. Pride of the Jorths! Pride of the old Texan blue blood! It lay dead at her feet, killed by the contemptuous words of the last of that family to whom she owed her downfall. Daughter of a horse thief and rustler! Dark and evil and grim, the forces within her accepted her fate, cursed her enemies, loyal to the blood of the Jorths. The sins of the father must be passed down to the daughter.

“Shore y’u might have had me—that day on the Rim—if y’u hadn’t told your name,” she said, mockingly, and she gazed into his eyes with all the mystery of a woman’s nature.

“Sure you might have had me—that day on the Rim—if you hadn’t told your name,” she said, mockingly, and she looked into his eyes with all the mystery of a woman’s nature.

Isbel’s powerful frame shook as with an ague. “Girl, what do you mean?”

Isbel’s strong body trembled like she had a chill. “Girl, what do you mean?”

“Shore, I’d have been plumb fond of havin’ y’u make up to me,” she drawled. It possessed her now with irresistible power, this fact of the love he could not help. Some fiendish woman’s satisfaction dwelt in her consciousness of her power to kill the noble, the faithful, the good in him.

“Sure, I would’ve really liked it if you’d shown some affection for me,” she said slowly. It now held an undeniable influence over her, this realization of the love he couldn't escape. A wicked sense of satisfaction lingered in her awareness of her ability to destroy the noble, the loyal, the good in him.

“Ellen Jorth, you lie!” he burst out, hoarsely.

“Ellen Jorth, you’re lying!” he exclaimed, hoarsely.

“Jean, shore I’d been a toy and a rag for these rustlers long enough. I was tired of them.... I wanted a new lover.... And if y’u hadn’t give yourself away—”

“Jean, I’ve been a plaything and a pawn for these rustlers long enough. I was done with them.... I wanted a new lover.... And if you hadn’t given yourself away—”

Isbel moved so swiftly that she did not realize his intention until his hard hand smote her mouth. Instantly she tasted the hot, salty blood from a cut lip.

Isbel moved so quickly that she didn’t notice his intention until his strong hand hit her mouth. Immediately, she tasted the warm, salty blood from a cut on her lip.

“Shut up, you hussy!” he ordered, roughly. “Have you no shame? ... My sister Ann spoke well of you. She made excuses—she pitied you.”

“Shut up, you hussy!” he commanded, harshly. “Do you have no shame? ... My sister Ann had good things to say about you. She defended you—she felt sorry for you.”

That for Ellen seemed the culminating blow under which she almost sank. But one moment longer could she maintain this unnatural and terrible poise.

That felt like the final blow to Ellen, almost causing her to sink. But she could only hold on to this unnatural and terrible balance for one more moment.

“Jean Isbel—go along with y’u,” she said, impatiently. “I’m waiting heah for Simm Bruce!”

“Jean Isbel—go on with you,” she said, impatiently. “I’m waiting here for Simm Bruce!”

At last it was as if she struck his heart. Because of doubt of himself and a stubborn faith in her, his passion and jealousy were not proof against this last stab. Instinctive subtlety inherent in Ellen had prompted the speech that tortured Isbel. How the shock to him rebounded on her! She gasped as he lunged for her, too swift for her to move a hand. One arm crushed round her like a steel band; the other, hard across her breast and neck, forced her head back. Then she tried to wrestle away. But she was utterly powerless. His dark face bent down closer and closer. Suddenly Ellen ceased trying to struggle. She was like a stricken creature paralyzed by the piercing, hypnotic eyes of a snake. Yet in spite of her terror, if he meant death by her, she welcomed it.

At last, it felt like she had struck his heart. Because he doubted himself and stubbornly believed in her, his passion and jealousy couldn't withstand this final blow. The instinctive subtlety in Ellen had prompted the words that tortured Isbel. How the shock to him bounced back on her! She gasped as he lunged for her, too quick for her to even lift a hand. One arm wrapped around her like a steel band; the other pressed hard against her breast and neck, forcing her head back. Then she tried to break free. But she was completely powerless. His dark face loomed closer and closer. Suddenly, Ellen stopped struggling. She was like a wounded creature paralyzed by the piercing, hypnotic gaze of a snake. Yet in spite of her fear, if he intended to kill her, she welcomed it.

“Ellen Jorth, I’m thinkin’ yet—you lie!” he said, low and tense between his teeth.

“Ellen Jorth, I’m still thinking about it—you’re lying!” he said, quietly and tightly through his teeth.

“No! No!” she screamed, wildly. Her nerve broke there. She could no longer meet those terrible black eyes. Her passionate denial was not only the last of her shameful deceit; it was the woman of her, repudiating herself and him, and all this sickening, miserable situation.

“No! No!” she screamed frantically. Her resolve crumbled there. She could no longer face those awful black eyes. Her intense denial was not just the end of her shameful lies; it was the woman inside her rejecting both herself and him, along with this disgusting, miserable situation.

Isbel took her literally. She had convinced him. And the instant held blank horror for Ellen.

Isbel took her seriously. She had persuaded him. And that moment was filled with pure dread for Ellen.

“By God—then I’ll have somethin’—of you anyway!” muttered Isbel, thickly.

“By God—then I’ll have something—of you anyway!” muttered Isbel, thickly.

Ellen saw the blood bulge in his powerful neck. She saw his dark, hard face, strange now, fearful to behold, come lower and lower, till it blurred and obstructed her gaze. She felt the swell and ripple and stretch—then the bind of his muscles, like huge coils of elastic rope. Then with savage rude force his mouth closed on hers. All Ellen’s senses reeled, as if she were swooning. She was suffocating. The spasm passed, and a bursting spurt of blood revived her to acute and terrible consciousness. For the endless period of one moment he held her so that her breast seemed crushed. His kisses burned and braised her lips. And then, shifting violently to her neck, they pressed so hard that she choked under them. It was as if a huge bat had fastened upon her throat.

Ellen saw the blood pulse in his strong neck. She noticed his dark, tough face, which looked strange now, frightening to see, come closer and closer until it blurred and blocked her view. She felt the swell, ripple, and stretch—then the tightness of his muscles, like massive coils of elastic rope. Then, with brutal force, his mouth closed on hers. All of Ellen’s senses spun, as if she were fainting. She felt like she couldn’t breathe. The sudden jolt passed, and a rush of blood brought her back to sharp and intense awareness. For what felt like an eternity in one moment, he held her so tightly that it felt like her chest was being crushed. His kisses burned and seared her lips. Then, suddenly shifting to her neck, they pressed down hard enough that she struggled to breathe beneath them. It was as if a giant bat had latched onto her throat.

Suddenly the remorseless binding embraces—the hot and savage kisses—fell away from her. Isbel had let go. She saw him throw up his hands, and stagger back a little, all the while with his piercing gaze on her. His face had been dark purple: now it was white.

Suddenly, the relentless grip—the intense and fierce kisses—released her. Isbel had pulled away. She saw him raise his hands and stagger back slightly, all the while keeping his piercing gaze fixed on her. His face had been a dark purple; now it was pale.

“No—Ellen Jorth,” he panted, “I don’t—want any of you—that way.” And suddenly he sank on the log and covered his face with his hands. “What I loved in you—was what I thought—you were.”

“Not at all—Ellen Jorth,” he gasped, “I don’t—want any of you—like that.” And suddenly he collapsed onto the log and hid his face in his hands. “What I loved about you—was what I thought—you were.”

Like a wildcat Ellen sprang upon him, beating him with her fists, tearing at his hair, scratching his face, in a blind fury. Isbel made no move to stop her, and her violence spent itself with her strength. She swayed back from him, shaking so that she could scarcely stand.

Like a wildcat, Ellen pounced on him, hitting him with her fists, yanking at his hair, scratching his face in a blind rage. Isbel didn’t try to stop her, and her anger faded as her strength gave out. She stumbled back from him, shaking so much that she could barely stand.

“Y’u—damned—Isbel!” she gasped, with hoarse passion. “Y’u insulted me!”

“Damn you, Isbel!” she gasped, her voice hoarse with emotion. “You insulted me!”

“Insulted you?...” laughed Isbel, in bitter scorn. “It couldn’t be done.”

“Insulted you?...” laughed Isbel, in bitter scorn. “That’s impossible.”

“Oh! ... I’ll KILL y’u!” she hissed.

“Oh! ... I’ll KILL you!” she hissed.

Isbel stood up and wiped the red scratches on his face. “Go ahead. There’s my gun,” he said, pointing to his saddle sheath. “Somebody’s got to begin this Jorth-Isbel feud. It’ll be a dirty business. I’m sick of it already.... Kill me! ... First blood for Ellen Jorth!”

Isbel stood up and wiped the red scratches on his face. “Go ahead. There’s my gun,” he said, pointing to his saddle sheath. “Somebody’s got to start this Jorth-Isbel feud. It’s going to be a messy business. I’m already tired of it... Just kill me! ... First blood for Ellen Jorth!”

Suddenly the dark grim tide that had seemed to engulf Ellen’s very soul cooled and receded, leaving her without its false strength. She began to sag. She stared at Isbel’s gun. “Kill him,” whispered the retreating voices of her hate. But she was as powerless as if she were still held in Jean Isbel’s giant embrace.

Suddenly, the heavy darkness that had seemed to consume Ellen’s very being faded away, leaving her without its false strength. She started to weaken. She looked at Isbel’s gun. “Kill him,” whispered the retreating voices of her anger. But she felt just as powerless as if she were still trapped in Jean Isbel’s massive grip.

“I—I want to—kill y’u,” she whispered, “but I cain’t.... Leave me.”

“I—I want to—kill you,” she whispered, “but I can’t.... Leave me.”

“You’re no Jorth—the same as I’m no Isbel. We oughtn’t be mixed in this deal,” he said, somberly. “I’m sorrier for you than I am for myself.... You’re a girl.... You once had a good mother—a decent home. And this life you’ve led here—mean as it’s been—is nothin’ to what you’ll face now. Damn the men that brought you to this! I’m goin’ to kill some of them.”

“You’re no Jorth—just like I’m no Isbel. We shouldn’t be caught up in this mess,” he said seriously. “I feel worse for you than I do for myself... You’re a girl... You once had a good mother—a decent home. And the life you’ve had here—hard as it’s been—is nothing compared to what you’ll face now. Damn the men who put you in this situation! I’m going to take out some of them.”

With that he mounted and turned away. Ellen called out for him to take his horse. He did not stop nor look back. She called again, but her voice was fainter, and Isbel was now leaving at a trot. Slowly she sagged against the tree, lower and lower. He headed into the trail leading up the canyon. How strange a relief Ellen felt! She watched him ride into the aspens and start up the slope, at last to disappear in the pines. It seemed at the moment that he took with him something which had been hers. A pain in her head dulled the thoughts that wavered to and fro. After he had gone she could not see so well. Her eyes were tired. What had happened to her? There was blood on her hands. Isbel’s blood! She shuddered. Was it an omen? Lower she sank against the tree and closed her eyes.

With that, he got on his horse and turned away. Ellen called out for him to take his horse. He didn’t stop or look back. She called again, but her voice was quieter now, and Isbel was leaving at a trot. Slowly, she leaned against the tree, lower and lower. He followed the trail leading up the canyon. How strangely relieved Ellen felt! She watched him ride into the aspens and start up the slope, finally disappearing into the pines. It seemed, in that moment, that he took something with him that had belonged to her. A pain in her head dulled the thoughts that flickered back and forth. After he left, her vision became blurry. Her eyes were tired. What had happened to her? There was blood on her hands. Isbel’s blood! She shuddered. Was it a bad sign? She sank lower against the tree and closed her eyes.

Old John Sprague did not return. Hours dragged by—dark hours for Ellen Jorth lying prostrate beside the tree, hiding the blue sky and golden sunlight from her eyes. At length the lethargy of despair, the black dull misery wore away; and she gradually returned to a condition of coherent thought.

Old John Sprague didn’t come back. Hours dragged on—dark hours for Ellen Jorth lying flat beside the tree, blocking out the blue sky and golden sunlight from her eyes. Eventually, the heaviness of despair and the deep misery faded; and she slowly regained a state of clear thinking.

What had she learned? Sight of the black horse grazing near seemed to prompt the trenchant replies. Spades belonged to Jean Isbel. He had been stolen by her father or by one of her father’s accomplices. Isbel’s vaunted cunning as a tracker had been no idle boast. Her father was a horse thief, a rustler, a sheepman only as a blind, a consort of Daggs, leader of the Hash Knife Gang. Ellen well remembered the ill repute of that gang, way back in Texas, years ago. Her father had gotten in with this famous band of rustlers to serve his own ends—the extermination of the Isbels. It was all very plain now to Ellen.

What had she learned? The sight of the black horse grazing nearby seemed to trigger sharp memories. Spades belonged to Jean Isbel. He had been taken by her father or one of his accomplices. Isbel’s claimed skill as a tracker was no empty brag. Her father was a horse thief, a rustler, posing as a sheepman, and was involved with Daggs, the leader of the Hash Knife Gang. Ellen clearly remembered the notorious reputation of that gang from back in Texas, years ago. Her father had aligned himself with this infamous group of rustlers to pursue his own agenda—the elimination of the Isbels. Everything became very clear to Ellen now.

“Daughter of a horse thief an’ rustler!” she muttered.

“Daughter of a horse thief and cattle rustler!” she muttered.

And her thoughts sped back to the days of her girlhood. Only the very early stage of that time had been happy. In the light of Isbel’s revelation the many changes of residence, the sudden moves to unsettled parts of Texas, the periods of poverty and sudden prosperity, all leading to the final journey to this God-forsaken Arizona—these were now seen in their true significance. As far back as she could remember her father had been a crooked man. And her mother had known it. He had dragged her to her ruin. That degradation had killed her. Ellen realized that with poignant sorrow, with a sudden revolt against her father. Had Gaston Isbel truly and dishonestly started her father on his downhill road? Ellen wondered. She hated the Isbels with unutterable and growing hate, yet she had it in her to think, to ponder, to weigh judgments in their behalf. She owed it to something in herself to be fair. But what did it matter who was to blame for the Jorth-Isbel feud? Somehow Ellen was forced to confess that deep in her soul it mattered terribly. To be true to herself—the self that she alone knew—she must have right on her side. If the Jorths were guilty, and she clung to them and their creed, then she would be one of them.

And her thoughts raced back to her childhood. Only the early part of that time had been happy. With Isbel’s revelation, the many moves, the sudden relocations to unsettled areas of Texas, the times of poverty followed by sudden wealth, all leading to the final journey to this God-forsaken Arizona—these were now seen in their true light. As far back as she could remember, her father had been a dishonest man. And her mother had known it. He had led her to her downfall. That degradation had destroyed her. Ellen realized this with deep sadness, along with a sudden anger towards her father. Did Gaston Isbel truly and dishonestly set her father on the path to ruin? Ellen wondered. She hated the Isbels with an intense and growing hatred, yet she had the capacity to think, to reflect, to consider their perspective. She owed it to something within herself to be fair. But what did it matter who was to blame for the Jorth-Isbel feud? Somehow Ellen was forced to admit that deep down, it mattered immensely. To be true to herself—the self that she alone understood—she needed to have justice on her side. If the Jorths were guilty and she held onto them and their beliefs, then she would be one of them.

“But I’m not,” she mused, aloud. “My name’s Jorth, an’ I reckon I have bad blood.... But it never came out in me till to-day. I’ve been honest. I’ve been good—yes, GOOD, as my mother taught me to be—in spite of all.... Shore my pride made me a fool.... An’ now have I any choice to make? I’m a Jorth. I must stick to my father.”

“But I’m not,” she thought out loud. “My name's Jorth, and I guess I have bad blood... But it never showed until today. I’ve been honest. I’ve been good—yes, GOOD, like my mother taught me to be—despite everything... Sure, my pride made me a fool... And now do I have any choice to make? I’m a Jorth. I have to stick with my father.”

All this summing up, however, did not wholly account for the pang in her breast.

All this reflecting, however, did not completely explain the ache in her chest.

What had she done that day? And the answer beat in her ears like a great throbbing hammer-stroke. In an agony of shame, in the throes of hate, she had perjured herself. She had sworn away her honor. She had basely made herself vile. She had struck ruthlessly at the great heart of a man who loved her. Ah! That thrust had rebounded to leave this dreadful pang in her breast. Loved her? Yes, the strange truth, the insupportable truth! She had to contend now, not with her father and her disgrace, not with the baffling presence of Jean Isbel, but with the mysteries of her own soul. Wonder of all wonders was it that such love had been born for her. Shame worse than all other shame was it that she should kill it by a poisoned lie. By what monstrous motive had she done that? To sting Isbel as he had stung her! But that had been base. Never could she have stooped so low except in a moment of tremendous tumult. If she had done sore injury to Isbel what bad she done to herself? How strange, how tenacious had been his faith in her honor! Could she ever forget? She must forget it. But she could never forget the way he had scorned those vile men in Greaves’s store—the way he had beaten Bruce for defiling her name—the way he had stubbornly denied her own insinuations. She was a woman now. She had learned something of the complexity of a woman’s heart. She could not change nature. And all her passionate being thrilled to the manhood of her defender. But even while she thrilled she acknowledged her hate. It was the contention between the two that caused the pang in her breast. “An’ now what’s left for me?” murmured Ellen. She did not analyze the significance of what had prompted that query. The most incalculable of the day’s disclosures was the wrong she had done herself. “Shore I’m done for, one way or another.... I must stick to Dad.... or kill myself?”

What had she done that day? The answer pounded in her ears like a heavy hammer. In a wave of shame, overwhelmed by hate, she had betrayed herself. She had sworn away her honor. She had made herself despicable. She had ruthlessly attacked the heart of a man who loved her. Ah! That blow had come back to leave this terrible pain in her chest. Loved her? Yes, the strange truth, the unbearable truth! She now had to deal not only with her father and her shame, not just with the confusing presence of Jean Isbel, but with the mysteries of her own soul. It was a wonder that such love had been born for her. It was worse than any shame that she would destroy it with a poisonous lie. What monstrous motive had driven her to do that? To hurt Isbel as he had hurt her! But that was despicable. She could never have stooped so low except in a moment of overwhelming chaos. If she had deeply injured Isbel, how badly had she hurt herself? How strange and persistent had been his faith in her honor! Could she ever forget? She had to forget it. But she could never forget how he had scorned those vile men in Greaves’s store—the way he had beaten Bruce for tarnishing her name—the way he had stubbornly denied her own insinuations. She was a woman now. She had learned something about the complexity of a woman’s heart. She could not change her nature. And all her passionate being responded to the manliness of her defender. Yet even while she felt that thrill, she acknowledged her hate. It was the conflict between the two that caused the pain in her chest. “And now what’s left for me?” Ellen murmured. She didn’t analyze what had prompted that question. The most unpredictable revelation of the day was the harm she had done to herself. “Sure I’m done for, one way or another.... I must stick with Dad.... or kill myself?”

Ellen rode Spades back to the ranch. She rode like the wind. When she swung out of the trail into the open meadow in plain sight of the ranch her appearance created a commotion among the loungers before the cabin. She rode Spades at a full run.

Ellen rode Spades back to the ranch. She rode at full speed. When she darted off the trail into the open meadow, clearly visible to the ranch, her arrival caused a stir among the people lounging in front of the cabin. She pushed Spades to a full gallop.

“Who’s after you?” yelled her father, as she pulled the black to a halt. Jorth held a rifle. Daggs, Colter, the other Jorths were there, likewise armed, and all watchful, strung with expectancy.

“Who’s after you?” yelled her father as she brought the black to a stop. Jorth held a rifle. Daggs, Colter, and the other Jorths were there, also armed and all alert, filled with anticipation.

“Shore nobody’s after me,” replied Ellen. “Cain’t I run a horse round heah without being chased?”

“Sure nobody’s after me,” replied Ellen. “Can’t I ride a horse around here without being chased?”

Jorth appeared both incensed and relieved.

Jorth looked both furious and relieved.

“Hah! ... What you mean, girl, runnin’ like a streak right down on us? You’re actin’ queer these days, an’ you look queer. I’m not likin’ it.”

“Hah! ... What do you mean, girl, running like a streak right toward us? You’re acting strange these days, and you look strange. I’m not liking it.”

“Reckon these are queer times—for the Jorths,” replied Ellen, sarcastically.

“Guess these are strange times—for the Jorths,” replied Ellen, sarcastically.

“Daggs found strange horse tracks crossin’ the meadow,” said her father. “An’ that worried us. Some one’s been snoopin’ round the ranch. An’ when we seen you runnin’ so wild we shore thought you was bein’ chased.”

“Daggs found strange horse tracks crossing the meadow,” said her father. “And that worried us. Someone’s been snooping around the ranch. And when we saw you running so wildly, we really thought you were being chased.”

“No. I was only trying out Spades to see how fast he could run,” returned Ellen. “Reckon when we do get chased it’ll take some running to catch me.”

“No. I was just testing Spades to see how fast he can run,” Ellen replied. “I figure when we actually get chased, it'll take some serious running to catch me.”

“Haw! Haw!” roared Daggs. “It shore will, Ellen.”

“Haw! Haw!” roared Daggs. “It sure will, Ellen.”

“Girl, it’s not only your runnin’ an’ your looks that’s queer,” declared Jorth, in dark perplexity. “You talk queer.”

“Girl, it’s not just your running and your looks that are strange,” Jorth said, looking confused. “You talk strange.”

“Shore, dad, y’u’re not used to hearing spades called spades,” said Ellen, as she dismounted.

“Sure, Dad, you’re not used to hearing spades called spades,” said Ellen, as she got off her horse.

“Humph!” ejaculated her father, as if convinced of the uselessness of trying to understand a woman. “Say, did you see any strange horse tracks?”

“Humph!” her father said, as if he was sure it was pointless to try to understand a woman. “Hey, did you notice any unusual horse tracks?”

“I reckon I did. And I know who made them.”

“I think I did. And I know who made them.”

Jorth stiffened. All the men behind him showed a sudden intensity of suspense.

Jorth tensed up. All the guys behind him suddenly became intensely focused with anticipation.

“Who?” demanded Jorth.

“Who?” asked Jorth.

“Shore it was Jean Isbel,” replied Ellen, coolly. “He came up heah tracking his black horse.”

“Sure it was Jean Isbel,” replied Ellen, coolly. “He came up here tracking his black horse.”

“Jean—Isbel—trackin’—his—black horse,” repeated her father.

"Jean—Isbel—tracking—his—black horse," repeated her father.

“Yes. He’s not overrated as a tracker, that’s shore.”

“Yes. He’s definitely not overrated as a tracker, that’s for sure.”

Blank silence ensued. Ellen cast a slow glance over her father and the others, then she began to loosen the cinches of her saddle. Presently Jorth burst the silence with a curse, and Daggs followed with one of his sardonic laughs.

Blank silence followed. Ellen took a slow look at her dad and the others, then she started to loosen the straps of her saddle. Soon, Jorth broke the silence with a curse, and Daggs chimed in with one of his sarcastic laughs.

“Wal, boss, what did I tell you?” he drawled.

“Well, boss, what did I say?” he said lazily.

Jorth strode to Ellen, and, whirling her around with a strong hand, he held her facing him.

Jorth walked up to Ellen, spun her around with a firm grip, and held her so she was facing him.

“Did y’u see Isbel?”

“Did you see Isbel?”

“Yes,” replied Ellen, just as sharply as her father had asked.

“Yeah,” replied Ellen, just as sharply as her dad had asked.

“Did y’u talk to him?”

“Did you talk to him?”

“Yes.”

“Yep.”

“What did he want up heah?”

“What did he want up here?”

“I told y’u. He was tracking the black horse y’u stole.”

“I told you. He was tracking the black horse you stole.”

Jorth’s hand and arm dropped limply. His sallow face turned a livid hue. Amaze merged into discomfiture and that gave place to rage. He raised a hand as if to strike Ellen. And suddenly Daggs’s long arm shot out to clutch Jorth’s wrist. Wrestling to free himself, Jorth cursed under his breath. “Let go, Daggs,” he shouted, stridently. “Am I drunk that you grab me?”

Jorth’s hand and arm fell weakly to his side. His pale face turned an angry shade. Surprise turned into embarrassment, which quickly shifted to fury. He raised a hand as if to hit Ellen. Suddenly, Daggs’s long arm reached out to grab Jorth’s wrist. Struggling to break free, Jorth muttered curses under his breath. “Let go, Daggs,” he yelled sharply. “Am I drunk that you're grabbing me?”

“Wal, y’u ain’t drunk, I reckon,” replied the rustler, with sarcasm. “But y’u’re shore some things I’ll reserve for your private ear.”

“Well, you’re not drunk, I guess,” replied the rustler, with sarcasm. “But there are definitely some things I’ll keep for your private ear.”

Jorth gained a semblance of composure. But it was evident that he labored under a shock.

Jorth managed to regain some composure. But it was clear that he was struggling with a shock.

“Ellen, did Jean Isbel see this black horse?”

“Ellen, did Jean Isbel see this black horse?”

“Yes. He asked me how I got Spades an’ I told him.”

“Yes. He asked me how I got Spades, and I told him.”

“Did he say Spades belonged to him?”

“Did he say Spades were his?”

“Shore I reckon he, proved it. Y’u can always tell a horse that loves its master.”

“Sure, I think he proved it. You can always tell a horse that loves its owner.”

“Did y’u offer to give Spades back?”

“Did you offer to give Spades back?”

“Yes. But Isbel wouldn’t take him.”

“Yes. But Isbel wouldn’t take him.”

“Hah! ... An’ why not?”

"Hah! ... And why not?"

“He said he’d rather I kept him. He was about to engage in a dirty, blood-spilling deal, an’ he reckoned he’d not be able to care for a fine horse.... I didn’t want Spades. I tried to make Isbel take him. But he rode off.... And that’s all there is to that.”

“He said he’d prefer that I kept him. He was about to get involved in a messy, bloody deal, and he figured he wouldn’t be able to take care of a good horse.... I didn’t want Spades. I tried to convince Isbel to take him. But he rode off.... And that’s all there is to it.”

“Maybe it’s not,” replied Jorth, chewing his mustache and eying Ellen with dark, intent gaze. “Y’u’ve met this Isbel twice.”

“Maybe it’s not,” replied Jorth, chewing his mustache and looking at Ellen with a dark, intense gaze. “You’ve met this Isbel twice.”

“It wasn’t any fault of mine,” retorted Ellen.

“It wasn't my fault,” Ellen shot back.

“I heah he’s sweet on y’u. How aboot that?”

“I hear he’s sweet on you. How about that?”

Ellen smarted under the blaze of blood that swept to neck and cheek and temple. But it was only memory which fired this shame. What her father and his crowd might think were matters of supreme indifference. Yet she met his suspicious gaze with truthful blazing eyes.

Ellen felt a rush of heat to her neck, cheeks, and temples. But it was only her memories that ignited this shame. What her father and his friends thought didn't matter to her at all. Still, she met his wary gaze with honest, intense eyes.

“I heah talk from Bruce an’ Lorenzo,” went on her father. “An’ Daggs heah—”

“I hear talk from Bruce and Lorenzo,” her father continued. “And Daggs here—”

“Daggs nothin’!” interrupted that worthy. “Don’t fetch me in. I said nothin’ an’ I think nothin’.”

“Nothing, daggs!” interrupted that worthy. “Don’t involve me. I said nothing and I think nothing.”

“Yes, Jean Isbel was sweet on me, dad ... but he will never be again,” returned Ellen, in low tones. With that she pulled her saddle off Spades and, throwing it over her shoulder, she walked off to her cabin.

“Yes, Jean Isbel liked me, Dad... but he never will again,” Ellen replied quietly. With that, she took her saddle off Spades, threw it over her shoulder, and walked to her cabin.

Hardly had she gotten indoors when her father entered.

Hardly had she stepped inside when her father came in.

“Ellen, I didn’t know that horse belonged to Isbel,” he began, in the swift, hoarse, persuasive voice so familiar to Ellen. “I swear I didn’t. I bought him—traded with Slater for him.... Honest to God, I never had any idea he was stolen! ... Why, when y’u said ‘that horse y’u stole,’ I felt as if y’u’d knifed me....”

“Ellen, I had no idea that horse belonged to Isbel,” he started, with the quick, raspy, convincing voice that was so recognizable to Ellen. “I promise I didn’t. I bought him—traded with Slater for him... I swear, I never knew he was stolen! ... When you said ‘that horse you stole,’ it felt like a knife in my gut...”

Ellen sat at the table and listened while her father paced to and fro and, by his restless action and passionate speech, worked himself into a frenzy. He talked incessantly, as if her silence was condemnatory and as if eloquence alone could convince her of his honesty. It seemed that Ellen saw and heard with keener faculties than ever before. He had a terrible thirst for her respect. Not so much for her love, she divined, but that she would not see how he had fallen!

Ellen sat at the table and listened as her father walked back and forth, his restless movements and passionate speech driving him into a frenzy. He talked non-stop, as if her silence was judgmental and only his words could prove his honesty to her. It felt like Ellen was seeing and hearing everything more clearly than ever. He desperately wanted her respect. Not so much for her love, she realized, but because he was terrified she would see how far he had fallen!

She pitied him with all her heart. She was all he had, as he was all the world to her. And so, as she gave ear to his long, illogical rigmarole of argument and defense, she slowly found that her pity and her love were making vital decisions for her. As of old, in poignant moments, her father lapsed at last into a denunciation of the Isbels and what they had brought him to. His sufferings were real, at least, in Ellen’s presence. She was the only link that bound him to long-past happier times. She was her mother over again—the woman who had betrayed another man for him and gone with him to her ruin and death.

She felt deep sympathy for him. She was everything to him, just as he meant the world to her. As she listened to his long, confusing rant of excuses and justifications, she gradually realized that her compassion and love were making important choices for her. As before, in emotional moments, her father eventually broke into a tirade against the Isbels and what they had caused him to suffer. His pain was genuine, at least when Ellen was around. She was the only connection that tied him to happier times long gone. She was just like her mother—the woman who had betrayed another man for him and followed him to her own ruin and death.

“Dad, don’t go on so,” said Ellen, breaking in upon her father’s rant. “I will be true to y’u—as my mother was.... I am a Jorth. Your place is my place—your fight is my fight.... Never speak of the past to me again. If God spares us through this feud we will go away and begin all over again, far off where no one ever heard of a Jorth.... If we’re not spared we’ll at least have had our whack at these damned Isbels.”

“Dad, stop going on like that,” Ellen said, interrupting her father’s rant. “I will be loyal to you—just like my mother was…. I’m a Jorth. Your home is my home—your battle is my battle…. Don’t ever mention the past to me again. If God lets us survive this feud, we’ll leave and start fresh somewhere far away where no one knows about a Jorth…. If we don’t survive, at least we’ll have taken our shot at those damn Isbels.”




CHAPTER VII

During June Jean Isbel did not ride far away from Grass Valley.

During June, Jean Isbel didn't ride far from Grass Valley.

Another attempt had been made upon Gaston Isbel’s life. Another cowardly shot had been fired from ambush, this time from a pine thicket bordering the trail that led to Blaisdell’s ranch. Blaisdell heard this shot, so near his home was it fired. No trace of the hidden foe could be found. The ‘ground all around that vicinity bore a carpet of pine needles which showed no trace of footprints. The supposition was that this cowardly attempt had been perpetrated, or certainly instigated, by the Jorths. But there was no proof. And Gaston Isbel had other enemies in the Tonto Basin besides the sheep clan. The old man raged like a lion about this sneaking attack on him. And his friend Blaisdell urged an immediate gathering of their kin and friends. “Let’s quit ranchin’ till this trouble’s settled,” he declared. “Let’s arm an’ ride the trails an’ meet these men half-way.... It won’t help our side any to wait till you’re shot in the back.” More than one of Isbel’s supporters offered the same advice.

Another attempt had been made on Gaston Isbel’s life. Another cowardly shot had been fired from ambush, this time from a pine thicket along the trail leading to Blaisdell’s ranch. Blaisdell heard this shot, so close to his home was it fired. No trace of the hidden enemy could be found. The ground all around that area was covered with pine needles, showing no sign of footprints. The assumption was that this cowardly attempt had been carried out, or at least encouraged, by the Jorths. But there was no proof. And Gaston Isbel had other enemies in the Tonto Basin besides the sheep clan. The old man seethed like a lion about this sneaky attack on him. And his friend Blaisdell urged an immediate gathering of their family and friends. “Let’s stop ranching until this issue is resolved,” he declared. “Let’s arm ourselves and patrol the trails and confront these men halfway…. It won’t help our side to wait until you’re shot in the back.” More than one of Isbel’s supporters echoed the same advice.

“No; we’ll wait till we know for shore,” was the stubborn cattleman’s reply to all these promptings.

“No; we’ll wait until we know for sure,” was the stubborn cattleman’s reply to all these suggestions.

“Know! Wal, hell! Didn’t Jean find the black hoss up at Jorth’s ranch?” demanded Blaisdell. “What more do we want?”

“Look! Well, heck! Didn’t Jean find the black horse up at Jorth’s ranch?” asked Blaisdell. “What more do we need?”

“Jean couldn’t swear Jorth stole the black.”

“Jean couldn't say for sure that Jorth stole the black.”

“Wal, by thunder, I can swear to it!” growled Blaisdell. “An’ we’re losin’ cattle all the time. Who’s stealin’ ’em?”

“Well, I swear to it!” growled Blaisdell. “And we’re losing cattle all the time. Who’s stealing them?”

“We’ve always lost cattle ever since we started ranchin’ heah.”

“We’ve always lost cattle ever since we started ranching here.”

“Gas, I reckon yu want Jorth to start this fight in the open.”

“Gas, I think you want Jorth to start this fight in the open.”

“It’ll start soon enough,” was Isbel’s gloomy reply.

“It’ll start soon enough,” Isbel replied gloomily.

Jean had not failed altogether in his tracking of lost or stolen cattle. Circumstances had been against him, and there was something baffling about this rustling. The summer storms set in early, and it had been his luck to have heavy rains wash out fresh tracks that he might have followed. The range was large and cattle were everywhere. Sometimes a loss was not discovered for weeks. Gaston Isbel’s sons were now the only men left to ride the range. Two of his riders had quit because of the threatened war, and Isbel had let another go. So that Jean did not often learn that cattle had been stolen until their tracks were old. Added to that was the fact that this Grass Valley country was covered with horse tracks and cattle tracks. The rustlers, whoever they were, had long been at the game, and now that there was reason for them to show their cunning they did it.

Jean hadn't completely failed in tracking down lost or stolen cattle. Circumstances had been against him, and there was something puzzling about this rustling situation. The summer storms had arrived early, and he was unfortunate enough to have heavy rains wash out fresh tracks that he could have followed. The range was vast, and cattle were everywhere. Sometimes, a loss wouldn’t be discovered for weeks. Gaston Isbel's sons were now the only men left to ride the range. Two of his riders had quit due to the looming war, and Isbel had let another go. So, Jean often didn't find out about stolen cattle until their tracks had aged. On top of that, the Grass Valley area was filled with horse and cattle tracks. The rustlers, whoever they were, had been playing this game for a while, and now that they had a reason to be clever, they were taking advantage of it.

Early in July the hot weather came. Down on the red ridges of the Tonto it was hot desert. The nights were cool, the early mornings were pleasant, but the day was something to endure. When the white cumulus clouds rolled up out of the southwest, growing larger and thicker and darker, here and there coalescing into a black thundercloud, Jean welcomed them. He liked to see the gray streamers of rain hanging down from a canopy of black, and the roar of rain on the trees as it approached like a trampling army was always welcome. The grassy flats, the red ridges, the rocky slopes, the thickets of manzanita and scrub oak and cactus were dusty, glaring, throat-parching places under the hot summer sun. Jean longed for the cool heights of the Rim, the shady pines, the dark sweet verdure under the silver spruces, the tinkle and murmur of the clear rills. He often had another longing, too, which he bitterly stifled.

Early in July, the hot weather arrived. Down on the red ridges of the Tonto, it was a hot desert. The nights were cool, the early mornings were nice, but the days were tough to get through. When the white cumulus clouds rolled in from the southwest, getting larger, thicker, and darker, and sometimes merging into a black thundercloud, Jean welcomed them. He loved seeing the gray streams of rain hanging down from the dark canopy, and the sound of rain pounding on the trees as it approached like a marching army was always a relief. The grassy flats, the red ridges, the rocky slopes, and the thickets of manzanita, scrub oak, and cactus were dusty, glaring, and dry under the scorching summer sun. Jean yearned for the cool heights of the Rim, the shady pines, the lush greenery under the silver spruces, and the gentle sound of the clear streams. He often felt another longing as well, which he tried hard to suppress.

Jean’s ally, the keen-nosed shepherd dog, had disappeared one day, and had never returned. Among men at the ranch there was a difference of opinion as to what had happened to Shepp. The old rancher thought he had been poisoned or shot; Bill and Guy Isbel believed he had been stolen by sheep herders, who were always stealing dogs; and Jean inclined to the conviction that Shepp had gone off with the timber wolves. The fact was that Shepp did not return, and Jean missed him.

Jean’s loyal shepherd dog went missing one day and never came back. The men at the ranch had different opinions on what happened to Shepp. The old rancher suspected he had been poisoned or shot; Bill and Guy Isbel thought he had been stolen by sheep herders, who were constantly taking dogs; and Jean believed that Shepp had joined the timber wolves. The truth was that Shepp didn’t come back, and Jean felt his absence.

One morning at dawn Jean heard the cattle bellowing and trampling out in the valley; and upon hurrying to a vantage point he was amazed to see upward of five hundred steers chasing a lone wolf. Jean’s father had seen such a spectacle as this, but it was a new one for Jean. The wolf was a big gray and black fellow, rangy and powerful, and until he got the steers all behind him he was rather hard put to it to keep out of their way. Probably he had dogged the herd, trying to sneak in and pull down a yearling, and finally the steers had charged him. Jean kept along the edge of the valley in the hope they would chase him within range of a rifle. But the wary wolf saw Jean and sheered off, gradually drawing away from his pursuers.

One morning at dawn, Jean heard the cattle mooing and stomping around in the valley. When he rushed to a good spot to see, he was shocked to find over five hundred steers chasing a single wolf. Jean’s father had witnessed something like this before, but it was a first for Jean. The wolf was a big gray and black guy, lean and strong, and until he managed to get all the steers behind him, he was having a tough time avoiding them. He probably had been stalking the herd, trying to sneak in and take down a young calf, and eventually, the steers had charged at him. Jean stayed along the edge of the valley, hoping they would drive him into rifle range. However, the cautious wolf spotted Jean and veered off, slowly pulling away from its pursuers.

Jean returned to the house for his breakfast, and then set off across the valley. His father owned one small flock of sheep that had not yet been driven up on the Rim, where all the sheep in the country were run during the hot, dry summer down on the Tonto. Young Evarts and a Mexican boy named Bernardino had charge of this flock. The regular Mexican herder, a man of experience, had given up his job; and these boys were not equal to the task of risking the sheep up in the enemies’ stronghold.

Jean went back to the house for breakfast, then headed out across the valley. His dad owned a small flock of sheep that hadn't been taken up to the Rim yet, where all the sheep in the area were kept during the hot, dry summer down on the Tonto. Young Evarts and a Mexican boy named Bernardino were in charge of this flock. The usual Mexican herder, an experienced man, had quit his job; and these boys weren't capable of taking the risk of getting the sheep up in enemy territory.

This flock was known to be grazing in a side draw, well up from Grass Valley, where the brush afforded some protection from the sun, and there was good water and a little feed. Before Jean reached his destination he heard a shot. It was not a rifle shot, which fact caused Jean a little concern. Evarts and Bernardino had rifles, but, to his knowledge, no small arms. Jean rode up on one of the black-brushed conical hills that rose on the south side of Grass Valley, and from there he took a sharp survey of the country. At first he made out only cattle, and bare meadowland, and the low encircling ridges and hills. But presently up toward the head of the valley he descried a bunch of horsemen riding toward the village. He could not tell their number. That dark moving mass seemed to Jean to be instinct with life, mystery, menace. Who were they? It was too far for him to recognize horses, let alone riders. They were moving fast, too.

This group was known to be grazing in a side draw, well above Grass Valley, where the brush provided some shade from the sun, and there was good water and a little feed. Before Jean reached his destination, he heard a gunshot. It wasn’t a rifle shot, which made Jean a bit worried. Evarts and Bernardino had rifles, but as far as he knew, no handguns. Jean rode up on one of the black-brushed conical hills that rose on the south side of Grass Valley, and from there he took a close look at the area. At first, he could only see cattle, open meadowland, and the low surrounding ridges and hills. But soon, towards the head of the valley, he spotted a group of horse riders heading toward the village. He couldn’t tell how many there were. That dark, moving mass felt to Jean filled with life, mystery, and threat. Who were they? It was too far for him to recognize the horses, let alone the riders. They were moving quickly, too.

Jean watched them out of sight, then turned his horse downhill again, and rode on his quest. A number of horsemen like that was a very unusual sight around Grass Valley at any time. What then did it portend now? Jean experienced a little shock of uneasy dread that was a new sensation for him. Brooding over this he proceeded on his way, at length to turn into the draw where the camp of the sheep-herders was located. Upon coming in sight of it he heard a hoarse shout. Young Evarts appeared running frantically out of the brush. Jean urged his horse into a run and soon covered the distance between them. Evarts appeared beside himself with terror.

Jean watched them disappear, then turned his horse back downhill and continued on his journey. Seeing a number of horsemen like that was pretty unusual around Grass Valley at any time. So what did it mean now? Jean felt a sudden jolt of uneasy dread, a new sensation for him. Pondering this, he continued on his way, eventually turning into the draw where the sheep-herders' camp was located. When he caught sight of it, he heard a hoarse shout. Young Evarts came running out of the brush, looking frantic. Jean urged his horse into a run and quickly closed the gap between them. Evarts looked utterly terrified.

“Boy! what’s the matter?” queried Jean, as he dismounted, rifle in hand, peering quickly from Evarts’s white face to the camp, and all around.

“Hey! What’s going on?” Jean asked as he got off his horse, rifle in hand, glancing quickly from Evarts’s pale face to the camp and all around.

“Ber-nardino! Ber-nardino!” gasped the boy, wringing his hands and pointing.

“Bernardino! Bernardino!” gasped the boy, wringing his hands and pointing.

Jean ran the few remaining rods to the sheep camp. He saw the little teepee, a burned-out fire, a half-finished meal—and then the Mexican lad lying prone on the ground, dead, with a bullet hole in his ghastly face. Near him lay an old six-shooter.

Jean raced the last few yards to the sheep camp. He spotted the small teepee, a smoldering fire, a half-eaten meal—and then the Mexican boy sprawled on the ground, dead, with a bullet wound in his horrific face. Nearby, there was an old revolver.

“Whose gun is that?” demanded Jean, as he picked it up.

“Whose gun is this?” Jean asked as he picked it up.

“Ber-nardino’s,” replied Evarts, huskily. “He—he jest got it—the other day.”

“Bernardino’s,” Evarts replied hoarsely. “He—he just got it—the other day.”

“Did he shoot himself accidentally?”

“Did he accidentally shoot himself?”

“Oh no! No! He didn’t do it—atall.”

“Oh no! No! He didn’t do it—at all.”

“Who did, then?”

“Who did it, then?”

“The men—they rode up—a gang-they did it,” panted Evarts.

“The guys—they rode up—a group—they did it,” panted Evarts.

“Did you know who they were?”

“Did you know who they were?”

“No. I couldn’t tell. I saw them comin’ an’ I was skeered. Bernardino had gone fer water. I run an’ hid in the brush. I wanted to yell, but they come too close.... Then I heerd them talkin’. Bernardino come back. They ’peared friendly-like. Thet made me raise up, to look. An’ I couldn’t see good. I heerd one of them ask Bernardino to let him see his gun. An’ Bernardino handed it over. He looked at the gun an’ haw-hawed, an’ flipped it up in the air, an’ when it fell back in his hand it—it went off bang! ... An’ Bernardino dropped.... I hid down close. I was skeered stiff. I heerd them talk more, but not what they said. Then they rode away.... An’ I hid there till I seen y’u comin’.”

“No. I couldn’t tell. I saw them coming and I was scared. Bernardino had gone for water. I ran and hid in the bushes. I wanted to yell, but they got too close... Then I heard them talking. Bernardino came back. They seemed friendly. That made me lift up to look. And I couldn’t see well. I heard one of them ask Bernardino to let him see his gun. And Bernardino handed it over. He looked at the gun and laughed, and flipped it up in the air, and when it fell back into his hand it—it went off bang! ... And Bernardino dropped... I hid down low. I was scared stiff. I heard them talk more, but I didn’t catch what they said. Then they rode away... And I hid there until I saw you coming.”

“Have you got a horse?” queried Jean, sharply.

“Do you have a horse?” Jean asked sharply.

“No. But I can ride one of Bernardino’s burros.”

“No. But I can ride one of Bernardino’s donkeys.”

“Get one. Hurry over to Blaisdell. Tell him to send word to Blue and Gordon and Fredericks to ride like the devil to my father’s ranch. Hurry now!”

“Get one. Hurry over to Blaisdell. Tell him to message Blue, Gordon, and Fredericks to ride as fast as they can to my dad’s ranch. Move it!”

Young Evarts ran off without reply. Jean stood looking down at the limp and pathetic figure of the Mexican boy. “By Heaven!” he exclaimed, grimly “the Jorth-Isbel war is on! ... Deliberate, cold-blooded murder! I’ll gamble Daggs did this job. He’s been given the leadership. He’s started it.... Bernardino, greaser or not, you were a faithful lad, and you won’t go long unavenged.”

Young Evarts ran off without saying anything. Jean stood there, looking down at the limp and sad figure of the Mexican boy. “By God!” he said grimly, “the Jorth-Isbel war has begun! ... This is deliberate, cold-blooded murder! I’ll bet Daggs did this. He’s been put in charge. He’s started it.... Bernardino, whether you’re a greaser or not, you were a loyal guy, and you won’t be avenged for long.”

Jean had no time to spare. Tearing a tarpaulin out of the teepee he covered the lad with it and then ran for, his horse. Mounting, he galloped down the draw, over the little red ridges, out into the valley, where he put his horse to a run.

Jean had no time to waste. Ripping a tarpaulin out of the teepee, he covered the boy with it and then raced for his horse. Once mounted, he galloped down the ravine, over the small red hills, and out into the valley, where he urged his horse to run.

Action changed the sickening horror that sight of Bernardino had engendered. Jean even felt a strange, grim relief. The long, dragging days of waiting were over. Jorth’s gang had taken the initiative. Blood had begun to flow. And it would continue to flow now till the last man of one faction stood over the dead body of the last man of the other. Would it be a Jorth or an Isbel? “My instinct was right,” he muttered, aloud. “That bunch of horses gave me a queer feelin’.” Jean gazed all around the grassy, cattle-dotted valley he was crossing so swiftly, and toward the village, but he did not see any sign of the dark group of riders. They had gone on to Greaves’s store, there, no doubt, to drink and to add more enemies of the Isbels to their gang. Suddenly across Jean’s mind flashed a thought of Ellen Jorth. “What ’ll become of her? ... What ’ll become of all the women? My sister? ... The little ones?”

Action changed the nauseating horror that Bernardino's presence had caused. Jean even felt a strange, dark relief. The long, grueling days of waiting were finally over. Jorth’s gang had taken charge. Blood had started to flow. And it would keep flowing until the last man of one side stood over the lifeless body of the last man of the other. Would it be a Jorth or an Isbel? “My instinct was right,” he muttered aloud. “That bunch of horses gave me a weird feeling.” Jean looked around at the grassy valley filled with cattle that he was crossing quickly, and toward the village, but he didn’t see any sign of the dark group of riders. They had likely moved on to Greaves’s store, probably to drink and recruit more enemies of the Isbels to their gang. Suddenly, a thought of Ellen Jorth flashed through Jean’s mind. “What will happen to her? ... What will happen to all the women? My sister? ... The little ones?”

No one was in sight around the ranch. Never had it appeared more peaceful and pastoral to Jean. The grazing cattle and horses in the foreground, the haystack half eaten away, the cows in the fenced pasture, the column of blue smoke lazily ascending, the cackle of hens, the solid, well-built cabins—all these seemed to repudiate Jean’s haste and his darkness of mind. This place was, his father’s farm. There was not a cloud in the blue, summer sky.

No one was around the ranch. It had never seemed more peaceful and picturesque to Jean. The cattle and horses grazing in the foreground, the haystack partially eaten, the cows in the fenced pasture, the column of blue smoke rising slowly, the clucking hens, the sturdy, well-built cabins—all of this seemed to contradict Jean’s urgency and his troubled thoughts. This place was his father’s farm. There wasn't a cloud in the clear, summer sky.

As Jean galloped up the lane some one saw him from the door, and then Bill and Guy and their gray-headed father came out upon the porch. Jean saw how he’ waved the womenfolk back, and then strode out into the lane. Bill and Guy reached his side as Jean pulled his heaving horse to a halt. They all looked at Jean, swiftly and intently, with a little, hard, fiery gleam strangely identical in the eyes of each. Probably before a word was spoken they knew what to expect.

As Jean rode up the lane, someone spotted him from the door, and then Bill, Guy, and their gray-haired father stepped out onto the porch. Jean saw how he waved the women back and then walked out into the lane. Bill and Guy got to his side just as Jean pulled his panting horse to a stop. They all stared at Jean, quickly and intently, with a small, hard, fiery glint that was oddly the same in each of their eyes. Probably before a word was said, they already knew what to expect.

“Wal, you shore was in a hurry,” remarked the father.

“Wow, you were really in a hurry,” said the father.

“What the hell’s up?” queried Bill, grimly.

“What’s going on?” asked Bill, seriously.

Guy Isbel remained silent and it was he who turned slightly pale. Jean leaped off his horse.

Guy Isbel stayed quiet and it was he who turned a bit pale. Jean jumped off his horse.

“Bernardino has just been killed—murdered with his own gun.”

“Bernardino has just been killed—murdered with his own gun.”

Gaston Isbel seemed to exhale a long-dammed, bursting breath that let his chest sag. A terrible deadly glint, pale and cold as sunlight on ice, grew slowly to dominate his clear eyes.

Gaston Isbel seemed to let out a long-held breath that made his chest sag. A terrible, deadly glint, pale and cold like sunlight on ice, slowly took over his clear eyes.

“A-huh!” ejaculated Bill Isbel, hoarsely.

“Uh-huh!” exclaimed Bill Isbel, hoarsely.

Not one of the three men asked who had done the killing. They were silent a moment, motionless, locked in the secret seclusion of their own minds. Then they listened with absorption to Jean’s brief story.

Not one of the three men asked who had committed the murder. They were silent for a moment, still, trapped in the private corner of their thoughts. Then they listened intently to Jean’s short story.

“Wal, that lets us in,” said his father. “I wish we had more time. Reckon I’d done better to listen to you boys an’ have my men close at hand. Jacobs happened to ride over. That makes five of us besides the women.”

“Well, that lets us in,” said his father. “I wish we had more time. I guess I should’ve listened to you boys and kept my men close by. Jacobs just happened to ride over. That makes five of us, not counting the women.”

“Aw, dad, you don’t reckon they’ll round us up heah?” asked Guy Isbel.

“Aw, dad, you don’t think they’ll round us up here?” asked Guy Isbel.

“Boys, I always feared they might,” replied the old man. “But I never really believed they’d have the nerve. Shore I ought to have figgered Daggs better. This heah secret bizness an’ shootin’ at us from ambush looked aboot Jorth’s size to me. But I reckon now we’ll have to fight without our friends.”

“Boys, I always worried they might,” replied the old man. “But I never really thought they’d have the guts. I guess I should have figured Daggs out better. This whole secret business and shooting at us from hiding seemed about Jorth’s level to me. But I suppose now we’ll have to fight without our friends.”

“Let them come,” said Jean. “I sent for Blaisdell, Blue, Gordon, and Fredericks. Maybe they’ll get here in time. But if they don’t it needn’t worry us much. We can hold out here longer than Jorth’s gang can hang around. We’ll want plenty of water, wood, and meat in the house.”

“Let them come,” said Jean. “I called for Blaisdell, Blue, Gordon, and Fredericks. Maybe they’ll arrive soon. But if they don’t, it won’t stress us too much. We can last here longer than Jorth’s crew can stick around. We’ll need plenty of water, firewood, and meat in the house.”

“Wal, I’ll see to that,” rejoined his father. “Jean, you go out close by, where you can see all around, an’ keep watch.”

“Alright, I’ll take care of that,” his father replied. “Jean, you go out nearby, where you can see everything around you, and keep watch.”

“Who’s goin’ to tell the women?” asked Guy Isbel.

“Who’s going to tell the women?” asked Guy Isbel.

The silence that momentarily ensued was an eloquent testimony to the hardest and saddest aspect of this strife between men. The inevitableness of it in no wise detracted from its sheer uselessness. Men from time immemorial had hated, and killed one another, always to the misery and degradation of their women. Old Gaston Isbel showed this tragic realization in his lined face.

The silence that followed was a powerful reminder of the most difficult and sorrowful part of this conflict between men. The inevitability of it didn’t take away from its complete uselessness. For ages, men had hated and killed each other, always resulting in the suffering and degradation of their women. Old Gaston Isbel displayed this tragic understanding in his wrinkled face.

“Wal, boys, I’ll tell the women,” he said. “Shore you needn’t worry none aboot them. They’ll be game.”

“Alright, boys, I’ll talk to the women,” he said. “You definitely don’t need to worry about them. They’ll be ready."

Jean rode away to an open knoll a short distance from the house, and here he stationed himself to watch all points. The cedared ridge back of the ranch was the one approach by which Jorth’s gang might come close without being detected, but even so, Jean could see them and ride to the house in time to prevent a surprise. The moments dragged by, and at the end of an hour Jean was in hopes that Blaisdell would soon come. These hopes were well founded. Presently he heard a clatter of hoofs on hard ground to the south, and upon wheeling to look he saw the friendly neighbor coming fast along the road, riding a big white horse. Blaisdell carried a rifle in his hand, and the sight of him gave Jean a glow of warmth. He was one of the Texans who would stand by the Isbels to the last man. Jean watched him ride to the house—watched the meeting between him and his lifelong friend. There floated out to Jean old Blaisdell’s roar of rage.

Jean rode to a little hill not far from the house and set up to keep an eye on everything. The cedar-covered ridge behind the ranch was the only way Jorth's gang could get close without being noticed, but even then, Jean could see them and ride back in time to avoid a surprise. Time passed slowly, and after an hour, Jean hoped that Blaisdell would arrive soon. His hopes were justified. Soon, he heard the sound of hooves on hard ground coming from the south, and when he turned to look, he saw the friendly neighbor coming quickly down the road, riding a big white horse. Blaisdell was holding a rifle, and seeing him filled Jean with warmth. He was one of those Texans who would support the Isbels to the very end. Jean watched him ride to the house—watched the reunion between him and his longtime friend. Then he heard old Blaisdell's roar of rage echoing from the house.

Then out on the green of Grass Valley, where a long, swelling plain swept away toward the village, there appeared a moving dark patch. A bunch of horses! Jean’s body gave a slight start—the shock of sudden propulsion of blood through all his veins. Those horses bore riders. They were coming straight down the open valley, on the wagon road to Isbel’s ranch. No subterfuge nor secrecy nor sneaking in that advance! A hot thrill ran over Jean.

Then out on the green of Grass Valley, where a long, rolling plain stretched out toward the village, there appeared a moving dark spot. A group of horses! Jean’s body jolted slightly—the rush of blood surged through his veins. Those horses had riders. They were heading straight down the open valley, on the wagon road to Isbel’s ranch. No tricks, no hiding, no sneaking in that approach! A rush of excitement ran through Jean.

“By Heaven! They mean business!” he muttered. Up to the last moment he had unconsciously hoped Jorth’s gang would not come boldly like that. The verifications of all a Texan’s inherited instincts left no doubts, no hopes, no illusions—only a grim certainty that this was not conjecture nor probability, but fact. For a moment longer Jean watched the slowly moving dark patch of horsemen against the green background, then he hurried back to the ranch. His father saw him coming—strode out as before.

“By God! They’re serious!” he muttered. Until the very end, he had hoped without realizing it that Jorth’s gang wouldn’t approach so boldly. The confirmation of all a Texan’s instinct told him there were no doubts, no hopes, no illusions—only a harsh reality that this was not speculation or likelihood, but truth. For a moment longer, Jean watched the slowly moving dark group of horsemen against the green backdrop, then he rushed back to the ranch. His father saw him approaching and stepped out just like before.

“Dad—Jorth is comin’,” said Jean, huskily. How he hated to be forced to tell his father that! The boyish love of old had flashed up.

“Dad—Jorth is coming,” Jean said hoarsely. How he hated having to tell his father that! The boyish love from before had flared up again.

“Whar?” demanded the old man, his eagle gaze sweeping the horizon.

“Where?” demanded the old man, his sharp gaze scanning the horizon.

“Down the road from Grass Valley. You can’t see from here.”

“Down the road from Grass Valley. You can't see it from here.”

“Wal, come in an’ let’s get ready.”

“Well, come in and let’s get ready.”

Isbel’s house had not been constructed with the idea of repelling an attack from a band of Apaches. The long living room of the main cabin was the one selected for defense and protection. This room had two windows and a door facing the lane, and a door at each end, one of which opened into the kitchen and the other into an adjoining and later-built cabin. The logs of this main cabin were of large size, and the doors and window coverings were heavy, affording safer protection from bullets than the other cabins.

Isbel's house wasn't built with the intention of fending off an Apache attack. The main cabin's long living room was chosen for defense and safety. This room had two windows and a door facing the lane, along with a door at each end—one leading to the kitchen and the other to a nearby cabin that was built later. The logs of the main cabin were large, and the doors and window coverings were heavy, providing better protection from bullets than the other cabins.

When Jean went in he seemed to see a host of white faces lifted to him. His sister Ann, his two sisters-in-law, the children, all mutely watched him with eyes that would haunt him.

When Jean entered, he noticed a crowd of white faces staring up at him. His sister Ann, his two sisters-in-law, the kids—all silently watched him with eyes that would linger in his memory.

“Wal, Blaisdell, Jean says Jorth an’ his precious gang of rustlers are on the way heah,” announced the rancher.

“Hey, Blaisdell, Jean says Jorth and his precious crew of rustlers are on their way here,” announced the rancher.

“Damn me if it’s not a bad day fer Lee Jorth!” declared Blaisdell.

“Damn me if it’s not a bad day for Lee Jorth!” declared Blaisdell.

“Clear off that table,” ordered Isbel, “an’ fetch out all the guns an’ shells we got.”

“Clear off that table,” Isbel commanded, “and bring out all the guns and ammo we have.”

Once laid upon the table these presented a formidable arsenal, which consisted of the three new .44 Winchesters that Jean had brought with him from the coast; the enormous buffalo, or so-called “needle” gun, that Gaston Isbel had used for years; a Henry rifle which Blaisdell had brought, and half a dozen six-shooters. Piles and packages of ammunition littered the table.

Once spread out on the table, these formed an impressive collection, which included the three new .44 Winchesters that Jean had brought from the coast; the massive buffalo, or “needle” gun, that Gaston Isbel had used for years; a Henry rifle that Blaisdell had brought; and about six revolvers. There were piles and bundles of ammunition scattered across the table.

“Sort out these heah shells,” said Isbel. “Everybody wants to get hold of his own.”

“Sort out these here shells,” said Isbel. “Everyone wants to grab their own.”

Jacobs, the neighbor who was present, was a thick-set, bearded man, rather jovial among those lean-jawed Texans. He carried a .44 rifle of an old pattern. “Wal, boys, if I’d knowed we was in fer some fun I’d hev fetched more shells. Only got one magazine full. Mebbe them new .44’s will fit my gun.”

Jacobs, the neighbor who was there, was a stocky, bearded guy, quite cheerful among those thin-jawed Texans. He had an old .44 rifle. “Well, guys, if I’d known we were in for some fun, I would have brought more bullets. I've only got one magazine full. Maybe those new .44s will fit my gun.”

It was discovered that the ammunition Jean had brought in quantity fitted Jacob’s rifle, a fact which afforded peculiar satisfaction to all the men present.

It was discovered that the ammunition Jean had brought in large amounts fit Jacob’s rifle, which gave all the men present a strange sense of satisfaction.

“Wal, shore we’re lucky,” declared Gaston Isbel.

“Wow, we’re really lucky,” declared Gaston Isbel.

The women sat apart, in the corner toward the kitchen, and there seemed to be a strange fascination for them in the talk and action of the men. The wife of Jacobs was a little woman, with homely face and very bright eyes. Jean thought she would be a help in that household during the next doubtful hours.

The women sat together in the corner near the kitchen, and they seemed oddly captivated by the men’s conversation and actions. Jacobs' wife was a petite woman with an ordinary face but very bright eyes. Jean believed she would be a support in that household during the next uncertain hours.

Every moment Jean would go to the window and peer out down the road. His companions evidently relied upon him, for no one else looked out. Now that the suspense of days and weeks was over, these Texans faced the issue with talk and act not noticeably different from those of ordinary moments.

Every moment, Jean would go to the window and look out down the road. His companions clearly depended on him, since no one else bothered to look out. Now that the suspense of days and weeks had passed, these Texans approached the situation with conversation and actions that were not noticeably different from their usual moments.

At last Jean espied the dark mass of horsemen out in the valley road. They were close together, walking their mounts, and evidently in earnest conversation. After several ineffectual attempts Jean counted eleven horses, every one of which he was sure bore a rider.

At last, Jean spotted the dark cluster of horsemen on the valley road. They were gathered closely, walking their horses, and clearly deep in conversation. After several fruitless tries, Jean counted eleven horses, each of which he was certain had a rider.

“Dad, look out!” called Jean.

“Dad, watch out!” called Jean.

Gaston Isbel strode to the door and stood looking, without a word.

Gaston Isbel walked over to the door and stood there, silently observing.

The other men crowded to the windows. Blaisdell cursed under his breath. Jacobs said: “By Golly! Come to pay us a call!” The women sat motionless, with dark, strained eyes. The children ceased their play and looked fearfully to their mother.

The other guys crowded around the windows. Blaisdell muttered a curse under his breath. Jacobs exclaimed, “Wow! Come to pay us a visit!” The women sat still, with tense, dark eyes. The kids stopped playing and looked nervously at their mom.

When just out of rifle shot of the cabins the band of horsemen halted and lined up in a half circle, all facing the ranch. They were close enough for Jean to see their gestures, but he could not recognize any of their faces. It struck him singularly that not one of them wore a mask.

When just out of rifle range from the cabins, the group of horsemen stopped and formed a half circle, all facing the ranch. They were close enough for Jean to see their gestures, but he couldn't recognize any of their faces. It struck him as unusual that not one of them was wearing a mask.

“Jean, do you know any of them?” asked his father

“Jean, do you know any of them?” his father asked.

“No, not yet. They’re too far off.”

“No, not yet. They’re too far away.”

“Dad, I’ll get your old telescope,” said Guy Isbel, and he ran out toward the adjoining cabin.

“Dad, I’ll grab your old telescope,” said Guy Isbel, and he ran out toward the next cabin.

Blaisdell shook his big, hoary head and rumbled out of his bull-like neck, “Wal, now you’re heah, you sheep fellars, what are you goin’ to do aboot it?”

Blaisdell shook his big, gray head and growled from his bull-like neck, “Well, now you’re here, you sheep guys, what are you going to do about it?”

Guy Isbel returned with a yard-long telescope, which he passed to his father. The old man took it with shaking hands and leveled it. Suddenly it was as if he had been transfixed; then he lowered the glass, shaking violently, and his face grew gray with an exceeding bitter wrath.

Guy Isbel came back with a yard-long telescope, which he handed to his father. The old man took it with trembling hands and aimed it. Suddenly, it was as if he had been frozen in place; then he lowered the telescope, shaking violently, and his face turned gray with overwhelming anger.

“Jorth!” he swore, harshly.

"Jorth!" he cursed, harshly.

Jean had only to look at his father to know that recognition had been like a mortal shock. It passed. Again the rancher leveled the glass.

Jean just had to look at his father to see that the recognition hit him hard, like a gut punch. It faded. Once more, the rancher raised the glass.

“Wal, Blaisdell, there’s our old Texas friend, Daggs,” he drawled, dryly. “An’ Greaves, our honest storekeeper of Grass Valley. An’ there’s Stonewall Jackson Jorth. An’ Tad Jorth, with the same old red nose! ... An’, say, damn if one of that gang isn’t Queen, as bad a gun fighter as Texas ever bred. Shore I thought he’d been killed in the Big Bend country. So I heard.... An’ there’s Craig, another respectable sheepman of Grass Valley. Haw-haw! An’, wal, I don’t recognize any more of them.”

“Well, Blaisdell, there’s our old Texas buddy, Daggs,” he said dryly. “And Greaves, our honest storekeeper from Grass Valley. And there’s Stonewall Jackson Jorth. And Tad Jorth, with that same old red nose! ... And, damn if one of that group isn’t Queen, as bad a gunfighter as Texas ever produced. I was sure he’d been killed in the Big Bend area. That’s what I heard... And there’s Craig, another reputable sheepman from Grass Valley. Ha-ha! And, well, I don’t recognize any more of them.”

Jean forthwith took the glass and moved it slowly across the faces of that group of horsemen. “Simm Bruce,” he said, instantly. “I see Colter. And, yes, Greaves is there. I’ve seen the man next to him—face like a ham....”

Jean immediately took the glass and slowly moved it across the faces of the group of horsemen. “Simm Bruce,” he said at once. “I see Colter. And, yeah, Greaves is there. I’ve seen the guy next to him—face like a ham....”

“Shore that is Craig,” interrupted his father.

“Sure, that’s Craig,” interrupted his father.

Jean knew the dark face of Lee Jorth by the resemblance it bore to Ellen’s, and the recognition brought a twinge. He thought, too, that he could tell the other Jorths. He asked his father to describe Daggs and then Queen. It was not likely that Jean would fail to know these several men in the future. Then Blaisdell asked for the telescope and, when he got through looking and cursing, he passed it on to others, who, one by one, took a long look, until finally it came back to the old rancher.

Jean recognized Lee Jorth's dark face because it looked a lot like Ellen’s, and that brought a pang of emotion. He also thought he could identify the other Jorths. He asked his dad to describe Daggs and then Queen. It was unlikely that Jean would forget these men in the future. Then Blaisdell asked for the telescope and, after looking through it and complaining, he handed it to others, who took turns looking until it finally returned to the old rancher.

“Wal, Daggs is wavin’ his hand heah an’ there, like a general aboot to send out scouts. Haw-haw! ... An’ ‘pears to me he’s not overlookin’ our hosses. Wal, that’s natural for a rustler. He’d have to steal a hoss or a steer before goin’ into a fight or to dinner or to a funeral.”

“Well, Daggs is waving his hand here and there, like a general about to send out scouts. Ha-ha! ... And it seems to me he’s not ignoring our horses. Well, that’s typical for a rustler. He’d have to steal a horse or a steer before going into a fight, dinner, or a funeral.”

“It ’ll be his funeral if he goes to foolin’ ’round them hosses,” declared Guy Isbel, peering anxiously out of the door.

“It’ll be his funeral if he starts messing around with those horses,” declared Guy Isbel, peering anxiously out of the door.

“Wal, son, shore it ’ll be somebody’s funeral,” replied his father.

“Well, son, it’s definitely going to be somebody’s funeral,” replied his father.

Jean paid but little heed to the conversation. With sharp eyes fixed upon the horsemen, he tried to grasp at their intention. Daggs pointed to the horses in the pasture lot that lay between him and the house. These animals were the best on the range and belonged mostly to Guy Isbel, who was the horse fancier and trader of the family. His horses were his passion.

Jean paid little attention to the conversation. With sharp eyes focused on the horsemen, he tried to understand their intentions. Daggs pointed to the horses in the pasture lot that lay between him and the house. These animals were the best in the area and mostly belonged to Guy Isbel, who was the horse enthusiast and trader of the family. His horses were his passion.

“Looks like they’d do some horse stealin’,” said Jean.

“Looks like they’d be stealing some horses,” said Jean.

“Lend me that glass,” demanded Guy, forcefully. He surveyed the band of men for a long moment, then he handed the glass back to Jean.

“Give me that glass,” Guy insisted, firmly. He looked over the group of men for a long moment, then he handed the glass back to Jean.

“I’m goin’ out there after my hosses,” he declared.

“I’m going out there after my horses,” he declared.

“No!” exclaimed his father.

“No!” his father exclaimed.

“That gang come to steal an’ not to fight. Can’t you see that? If they meant to fight they’d do it. They’re out there arguin’ about my hosses.”

“That gang came to steal and not to fight. Can’t you see that? If they meant to fight, they’d do it. They’re out there arguing about my horses.”

Guy picked up his rifle. He looked sullenly determined and the gleam in his eye was one of fearlessness.

Guy picked up his rifle. He looked grimly determined, and the spark in his eye was one of fearlessness.

“Son, I know Daggs,” said his father. “An’ I know Jorth. They’ve come to kill us. It ’ll be shore death for y’u to go out there.”

“Son, I know Daggs,” said his father. “And I know Jorth. They’ve come to kill us. It’ll be certain death for you to go out there.”

“I’m goin’, anyhow. They can’t steal my hosses out from under my eyes. An’ they ain’t in range.”

“I’m going, anyway. They can’t steal my horses right in front of me. And they’re not even in sight.”

“Wal, Guy, you ain’t goin’ alone,” spoke up Jacobs, cheerily, as he came forward.

“Well, Guy, you’re not going alone,” Jacobs said cheerfully as he stepped forward.

The red-haired young wife of Guy Isbel showed no change of her grave face. She had been reared in a stern school. She knew men in times like these. But Jacobs’s wife appealed to him, “Bill, don’t risk your life for a horse or two.”

The red-haired young wife of Guy Isbel maintained her serious expression. She had been raised in a tough environment. She understood men in situations like this. But Jacobs's wife pleaded with him, “Bill, don’t put your life on the line for a horse or two.”

Jacobs laughed and answered, “Not much risk,” and went out with Guy. To Jean their action seemed foolhardy. He kept a keen eye on them and saw instantly when the band became aware of Guy’s and Jacobs’s entrance into the pasture. It took only another second then to realize that Daggs and Jorth had deadly intent. Jean saw Daggs slip out of his saddle, rifle in hand. Others of the gang did likewise, until half of them were dismounted.

Jacobs laughed and replied, “Not much risk,” and went out with Guy. To Jean, their actions seemed reckless. He kept a close watch on them and noticed immediately when the gang noticed Guy’s and Jacobs’s arrival in the pasture. It took just another moment to understand that Daggs and Jorth had deadly intentions. Jean watched Daggs slide out of his saddle, rifle in hand. Others in the gang did the same until half of them were off their horses.

“Dad, they’re goin’ to shoot,” called out Jean, sharply. “Yell for Guy and Jacobs. Make them come back.”

“Dad, they’re going to shoot,” shouted Jean, urgently. “Call for Guy and Jacobs. Get them to come back.”

The old man shouted; Bill Isbel yelled; Blaisdell lifted his stentorian voice.

The old man shouted; Bill Isbel yelled; Blaisdell raised his loud voice.

Jean screamed piercingly: “Guy! Run! Run!”

Jean screamed loudly, “Guy! Run! Run!”

But Guy Isbel and his companion strode on into the pasture, as if they had not heard, as if no menacing horse thieves were within miles. They had covered about a quarter of the distance across the pasture, and were nearing the horses, when Jean saw red flashes and white puffs of smoke burst out from the front of that dark band of rustlers. Then followed the sharp, rattling crack of rifles.

But Guy Isbel and his friend walked on into the pasture, as if they hadn’t heard, as if there were no dangerous horse thieves nearby. They had covered about a quarter of the way across the pasture and were getting close to the horses when Jean saw red flashes and white clouds of smoke erupt from the front of that dark group of rustlers. Then came the sharp, rattling crack of rifles.

Guy Isbel stopped short, and, dropping his gun, he threw up his arms and fell headlong. Jacobs acted as if he had suddenly encountered an invisible blow. He had been hit. Turning, he began to run and ran fast for a few paces. There were more quick, sharp shots. He let go of his rifle. His running broke. Walking, reeling, staggering, he kept on. A hoarse cry came from him. Then a single rifle shot pealed out. Jean heard the bullet strike. Jacobs fell to his knees, then forward on his face.

Guy Isbel stopped in his tracks, dropped his gun, threw his arms up, and fell flat. Jacobs acted as if he'd just taken an invisible hit. He had been struck. Turning, he started to run and sped away for a few steps. More quick, sharp shots rang out. He let go of his rifle. His pace slowed. Walking, swaying, and stumbling, he kept going. A hoarse cry escaped him. Then a single rifle shot echoed. Jean heard the bullet hit. Jacobs dropped to his knees, then fell forward onto his face.

Jean Isbel felt himself turned to marble. The suddenness of this tragedy paralyzed him. His gaze remained riveted on those prostrate forms.

Jean Isbel felt like he had turned to stone. The shock of this tragedy left him frozen. His eyes stayed glued to those lying on the ground.

A hand clutched his arm—a shaking woman’s hand, slim and hard and tense.

A hand gripped his arm—an anxious woman's hand, slim and strong and tense.

“Bill’s—killed!” whispered a broken voice. “I was watchin’.... They’re both dead!”

“Bill’s—killed!” whispered a broken voice. “I was watching.... They’re both dead!”

The wives of Jacobs and Guy Isbel had slipped up behind Jean and from behind him they had seen the tragedy.

The wives of Jacobs and Guy Isbel had quietly approached Jean from behind, and from that position, they witnessed the tragedy.

“I asked Bill—not to—go,” faltered the Jacobs woman, and, covering her face with her hands, she groped back to the corner of the cabin, where the other women, shaking and white, received her in their arms. Guy Isbel’s wife stood at the window, peering over Jean’s shoulder. She had the nerve of a man. She had looked out upon death before.

“I asked Bill—not to—go,” the Jacobs woman stammered, and, covering her face with her hands, she stumbled back to the corner of the cabin, where the other women, trembling and pale, embraced her. Guy Isbel’s wife stood at the window, looking over Jean’s shoulder. She had the courage of a man. She had faced death before.

“Yes, they’re dead,” she said, bitterly. “An’ how are we goin’ to get their bodies?”

“Yes, they’re dead,” she said, bitterly. “And how are we going to get their bodies?”

At this Gaston Isbel seemed to rouse from the cold spell that had transfixed him.

At this moment, Gaston Isbel seemed to shake off the cold spell that had frozen him.

“God, this is hell for our women,” he cried out, hoarsely. “My son—my son! ... Murdered by the Jorths!” Then he swore a terrible oath.

“God, this is a nightmare for our women,” he yelled, hoarsely. “My son—my son! ... Killed by the Jorths!” Then he swore a terrible oath.

Jean saw the remainder of the mounted rustlers get off, and then, all of them leading their horses, they began to move around to the left.

Jean watched as the rest of the mounted rustlers got off, and then, all of them leading their horses, they started to move to the left.

“Dad, they’re movin’ round,” said Jean.

“Dad, they're moving around,” said Jean.

“Up to some trick,” declared Bill Isbel.

“Up to some trick,” Bill Isbel declared.

“Bill, you make a hole through the back wall, say aboot the fifth log up,” ordered the father. “Shore we’ve got to look out.”

“Bill, you need to make a hole in the back wall, about the fifth log up,” the father instructed. “We really have to be careful.”

The elder son grasped a tool and, scattering the children, who had been playing near the back corner, he began to work at the point designated. The little children backed away with fixed, wondering, grave eyes. The women moved their chairs, and huddled together as if waiting and listening.

The older son picked up a tool and, pushing the kids who had been playing near the back corner aside, he started working at the designated spot. The little ones backed away, their eyes wide with wonder and seriousness. The women shifted their chairs and gathered together, as if they were waiting and listening.

Jean watched the rustlers until they passed out of his sight. They had moved toward the sloping, brushy ground to the north and west of the cabins.

Jean watched the rustlers until they disappeared from view. They had headed towards the sloping, brushy area to the north and west of the cabins.

“Let me know when you get a hole in the back wall,” said Jean, and he went through the kitchen and cautiously out another door to slip into a low-roofed, shed-like end of the rambling cabin. This small space was used to store winter firewood. The chinks between the walls had not been filled with adobe clay, and he could see out on three sides. The rustlers were going into the juniper brush. They moved out of sight, and presently reappeared without their horses. It looked to Jean as if they intended to attack the cabins. Then they halted at the edge of the brush and held a long consultation. Jean could see them distinctly, though they were too far distant for him to recognize any particular man. One of them, however, stood and moved apart from the closely massed group. Evidently, from his strides and gestures, he was exhorting his listeners. Jean concluded this was either Daggs or Jorth. Whoever it was had a loud, coarse voice, and this and his actions impressed Jean with a suspicion that the man was under the influence of the bottle.

“Let me know when you create a hole in the back wall,” Jean said, then went through the kitchen and carefully slipped out another door into a low-roofed, shed-like part of the sprawling cabin. This small area was used for storing firewood for the winter. The gaps between the walls hadn't been filled with adobe clay, so he could see out on three sides. The rustlers were heading into the juniper brush. They disappeared from view and then soon reappeared without their horses. It seemed to Jean that they were planning to attack the cabins. Then they stopped at the edge of the brush and held a lengthy discussion. Jean could see them clearly, although they were too far away for him to identify any specific person. One of them, however, stood apart from the closely grouped men. Clearly, based on his strides and gestures, he was rallying his audience. Jean figured this was either Daggs or Jorth. Whoever it was had a loud, rough voice, and this, along with his actions, led Jean to suspect that the man was under the influence of alcohol.

Presently Bill Isbel called Jean in a low voice. “Jean, I got the hole made, but we can’t see anyone.”

Presently, Bill Isbel called to Jean in a soft voice. “Jean, I made the hole, but we can’t see anyone.”

“I see them,” Jean replied. “They’re havin’ a powwow. Looks to me like either Jorth or Daggs is drunk. He’s arguin’ to charge us, an’ the rest of the gang are holdin’ back.... Tell dad, an’ all of you keep watchin’. I’ll let you know when they make a move.”

“I see them,” Jean replied. “They’re having a meeting. Looks like either Jorth or Daggs is drunk. He’s arguing about charging us, and the rest of the gang is holding back... Tell Dad, and all of you keep watching. I’ll let you know when they make a move.”

Jorth’s gang appeared to be in no hurry to expose their plan of battle. Gradually the group disintegrated a little; some of them sat down; others walked to and fro. Presently two of them went into the brush, probably back to the horses. In a few moments they reappeared, carrying a pack. And when this was deposited on the ground all the rustlers sat down around it. They had brought food and drink. Jean had to utter a grim laugh at their coolness; and he was reminded of many dare-devil deeds known to have been perpetrated by the Hash Knife Gang. Jean was glad of a reprieve. The longer the rustlers put off an attack the more time the allies of the Isbels would have to get here. Rather hazardous, however, would it be now for anyone to attempt to get to the Isbel cabins in the daytime. Night would be more favorable.

Jorth’s gang didn’t seem rushed to reveal their battle plan. Gradually, the group began to break apart; some of them sat down, while others paced back and forth. Soon, two of them headed into the bushes, probably returning to their horses. Moments later, they came back, carrying a pack. Once it was set down on the ground, all the rustlers gathered around it. They had brought food and drinks. Jean couldn’t help but let out a grim laugh at their nonchalance; it reminded him of the many reckless acts associated with the Hash Knife Gang. Jean felt relieved. The longer the rustlers delayed their attack, the more time the Isbel allies would have to arrive. However, it would now be quite risky for anyone to try to reach the Isbel cabins during the day. Night would be better suited for that.

Twice Bill Isbel came through the kitchen to whisper to Jean. The strain in the large room, from which the rustlers could not be seen, must have been great. Jean told him all he had seen and what he thought about it. “Eatin’ an’ drinkin’!” ejaculated Bill. “Well, I’ll be—! That ’ll jar the old man. He wants to get the fight over.

Twice Bill Isbel walked through the kitchen to whisper to Jean. The tension in the big room, where they couldn’t see the rustlers, must have been intense. Jean shared everything he had seen and his thoughts on it. “Eating and drinking!” Bill exclaimed. “Well, I can’t believe it! That’ll shock the old man. He wants to get the fight done.”

“Tell him I said it’ll be over too quick—for us—unless are mighty careful,” replied Jean, sharply.

“Tell him I said it’ll be over too quickly—for us—unless we’re really careful,” replied Jean, sharply.

Bill went back muttering to himself. Then followed a long wait, fraught with suspense, during which Jean watched the rustlers regale themselves. The day was hot and still. And the unnatural silence of the cabin was broken now and then by the gay laughter of the children. The sound shocked and haunted Jean. Playing children! Then another sound, so faint he had to strain to hear it, disturbed and saddened him—his father’s slow tread up and down the cabin floor, to and fro, to and fro. What must be in his father’s heart this day!

Bill walked back, muttering to himself. Then came a long wait, full of suspense, during which Jean watched the rustlers enjoying themselves. The day was hot and calm. The unusual silence of the cabin was occasionally broken by the cheerful laughter of the children. The sound unsettled and troubled Jean. Playing children! Then another sound, so faint he had to focus to hear it, disturbed and saddened him—his father’s slow pacing back and forth on the cabin floor. What must be in his father’s heart today!

At length the rustlers rose and, with rifles in hand, they moved as one man down the slope. They came several hundred yards closer, until Jean, grimly cocking his rifle, muttered to himself that a few more rods closer would mean the end of several of that gang. They knew the range of a rifle well enough, and once more sheered off at right angles with the cabin. When they got even with the line of corrals they stooped down and were lost to Jean’s sight. This fact caused him alarm. They were, of course, crawling up on the cabins. At the end of that line of corrals ran a ditch, the bank of which was high enough to afford cover. Moreover, it ran along in front of the cabins, scarcely a hundred yards, and it was covered with grass and little clumps of brush, from behind which the rustlers could fire into the windows and through the clay chinks without any considerable risk to themselves. As they did not come into sight again, Jean concluded he had discovered their plan. Still, he waited awhile longer, until he saw faint, little clouds of dust rising from behind the far end of the embankment. That discovery made him rush out, and through the kitchen to the large cabin, where his sudden appearance startled the men.

At last, the rustlers stood up and, rifles in hand, they moved together down the slope. They got several hundred yards closer until Jean, grimly cocking his rifle, muttered to himself that being a few more yards closer would mean the end for several members of that gang. They knew their rifle range well enough, and once again veered off at a right angle from the cabin. When they reached the line of corrals, they crouched down and disappeared from Jean’s view. This alarmed him. They were clearly sneaking up on the cabins. At the end of the line of corrals, there was a ditch, and the bank was high enough to provide cover. Furthermore, it ran in front of the cabins, just under a hundred yards away, and was covered with grass and small clumps of brush, from behind which the rustlers could shoot into the windows and through the clay gaps without much risk to themselves. Since they didn’t reappear, Jean figured he had figured out their plan. Still, he waited a bit longer until he saw faint little clouds of dust rising from behind the far end of the embankment. That discovery made him rush out, through the kitchen, and into the large cabin, where his sudden appearance startled the men.

“Get back out of sight!” he ordered, sharply, and with swift steps he reached the door and closed it. “They’re behind the bank out there by the corrals. An’ they’re goin’ to crawl down the ditch closer to us.... It looks bad. They’ll have grass an’ brush to shoot from. We’ve got to be mighty careful how we peep out.”

“Get back out of sight!” he commanded sharply, and with quick steps, he went to the door and shut it. “They’re behind the bank out there by the corrals. And they’re going to crawl down the ditch closer to us... It looks bad. They’ll have grass and brush to shoot from. We need to be really careful about how we peek out.”

“Ahuh! All right,” replied his father. “You women keep the kids with you in that corner. An’ you all better lay down flat.”

“Okay! All right,” replied his father. “You women keep the kids with you in that corner. And you all better lie down flat.”

Blaisdell, Bill Isbel, and the old man crouched at the large window, peeping through cracks in the rough edges of the logs. Jean took his post beside the small window, with his keen eyes vibrating like a compass needle. The movement of a blade of grass, the flight of a grasshopper could not escape his trained sight.

Blaisdell, Bill Isbel, and the old man crouched at the large window, peeking through the gaps in the rough edges of the logs. Jean took his spot beside the small window, his sharp eyes alert like a compass needle. The movement of a blade of grass or the flight of a grasshopper couldn't escape his trained gaze.

“Look sharp now!” he called to the other men. “I see dust.... They’re workin’ along almost to that bare spot on the bank.... I saw the tip of a rifle ... a black hat ... more dust. They’re spreadin’ along behind the bank.”

“Stay alert now!” he shouted to the other men. “I see dust.... They’re working their way almost to that bare spot on the bank.... I caught a glimpse of a rifle ... a black hat ... more dust. They’re spreading out behind the bank.”

Loud voices, and then thick clouds of yellow dust, coming from behind the highest and brushiest line of the embankment, attested to the truth of Jean’s observation, and also to a reckless disregard of danger.

Loud voices, followed by thick clouds of yellow dust, came from behind the tallest and bushiest part of the embankment, confirming Jean’s observation and showing a blatant disregard for danger.

Suddenly Jean caught a glint of moving color through the fringe of brush. Instantly he was strung like a whipcord.

Suddenly, Jean saw a flash of color moving through the brush. Instantly, he was tense and ready.

Then a tall, hatless and coatless man stepped up in plain sight. The sun shone on his fair, ruffled hair. Daggs!

Then a tall man without a hat or coat stepped into view. The sun glinted off his light, tousled hair. Daggs!

“Hey, you — — Isbels!” he bawled, in magnificent derisive boldness. “Come out an’ fight!”

“Hey, you — — Isbels!” he shouted, with impressive mock bravado. “Come out and fight!”

Quick as lightning Jean threw up his rifle and fired. He saw tufts of fair hair fly from Daggs’s head. He saw the squirt of red blood. Then quick shots from his comrades rang out. They all hit the swaying body of the rustler. But Jean knew with a terrible thrill that his bullet had killed Daggs before the other three struck. Daggs fell forward, his arms and half his body resting over, the embankment. Then the rustlers dragged him back out of sight. Hoarse shouts rose. A cloud of yellow dust drifted away from the spot.

Quick as lightning, Jean raised his rifle and fired. He saw tufts of light hair fly from Daggs’s head. He saw a spray of red blood. Then rapid shots from his teammates rang out. They all hit the swaying body of the rustler. But Jean felt a terrible thrill know that his bullet had killed Daggs before the other three struck. Daggs fell forward, his arms and half his body resting over the embankment. Then the rustlers dragged him back out of sight. Hoarse shouts erupted. A cloud of yellow dust drifted away from the scene.

“Daggs!” burst out Gaston Isbel. “Jean, you knocked off the top of his haid. I seen that when I was pullin’ trigger. Shore we over heah wasted our shots.”

“Daggs!” exclaimed Gaston Isbel. “Jean, you shot the top of his head off. I saw that when I was pulling the trigger. We definitely wasted our shots over here.”

“God! he must have been crazy or drunk—to pop up there—an’ brace us that way,” said Blaisdell, breathing hard.

“Wow! He must have been crazy or drunk—to just show up like that—and confront us like that,” said Blaisdell, breathing heavily.

“Arizona is bad for Texans,” replied Isbel, sardonically. “Shore it’s been too peaceful heah. Rustlers have no practice at fightin’. An’ I reckon Daggs forgot.”

“Arizona is bad for Texans,” Isbel replied sarcastically. “Sure, it’s been way too peaceful here. Rustlers have no practice fighting. And I guess Daggs forgot.”

“Daggs made as crazy a move as that of Guy an’ Jacobs,” spoke up Jean. “They were overbold, an’ he was drunk. Let them be a lesson to us.”

“Daggs made a move just as crazy as Guy and Jacobs did,” Jean said. “They were way too bold, and he was drunk. Let this be a lesson for us.”

Jean had smelled whisky upon his entrance to this cabin. Bill was a hard drinker, and his father was not immune. Blaisdell, too, drank heavily upon occasions. Jean made a mental note that he would not permit their chances to become impaired by liquor.

Jean had smelled whiskey as soon as he entered the cabin. Bill was a heavy drinker, and his father was no different. Blaisdell also drank a lot sometimes. Jean mentally noted that he wouldn’t let their chances be affected by alcohol.

Rifles began to crack, and puffs of smoke rose all along the embankment for the space of a hundred feet. Bullets whistled through the rude window casing and spattered on the heavy door, and one split the clay between the logs before Jean, narrowly missing him. Another volley followed, then another. The rustlers had repeating rifles and they were emptying their magazines. Jean changed his position. The other men profited by his wise move. The volleys had merged into one continuous rattling roar of rifle shots. Then came a sudden cessation of reports, with silence of relief. The cabin was full of dust, mingled with the smoke from the shots of Jean and his companions. Jean heard the stifled breaths of the children. Evidently they were terror-stricken, but they did not cry out. The women uttered no sound.

Rifles started firing, and clouds of smoke rose along the embankment for a hundred feet. Bullets whistled through the rough window frame and hit the heavy door, with one splintering the clay between the logs, just missing Jean. Another round of shots followed, then another. The rustlers had repeating rifles and were emptying their magazines. Jean shifted his position. The other men took advantage of his smart move. The gunfire combined into one continuous, loud roar of rifle shots. Then there was a sudden stop, bringing a moment of relief. The cabin was filled with dust mixed with the smoke from Jean and his companions' shots. Jean could hear the children's quiet breaths. They were obviously terrified but didn’t scream. The women stayed silent.

A loud voice pealed from behind the embankment.

A loud voice rang out from behind the embankment.

“Come out an’ fight! Do you Isbels want to be killed like sheep?”

“Come out and fight! Do you Isbels want to get killed like sheep?”

This sally gained no reply. Jean returned to his post by the window and his comrades followed his example. And they exercised extreme caution when they peeped out.

This outburst got no response. Jean went back to his spot by the window, and his teammates did the same. They were very careful when they looked out.

“Boys, don’t shoot till you see one,” said Gaston Isbel. “Maybe after a while they’ll get careless. But Jorth will never show himself.”

“Guys, don’t shoot until you see one,” said Gaston Isbel. “Maybe eventually they’ll let their guard down. But Jorth will never reveal himself.”

The rustlers did not again resort to volleys. One by one, from different angles, they began to shoot, and they were not firing at random. A few bullets came straight in at the windows to pat into the walls; a few others ticked and splintered the edges of the windows; and most of them broke through the clay chinks between the logs. It dawned upon Jean that these dangerous shots were not accident. They were well aimed, and most of them hit low down. The cunning rustlers had some unerring riflemen and they were picking out the vulnerable places all along the front of the cabin. If Jean had not been lying flat he would have been hit twice. Presently he conceived the idea of driving pegs between the logs, high up, and, kneeling on these, he managed to peep out from the upper edge of the window. But this position was awkward and difficult to hold for long.

The rustlers stopped using volleys and started shooting one by one from different angles. They weren’t shooting randomly. A few bullets came straight at the windows and hit the walls; others ticked and splintered the edges of the windows; and most broke through the clay gaps between the logs. Jean realized these dangerous shots were deliberate. They were well aimed, and most of them hit low. The clever rustlers had some accurate marksmen who were targeting the weak spots along the front of the cabin. If Jean hadn’t been lying flat, he would have been hit twice. He then had the idea of driving pegs between the logs, high up, and, kneeling on these, he managed to peek out from the upper edge of the window. But this position was awkward and hard to maintain for long.

He heard a bullet hit one of his comrades. Whoever had been struck never uttered a sound. Jean turned to look. Bill Isbel was holding his shoulder, where red splotches appeared on his shirt. He shook his head at Jean, evidently to make light of the wound. The women and children were lying face down and could not see what was happening. Plain is was that Bill did not want them to know. Blaisdell bound up the bloody shoulder with a scarf.

He heard a bullet hit one of his friends. Whoever got hit didn't make a sound. Jean turned to look. Bill Isbel was holding his shoulder, where red stains were showing on his shirt. He shook his head at Jean, obviously trying to downplay the injury. The women and kids were lying face down and couldn't see what was going on. It was clear that Bill didn't want them to find out. Blaisdell wrapped the bloody shoulder with a scarf.

Steady firing from the rustlers went on, at the rate of one shot every few minutes. The Isbels did not return these. Jean did not fire again that afternoon. Toward sunset, when the besiegers appeared to grow restless or careless, Blaisdell fired at something moving behind the brush; and Gaston Isbel’s huge buffalo gun boomed out.

Steady gunfire from the rustlers continued, with a shot fired every few minutes. The Isbels didn't return fire. Jean didn't shoot again that afternoon. As sunset approached and the besiegers seemed to become restless or careless, Blaisdell took aim at something moving in the brush, and Gaston Isbel's massive buffalo gun fired loudly.

“Wal, what ’re they goin’ to do after dark, an’ what ’re WE goin’ to do?” grumbled Blaisdell.

“Well, what are they going to do after dark, and what are WE going to do?” grumbled Blaisdell.

“Reckon they’ll never charge us,” said Gaston.

“Think they’ll never charge us,” said Gaston.

“They might set fire to the cabins,” added Bill Isbel. He appeared to be the gloomiest of the Isbel faction. There was something on his mind.

“They might set fire to the cabins,” added Bill Isbel. He seemed to be the most pessimistic of the Isbel group. There was something bothering him.

“Wal, the Jorths are bad, but I reckon they’d not burn us alive,” replied Blaisdell.

“Yeah, the Jorths are terrible, but I doubt they’d actually set us on fire,” replied Blaisdell.

“Hah!” ejaculated Gaston Isbel. “Much you know aboot Lee Jorth. He would skin me alive an’ throw red-hot coals on my raw flesh.”

“Hah!” exclaimed Gaston Isbel. “You don’t know anything about Lee Jorth. He would skin me alive and throw red-hot coals on my raw flesh.”

So they talked during the hour from sunset to dark. Jean Isbel had little to say. He was revolving possibilities in his mind. Darkness brought a change in the attack of the rustlers. They stationed men at four points around the cabins; and every few minutes one of these outposts would fire. These bullets embedded themselves in the logs, causing but little anxiety to the Isbels.

So they talked during the hour between sunset and dark. Jean Isbel didn't have much to say. He was considering the possibilities in his mind. Darkness changed how the rustlers attacked. They placed men at four points around the cabins, and every few minutes one of these outposts would shoot. The bullets lodged in the logs, causing little concern for the Isbels.

“Jean, what you make of it?” asked the old rancher.

“Jean, what do you think about it?” asked the old rancher.

“Looks to me this way,” replied Jean. “They’re set for a long fight. They’re shootin’ just to let us know they’re on the watch.”

“Looks like this to me,” replied Jean. “They’re ready for a long fight. They’re shooting just to let us know they’re keeping an eye on us.”

“Ahuh! Wal, what ’re you goin’ to do aboot it?”

“Ahuh! Well, what are you going to do about it?”

“I’m goin’ out there presently.”

“I’m going out there now.”

Gaston Isbel grunted his satisfaction at this intention of Jean’s.

Gaston Isbel grunted his approval of Jean's plan.

All was pitch dark inside the cabin. The women had water and food at hand. Jean kept a sharp lookout from his window while he ate his supper of meat, bread, and milk. At last the children, worn out by the long day, fell asleep. The women whispered a little in their corner.

All was totally dark inside the cabin. The women had water and food nearby. Jean kept a close watch from his window while he ate his dinner of meat, bread, and milk. Finally, the children, exhausted from the long day, fell asleep. The women chatted quietly in their corner.

About nine o’clock Jean signified his intention of going out to reconnoitre.

About nine o’clock, Jean indicated that he wanted to go out for a reconnaissance.

“Dad, they’ve got the best of us in the daytime,” he said, “but not after dark.”

“Dad, they have the upper hand during the day,” he said, “but not at night.”

Jean buckled on a belt that carried shells, a bowie knife, and revolver, and with rifle in hand he went out through the kitchen to the yard. The night was darker than usual, as some of the stars were hidden by clouds. He leaned against the log cabin, waiting for his eyes to become perfectly adjusted to the darkness. Like an Indian, Jean could see well at night. He knew every point around cabins and sheds and corrals, every post, log, tree, rock, adjacent to the ranch. After perhaps a quarter of an hour watching, during which time several shots were fired from behind the embankment and one each from the rustlers at the other locations, Jean slipped out on his quest.

Jean fastened a belt that held shells, a Bowie knife, and a revolver. With his rifle in hand, he walked through the kitchen and into the yard. The night was darker than usual since some stars were obscured by clouds. He leaned against the log cabin, waiting for his eyes to fully adjust to the darkness. Like a Native American, Jean could see well at night. He was familiar with every spot around the cabins, sheds, and corrals—every post, log, tree, and rock near the ranch. After about fifteen minutes of watching, during which several shots were fired from behind the embankment and one from each of the rustlers at other spots, Jean slipped out on his mission.

He kept in the shadow of the cabin walls, then the line of orchard trees, then a row of currant bushes. Here, crouching low, he halted to look and listen. He was now at the edge of the open ground, with the gently rising slope before him. He could see the dark patches of cedar and juniper trees. On the north side of the cabin a streak of fire flashed in the blackness, and a shot rang out. Jean heard the bullet bit the cabin. Then silence enfolded the lonely ranch and the darkness lay like a black blanket. A low hum of insects pervaded the air. Dull sheets of lightning illumined the dark horizon to the south. Once Jean heard voices, but could not tell from which direction they came. To the west of him then flared out another rifle shot. The bullet whistled down over Jean to thud into the cabin.

He stayed in the shadows of the cabin walls, then moved through the line of orchard trees, and past a row of currant bushes. Crouching low, he stopped to look and listen. He was now at the edge of the open ground, facing the gently rising slope ahead of him. He could see dark patches of cedar and juniper trees. On the north side of the cabin, a flash of fire lit up the darkness, followed by a gunshot. Jean heard the bullet hit the cabin. Then silence enveloped the lonely ranch, and the darkness lay like a black blanket. A low hum of insects filled the air. Dull sheets of lightning lit up the dark horizon to the south. Once, Jean heard voices but couldn’t tell where they were coming from. To the west, another rifle shot rang out. The bullet whizzed past Jean and thudded into the cabin.

Jean made a careful study of the obscure, gray-black open before him and then the background to his rear. So long as he kept the dense shadows behind him he could not be seen. He slipped from behind his covert and, gliding with absolutely noiseless footsteps, he gained the first clump of junipers. Here he waited patiently and motionlessly for another round of shots from the rustlers. After the second shot from the west side Jean sheered off to the right. Patches of brush, clumps of juniper, and isolated cedars covered this slope, affording Jean a perfect means for his purpose, which was to make a detour and come up behind the rustler who was firing from that side. Jean climbed to the top of the ridge, descended the opposite slope, made his turn to the left, and slowly worked up behind the point near where he expected to locate the rustler. Long habit in the open, by day and night, rendered his sense of direction almost as perfect as sight itself. The first flash of fire he saw from this side proved that he had come straight up toward his man. Jean’s intention was to crawl up on this one of the Jorth gang and silently kill him with a knife. If the plan worked successfully, Jean meant to work round to the next rustler. Laying aside his rifle, he crawled forward on hands and knees, making no more sound than a cat. His approach was slow. He had to pick his way, be careful not to break twigs nor rattle stones. His buckskin garments made no sound against the brush. Jean located the rustler sitting on the top of the ridge in the center of an open space. He was alone. Jean saw the dull-red end of the cigarette he was smoking. The ground on the ridge top was rocky and not well adapted for Jean’s purpose. He had to abandon the idea of crawling up on the rustler. Whereupon, Jean turned back, patiently and slowly, to get his rifle.

Jean carefully scanned the dark, gray-black area ahead of him and the background behind him. As long as he stayed hidden in the dense shadows, he wouldn't be seen. He stepped out from his hiding spot and, moving silently, reached the first group of junipers. Here, he waited patiently and motionless for another round of shots from the rustlers. After hearing the second shot from the west, Jean moved to the right. The slope was covered in patches of brush, clusters of junipers, and scattered cedars, providing Jean with perfect cover to make a detour and approach the rustler firing from that side. Jean climbed to the top of the ridge, descended the other side, turned left, and carefully advanced toward the spot where he expected to find the rustler. His long experience in the open, both day and night, gave him a sense of direction almost as good as sight. The first flash of light he saw from this direction confirmed he was headed straight for his target. Jean's plan was to sneak up on this member of the Jorth gang and silently kill him with a knife. If that worked, he intended to move on to the next rustler. Leaving his rifle behind, he crawled forward on his hands and knees, making no more noise than a cat. He approached slowly, carefully choosing his path to avoid breaking twigs or disturbing stones. His buckskin clothes were silent against the brush. Jean spotted the rustler sitting on top of the ridge in an open area. He was alone. Jean noticed the dull-red tip of the cigarette the rustler was smoking. The rocky ground on the ridge wasn't suitable for Jean's plan, so he abandoned the idea of crawling up on the rustler. Instead, he turned back, patiently and slowly, to retrieve his rifle.

Upon securing it he began to retrace his course, this time more slowly than before, as he was hampered by the rifle. But he did not make the slightest sound, and at length he reached the edge of the open ridge top, once more to espy the dark form of the rustler silhouetted against the sky. The distance was not more than fifty yards.

Upon getting it, he started to backtrack, this time more slowly than before because the rifle was slowing him down. But he didn’t make a sound, and eventually, he reached the edge of the open ridge top, once again spotting the dark figure of the rustler outlined against the sky. The distance was no more than fifty yards.

As Jean rose to his knee and carefully lifted his rifle round to avoid the twigs of a juniper he suddenly experienced another emotion besides the one of grim, hard wrath at the Jorths. It was an emotion that sickened him, made him weak internally, a cold, shaking, ungovernable sensation. Suppose this man was Ellen Jorth’s father! Jean lowered the rifle. He felt it shake over his knee. He was trembling all over. The astounding discovery that he did not want to kill Ellen’s father—that he could not do it—awakened Jean to the despairing nature of his love for her. In this grim moment of indecision, when he knew his Indian subtlety and ability gave him a great advantage over the Jorths, he fully realized his strange, hopeless, and irresistible love for the girl. He made no attempt to deny it any longer. Like the night and the lonely wilderness around him, like the inevitableness of this Jorth-Isbel feud, this love of his was a thing, a fact, a reality. He breathed to his own inward ear, to his soul—he could not kill Ellen Jorth’s father. Feud or no feud, Isbel or not, he could not deliberately do it. And why not? There was no answer. Was he not faithless to his father? He had no hope of ever winning Ellen Jorth. He did not want the love of a girl of her character. But he loved her. And his struggle must be against the insidious and mysterious growth of that passion. It swayed him already. It made him a coward. Through his mind and heart swept the memory of Ellen Jorth, her beauty and charm, her boldness and pathos, her shame and her degradation. And the sweetness of her outweighed the boldness. And the mystery of her arrayed itself in unquenchable protest against her acknowledged shame. Jean lifted his face to the heavens, to the pitiless white stars, to the infinite depths of the dark-blue sky. He could sense the fact of his being an atom in the universe of nature. What was he, what was his revengeful father, what were hate and passion and strife in comparison to the nameless something, immense and everlasting, that he sensed in this dark moment?

As Jean got to his knee and carefully raised his rifle to avoid the juniper twigs, he suddenly felt another emotion alongside his grim, intense anger at the Jorths. It was an emotion that made him feel sick, weak inside, a cold, uncontrollable shiver. What if this man was Ellen Jorth’s father? Jean lowered the rifle, feeling it tremble on his knee. He was shaking all over. The shocking realization that he didn’t want to kill Ellen’s father—that he couldn’t do it—made him aware of the hopeless nature of his love for her. In that grim moment of indecision, knowing his Indian cunning and skill gave him a significant edge over the Jorths, he fully understood his strange, hopeless, and irresistible love for the girl. He no longer tried to deny it. Like the night and the lonely wilderness around him, like the inescapable Jorth-Isbel feud, this love was a reality. He whispered to himself, deep in his soul—he couldn’t kill Ellen Jorth’s father. Feud or no feud, Isbel or not, he couldn’t do it intentionally. And why not? There was no answer. Wasn’t he betraying his father? He had no chance of ever winning Ellen Jorth’s love. He didn’t want the love of a girl like her. But he loved her. And he had to fight against the insidious and mysterious growth of that passion. It was already affecting him. It made him a coward. Memories of Ellen Jorth swept through his mind and heart—her beauty and charm, her boldness and sorrow, her shame and degradation. And her sweetness outweighed her boldness. The mystery surrounding her stood in unquenchable protest against her acknowledged shame. Jean lifted his face to the heavens, to the harsh white stars, to the vast depths of the dark-blue sky. He could feel like he was just a tiny part of the great universe of nature. What was he, what was his vengeful father, what were hate, passion, and conflict compared to the nameless, immense, and eternal thing he sensed in that dark moment?

But the rustlers—Daggs—the Jorths—they had killed his brother Guy—murdered him brutally and ruthlessly. Guy had been a playmate of Jean’s—a favorite brother. Bill had been secretive and selfish. Jean had never loved him as he did Guy. Guy lay dead down there on the meadow. This feud had begun to run its bloody course. Jean steeled his nerve. The hot blood crept back along his veins. The dark and masterful tide of revenge waved over him. The keen edge of his mind then cut out sharp and trenchant thoughts. He must kill when and where he could. This man could hardly be Ellen Jorth’s father. Jorth would be with the main crowd, directing hostilities. Jean could shoot this rustler guard and his shot would be taken by the gang as the regular one from their comrade. Then swiftly Jean leveled his rifle, covered the dark form, grew cold and set, and pressed the trigger. After the report he rose and wheeled away. He did not look nor listen for the result of his shot. A clammy sweat wet his face, the hollow of his hands, his breast. A horrible, leaden, thick sensation oppressed his heart. Nature had endowed him with Indian gifts, but the exercise of them to this end caused a revolt in his soul.

But the rustlers—Daggs—the Jorths—they had killed his brother Guy—murdered him brutally and coldly. Guy had been a playmate of Jean’s—a favorite brother. Bill had been secretive and selfish. Jean had never loved him like he loved Guy. Guy lay dead down there in the meadow. This feud had started its bloody path. Jean steeled himself. The hot blood flowed back through his veins. The dark and powerful urge for revenge swept over him. The sharp edge of his mind then formed clear and cutting thoughts. He had to kill whenever and wherever he could. This man could hardly be Ellen Jorth’s father. Jorth would be with the main group, leading the hostilities. Jean could shoot this rustler guard, and his shot would be taken by the gang as just another shot from their comrade. Then quickly, Jean raised his rifle, aimed at the dark figure, felt cold and steady, and pulled the trigger. After the gunshot, he stood and turned away. He didn’t look back or listen for the outcome of his shot. A clammy sweat covered his face, made his hands and chest damp. A horrible, heavy sensation weighed down on his heart. Nature had given him Indian skills, but using them for this purpose felt like a violation of his soul.

Nevertheless, it was the Isbel blood that dominated him. The wind blew cool on his face. The burden upon his shoulders seemed to lift. The clamoring whispers grew fainter in his ears. And by the time he had retraced his cautious steps back to the orchard all his physical being was strung to the task at hand. Something had come between his reflective self and this man of action.

Nevertheless, it was the Isbel blood that took over him. The wind blew cool against his face. The weight on his shoulders seemed to ease. The loud whispers grew quieter in his ears. And by the time he carefully made his way back to the orchard, his whole being was focused on the task at hand. Something had bridged the gap between his thoughtful self and this man of action.

Crossing the lane, he took to the west line of sheds, and passed beyond them into the meadow. In the grass he crawled silently away to the right, using the same precaution that had actuated him on the slope, only here he did not pause so often, nor move so slowly. Jean aimed to go far enough to the right to pass the end of the embankment behind which the rustlers had found such efficient cover. This ditch had been made to keep water, during spring thaws and summer storms, from pouring off the slope to flood the corrals.

Crossing the path, he headed towards the western line of sheds and moved past them into the field. In the grass, he crawled quietly to the right, maintaining the same caution that had guided him on the slope, but here he didn’t stop as often or move as slowly. Jean intended to go far enough right to get past the end of the embankment where the rustlers had found such effective cover. This ditch had been created to prevent water from spring thaws and summer storms from flooding the corrals.

Jean miscalculated and found he had come upon the embankment somewhat to the left of the end, which fact, however, caused him no uneasiness. He lay there awhile to listen. Again he heard voices. After a time a shot pealed out. He did not see the flash, but he calculated that it had come from the north side of the cabins.

Jean misjudged and realized he had ended up on the embankment slightly to the left of the endpoint, but this didn’t bother him at all. He lay there for a bit to listen. Once more, he heard voices. After a while, a shot rang out. He didn’t see the flash, but he guessed it had come from the north side of the cabins.

The next quarter of an hour discovered to Jean that the nearest guard was firing from the top of the embankment, perhaps a hundred yards distant, and a second one was performing the same office from a point apparently only a few yards farther on. Two rustlers close together! Jean had not calculated upon that. For a little while he pondered on what was best to do, and at length decided to crawl round behind them, and as close as the situation made advisable.

The next 15 minutes revealed to Jean that the closest guard was shooting from the top of the embankment, maybe a hundred yards away, while a second guard was doing the same from a spot that seemed only a few yards farther. Two rustlers right next to each other! Jean hadn’t expected that. After thinking about what to do, he finally decided to crawl around behind them as far as the situation allowed.

He found the ditch behind the embankment a favorable path by which to stalk these enemies. It was dry and sandy, with borders of high weeds. The only drawback was that it was almost impossible for him to keep from brushing against the dry, invisible branches of the weeds. To offset this he wormed his way like a snail, inch by inch, taking a long time before he caught sight of the sitting figure of a man, black against the dark-blue sky. This rustler had fired his rifle three times during Jean’s slow approach. Jean watched and listened a few moments, then wormed himself closer and closer, until the man was within twenty steps of him.

He found the ditch behind the embankment to be a good way to sneak up on his enemies. It was dry and sandy, with tall weeds along the edges. The only downside was that it was nearly impossible for him to avoid brushing against the dry, hidden branches of the weeds. To get around this, he moved slowly like a snail, making his way inch by inch, taking a long time before he finally spotted a man sitting, silhouetted against the dark-blue sky. This rustler had fired his rifle three times while Jean was slowly approaching. Jean watched and listened for a few moments, then inched his way closer and closer until the man was just twenty steps away.

Jean smelled tobacco smoke, but could see no light of pipe or cigarette, because the fellow’s back was turned.

Jean smelled tobacco smoke but couldn't see any light from a pipe or cigarette because the guy had his back turned.

“Say, Ben,” said this man to his companion sitting hunched up a few yards distant, “shore it strikes me queer thet Somers ain’t shootin’ any over thar.”

“Hey, Ben,” said the man to his friend sitting hunched a few yards away, “it's pretty strange that Somers isn’t shooting at all over there.”

Jean recognized the dry, drawling voice of Greaves, and the shock of it seemed to contract the muscles of his whole thrilling body, like that of a panther about to spring.

Jean recognized the dry, drawling voice of Greaves, and the shock of it seemed to tense the muscles of his entire thrilling body, like a panther about to pounce.




CHAPTER VIII

“Was shore thinkin’ thet same,” said the other man. “An’, say, didn’t thet last shot sound too sharp fer Somers’s forty-five?”

“Was sure thinking the same,” said the other man. “And, didn’t that last shot sound too sharp for Somers’s forty-five?”

“Come to think of it, I reckon it did,” replied Greaves.

“Now that I think about it, I guess it did,” replied Greaves.

“Wal, I’ll go around over thar an’ see.”

“Well, I’ll head over there and check it out.”

The dark form of the rustler slipped out of sight over the embankment.

The shadowy figure of the cattle thief disappeared over the slope.

“Better go slow an’ careful,” warned Greaves. “An’ only go close enough to call Somers.... Mebbe thet damn half-breed Isbel is comin’ some Injun on us.”

“Better take it slow and be careful,” warned Greaves. “And only get close enough to call Somers.... Maybe that damn half-breed Isbel is coming at us like an Indian.”

Jean heard the soft swish of footsteps through wet grass. Then all was still. He lay flat, with his cheek on the sand, and he had to look ahead and upward to make out the dark figure of Greaves on the bank. One way or another he meant to kill Greaves, and he had the will power to resist the strongest gust of passion that had ever stormed his breast. If he arose and shot the rustler, that act would defeat his plan of slipping on around upon the other outposts who were firing at the cabins. Jean wanted to call softly to Greaves, “You’re right about the half-breed!” and then, as he wheeled aghast, to kill him as he moved. But it suited Jean to risk leaping upon the man. Jean did not waste time in trying to understand the strange, deadly instinct that gripped him at the moment. But he realized then he had chosen the most perilous plan to get rid of Greaves.

Jean heard the soft rustle of footsteps through the wet grass. Then everything went silent. He lay flat, resting his cheek on the sand, and had to look up to see the dark figure of Greaves on the bank. One way or another, he planned to kill Greaves, and he had the strength to hold back the strongest wave of passion that had ever surged within him. If he got up and shot the rustler, it would ruin his plan to slip around and take out the other guards who were firing at the cabins. Jean wanted to softly call out to Greaves, “You’re right about the half-breed!” and then, as Greaves turned in shock, to shoot him as he moved. But Jean felt it was better to take the risk of jumping on the man. He didn’t waste time trying to understand the strange, deadly instinct gripping him at that moment. But he realized he had chosen the most dangerous way to deal with Greaves.

Jean drew a long, deep breath and held it. He let go of his rifle. He rose, silently as a lifting shadow. He drew the bowie knife. Then with light, swift bounds he glided up the bank. Greaves must have heard a rustling—a soft, quick pad of moccasin, for he turned with a start. And that instant Jean’s left arm darted like a striking snake round Greaves’s neck and closed tight and hard. With his right hand free, holding the knife, Jean might have ended the deadly business in just one move. But when his bared arm felt the hot, bulging neck something terrible burst out of the depths of him. To kill this enemy of his father’s was not enough! Physical contact had unleashed the savage soul of the Indian. Yet there was more, and as Jean gave the straining body a tremendous jerk backward, he felt the same strange thrill, the dark joy that he had known when his fist had smashed the face of Simm Bruce. Greaves had leered—he had corroborated Bruce’s vile insinuation about Ellen Jorth. So it was more than hate that actuated Jean Isbel.

Jean took a long, deep breath and held it. He let go of his rifle. He rose, as silently as a shadow. He drew the bowie knife. Then, with light, quick movements, he glided up the bank. Greaves must have heard a rustling—a soft, quick pad of moccasins, because he turned with a start. In that moment, Jean’s left arm shot out like a striking snake around Greaves’s neck, gripping tight and hard. With his right hand free, holding the knife, Jean could have ended it in just one move. But when his bare arm felt the hot, bulging neck, something terrible erupted from deep within him. Killing this enemy of his father’s wasn’t enough! The physical contact had unleashed the savage spirit of the Indian. Yet there was more, and as Jean pulled the straining body backward with a tremendous force, he felt the same strange thrill, the dark joy he had felt when he’d smashed Simm Bruce's face. Greaves had leered—he had backed up Bruce’s disgusting insinuation about Ellen Jorth. So, it was more than just hatred driving Jean Isbel.

Greaves was heavy and powerful. He whirled himself, feet first, over backward, in a lunge like that of a lassoed steer. But Jean’s hold held. They rolled down the bank into the sandy ditch, and Jean landed uppermost, with his body at right angles with that of his adversary.

Greaves was big and strong. He spun himself, feet first, backward, in a move like a lassoed steer. But Jean's grip stayed firm. They tumbled down the bank into the sandy ditch, with Jean ending up on top, his body at a right angle to his opponent’s.

“Greaves, your hunch was right,” hissed Jean. “It’s the half-breed.... An’ I’m goin’ to cut you—first for Ellen Jorth—an’ then for Gaston Isbel!”

“Greaves, your instinct was spot on,” whispered Jean. “It’s the half-breed... I’m going to get you—first for Ellen Jorth—and then for Gaston Isbel!”

Jean gazed down into the gleaming eyes. Then his right arm whipped the big blade. It flashed. It fell. Low down, as far as Jean could reach, it entered Greaves’s body.

Jean looked down into the shining eyes. Then his right arm swung the big blade. It gleamed. It dropped. Deep down, as far as Jean could reach, it plunged into Greaves’s body.

All the heavy, muscular frame of Greaves seemed to contract and burst. His spring was that of an animal in terror and agony. It was so tremendous that it broke Jean’s hold. Greaves let out a strangled yell that cleared, swelling wildly, with a hideous mortal note. He wrestled free. The big knife came out. Supple and swift, he got to his, knees. He had his gun out when Jean reached him again. Like a bear Jean enveloped him. Greaves shot, but he could not raise the gun, nor twist it far enough. Then Jean, letting go with his right arm, swung the bowie. Greaves’s strength went out in an awful, hoarse cry. His gun boomed again, then dropped from his hand. He swayed. Jean let go. And that enemy of the Isbels sank limply in the ditch. Jean’s eyes roved for his rifle and caught the starlit gleam of it. Snatching it up, he leaped over the embankment and ran straight for the cabins. From all around yells of the Jorth faction attested to their excitement and fury.

All of Greaves's heavy, muscular frame seemed to contract and explode. His spring was like that of an animal in terror and pain. It was so powerful that it broke Jean's grip. Greaves let out a strangled yell that rose, swelling wildly, with a terrible, dying tone. He wrestled free. The big knife came out. Agile and quick, he got to his knees. He had his gun drawn when Jean reached him again. Like a bear, Jean enveloped him. Greaves shot, but he couldn’t raise the gun or twist it far enough. Then Jean, letting go with his right arm, swung the bowie. Greaves's strength slipped away with an awful, hoarse cry. His gun boomed again, then fell from his hand. He swayed. Jean released him. And that enemy of the Isbels collapsed limply in the ditch. Jean's eyes searched for his rifle and caught its starlit glimmer. Grabbing it, he leaped over the embankment and ran straight for the cabins. From all around, the yells of the Jorth faction showed their excitement and rage.

A fence loomed up gray in the obscurity. Jean vaulted it, darted across the lane into the shadow of the corral, and soon gained the first cabin. Here he leaned to regain his breath. His heart pounded high and seemed too large for his breast. The hot blood beat and surged all over his body. Sweat poured off him. His teeth were clenched tight as a vise, and it took effort on his part to open his mouth so he could breathe more freely and deeply. But these physical sensations were as nothing compared to the tumult of his mind. Then the instinct, the spell, let go its grip and he could think. He had avenged Guy, he had depleted the ranks of the Jorths, he had made good the brag of his father, all of which afforded him satisfaction. But these thoughts were not accountable for all that he felt, especially for the bittersweet sting of the fact that death to the defiler of Ellen Jorth could not efface the doubt, the regret which seemed to grow with the hours.

A gray fence appeared in the darkness. Jean jumped over it, rushed across the lane into the shadows of the corral, and soon reached the first cabin. Here he leaned against it to catch his breath. His heart was racing and felt like it was too big for his chest. Hot blood pumped and surged throughout his body. Sweat dripped off him. His teeth were clenched as tight as a vise, and he had to work to open his mouth so he could breathe more easily and deeply. But these physical feelings were nothing compared to the chaos in his mind. Then, the instinct, the spell, loosened its grip, and he could think clearly. He had avenged Guy, taken down some of the Jorths, and lived up to his father's claims, which gave him a sense of satisfaction. But these thoughts didn't explain everything he felt, especially the bittersweet pain of knowing that killing the one who harmed Ellen Jorth couldn't erase the doubt and regret that seemed to intensify with each passing hour.

Groping his way into the woodshed, he entered the kitchen and, calling low, he went on into the main cabin.

Groping his way into the woodshed, he entered the kitchen and, speaking quietly, continued into the main cabin.

“Jean! Jean!” came his father’s shaking voice.

“Jean! Jean!” came his father’s trembling voice.

“Yes, I’m back,” replied Jean.

“Yeah, I’m back,” replied Jean.

“Are—you—all right?”

“Are you all right?”

“Yes. I think I’ve got a bullet crease on my leg. I didn’t know I had it till now.... It’s bleedin’ a little. But it’s nothin’.”

“Yes. I think I’ve got a bullet mark on my leg. I didn’t realize I had it until now.... It’s bleeding a bit. But it’s nothing.”

Jean heard soft steps and some one reached shaking hands for him. They belonged to his sister Ann. She embraced him. Jean felt the heave and throb of her breast.

Jean heard soft footsteps, and someone reached out to shake his hand. It was his sister Ann. She hugged him, and Jean felt the rise and fall of her chest.

“Why, Ann, I’m not hurt,” he said, and held her close. “Now you lie down an’ try to sleep.”

“Why, Ann, I’m fine,” he said, holding her close. “Now you should lie down and try to sleep.”

In the black darkness of the cabin Jean led her back to the corner and his heart was full. Speech was difficult, because the very touch of Ann’s hands had made him divine that the success of his venture in no wise changed the plight of the women.

In the pitch-black cabin, Jean led her back to the corner, his heart overflowing. It was hard to find the right words, as just the feel of Ann’s hands made him realize that the success of his efforts hadn't changed the situation for the women at all.

“Wal, what happened out there?” demanded Blaisdell.

“Hey, what happened out there?” Blaisdell asked.

“I got two of them,” replied Jean. “That fellow who was shootin’ from the ridge west. An’ the other was Greaves.”

“I got two of them,” Jean replied. “The guy who was shooting from the ridge to the west. And the other one was Greaves.”

“Hah!” exclaimed his father.

“Ha!” his father exclaimed.

“Shore then it was Greaves yellin’,” declared Blaisdell. “By God, I never heard such yells! Whad ’d you do, Jean?”

“Sure enough, it was Greaves yelling,” Blaisdell said. “By God, I’ve never heard such yelling! What did you do, Jean?”

“I knifed him. You see, I’d planned to slip up on one after another. An’ I didn’t want to make noise. But I didn’t get any farther than Greaves.”

“I stabbed him. You see, I had planned to sneak up on one after another. And I didn’t want to make any noise. But I didn’t get any farther than Greaves.”

“Wal, I reckon that ’ll end their shootin’ in the dark,” muttered Gaston Isbel. “We’ve got to be on the lookout for somethin’ else—fire, most likely.”

“Well, I think that will stop their shooting in the dark,” muttered Gaston Isbel. “We need to watch out for something else—fire, probably.”

The old rancher’s surmise proved to be partially correct. Jorth’s faction ceased the shooting. Nothing further was seen or heard from them. But this silence and apparent break in the siege were harder to bear than deliberate hostility. The long, dark hours dragged by. The men took turns watching and resting, but none of them slept. At last the blackness paled and gray dawn stole out of the east. The sky turned rose over the distant range and daylight came.

The old rancher’s guess turned out to be partly right. Jorth’s group stopped firing. There was no more sight or sound from them. But this quiet and seeming pause in the attack were tougher to handle than open aggression. The long, dark hours dragged on. The men took turns keeping watch and resting, but none of them could sleep. Finally, the darkness faded, and gray dawn crept in from the east. The sky turned pink over the distant mountains as daylight arrived.

The children awoke hungry and noisy, having slept away their fears. The women took advantage of the quiet morning hour to get a hot breakfast.

The kids woke up hungry and loud, having slept off their fears. The women used the calm morning time to make a hot breakfast.

“Maybe they’ve gone away,” suggested Guy Isbel’s wife, peering out of the window. She had done that several times since daybreak. Jean saw her somber gaze search the pasture until it rested upon the dark, prone shape of her dead husband, lying face down in the grass. Her look worried Jean.

“Maybe they’ve left,” suggested Guy Isbel’s wife, looking out the window. She had done that several times since sunrise. Jean saw her worried gaze scan the pasture until it landed on the dark, lifeless form of her husband, lying face down in the grass. Her expression troubled Jean.

“No, Esther, they’ve not gone yet,” replied Jean. “I’ve seen some of them out there at the edge of the brush.”

“No, Esther, they haven’t left yet,” Jean replied. “I saw a few of them out there at the edge of the brush.”

Blaisdell was optimistic. He said Jean’s night work would have its effect and that the Jorth contingent would not renew the siege very determinedly. It turned out, however, that Blaisdell was wrong. Directly after sunrise they began to pour volleys from four sides and from closer range. During the night Jorth’s gang had thrown earth banks and constructed log breastworks, from behind which they were now firing. Jean and his comrades could see the flashes of fire and streaks of smoke to such good advantage that they began to return the volleys.

Blaisdell was feeling hopeful. He believed Jean's night efforts would pay off and that the Jorth group wouldn’t launch another attack with much determination. However, it turned out that Blaisdell was mistaken. Right after sunrise, they started unleashing volleys from all directions and at a closer range. During the night, Jorth's crew had built up earth mounds and log barricades, from behind which they were now shooting. Jean and his teammates could see the flashes of gunfire and trails of smoke so clearly that they began to fire back.

In half an hour the cabin was so full of smoke that Jean could not see the womenfolk in their corner. The fierce attack then abated somewhat, and the firing became more intermittent, and therefore more carefully aimed. A glancing bullet cut a furrow in Blaisdell’s hoary head, making a painful, though not serious wound. It was Esther Isbel who stopped the flow of blood and bound Blaisdell’s head, a task which she performed skillfully and without a tremor. The old Texan could not sit still during this operation. Sight of the blood on his hands, which he tried to rub off, appeared to inflame him to a great degree.

In half an hour, the cabin was so filled with smoke that Jean couldn't see the women in their corner. The fierce attack then slowed down a bit, and the gunfire became more sporadic, which meant it was more carefully aimed. A stray bullet grazed Blaisdell’s gray head, causing a painful but not serious injury. It was Esther Isbel who stopped the bleeding and bandaged Blaisdell’s head, a task she handled skillfully and without shaking. The old Texan couldn’t stay still during this process. Seeing the blood on his hands, which he tried to wipe off, seemed to agitate him even more.

“Isbel, we got to go out thar,” he kept repeating, “an’ kill them all.”

“Isbel, we need to go out there,” he kept repeating, “and kill them all.”

“No, we’re goin’ to stay heah,” replied Gaston Isbel. “Shore I’m lookin’ for Blue an’ Fredericks an’ Gordon to open up out there. They ought to be heah, an’ if they are y’u shore can bet they’ve got the fight sized up.”

“No, we’re going to stay here,” replied Gaston Isbel. “Sure I’m looking for Blue and Fredericks and Gordon to open up out there. They should be here, and if they are, you can bet they’ve got the fight figured out.”

Isbel’s hopes did not materialize. The shooting continued without any lull until about midday. Then the Jorth faction stopped.

Isbel’s hopes did not come true. The shooting went on without any break until around midday. Then the Jorth faction stopped.

“Wal, now what’s up?” queried Isbel. “Boys, hold your fire an’ let’s wait.”

“Okay, what’s going on?” asked Isbel. “Guys, hold your fire and let’s wait.”

Gradually the smoke wafted out of the windows and doors, until the room was once more clear. And at this juncture Esther Isbel came over to take another gaze out upon the meadows. Jean saw her suddenly start violently, then stiffen, with a trembling hand outstretched.

Gradually, the smoke drifted out of the windows and doors until the room was clear again. At that moment, Esther Isbel walked over to take another look at the meadows. Jean noticed her suddenly jerk back violently, then freeze, with a trembling hand reaching out.

“Look!” she cried.

“Check it out!” she cried.

“Esther, get back,” ordered the old rancher. “Keep away from that window.”

“Esther, step back,” the old rancher commanded. “Stay away from that window.”

“What the hell!” muttered Blaisdell. “She sees somethin’, or she’s gone dotty.”

“What the hell!” Blaisdell muttered. “She’s either seeing something, or she’s lost her mind.”

Esther seemed turned to stone. “Look! The hogs have broken into the pasture! ... They’ll eat Guy’s body!”

Esther looked like she was frozen in place. “Look! The pigs have gotten into the pasture! ... They’re going to eat Guy’s body!”

Everyone was frozen with horror at Esther’s statement. Jean took a swift survey of the pasture. A bunch of big black hogs had indeed appeared on the scene and were rooting around in the grass not far from where lay the bodies of Guy Isbel and Jacobs. This herd of hogs belonged to the rancher and was allowed to run wild.

Everyone was frozen with fear at Esther’s statement. Jean quickly looked over the pasture. A group of large black pigs had indeed shown up and were digging through the grass not far from where the bodies of Guy Isbel and Jacobs lay. This herd of pigs belonged to the rancher and was allowed to roam freely.

“Jane, those hogs—” stammered Esther Isbel, to the wife of Jacobs. “Come! Look! ... Do y’u know anythin’ about hogs?”

“Jane, those pigs—” stammered Esther Isbel, to Jacobs’ wife. “Come! Look! ... Do you know anything about pigs?”

The woman ran to the window and looked out. She stiffened as had Esther.

The woman rushed to the window and looked outside. She tensed up, just like Esther had.

“Dad, will those hogs—eat human flesh?” queried Jean, breathlessly.

“Dad, will those pigs—eat human flesh?” Jean asked, breathlessly.

The old man stared out of the window. Surprise seemed to hold him. A completely unexpected situation had staggered him.

The old man looked out the window, surprised. He was overcome by an unexpected situation that had thrown him off balance.

“Jean—can you—can you shoot that far?” he asked, huskily.

“Jean—can you—can you shoot that far?” he asked, in a rough voice.

“To those hogs? No, it’s out of range.”

“To those pigs? No, it’s out of range.”

“Then, by God, we’ve got to stay trapped in heah an’ watch an awful sight,” ejaculated the old man, completely unnerved. “See that break in the fence! ... Jorth’s done that.... To let in the hogs!”

“Then, by God, we’ve got to stay stuck here and watch something terrible,” exclaimed the old man, completely rattled. “See that gap in the fence! ... Jorth did that.... To let in the hogs!”

“Aw, Isbel, it’s not so bad as all that,” remonstrated Blaisdell, wagging his bloody head. “Jorth wouldn’t do such a hell-bent trick.”

“Aw, Isbel, it’s not that serious,” protested Blaisdell, shaking his bloody head. “Jorth wouldn’t pull such a reckless stunt.”

“It’s shore done.”

“It's sure done.”

“Wal, mebbe the hogs won’t find Guy an’ Jacobs,” returned Blaisdell, weakly. Plain it was that he only hoped for such a contingency and certainly doubted it.

“Well, maybe the pigs won’t find Guy and Jacobs,” Blaisdell replied weakly. It was clear that he was just hoping for that to happen and definitely didn’t believe it.

“Look!” cried Esther Isbel, piercingly. “They’re workin’ straight up the pasture!”

“Look!” shouted Esther Isbel, piercingly. “They’re working right up the pasture!”

Indeed, to Jean it appeared to be the fatal truth. He looked blankly, feeling a little sick. Ann Isbel came to peer out of the window and she uttered a cry. Jacobs’s wife stood mute, as if dazed.

Indeed, to Jean it seemed like the deadly truth. He stared blankly, feeling a bit queasy. Ann Isbel came to look out of the window and let out a cry. Jacobs’s wife stood there silent, as if in shock.

Blaisdell swore a mighty oath. “— — —! Isbel, we cain’t stand heah an’ watch them hogs eat our people!”

Blaisdell swore a strong oath. “— — —! Isbel, we can’t just stand here and watch those hogs eat our people!”

“Wal, we’ll have to. What else on earth can we do?”

“Well, we’ll have to. What else can we do?”

Esther turned to the men. She was white and cold, except her eyes, which resembled gray flames.

Esther turned to the men. She was pale and cold, except for her eyes, which looked like gray flames.

“Somebody can run out there an’ bury our dead men,” she said.

“Someone can go out there and bury our dead men,” she said.

“Why, child, it’d be shore death. Y’u saw what happened to Guy an’ Jacobs.... We’ve jest got to bear it. Shore nobody needn’t look out—an’ see.”

“Why, kid, it’d be sure death. You saw what happened to Guy and Jacobs... We just have to endure it. Sure, nobody needs to look out— and see.”

Jean wondered if it would be possible to keep from watching. The thing had a horrible fascination. The big hogs were rooting and tearing in the grass, some of them lazy, others nimble, and all were gradually working closer and closer to the bodies. The leader, a huge, gaunt boar, that had fared ill all his life in this barren country, was scarcely fifty feet away from where Guy Isbel lay.

Jean wondered if it would be possible to look away. The scene had a terrible allure. The big hogs were digging and tearing at the grass, some of them sluggish, others quick, and all were slowly moving closer and closer to the bodies. The leader, a massive, thin boar, who had struggled all his life in this barren land, was barely fifty feet away from where Guy Isbel lay.

“Ann, get me some of your clothes, an’ a sunbonnet—quick,” said Jean, forced out of his lethargy. “I’ll run out there disguised. Maybe I can go through with it.”

“Ann, get me some of your clothes and a sunbonnet—quick,” said Jean, snapping out of his daze. “I’ll head out there in disguise. Maybe I can go through with it.”

“No!” ordered his father, positively, and with dark face flaming. “Guy an’ Jacobs are dead. We cain’t help them now.”

“No!” his father commanded firmly, his face flushed with anger. “Guy and Jacobs are dead. We can’t help them now.”

“But, dad—” pleaded Jean. He had been wrought to a pitch by Esther’s blaze of passion, by the agony in the face of the other woman.

“But, Dad—” pleaded Jean. He had been pushed to a breaking point by Esther’s intense emotion, by the pain on the face of the other woman.

“I tell y’u no!” thundered Gaston Isbel, flinging his arms wide.

“I’m telling you no!” shouted Gaston Isbel, throwing his arms wide.

“I WILL GO!” cried Esther, her voice ringing.

“I’M GOING!” shouted Esther, her voice echoing.

“You won’t go alone!” instantly answered the wife of Jacobs, repeating unconsciously the words her husband had spoken.

“You won’t go alone!” replied Jacobs’ wife immediately, unconsciously echoing her husband’s words.

“You stay right heah,” shouted Gaston Isbel, hoarsely.

“You stay right here,” shouted Gaston Isbel, hoarsely.

“I’m goin’,” replied Esther. “You’ve no hold over me. My husband is dead. No one can stop me. I’m goin’ out there to drive those hogs away an’ bury him.”

“I’m going,” Esther replied. “You don’t have any power over me. My husband is dead. No one can stop me. I’m going out there to drive those pigs away and bury him.”

“Esther, for Heaven’s sake, listen,” replied Isbel. “If y’u show yourself outside, Jorth an’ his gang will kin y’u.”

“Esther, for Heaven’s sake, listen,” Isbel replied. “If you go outside, Jorth and his gang will kill you.”

“They may be mean, but no white men could be so low as that.”

“They might be cruel, but no white men could be that low.”

Then they pleaded with her to give up her purpose. But in vain! She pushed them back and ran out through the kitchen with Jacobs’s wife following her. Jean turned to the window in time to see both women run out into the lane. Jean looked fearfully, and listened for shots. But only a loud, “Haw! Haw!” came from the watchers outside. That coarse laugh relieved the tension in Jean’s breast. Possibly the Jorths were not as black as his father painted them. The two women entered an open shed and came forth with a shovel and spade.

Then they begged her to give up her plan. But it was no use! She pushed them aside and ran out through the kitchen with Jacobs’s wife rushing after her. Jean turned to the window just in time to see both women dash into the lane. Jean looked anxiously and listened for gunshots. But all she heard was a loud, “Haw! Haw!” from the onlookers outside. That crude laugh eased the tension in Jean’s chest. Maybe the Jorths weren’t as bad as his father had painted them. The two women went into an open shed and came out with a shovel and spade.

“Shore they’ve got to hurry,” burst out Gaston Isbel.

“Sure they’ve got to hurry,” exclaimed Gaston Isbel.

Shifting his gaze, Jean understood the import of his father’s speech. The leader of the hogs had no doubt scented the bodies. Suddenly he espied them and broke into a trot.

Shifting his gaze, Jean understood the significance of his father’s speech. The leader of the hogs had certainly caught the scent of the bodies. Suddenly, he spotted them and broke into a trot.

“Run, Esther, run!” yelled Jean, with all his might.

“Run, Esther, run!” shouted Jean at the top of his lungs.

That urged the women to flight. Jean began to shoot. The hog reached the body of Guy. Jean’s shots did not reach nor frighten the beast. All the hogs now had caught a scent and went ambling toward their leader. Esther and her companion passed swiftly out of sight behind a corral. Loud and piercingly, with some awful note, rang out their screams. The hogs appeared frightened. The leader lifted his long snout, looked, and turned away. The others had halted. Then they, too, wheeled and ran off.

That made the women run away. Jean started shooting. The hog reached Guy's body. Jean’s shots missed and didn’t scare the animal. Now all the hogs had caught a scent and started moving towards their leader. Esther and her friend quickly disappeared behind a fence. Their screams rang out loudly and sharply, with a terrifying note. The hogs seemed to be scared. The leader raised its long snout, looked around, and turned away. The others stopped. Then they all turned and ran off.

All was silent then in the cabin and also outside wherever the Jorth faction lay concealed. All eyes manifestly were fixed upon the brave wives. They spaded up the sod and dug a grave for Guy Isbel. For a shroud Esther wrapped him in her shawl. Then they buried him. Next they hurried to the side of Jacobs, who lay some yards away. They dug a grave for him. Mrs. Jacobs took off her outer skirt to wrap round him. Then the two women labored hard to lift him and lower him. Jacobs was a heavy man. When he had been covered his widow knelt beside his grave. Esther went back to the other. But she remained standing and did not look as if she prayed. Her aspect was tragic—that of a woman who had lost father, mother, sisters, brother, and now her husband, in this bloody Arizona land.

All was quiet then in the cabin and outside wherever the Jorth faction was hidden. Everyone's attention was clearly on the brave wives. They shoveled up the dirt and dug a grave for Guy Isbel. Esther wrapped him in her shawl for a shroud. Then they buried him. Next, they rushed to Jacobs, who lay a short distance away. They dug a grave for him. Mrs. Jacobs took off her outer skirt to wrap around him. Then the two women worked hard to lift him and lower him. Jacobs was a heavy man. Once he was covered, his widow knelt beside his grave. Esther went back to the other grave. But she stayed standing and didn’t look like she was praying. Her expression was tragic—that of a woman who had lost her father, mother, sisters, brother, and now her husband, in this bloody Arizona land.

The deed and the demeanor of these wives of the murdered men surely must have shamed Jorth and his followers. They did not fire a shot during the ordeal nor give any sign of their presence.

The actions and behavior of the wives of the murdered men must have definitely embarrassed Jorth and his followers. They didn't fire a single shot during the entire ordeal nor showed any sign of being there.

Inside the cabin all were silent, too. Jean’s eyes blurred so that he continually had to wipe them. Old Isbel made no effort to hide his tears. Blaisdell nodded his shaggy head and swallowed hard. The women sat staring into space. The children, in round-eyed dismay, gazed from one to the other of their elders.

Inside the cabin, everyone was silent, too. Jean's eyes blurred, and he kept having to wipe them. Old Isbel made no attempt to hide his tears. Blaisdell nodded his messy head and swallowed hard. The women sat staring blankly into space. The children, wide-eyed and bewildered, looked from one elder to another.

“Wal, they’re comin’ back,” declared Isbel, in immense relief. “An’ so help me—Jorth let them bury their daid!”

“Wow, they’re coming back,” declared Isbel, feeling incredibly relieved. “And I swear—Jorth let them bury their dead!”

The fact seemed to have been monstrously strange to Gaston Isbel. When the women entered the old man said, brokenly: “I’m shore glad.... An’ I reckon I was wrong to oppose you ... an’ wrong to say what I did aboot Jorth.”

The situation seemed incredibly strange to Gaston Isbel. When the women walked in, the old man said, hesitantly: “I’m really glad.... And I suppose I was wrong to oppose you ... and wrong to say what I did about Jorth.”

No one had any chance to reply to Isbel, for the Jorth gang, as if to make up for lost time and surcharged feelings of shame, renewed the attack with such a persistent and furious volleying that the defenders did not risk a return shot. They all had to lie flat next to the lowest log in order to keep from being hit. Bullets rained in through the window. And all the clay between the logs low down was shot away. This fusillade lasted for more than an hour, then gradually the fire diminished on one side and then on the other until it became desultory and finally ceased.

No one had a chance to respond to Isbel because the Jorth gang, trying to compensate for lost time and feelings of shame, launched a relentless and furious attack that left the defenders too scared to fire back. They all had to lie flat against the lowest log to avoid being hit. Bullets poured in through the window, and the clay between the logs at the bottom was completely shot away. This barrage went on for more than an hour, then gradually the firing lessened on one side and then the other until it became sporadic and finally stopped.

“Ahuh! Shore they’ve shot their bolt,” declared Gaston Isbel.

“Yeah! They’ve exhausted their options,” declared Gaston Isbel.

“Wal, I doon’t know aboot that,” returned Blaisdell, “but they’ve shot a hell of a lot of shells.”

“Well, I don’t know about that,” replied Blaisdell, “but they’ve fired a ton of shells.”

“Listen,” suddenly called Jean. “Somebody’s yellin’.”

“Hey,” Jean suddenly shouted. “Someone’s yelling.”

“Hey, Isbel!” came in loud, hoarse voice. “Let your women fight for you.”

“Hey, Isbel!” came a loud, rough voice. “Let your women fight for you.”

Gaston Isbel sat up with a start and his face turned livid. Jean needed no more to prove that the derisive voice from outside had belonged to Jorth. The old rancher lunged up to his full height and with reckless disregard of life he rushed to the window. “Jorth,” he roared, “I dare you to meet me—man to man!”

Gaston Isbel sat up abruptly, his face turning pale with anger. Jean needed no further proof that the mocking voice from outside had come from Jorth. The old rancher jumped to his full height and, with complete disregard for his safety, rushed to the window. “Jorth,” he shouted, “I challenge you to a face-off—man to man!”

This elicited no answer. Jean dragged his father away from the window. After that a waiting silence ensued, gradually less fraught with suspense. Blaisdell started conversation by saying he believed the fight was over for that particular time. No one disputed him. Evidently Gaston Isbel was loath to believe it. Jean, however, watching at the back of the kitchen, eventually discovered that the Jorth gang had lifted the siege. Jean saw them congregate at the edge of the brush, somewhat lower down than they had been the day before. A team of mules, drawing a wagon, appeared on the road, and turned toward the slope. Saddled horses were led down out of the junipers. Jean saw bodies, evidently of dead men, lifted into the wagon, to be hauled away toward the village. Seven mounted men, leading four riderless horses, rode out into the valley and followed the wagon.

This didn’t get any response. Jean pulled his father away from the window. After that, a waiting silence followed, gradually becoming less tense. Blaisdell kicked off the conversation by saying he thought the fight was over for the moment. No one disagreed. Clearly, Gaston Isbel was reluctant to accept that. Jean, however, watching from the back of the kitchen, eventually noticed that the Jorth gang had pulled back the siege. Jean saw them gather at the edge of the brush, a bit lower down than they had been the day before. A team of mules pulling a wagon came down the road and turned toward the slope. Saddled horses were led down from the junipers. Jean saw bodies, clearly dead men, being lifted into the wagon to be taken away to the village. Seven mounted men, leading four riderless horses, rode out into the valley and followed the wagon.

“Dad, they’ve gone,” declared Jean. “We had the best of this fight.... If only Guy an’ Jacobs had listened!”

“Dad, they’re gone,” Jean said. “We had the best shot at this fight... If only Guy and Jacobs had listened!”

The old man nodded moodily. He had aged considerably during these two trying days. His hair was grayer. Now that the blaze and glow of the fight had passed he showed a subtle change, a fixed and morbid sadness, a resignation to a fate he had accepted.

The old man nodded gloomily. He had aged significantly over these past two difficult days. His hair had turned grayer. Now that the intensity and excitement of the fight were over, he displayed a subtle shift, a constant and somber sadness, a resignation to a fate he had come to accept.

The ordinary routine of ranch life did not return for the Isbels. Blaisdell returned home to settle matters there, so that he could devote all his time to this feud. Gaston Isbel sat down to wait for the members of his clan.

The everyday routine of ranch life didn't come back for the Isbels. Blaisdell went home to take care of things there so he could focus completely on this feud. Gaston Isbel sat down to wait for his family members.

The male members of the family kept guard in turn over the ranch that night. And another day dawned. It brought word from Blaisdell that Blue, Fredericks, Gordon, and Colmor were all at his house, on the way to join the Isbels. This news appeared greatly to rejuvenate Gaston Isbel. But his enthusiasm did not last long. Impatient and moody by turns, he paced or moped around the cabin, always looking out, sometimes toward Blaisdell’s ranch, but mostly toward Grass Valley.

The men in the family took turns watching over the ranch that night. And another day began. It brought news from Blaisdell that Blue, Fredericks, Gordon, and Colmor were all at his place, on their way to join the Isbels. This news seemed to really energize Gaston Isbel. But his excitement didn't last long. He was sometimes impatient and moody, pacing or sulking around the cabin, always looking out, often in the direction of Blaisdell’s ranch, but mostly toward Grass Valley.

It struck Jean as singular that neither Esther Isbel nor Mrs. Jacobs suggested a reburial of their husbands. The two bereaved women did not ask for assistance, but repaired to the pasture, and there spent several hours working over the graves. They raised mounds, which they sodded, and then placed stones at the heads and feet. Lastly, they fenced in the graves.

It struck Jean as unusual that neither Esther Isbel nor Mrs. Jacobs suggested moving their husbands' bodies. The two grieving women didn’t ask for help but went to the pasture, where they spent several hours tending to the graves. They built up the mounds, covered them with sod, and then put stones at the heads and feet. Finally, they put up a fence around the graves.

“I reckon I’ll hitch up an’ drive back home,” said Mrs. Jacobs, when she returned to the cabin. “I’ve much to do an’ plan. Probably I’ll go to my mother’s home. She’s old an’ will be glad to have me.”

“I think I’ll grab my stuff and drive back home,” said Mrs. Jacobs when she got back to the cabin. “I have a lot to do and plan. I’ll probably go to my mom’s house. She’s old and will be happy to have me.”

“If I had any place to go to I’d sure go,” declared Esther Isbel, bitterly.

“If I had anywhere to go, I’d definitely go,” Esther Isbel declared, bitterly.

Gaston Isbel heard this remark. He raised his face from his hands, evidently both nettled and hurt.

Gaston Isbel heard this comment. He lifted his face from his hands, clearly both annoyed and hurt.

“Esther, shore that’s not kind,” he said.

“Esther, that’s not nice,” he said.

The red-haired woman—for she did not appear to be a girl any more—halted before his chair and gazed down at him, with a terrible flare of scorn in her gray eyes.

The red-haired woman—since she no longer seemed like a girl—stopped in front of his chair and looked down at him, with a fierce look of contempt in her gray eyes.

“Gaston Isbel, all I’ve got to say to you is this,” she retorted, with the voice of a man. “Seein’ that you an’ Lee Jorth hate each other, why couldn’t you act like men? ... You damned Texans, with your bloody feuds, draggin’ in every relation, every friend to murder each other! That’s not the way of Arizona men.... We’ve all got to suffer—an’ we women be ruined for life—because YOU had differences with Jorth. If you were half a man you’d go out an’ kill him yourself, an’ not leave a lot of widows an’ orphaned children!”

“Gaston Isbel, all I’ve got to say to you is this,” she shot back, sounding like a man. “Since you and Lee Jorth hate each other, why can’t you act like adults? ... You damn Texans, with your ridiculous feuds, dragging in every family member and friend to kill each other! That’s not how Arizona men behave.... We all have to suffer—and we women are ruined for life—because YOU had a conflict with Jorth. If you were any kind of man, you would go out and confront him yourself, and not leave a bunch of widows and orphaned kids!”

Jean himself writhed under the lash of her scorn. Gaston Isbel turned a dead white. He could not answer her. He seemed stricken with merciless truth. Slowly dropping his head, he remained motionless, a pathetic and tragic figure; and he did not stir until the rapid beat of hoofs denoted the approach of horsemen. Blaisdell appeared on his white charger, leading a pack animal. And behind rode a group of men, all heavily armed, and likewise with packs.

Jean writhed under the weight of her contempt. Gaston Isbel turned pale. He couldn't respond to her. He looked as if he had been hit by a harsh reality. Slowly lowering his head, he stayed still, a sad and tragic figure; he didn't move until the quick sound of hooves signaled the arrival of horsemen. Blaisdell showed up on his white horse, leading a pack animal. Following him was a group of men, all heavily armed and carrying packs too.

“Get down an’ come in,” was Isbel’s greeting. “Bill—you look after their packs. Better leave the hosses saddled.”

“Get down and come in,” was Isbel’s greeting. “Bill—you take care of their packs. It’s better to leave the horses saddled.”

The booted and spurred riders trooped in, and their demeanor fitted their errand. Jean was acquainted with all of them. Fredericks was a lanky Texan, the color of dust, and he had yellow, clear eyes, like those of a hawk. His mother had been an Isbel. Gordon, too, was related to Jean’s family, though distantly. He resembled an industrious miner more than a prosperous cattleman. Blue was the most striking of the visitors, as he was the most noted. A little, shrunken gray-eyed man, with years of cowboy written all over him, he looked the quiet, easy, cool, and deadly Texan he was reputed to be. Blue’s Texas record was shady, and was seldom alluded to, as unfavorable comment had turned out to be hazardous. He was the only one of the group who did not carry a rifle. But he packed two guns, a habit not often noted in Texans, and almost never in Arizonians.

The booted and spurred riders came in, and their attitude matched their purpose. Jean knew all of them. Fredericks was a tall Texan, the color of dust, with bright yellow eyes like a hawk. His mother was an Isbel. Gordon was also connected to Jean’s family, though not very closely. He looked more like a hardworking miner than a successful cattleman. Blue was the most impressive of the visitors, as he was the most well-known. A small, wrinkled man with gray eyes, he had the experience of a cowboy written all over him, embodying the quiet, laid-back, cool, and deadly Texan he was known to be. Blue had a questionable reputation in Texas, which was rarely mentioned, as bad comments could be dangerous. He was the only one in the group who didn’t carry a rifle, but he carried two guns, a habit not often seen in Texans, and almost never in Arizonians.

Colmor, Ann Isbel’s fiance, was the youngest member of the clan, and the one closest to Jean. His meeting with Ann affected Jean powerfully, and brought to a climax an idea that had been developing in Jean’s mind. His sister devotedly loved this lean-faced, keen-eyed Arizonian; and it took no great insight to discover that Colmor reciprocated her affection. They were young. They had long life before them. It seemed to Jean a pity that Colmor should be drawn into this war. Jean watched them, as they conversed apart; and he saw Ann’s hands creep up to Colmor’s breast, and he saw her dark eyes, eloquent, hungry, fearful, lifted with queries her lips did not speak. Jean stepped beside them, and laid an arm over both their shoulders.

Colmor, Ann Isbel’s fiancé, was the youngest member of the clan and the one closest to Jean. His meeting with Ann had a powerful impact on Jean and brought to a peak an idea that had been forming in Jean’s mind. His sister truly loved this lean-faced, sharp-eyed guy from Arizona; and it wasn't hard to see that Colmor felt the same way. They were young, with a long life ahead of them. It seemed like a shame to Jean that Colmor should be pulled into this war. Jean watched as they chatted together, noticing Ann’s hands move up to Colmor’s chest, and he saw her dark eyes—expressive, eager, anxious—filled with questions her lips didn't voice. Jean stepped beside them and put an arm around both their shoulders.

“Colmor, for Ann’s sake you’d better back out of this Jorth-Isbel fight,” he whispered.

“Colmor, for Ann’s sake, you should probably back out of this Jorth-Isbel fight,” he whispered.

Colmor looked insulted. “But, Jean, it’s Ann’s father,” he said. “I’m almost one of the family.”

Colmor looked offended. “But, Jean, it’s Ann’s dad,” he said. “I’m basically part of the family.”

“You’re Ann’s sweetheart, an’, by Heaven, I say you oughtn’t to go with us!” whispered Jean.

“You’re Ann’s sweetheart, and, I swear, you shouldn’t go with us!” whispered Jean.

“Go—with—you,” faltered Ann.

"Go with you," faltered Ann.

“Yes. Dad is goin’ straight after Jorth. Can’t you tell that? An’ there ’ll be one hell of a fight.”

“Yes. Dad is going straight after Jorth. Can’t you tell? And there’s going to be one hell of a fight.”

Ann looked up into Colmor’s face with all her soul in her eyes, but she did not speak. Her look was noble. She yearned to guide him right, yet her lips were sealed. And Colmor betrayed the trouble of his soul. The code of men held him bound, and he could not break from it, though he divined in that moment how truly it was wrong.

Ann looked up into Colmor’s face with all her feelings in her eyes, but she didn't say anything. Her gaze was dignified. She wanted to guide him towards the right path, yet her lips were sealed. Colmor showed the turmoil in his soul. The rules of society kept him trapped, and he couldn’t break free from them, even though he realized in that moment how truly wrong they were.

“Jean, your dad started me in the cattle business,” said Colmor, earnestly. “An’ I’m doin’ well now. An’ when I asked him for Ann he said he’d be glad to have me in the family.... Well, when this talk of fight come up, I asked your dad to let me go in on his side. He wouldn’t hear of it. But after a while, as the time passed an’ he made more enemies, he finally consented. I reckon he needs me now. An’ I can’t back out, not even for Ann.”

“Jean, your dad got me started in the cattle business,” Colmor said earnestly. “And I’m doing well now. When I asked him for Ann, he said he’d be happy to have me in the family... Well, when the talk of fighting came up, I asked your dad to let me join his side. He wouldn’t hear of it at first. But eventually, as time went on and he made more enemies, he finally agreed. I guess he needs me now. And I can’t back out, not even for Ann.”

“I would if I were you,” replied jean, and knew that he lied.

“I would if I were you,” replied Jean, knowing he was lying.

“Jean, I’m gamblin’ to come out of the fight,” said Colmor, with a smile. He had no morbid fears nor presentiments, such as troubled jean.

“Jean, I’m betting I’ll come out of this fight okay,” said Colmor with a smile. He didn’t have any dark fears or bad vibes like Jean did.

“Why, sure—you stand as good a chance as anyone,” rejoined Jean. “It wasn’t that I was worryin’ about so much.”

“Of course—you've got as good a chance as anyone,” Jean replied. “It wasn't that I was stressing about so much.”

“What was it, then?” asked Ann, steadily.

“What was it, then?” Ann asked calmly.

“If Andrew DOES come through alive he’ll have blood on his hands,” returned Jean, with passion. “He can’t come through without it.... I’ve begun to feel what it means to have killed my fellow men.... An’ I’d rather your husband an’ the father of your children never felt that.”

“If Andrew DOES come through alive, he’ll have blood on his hands,” Jean replied passionately. “He can’t come through without it... I’ve started to understand what it means to have killed my fellow humans... And I’d rather your husband and the father of your children never feel that.”

Colmor did not take Jean as subtly as Ann did. She shrunk a little. Her dark eyes dilated. But Colmor showed nothing of her spiritual reaction. He was young. He had wild blood. He was loyal to the Isbels.

Colmor didn't take Jean as delicately as Ann did. She cowered a bit. Her dark eyes widened. But Colmor revealed none of his emotional response. He was young. He had a wild streak. He was loyal to the Isbels.

“Jean, never worry about my conscience,” he said, with a keen look. “Nothin’ would tickle me any more than to get a shot at every damn one of the Jorths.”

“Jean, don’t ever stress about my conscience,” he said, with a sharp gaze. “Nothing would please me more than to take a shot at every single one of the Jorths.”

That established Colmor’s status in regard to the Jorth-Isbel feud. Jean had no more to say. He respected Ann’s friend and felt poignant sorrow for Ann.

That established Colmor’s status regarding the Jorth-Isbel feud. Jean had nothing more to say. He respected Ann’s friend and felt deep sorrow for Ann.

Gaston Isbel called for meat and drink to be set on the table for his guests. When his wishes had been complied with the women took the children into the adjoining cabin and shut the door.

Gaston Isbel ordered food and drinks to be brought to the table for his guests. Once his request was fulfilled, the women took the children into the nearby cabin and closed the door.

“Hah! Wal, we can eat an’ talk now.”

“Hah! Well, we can eat and chat now.”

First the newcomers wanted to hear particulars of what had happened. Blaisdell had told all he knew and had seen, but that was not sufficient. They plied Gaston Isbel with questions. Laboriously and ponderously he rehearsed the experiences of the fight at the ranch, according to his impressions. Bill Isbel was exhorted to talk, but he had of late manifested a sullen and taciturn disposition. In spite of Jean’s vigilance Bill had continued to imbibe red liquor. Then Jean was called upon to relate all he had seen and done. It had been Jean’s intention to keep his mouth shut, first for his own sake and, secondly, because he did not like to talk of his deeds. But when thus appealed to by these somber-faced, intent-eyed men he divined that the more carefully he described the cruelty and baseness of their enemies, and the more vividly he presented his participation in the first fight of the feud the more strongly he would bind these friends to the Isbel cause. So he talked for an hour, beginning with his meeting with Colter up on the Rim and ending with an account of his killing Greaves. His listeners sat through this long narrative with unabated interest and at the close they were leaning forward, breathless and tense.

First, the newcomers wanted to hear the details of what had happened. Blaisdell shared everything he knew and had seen, but that wasn't enough. They bombarded Gaston Isbel with questions. Slowly and heavily, he recounted the events of the fight at the ranch, based on his impressions. Bill Isbel was urged to speak, but he had recently been acting sullen and withdrawn. Despite Jean’s watchfulness, Bill had continued to drink hard liquor. Then Jean was asked to share everything he had seen and done. Jean had planned to stay quiet, first for his own benefit and, second, because he didn’t like talking about his actions. But when approached by these serious-faced, focused men, he realized that the more he detailed the cruelty and ruthlessness of their enemies, and the more vividly he presented his role in the initial fight of the feud, the more strongly he would connect these friends to the Isbel cause. So he spoke for an hour, starting with his encounter with Colter up on the Rim and concluding with his account of killing Greaves. His listeners remained fully engaged throughout this lengthy story, and by the end, they were leaning forward, breathless and tense.

“Ah! So Greaves got his desserts at last,” exclaimed Gordon.

“Ah! So Greaves finally got what he deserved,” exclaimed Gordon.

All the men around the table made comments, and the last, from Blue, was the one that struck Jean forcibly.

All the guys around the table chimed in, and the last remark, from Blue, really hit Jean hard.

“Shore thet was a strange an’ a hell of a way to kill Greaves. Why’d you do thet, Jean?”

“Sure, that was a strange and crazy way to kill Greaves. Why did you do that, Jean?”

“I told you. I wanted to avoid noise an’ I hoped to get more of them.”

“I told you. I wanted to avoid noise and I hoped to get more of them.”

Blue nodded his lean, eagle-like head and sat thoughtfully, as if not convinced of anything save Jean’s prowess. After a moment Blue spoke again.

Blue nodded his slim, sharp-headed form and sat thoughtfully, as if he was only convinced of Jean’s skill. After a moment, Blue spoke again.

“Then, goin’ back to Jean’s tellin’ aboot trackin’ rustled Cattle, I’ve got this to say. I’ve long suspected thet somebody livin’ right heah in the valley has been drivin’ off cattle an’ dealin’ with rustlers. An’ now I’m shore of it.”

“Then, going back to Jean’s story about tracking stolen cattle, I have this to say. I’ve long suspected that someone living right here in the valley has been stealing cattle and working with rustlers. And now I’m sure of it.”

This speech did not elicit the amaze from Gaston Isbel that Jean expected it would.

This speech did not surprise Gaston Isbel as much as Jean expected it would.

“You mean Greaves or some of his friends?”

“You're talking about Greaves or some of his friends?”

“No. They wasn’t none of them in the cattle business, like we are. Shore we all knowed Greaves was crooked. But what I’m figgerin’ is thet some so-called honest man in our settlement has been makin’ crooked deals.”

“No. None of them were in the cattle business like we are. Sure, we all knew Greaves was shady. But what I’m thinking is that some so-called honest person in our community has been making dishonest deals.”

Blue was a man of deeds rather than words, and so much strong speech from him, whom everybody knew to be remarkably reliable and keen, made a profound impression upon most of the Isbel faction. But, to Jean’s surprise, his father did not rave. It was Blaisdell who supplied the rage and invective. Bill Isbel, also, was strangely indifferent to this new element in the condition of cattle dealing. Suddenly Jean caught a vague flash of thought, as if he had intercepted the thought of another’s mind, and he wondered—could his brother Bill know anything about this crooked work alluded to by Blue? Dismissing the conjecture, Jean listened earnestly.

Blue was a man of action, not words, so hearing him speak so strongly had a significant impact on most of the Isbel faction, who all knew him to be very reliable and sharp. But, to Jean's surprise, his father didn't get worked up. It was Blaisdell who provided the anger and insults. Bill Isbel, too, seemed strangely uninterested in this new twist in cattle dealing. Suddenly, Jean had a fleeting thought, almost as if he had picked up on someone else's mind, and he wondered—could his brother Bill know anything about this shady business that Blue mentioned? Shaking off the thought, Jean listened intently.

“An’ if it’s true it shore makes this difference—we cain’t blame all the rustlin’ on to Jorth,” concluded Blue.

“Then if it's true, it really changes things—we can't blame all the rustling on Jorth,” concluded Blue.

“Wal, it’s not true,” declared Gaston Isbel, roughly. “Jorth an’ his Hash Knife Gang are at the bottom of all the rustlin’ in the valley for years back. An’ they’ve got to be wiped out!”

“Well, that’s not true,” Gaston Isbel said bluntly. “Jorth and his Hash Knife Gang are behind all the rustling in the valley for years. And they need to be taken out!”

“Isbel, I reckon we’d all feel better if we talk straight,” replied Blue, coolly. “I’m heah to stand by the Isbels. An’ y’u know what thet means. But I’m not heah to fight Jorth because he may be a rustler. The others may have their own reasons, but mine is this—you once stood by me in Texas when I was needin’ friends. Wal, I’m standin’ by y’u now. Jorth is your enemy, an’ so he is mine.”

“Isbel, I think we’d all feel better if we just spoke honestly,” Blue replied calmly. “I’m here to support the Isbels. And you know what that means. But I'm not here to go after Jorth just because he might be a rustler. The others may have their own reasons, but for me, it’s this—you once had my back in Texas when I needed friends. Well, I’m here for you now. Jorth is your enemy, so he’s mine too.”

Gaston Isbel bowed to this ultimatum, scarcely less agitated than when Esther Isbel had denounced him. His rabid and morbid hate of Jorth had eaten into his heart to take possession there, like the parasite that battened upon the life of its victim. Blue’s steely voice, his cold, gray eyes, showed the unbiased truth of the man, as well as his fidelity to his creed. Here again, but in a different manner, Gaston Isbel had the fact flung at him that other men must suffer, perhaps die, for his hate. And the very soul of the old rancher apparently rose in Passionate revolt against the blind, headlong, elemental strength of his nature. So it seemed to Jean, who, in love and pity that hourly grew, saw through his father. Was it too late? Alas! Gaston Isbel could never be turned back! Yet something was altering his brooding, fixed mind.

Gaston Isbel bowed to this ultimatum, barely less agitated than when Esther Isbel had called him out. His intense and irrational hatred for Jorth had consumed his heart, like a parasite feeding on its host. Blue’s sharp voice and cold, gray eyes revealed the unfiltered truth of the man, as well as his loyalty to his beliefs. Once again, though in a different way, Gaston Isbel was confronted by the fact that other men would have to suffer, possibly die, because of his hatred. It seemed as if the very soul of the old rancher was passionately rebelling against the blind, reckless, raw power of his nature. That’s how it appeared to Jean, who, filled with growing love and pity, could see through his father. Was it too late? Alas! Gaston Isbel could never be turned back! Yet something was shifting in his brooding, fixed mind.

“Wal,” said Blaisdell, gruffly, “let’s get down to business.... I’m for havin’ Blue be foreman of this heah outfit, an’ all of us to do as he says.”

“Wal,” said Blaisdell, gruffly, “let’s get down to business.... I’m for having Blue be the foreman of this place, and all of us to follow his lead.”

Gaston Isbel opposed this selection and indeed resented it. He intended to lead the Isbel faction.

Gaston Isbel was against this choice and actually felt bitter about it. He planned to take charge of the Isbel faction.

“All right, then. Give us a hunch what we’re goin’ to do,” replied Blaisdell.

“All right, then. Give us a hint about what we’re going to do,” replied Blaisdell.

“We’re goin’ to ride off on Jorth’s trail—an’ one way or another—kill him—KILL HIM! ... I reckon that’ll end the fight.”

“We're going to follow Jorth's trail—and one way or another—kill him—KILL HIM! ... I guess that’ll put an end to the fight.”

What did old Isbel have in his mind? His listeners shook their heads.

What was old Isbel thinking? His listeners shook their heads.

“No,” asserted Blaisdell. “Killin’ Jorth might be the end of your desires, Isbel, but it ’d never end our fight. We’ll have gone too far.... If we take Jorth’s trail from heah it means we’ve got to wipe out that rustier gang, or stay to the last man.”

“No,” Blaisdell stated. “Killing Jorth might satisfy your wishes, Isbel, but it wouldn’t end our struggle. We’ll have gone too far... If we follow Jorth’s path from here, it means we’ve got to take out that rustier gang, or stay until the last man.”

“Yes, by God!” exclaimed Fredericks.

“Yes, by God!” Fredericks exclaimed.

“Let’s drink to thet!” said Blue. Strangely they turned to this Texas gunman, instinctively recognizing in him the brain and heart, and the past deeds, that fitted him for the leadership of such a clan. Blue had all in life to lose, and nothing to gain. Yet his spirit was such that he could not lean to all the possible gain of the future, and leave a debt unpaid. Then his voice, his look, his influence were those of a fighter. They all drank with him, even Jean, who hated liquor. And this act of drinking seemed the climax of the council. Preparations were at once begun for their departure on Jorth’s trail.

“Let’s drink to that!” said Blue. Strangely, they turned to this Texas gunman, instinctively recognizing in him the intelligence and passion, along with the past achievements, that made him suitable for leading such a group. Blue had everything to lose and nothing to gain. Yet his spirit was such that he couldn't focus on all the potential benefits of the future while leaving a debt unpaid. His voice, his gaze, and his influence all reflected that of a fighter. They all drank with him, even Jean, who detested alcohol. This act of drinking felt like the high point of the meeting. Preparations immediately began for their departure on Jorth’s trail.

Jean took but little time for his own needs. A horse, a blanket, a knapsack of meat and bread, a canteen, and his weapons, with all the ammunition he could pack, made up his outfit. He wore his buckskin suit, leggings, and moccasins. Very soon the cavalcade was ready to depart. Jean tried not to watch Bill Isbel say good-by to his children, but it was impossible not to. Whatever Bill was, as a man, he was father of those children, and he loved them. How strange that the little ones seemed to realize the meaning of this good-by? They were grave, somber-eyed, pale up to the last moment, then they broke down and wept. Did they sense that their father would never come back? Jean caught that dark, fatalistic presentiment. Bill Isbel’s convulsed face showed that he also caught it. Jean did not see Bill say good-by to his wife. But he heard her. Old Gaston Isbel forgot to speak to the children, or else could not. He never looked at them. And his good-by to Ann was as if he were only riding to the village for a day. Jean saw woman’s love, woman’s intuition, woman’s grief in her eyes. He could not escape her. “Oh, Jean! oh, brother!” she whispered as she enfolded him. “It’s awful! It’s wrong! Wrong! Wrong! ... Good-by! ... If killing MUST be—see that y’u kill the Jorths! ... Good-by!”

Jean took very little time for his own needs. A horse, a blanket, a backpack of meat and bread, a canteen, and his weapons, along with all the ammo he could carry, made up his gear. He wore his buckskin outfit, leggings, and moccasins. Very soon, the group was ready to leave. Jean tried not to watch Bill Isbel saying goodbye to his kids, but it was impossible not to. No matter what Bill was like as a man, he was the father of those children, and he loved them. How strange that the little ones seemed to understand the meaning of this goodbye? They were serious, with somber eyes, pale until the last moment, then they broke down and cried. Did they sense that their father might never come back? Jean felt that dark, fatalistic feeling. Bill Isbel’s contorted face showed that he felt it too. Jean didn't see Bill say goodbye to his wife, but he heard her. Old Gaston Isbel forgot to speak to the children, or maybe he couldn’t. He never looked at them. His goodbye to Ann felt like he was just riding to the village for a day. Jean saw a woman’s love, intuition, and grief in her eyes. He couldn’t escape her. “Oh, Jean! Oh, brother!” she whispered as she held him close. “It’s awful! It’s wrong! Wrong! Wrong! ... Goodbye! ... If killing MUST happen—make sure you kill the Jorths! ... Goodbye!”

Even in Ann, gentle and mild, the Isbel blood spoke at the last. Jean gave Ann over to the pale-faced Colmor, who took her in his arms. Then Jean fled out to his horse. This cold-blooded devastation of a home was almost more than he could bear. There was love here. What would be left?

Even in Ann, soft and gentle, the Isbel blood revealed itself at the end. Jean handed Ann over to the pale-faced Colmor, who held her in his arms. Then Jean rushed out to his horse. This heart-wrenching destruction of a home was almost too much for him to handle. There was love here. What would remain?

Colmor was the last one to come out to the horses. He did not walk erect, nor as one whose sight was clear. Then, as the silent, tense, grim men mounted their horses, Bill Isbel’s eldest child, the boy, appeared in the door. His little form seemed instinct with a force vastly different from grief. His face was the face of an Isbel.

Colmor was the last one to come outside to the horses. He didn’t walk straight, nor did he look like someone with clear sight. Then, as the silent, tense, grim men got on their horses, Bill Isbel’s oldest child, the boy, showed up in the doorway. His small figure seemed filled with a force completely different from grief. His face was unmistakably that of an Isbel.

“Daddy—kill ’em all!” he shouted, with a passion all the fiercer for its incongruity to the treble voice.

“Daddy—kill them all!” he shouted, with a passion that felt even more intense because of his high-pitched voice.

So the poison had spread from father to son.

So the poison had passed from father to son.




CHAPTER IX

Half a mile from the Isbel ranch the cavalcade passed the log cabin of Evarts, father of the boy who had tended sheep with Bernardino.

Half a mile from the Isbel ranch, the group passed the log cabin of Evarts, the father of the boy who had watched over sheep with Bernardino.

It suited Gaston Isbel to halt here. No need to call! Evarts and his son appeared so quickly as to convince observers that they had been watching.

It suited Gaston Isbel to stop here. No need to call! Evarts and his son showed up so quickly that it convinced onlookers they had been watching.

“Howdy, Jake!” said Isbel. “I’m wantin’ a word with y’u alone.”

“Hey, Jake!” Isbel said. “I want to talk to you privately.”

“Shore, boss, git down an’ come in,” replied Evarts.

“Sure, boss, get down and come in,” replied Evarts.

Isbel led him aside, and said something forcible that Jean divined from the very gesture which accompanied it. His father was telling Evarts that he was not to join in the Isbel-Jorth war. Evarts had worked for the Isbels a long time, and his faithfulness, along with something stronger and darker, showed in his rugged face as he stubbornly opposed Isbel. The old man raised his voice: “No, I tell you. An’ that settles it.”

Isbel took him aside and said something powerful that Jean understood just from the way he moved. His dad was telling Evarts not to get involved in the Isbel-Jorth conflict. Evarts had been working for the Isbels for a long time, and his loyalty, mixed with something deeper and more intense, was evident on his tough face as he firmly stood against Isbel. The old man raised his voice: “No, I’m telling you. And that’s final.”

They returned to the horses, and, before mounting, Isbel, as if he remembered something, directed his somber gaze on young Evarts.

They went back to the horses, and before getting on, Isbel, as if he recalled something, focused his serious gaze on young Evarts.

“Son, did you bury Bernardino?”

"Hey son, did you bury Bernardino?"

“Dad an’ me went over yestiddy,” replied the lad. “I shore was glad the coyotes hadn’t been round.”

“Dad and I went over yesterday,” replied the boy. “I was really glad the coyotes hadn’t been around.”

“How aboot the sheep?”

“How about the sheep?”

“I left them there. I was goin’ to stay, but bein’ all alone—I got skeered.... The sheep was doin’ fine. Good water an’ some grass. An’ this ain’t time fer varmints to hang round.”

“I left them there. I was going to stay, but being all alone—I got scared.... The sheep were doing fine. Good water and some grass. And this isn’t the time for pests to hang around.”

“Jake, keep your eye on that flock,” returned Isbel. “An’ if I shouldn’t happen to come back y’u can call them sheep yours.... I’d like your boy to ride up to the village. Not with us, so anybody would see him. But afterward. We’ll be at Abel Meeker’s.”

“Jake, keep an eye on that flock,” Isbel replied. “And if I don’t come back, you can call those sheep yours.... I’d like your boy to ride up to the village, but not with us where anyone can see him. Afterward, we’ll be at Abel Meeker’s.”

Again Jean was confronted with an uneasy premonition as to some idea or plan his father had not shared with his followers. When the cavalcade started on again Jean rode to his father’s side and asked him why he had wanted the Evarts boy to come to Grass Valley. And the old man replied that, as the boy could run to and fro in the village without danger, he might be useful in reporting what was going on at Greaves’s store, where undoubtedly the Jorth gang would hold forth. This appeared reasonable enough, therefore Jean smothered the objection he had meant to make.

Again, Jean felt a nagging sense that his father had some idea or plan that he hadn’t shared with his followers. When the group moved out again, Jean rode up to his father and asked why he wanted the Evarts boy to come to Grass Valley. The old man replied that since the boy could move around the village safely, he might be useful for reporting what was happening at Greaves’s store, where the Jorth gang would likely be hanging out. This seemed reasonable enough, so Jean held back the objection he had intended to make.

The valley road was deserted. When, a mile farther on, the riders passed a group of cabins, just on the outskirts of the village, Jean’s quick eye caught sight of curious and evidently frightened people trying to see while they avoided being seen. No doubt the whole settlement was in a state of suspense and terror. Not unlikely this dark, closely grouped band of horsemen appeared to them as Jorth’s gang had looked to Jean. It was an orderly, trotting march that manifested neither hurry nor excitement. But any Western eye could have caught the singular aspect of such a group, as if the intent of the riders was a visible thing.

The valley road was empty. When the riders passed a cluster of cabins about a mile later, just outside the village, Jean’s sharp eye noticed some curious and clearly scared people trying to watch while staying hidden. The entire settlement was probably filled with anxiety and fear. This dark, tightly-knit group of horsemen likely looked to them the way Jorth’s gang had looked to Jean. They moved in an orderly trotting march that showed neither urgency nor excitement. But anyone from the West would have picked up on the unusual vibe of such a group, as if the riders' intentions were something you could see.

Soon they reached the outskirts of the village. Here their approach bad been watched for or had been already reported. Jean saw men, women, children peeping from behind cabins and from half-opened doors. Farther on Jean espied the dark figures of men, slipping out the back way through orchards and gardens and running north, toward the center of the village. Could these be friends of the Jorth crowd, on the way with warnings of the approach of the Isbels? Jean felt convinced of it. He was learning that his father had not been absolutely correct in his estimation of the way Jorth and his followers were regarded by their neighbors. Not improbably there were really many villagers who, being more interested in sheep raising than in cattle, had an honest leaning toward the Jorths. Some, too, no doubt, had leanings that were dishonest in deed if not in sincerity.

Soon they reached the edge of the village. Here, their arrival had either been expected or already reported. Jean saw men, women, and children peeking out from behind cabins and through half-open doors. Further on, Jean noticed dark figures of men sneaking out the back through orchards and gardens, heading north towards the center of the village. Could these be friends of the Jorth crowd, on their way to warn about the Isbels' approach? Jean felt certain of it. He was realizing that his father hadn’t been completely right in judging how Jorth and his supporters were viewed by their neighbors. It's possible that many villagers, being more interested in sheep farming than cattle ranching, actually favored the Jorths. Some, too, probably had dishonest motivations if not sincere intentions.

Gaston Isbel led his clan straight down the middle of the wide road of Grass Valley until he reached a point opposite Abel Meeker’s cabin. Jean espied the same curiosity from behind Meeker’s door and windows as had been shown all along the road. But presently, at Isbel’s call, the door opened and a short, swarthy man appeared. He carried a rifle.

Gaston Isbel led his clan right down the center of the broad road in Grass Valley until he reached a spot across from Abel Meeker’s cabin. Jean saw the same curiosity from behind Meeker’s door and windows as had been displayed all along the road. But soon, at Isbel’s call, the door opened and a short, dark-skinned man stepped out. He was holding a rifle.

“Howdy, Gass!” he said. “What’s the good word?”

“Hey, Gass!” he said. “What’s up?”

“Wal, Abel, it’s not good, but bad. An’ it’s shore started,” replied Isbel. “I’m askin’ y’u to let me have your cabin.”

“Well, Abel, it’s not good, but bad. And it’s definitely started,” replied Isbel. “I’m asking you to let me have your cabin.”

“You’re welcome. I’ll send the folks ’round to Jim’s,” returned Meeker. “An’ if y’u want me, I’m with y’u, Isbel.”

“You're welcome. I'll send the people over to Jim's,” Meeker replied. “And if you need me, I'm with you, Isbel.”

“Thanks, Abel, but I’m not leadin’ any more kin an’ friends into this heah deal.”

“Thanks, Abel, but I’m not bringing any more family and friends into this deal.”

“Wal, jest as y’u say. But I’d like damn bad to jine with y’u.... My brother Ted was shot last night.”

“Well, just like you said. But I really want to join you.... My brother Ted was shot last night.”

“Ted! Is he daid?” ejaculated Isbel, blankly.

“Ted! Is he dead?” exclaimed Isbel, blankly.

“We can’t find out,” replied Meeker. “Jim says thet Jeff Campbell said thet Ted went into Greaves’s place last night. Greaves allus was friendly to Ted, but Greaves wasn’t thar—”

“We can’t find out,” replied Meeker. “Jim says that Jeff Campbell said that Ted went into Greaves’s place last night. Greaves was always friendly to Ted, but Greaves wasn’t there—”

“No, he shore wasn’t,” interrupted Isbel, with a dark smile, “an’ he never will be there again.”

“No, he definitely wasn’t,” interrupted Isbel with a dark smile, “and he’ll never be there again.”

Meeker nodded with slow comprehension and a shade crossed his face.

Meeker nodded slowly as he understood, and a shadow passed over his face.

“Wal, Campbell claimed he’d heerd from some one who was thar. Anyway, the Jorths were drinkin’ hard, an’ they raised a row with Ted—same old sheep talk an’ somebody shot him. Campbell said Ted was thrown out back, an’ he was shore he wasn’t killed.”

“Well, Campbell said he heard from someone who was there. Anyway, the Jorths were drinking heavily, and they started a fuss with Ted—same old sheep talk and someone shot him. Campbell said Ted was thrown out back, and he was sure he wasn’t killed.”

“Ahuh! Wal, I’m sorry, Abel, your family had to lose in this. Maybe Ted’s not bad hurt. I shore hope so.... An’ y’u an’ Jim keep out of the fight, anyway.”

“Yeah! Well, I’m sorry, Abel, your family had to go through this. Maybe Ted isn't too hurt. I really hope so... And you and Jim should stay out of the fight, anyway.”

“All right, Isbel. But I reckon I’ll give y’u a hunch. If this heah fight lasts long the whole damn Basin will be in it, on one side or t’other.”

“All right, Isbel. But I think I’ll give you a heads-up. If this fight goes on for too long, the whole damn Basin will be involved, on one side or the other.”

“Abe, you’re talkin’ sense,” broke in Blaisdell. “An’ that’s why we’re up heah for quick action.”

“Abe, you’re making sense,” interrupted Blaisdell. “And that’s why we’re up here for quick action.”

“I heerd y’u got Daggs,” whispered Meeker, as he peered all around.

“I heard you got Daggs,” whispered Meeker, as he looked around.

“Wal, y’u heerd correct,” drawled Blaisdell.

“Yeah, you heard right,” Blaisdell drawled.

Meeker muttered strong words into his beard. “Say, was Daggs in thet Jorth outfit?”

Meeker muttered under his breath. “Hey, was Daggs part of that Jorth team?”

“He WAS. But he walked right into Jean’s forty-four.... An’ I reckon his carcass would show some more.”

“He was. But he walked right into Jean’s forty-four.... And I guess his body would show more.”

“An’ whar’s Guy Isbel?” demanded Meeker.

“Where’s Guy Isbel?” Meeker asked.

“Daid an’ buried, Abel,” replied Gaston Isbel. “An’ now I’d be obliged if y’u ’ll hurry your folks away, an’ let us have your cabin an’ corral. Have yu got any hay for the hosses?”

“Dead and buried, Abel,” replied Gaston Isbel. “And now I’d appreciate it if you’d hurry your people away and let us use your cabin and corral. Do you have any hay for the horses?”

“Shore. The barn’s half full,” replied Meeker, as he turned away. “Come on in.”

“Sure. The barn’s halfway full,” Meeker replied as he turned away. “Come on in.”

“No. We’ll wait till you’ve gone.”

“No. We'll wait until you've left.”

When Meeker had gone, Isbel and his men sat their horses and looked about them and spoke low. Their advent had been expected, and the little town awoke to the imminence of the impending battle. Inside Meeker’s house there was the sound of indistinct voices of women and the bustle incident to a hurried vacating.

When Meeker left, Isbel and his men sat on their horses, looked around, and spoke quietly. Their arrival had been anticipated, and the small town stirred with the approach of the upcoming battle. Inside Meeker’s house, there were muffled voices of women and the flurry that comes with a quick exit.

Across the wide road people were peering out on all sides, some hiding, others walking to and fro, from fence to fence, whispering in little groups. Down the wide road, at the point where it turned, stood Greaves’s fort-like stone house. Low, flat, isolated, with its dark, eye-like windows, it presented a forbidding and sinister aspect. Jean distinctly saw the forms of men, some dark, others in shirt sleeves, come to the wide door and look down the road.

Across the wide road, people were peering out in all directions, some hiding, others walking back and forth from fence to fence, whispering in small groups. At the turn of the wide road stood Greaves’s fortress-like stone house. Low, flat, and isolated, with its dark, eye-like windows, it looked forbidding and menacing. Jean clearly saw the silhouettes of men, some in dark clothing and others in their shirt sleeves, approach the wide door and glance down the road.

“Wal, I reckon only aboot five hundred good hoss steps are separatin’ us from that outfit,” drawled Blaisdell.

“Well, I think there are only about five hundred good horse steps separating us from that group,” Blaisdell said slowly.

No one replied to his jocularity. Gaston Isbel’s eyes narrowed to a slit in his furrowed face and he kept them fastened upon Greaves’s store. Blue, likewise, had a somber cast of countenance, not, perhaps, any darker nor grimmer than those of his comrades, but more representative of intense preoccupation of mind. The look of him thrilled Jean, who could sense its deadliness, yet could not grasp any more. Altogether, the manner of the villagers and the watchful pacing to and fro of the Jorth followers and the silent, boding front of Isbel and his men summed up for Jean the menace of the moment that must very soon change to a terrible reality.

No one answered his jokes. Gaston Isbel’s eyes narrowed into slits on his wrinkled face as he kept them fixed on Greaves’s store. Blue also had a serious look on his face; it wasn’t necessarily darker or more intense than those of his companions, but it showed a deep mental focus. Jean felt a thrill from Blue’s expression, sensing its danger but unable to understand it fully. Overall, the behavior of the villagers, the vigilant pacing of the Jorth followers, and the silent, ominous presence of Isbel and his men conveyed to Jean the looming threat of a moment that was about to turn into a horrifying reality.

At a call from Meeker, who stood at the back of the cabin, Gaston Isbel rode into the yard, followed by the others of his party. “Somebody look after the hosses,” ordered Isbel, as he dismounted and took his rifle and pack. “Better leave the saddles on, leastways till we see what’s comin’ off.”

At a shout from Meeker, who was standing at the back of the cabin, Gaston Isbel rode into the yard, followed by the rest of his group. “Someone take care of the horses,” Isbel commanded as he got off his horse and grabbed his rifle and pack. “We should probably leave the saddles on, at least until we find out what’s going to happen.”

Jean and Bill Isbel led the horses back to the corral. While watering and feeding them, Jean somehow received the impression that Bill was trying to speak, to confide in him, to unburden himself of some load. This peculiarity of Bill’s had become marked when he was perfectly sober. Yet he had never spoken or even begun anything unusual. Upon the present occasion, however, Jean believed that his brother might have gotten rid of his emotion, or whatever it was, had they not been interrupted by Colmor.

Jean and Bill Isbel led the horses back to the corral. While watering and feeding them, Jean somehow got the feeling that Bill was trying to talk, to confide in him, to unload something that was bothering him. This tendency of Bill's had become more noticeable when he was completely sober. Yet he had never actually said anything out of the ordinary or started any unusual conversation. However, on this occasion, Jean thought that his brother might have expressed his feelings, or whatever it was, if they hadn't been interrupted by Colmor.

“Boys, the old man’s orders are for us to sneak round on three sides of Greaves’s store, keepin’ out of gunshot till we find good cover, an’ then crawl closer an’ to pick off any of Jorth’s gang who shows himself.”

“Guys, the old man wants us to sneak around three sides of Greaves’s store, staying out of gunfire until we find good cover, and then crawl closer to take out any of Jorth’s gang who shows up.”

Bill Isbel strode off without a reply to Colmor.

Bill Isbel walked away without responding to Colmor.

“Well, I don’t think so much of that,” said Jean, ponderingly. “Jorth has lots of friends here. Somebody might pick us off.”

“Well, I’m not so sure about that,” Jean said thoughtfully. “Jorth has a lot of friends here. Someone might take us out.”

“I kicked, but the old man shut me up. He’s not to be bucked ag’in’ now. Struck me as powerful queer. But no wonder.”

“I kicked, but the old man silenced me. He’s not to be pushed again now. It struck me as really odd. But I guess it’s no surprise.”

“Maybe he knows best. Did he say anythin’ about what he an’ the rest of them are goin’ to do?”

“Maybe he knows best. Did he say anything about what he and the others are going to do?”

“Nope. Blue taxed him with that an’ got the same as me. I reckon we’d better try it out, for a while, anyway.”

“Nope. Blue gave him that and got the same as me. I think we should give it a shot for a bit, anyway.”

“Looks like he wants us to keep out of the fight,” replied Jean, thoughtfully. “Maybe, though ... Dad’s no fool. Colmor, you wait here till I get out of sight. I’ll go round an’ come up as close as advisable behind Greaves’s store. You take the right side. An’ keep hid.”

“Looks like he wants us to stay out of the fight,” Jean said thoughtfully. “But then again... Dad’s not an idiot. Colmor, you wait here until I’m out of sight. I’ll go around and get as close as I can behind Greaves’s store. You take the right side. And stay hidden.”

With that Jean strode off, going around the barn, straight out the orchard lane to the open flat, and then climbing a fence to the north of the village. Presently he reached a line of sheds and corrals, to which he held until he arrived at the road. This point was about a quarter of a mile from Greaves’s store, and around the bend. Jean sighted no one. The road, the fields, the yards, the backs of the cabins all looked deserted. A blight had settled down upon the peaceful activities of Grass Valley. Crossing the road, Jean began to circle until he came close to several cabins, around which he made a wide detour. This took him to the edge of the slope, where brush and thickets afforded him a safe passage to a line directly back of Greaves’s store. Then he turned toward it. Soon he was again approaching a cabin of that side, and some of its inmates descried him, Their actions attested to their alarm. Jean half expected a shot from this quarter, such were his growing doubts, but he was mistaken. A man, unknown to Jean, closely watched his guarded movements and then waved a hand, as if to signify to Jean that he had nothing to fear. After this act he disappeared. Jean believed that he had been recognized by some one not antagonistic to the Isbels. Therefore he passed the cabin and, coming to a thick scrub-oak tree that offered shelter, he hid there to watch. From this spot he could see the back of Greaves’s store, at a distance probably too far for a rifle bullet to reach. Before him, as far as the store, and on each side, extended the village common. In front of the store ran the road. Jean’s position was such that he could not command sight of this road down toward Meeker’s house, a fact that disturbed him. Not satisfied with this stand, he studied his surroundings in the hope of espying a better. And he discovered what he thought would be a more favorable position, although he could not see much farther down the road. Jean went back around the cabin and, coming out into the open to the right, he got the corner of Greaves’s barn between him and the window of the store. Then he boldly hurried into the open, and soon reached an old wagon, from behind which he proposed to watch. He could not see either window or door of the store, but if any of the Jorth contingent came out the back way they would be within reach of his rifle. Jean took the risk of being shot at from either side.

With that, Jean walked off, going around the barn, down the orchard lane to the open flat, and then climbed over a fence heading north of the village. Soon he reached a line of sheds and corrals, which he followed until he got to the road. This spot was about a quarter mile from Greaves’s store and around the bend. Jean didn’t see anyone. The road, fields, yards, and backs of the cabins all looked deserted. A gloom had settled over the once-bustling activities of Grass Valley. Crossing the road, Jean started to circle around until he got close to several cabins, which he avoided by making a wide detour. This brought him to the edge of a slope, where shrubs and thickets provided cover for him to sneak around to the back of Greaves’s store. Then he turned toward it. Soon, he was getting close to a cabin on that side, and a few of its occupants spotted him. Their actions showed they were alarmed. Jean half expected a shot to come from that direction, given his growing suspicions, but he was wrong. A man Jean didn’t know watched him carefully and then waved his hand, as if to signal to Jean that he was safe. After that, the man vanished. Jean felt that someone not hostile to the Isbels had recognized him. So he passed the cabin and reached a thick scrub oak tree that provided cover, where he hid to observe. From this spot, he could see the back of Greaves’s store, likely too far for a rifle bullet to reach. In front of him, stretching as far as the store, was the village common. The road ran in front of the store. Jean’s position was such that he couldn’t see down the road toward Meeker’s house, which worried him. Unsatisfied with his spot, he scanned his surroundings, hoping to find a better vantage point. He discovered what he thought would be a more favorable position, though he still couldn't see much further down the road. Jean went back around the cabin and, stepping out into the open to the right, used the corner of Greaves’s barn as cover from the store window. Then he confidently stepped into the open and quickly reached an old wagon, intending to watch from there. He couldn’t see either the window or the door of the store, but if any of the Jorth group came out the back, they would be within range of his rifle. Jean took the risk of being shot at from either side.

So sharp and roving was his sight that he soon espied Colmor slipping along behind the trees some hundred yards to the left. All his efforts to catch a glimpse of Bill, however, were fruitless. And this appeared strange to Jean, for there were several good places on the right from which Bill could have commanded the front of Greaves’s store and the whole west side.

So sharp and watchful was his vision that he quickly spotted Colmor sneaking along behind the trees about a hundred yards to the left. However, all his attempts to catch a glimpse of Bill were unsuccessful. This seemed odd to Jean, since there were several good spots on the right from which Bill could have seen the front of Greaves's store and the entire west side.

Colmor disappeared among some shrubbery, and Jean seemed left alone to watch a deserted, silent village. Watching and listening, he felt that the time dragged. Yet the shadows cast by the sun showed him that, no matter how tense he felt and how the moments seemed hours, they were really flying.

Colmor vanished into some bushes, and Jean appeared to be left alone to observe an empty, quiet village. As he watched and listened, he had the impression that time was moving slowly. However, the shadows created by the sunlight indicated that, despite his tension and the way the moments felt like hours, they were actually passing quickly.

Suddenly Jean’s ears rang with the vibrant shock of a rifle report. He jerked up, strung and thrilling. It came from in front of the store. It was followed by revolver shots, heavy, booming. Three he counted, and the rest were too close together to enumerate. A single hoarse yell pealed out, somehow trenchant and triumphant. Other yells, not so wild and strange, muffled the first one. Then silence clapped down on the store and the open square.

Suddenly, Jean’s ears rang with the loud shock of a rifle shot. He jumped up, tense and excited. It came from in front of the store. It was followed by revolver shots, loud and booming. He counted three, and the rest came too quickly to keep track. A single raspy yell rang out, somehow sharp and victorious. Other yells, less wild and strange, drowned out the first one. Then silence fell over the store and the open square.

Jean was deadly certain that some of the Jorth clan would show themselves. He strained to still the trembling those sudden shots and that significant yell had caused him. No man appeared. No more sounds caught Jean’s ears. The suspense, then, grew unbearable. It was not that he could not wait for an enemy to appear, but that he could not wait to learn what had happened. Every moment that he stayed there, with hands like steel on his rifle, with eyes of a falcon, but added to a dreadful, dark certainty of disaster. A rifle shot swiftly followed by revolver shots! What could, they mean? Revolver shots of different caliber, surely fired by different men! What could they mean? It was not these shots that accounted for Jean’s dread, but the yell which had followed. All his intelligence and all his nerve were not sufficient to fight down the feeling of calamity. And at last, yielding to it, he left his post, and ran like a deer across the open, through the cabin yard, and around the edge of the slope to the road. Here his caution brought him to a halt. Not a living thing crossed his vision. Breaking into a run, he soon reached the back of Meeker’s place and entered, to hurry forward to the cabin.

Jean was absolutely certain that some of the Jorth clan would show up. He tried to calm the shaking caused by the sudden gunfire and that alarming shout. No one appeared. No more sounds reached Jean’s ears. The tension became unbearable. It wasn't that he couldn't wait for an enemy to show up; it was that he couldn't wait to find out what had happened. Every moment he stayed there, with hands firm on his rifle and eyes sharp like a hawk, only deepened a terrible feeling of disaster. A rifle shot followed quickly by gunfire! What could it all mean? The gunshots were of different calibers, clearly fired by different people! What did they signify? It wasn’t just the gunshots that filled Jean with dread, but the shout that followed. All his intelligence and bravery couldn’t suppress the sense of impending doom. Finally, giving in to that feeling, he left his post and dashed like a deer across the open ground, through the cabin yard, and around the edge of the slope to the road. Here, his caution forced him to stop. Not a single living thing was in sight. Breaking into a run, he soon reached the back of Meeker’s place and hurried forward to the cabin.

Colmor was there in the yard, breathing hard, his face working, and in front of him crouched several of the men with rifles ready. The road, to Jean’s flashing glance, was apparently deserted. Blue sat on the doorstep, lighting a cigarette. Then on the moment Blaisdell strode to the door of the cabin. Jean had never seen him look like that.

Colmor was in the yard, breathing heavily, his face tense, while a few men with rifles were crouched in front of him. To Jean's quick glance, the road seemed empty. Blue sat on the doorstep, lighting a cigarette. Just then, Blaisdell walked up to the cabin door. Jean had never seen him look like that.

“Jean—look—down the road,” he said, brokenly, and with big hand shaking he pointed down toward Greaves’s store.

“Jean—look—down the road,” he said, haltingly, and with his large hand trembling, he pointed toward Greaves’s store.

Like lightning Jean’s glance shot down—down—down—until it stopped to fix upon the prostrate form of a man, lying in the middle of the road. A man of lengthy build, shirt-sleeved arms flung wide, white head in the dust—dead! Jean’s recognition was as swift as his sight. His father! They had killed him! The Jorths! It was done. His father’s premonition of death had not been false. And then, after these flashing thoughts, came a sense of blankness, momentarily almost oblivion, that gave place to a rending of the heart. That pain Jean had known only at the death of his mother. It passed, this agonizing pang, and its icy pressure yielded to a rushing gust of blood, fiery as hell.

Like a flash, Jean’s gaze shot down—down—down—until it settled on a man lying in the middle of the road. A tall man, arms spread wide, white head in the dust—dead! Jean recognized him instantly. His father! They had killed him! The Jorths! It was over. His father's premonition of death hadn’t been wrong. And then, after those rapid thoughts, a sense of emptiness washed over him, almost like oblivion, followed by a heart-wrenching pain. That pain Jean had only felt before when his mother died. It passed, this agonizing ache, and its cold grip gave way to a surge of blood, fiery as hell.

“Who—did it?” whispered Jean.

“Who did it?” whispered Jean.

“Jorth!” replied Blaisdell, huskily. “Son, we couldn’t hold your dad back.... We couldn’t. He was like a lion.... An’ he throwed his life away! Oh, if it hadn’t been for that it ’d not be so awful. Shore, we come heah to shoot an’ be shot. But not like that.... By God, it was murder—murder!”

“Jorth!” Blaisdell said hoarsely. “We couldn’t stop your dad.... We just couldn’t. He was like a lion.... And he wasted his life! Oh, if it hadn’t been for that, it wouldn’t be so terrible. Sure, we came here to shoot and get shot. But not like that.... Honestly, it was murder—murder!”

Jean’s mute lips framed a query easily read.

Jean’s silent lips formed a question that was easy to understand.

“Tell him, Blue. I cain’t,” continued Blaisdell, and he tramped back into the cabin.

“Tell him, Blue. I can’t,” continued Blaisdell, and he stomped back into the cabin.

“Set down, Jean, an’ take things easy,” said Blue, calmly. “You know we all reckoned we’d git plugged one way or another in this deal. An’ shore it doesn’t matter much how a fellar gits it. All thet ought to bother us is to make shore the other outfit bites the dust—same as your dad had to.”

“Sit down, Jean, and relax,” said Blue, calmly. “You know we all figured we’d get shot one way or another in this deal. And it doesn’t really matter how a guy gets it. All that should concern us is making sure the other group goes down—just like your dad had to.”

Under this man’s tranquil presence, all the more quieting because it seemed to be so deadly sure and cool, Jean felt the uplift of his dark spirit, the acceptance of fatality, the mounting control of faculties that must wait. The little gunman seemed to have about his inert presence something that suggested a rattlesnake’s inherent knowledge of its destructiveness. Jean sat down and wiped his clammy face.

Under this man's calm presence, which was even more soothing because it felt so confidently cool, Jean sensed the lift of his dark spirit, the acceptance of fate, and the growing control of abilities that had to hold back. The little gunman seemed to carry an aura that reminded one of a rattlesnake's instinctual awareness of its own danger. Jean sat down and wiped his sweaty face.

“Jean, your dad reckoned to square accounts with Jorth, an’ save us all,” began Blue, puffing out a cloud of smoke. “But he reckoned too late. Mebbe years; ago—or even not long ago—if he’d called Jorth out man to man there’d never been any Jorth-Isbel war. Gaston Isbel’s conscience woke too late. That’s how I figger it.”

“Jean, your dad thought he could settle things with Jorth and save us all,” started Blue, exhaling a cloud of smoke. “But he thought too late. Maybe years ago—or even not long ago—if he’d challenged Jorth directly, there would never have been a Jorth-Isbel war. Gaston Isbel's conscience woke up too late. That’s how I see it.”

“Hurry! Tell me—how it—happen,” panted Jean.

“Hurry! Tell me—how did it happen?” panted Jean.

“Wal, a little while after y’u left I seen your dad writin’ on a leaf he tore out of a book—Meeker’s Bible, as yu can see. I thought thet was funny. An’ Blaisdell gave me a hunch. Pretty soon along comes young Evarts. The old man calls him out of our hearin’ an’ talks to him. Then I seen him give the boy somethin’, which I afterward figgered was what he wrote on the leaf out of the Bible. Me an’ Blaisdell both tried to git out of him what thet meant. But not a word. I kept watchin’ an’ after a while I seen young Evarts slip out the back way. Mebbe half an hour I seen a bare-legged kid cross, the road an’ go into Greaves’s store.... Then shore I tumbled to your dad. He’d sent a note to Jorth to come out an’ meet him face to face, man to man! ... Shore it was like readin’ what your dad had wrote. But I didn’t say nothin’ to Blaisdell. I jest watched.”

"Well, a little while after you left, I saw your dad writing on a leaf he tore out of a book—Meeker’s Bible, as you can see. I thought that was funny. And Blaisdell gave me a hint. Pretty soon, young Evarts showed up. The old man called him out of our hearing range and talked to him. Then I saw him give the boy something, which I later figured was what he wrote on the leaf from the Bible. Blaisdell and I both tried to get him to tell us what that meant. But not a word. I kept watching, and after a while, I saw young Evarts slip out the back way. Maybe half an hour later, I saw a bare-legged kid cross the road and go into Greaves’s store... Then it hit me about your dad. He’d sent a note to Jorth to come out and meet him face-to-face, man-to-man! ... It was just like reading what your dad had written. But I didn’t say anything to Blaisdell. I just watched."

Blue drawled these last words, as if he enjoyed remembrance of his keen reasoning. A smile wreathed his thin lips. He drew twice on the cigarette and emitted another cloud of smoke. Quite suddenly then he changed. He made a rapid gesture—the whip of a hand, significant and passionate. And swift words followed:

Blue drawled these last words, as if he enjoyed remembering his sharp reasoning. A smile curled his thin lips. He took two drags from the cigarette and let out another puff of smoke. Then, without warning, he changed. He made a quick gesture—the whip of a hand, meaningful and intense. And swift words followed:

“Colonel Lee Jorth stalked out of the store—out into the road—mebbe a hundred steps. Then he halted. He wore his long black coat an’ his wide black hat, an’ he stood like a stone.

“Colonel Lee Jorth walked out of the store—out onto the road—maybe a hundred steps. Then he stopped. He wore his long black coat and his wide black hat, and he stood like a statue.

“‘What the hell!’ burst out Blaisdell, comin’ out of his trance.

“‘What the hell!’ Blaisdell exclaimed, coming out of his trance.

“The rest of us jest looked. I’d forgot your dad, for the minnit. So had all of us. But we remembered soon enough when we seen him stalk out. Everybody had a hunch then. I called him. Blaisdell begged him to come back. All the fellars; had a say. No use! Then I shore cussed him an’ told him it was plain as day thet Jorth didn’t hit me like an honest man. I can sense such things. I knew Jorth had trick up his sleeve. I’ve not been a gun fighter fer nothin’.

“The rest of us just watched. I had forgotten about your dad for a moment. So had all of us. But we remembered quickly when we saw him walk out. Everyone had a feeling then. I called him. Blaisdell begged him to come back. All the guys had something to say. No use! Then I sure cursed him and told him it was obvious that Jorth didn’t hit me like an honest man. I can sense these things. I knew Jorth had something planned. I haven’t been a gunslinger for nothing.”

“Your dad had no rifle. He packed his gun at his hip. He jest stalked down thet road like a giant, goin’ faster an’ faster, holdin’ his head high. It shore was fine to see him. But I was sick. I heerd Blaisdell groan, an’ Fredericks thar cussed somethin’ fierce.... When your dad halted—I reckon aboot fifty steps from Jorth—then we all went numb. I heerd your dad’s voice—then Jorth’s. They cut like knives. Y’u could shore heah the hate they hed fer each other.”

“Your dad didn't have a rifle. He carried his gun at his hip. He just walked down that road like a giant, getting faster and faster, holding his head high. It was really great to see him. But I felt sick. I heard Blaisdell groan, and Fredericks there swore something fierce.... When your dad stopped—I guess about fifty steps from Jorth—then we all went numb. I heard your dad's voice—then Jorth's. They cut like knives. You could really hear the hate they had for each other.”

Blue had become a little husky. His speech had grown gradually to denote his feeling. Underneath his serenity there was a different order of man.

Blue had gotten a bit stocky. His way of speaking had slowly changed to reflect his emotions. Beneath his calm exterior, there was a completely different kind of person.

“I reckon both your dad an’ Jorth went fer their guns at the same time—an even break. But jest as they drew, some one shot a rifle from the store. Must hev been a forty-five seventy. A big gun! The bullet must have hit your dad low down, aboot the middle. He acted thet way, sinkin’ to his knees. An’ he was wild in shootin’—so wild thet he must hev missed. Then he wabbled—an’ Jorth run in a dozen steps, shootin’ fast, till your dad fell over.... Jorth run closer, bent over him, an’ then straightened up with an Apache yell, if I ever heerd one.... An’ then Jorth backed slow—lookin’ all the time—backed to the store, an’ went in.”

“I think both your dad and Jorth went for their guns at the same time—it was an even match. But just as they drew, someone shot a rifle from the store. It must have been a .45-70. A big gun! The bullet must have hit your dad low, about the middle. He acted like it, sinking to his knees. And he was wild when he shot—so wild that he must have missed. Then he wobbled, and Jorth ran in a dozen steps, shooting quickly, until your dad fell over.... Jorth ran closer, bent over him, and then straightened up with an Apache yell, if I ever heard one.... And then Jorth backed away slowly—looking all the time—backed to the store and went in.”

Blue’s voice ceased. Jean seemed suddenly released from an impelling magnet that now dropped him to some numb, dizzy depth. Blue’s lean face grew hazy. Then Jean bowed his head in his hands, and sat there, while a slight tremor shook all his muscles at once. He grew deathly cold and deathly sick. This paroxysm slowly wore away, and Jean grew conscious of a dull amaze at the apparent deadness of his spirit. Blaisdell placed a huge, kindly hand on his shoulder.

Blue’s voice stopped. Jean felt suddenly free from a strong force that had just dropped him into a numb, dizzy place. Blue’s thin face became blurred. Then Jean lowered his head into his hands and sat there, as a slight tremor shook his entire body. He felt icy cold and nauseous. This intense moment gradually faded, and Jean became aware of a dull surprise at the seemingly lifeless state of his spirit. Blaisdell placed a big, gentle hand on his shoulder.

“Brace up, son!” he said, with voice now clear and resonant. “Shore it’s what your dad expected—an’ what we all must look for.... If yu was goin’ to kill Jorth before—think how — — shore y’u’re goin’ to kill him now.”

“Get ready, son!” he said, his voice now clear and strong. “This is exactly what your dad expected—and what we all need to look for.... If you were going to kill Jorth before—just imagine how sure you are going to kill him now.”

“Blaisdell’s talkin’,” put in Blue, and his voice had a cold ring. “Lee Jorth will never see the sun rise ag’in!”

“Blaisdell’s talking,” Blue chimed in, and his voice had a cold edge. “Lee Jorth will never see the sun rise again!”

These calls to the primitive in Jean, to the Indian, were not in vain. But even so, when the dark tide rose in him, there was still a haunting consciousness of the cruelty of this singular doom imposed upon him. Strangely Ellen Jorth’s face floated back in the depths of his vision, pale, fading, like the face of a spirit floating by.

These calls to the primal side in Jean, to the Indian, were not wasted. But even then, when the dark tide surged within him, there was still a lingering awareness of the cruelty of this unique fate forced upon him. Oddly, Ellen Jorth’s face emerged in the back of his mind, pale and fading, like a spirit drifting by.

“Blue,” said Blaisdell, “let’s get Isbel’s body soon as we dare, an’ bury it. Reckon we can, right after dark.”

“Blue,” said Blaisdell, “let’s get Isbel’s body as soon as we can and bury it. I think we can do it right after dark.”

“Shore,” replied Blue. “But y’u fellars figger thet out. I’m thinkin’ hard. I’ve got somethin’ on my mind.”

“Sure,” replied Blue. “But you guys figure that out. I’m thinking hard. I’ve got something on my mind.”

Jean grew fascinated by the looks and speech and action of the little gunman. Blue, indeed, had something on his mind. And it boded ill to the men in that dark square stone house down the road. He paced to and fro in the yard, back and forth on the path to the gate, and then he entered the cabin to stalk up and down, faster and faster, until all at once he halted as if struck, to upfling his right arm in a singular fierce gesture.

Jean became captivated by the appearance, speech, and behavior of the little gunman. Blue clearly had something on his mind, and it didn't look good for the guys in that dark stone house down the road. He walked back and forth in the yard, pacing along the path to the gate, then went into the cabin to pace faster and faster, until suddenly he stopped, as if hit by something, and raised his right arm in a unique, intense gesture.

“Jean, call the men in,” he said, tersely.

“Jean, bring the men in,” he said bluntly.

They all filed in, sinister and silent, with eager faces turned to the little Texan. His dominance showed markedly.

They all walked in quietly and with an intimidating presence, their eager faces focused on the little Texan. His authority was clearly evident.

“Gordon, y’u stand in the door an’ keep your eye peeled,” went on Blue. “... Now, boys, listen! I’ve thought it all out. This game of man huntin’ is the same to me as cattle raisin’ is to y’u. An’ my life in Texas all comes back to me, I reckon, in good stead fer us now. I’m goin’ to kill Lee Jorth! Him first, an’ mebbe his brothers. I had to think of a good many ways before I hit on one I reckon will be shore. It’s got to be SHORE. Jorth has got to die! Wal, heah’s my plan.... Thet Jorth outfit is drinkin’ some, we can gamble on it. They’re not goin’ to leave thet store. An’ of course they’ll be expectin’ us to start a fight. I reckon they’ll look fer some such siege as they held round Isbel’s ranch. But we shore ain’t goin’ to do thet. I’m goin’ to surprise thet outfit. There’s only one man among them who is dangerous, an’ thet’s Queen. I know Queen. But he doesn’t know me. An’ I’m goin’ to finish my job before he gets acquainted with me. After thet, all right!”

“Gordon, you stand by the door and keep an eye out,” Blue continued. “... Now, guys, listen up! I’ve thought it all through. This game of man hunting is the same to me as cattle raising is to you. And my life in Texas is really coming back to help us now. I’m going to kill Lee Jorth! Him first, and maybe his brothers. I had to think of a lot of ways before I came up with one that I think will definitely work. It has to be SURE. Jorth has to die! Well, here’s my plan... That Jorth group is definitely drinking some, we can bet on that. They’re not going to leave that store. And of course, they’ll be expecting us to start a fight. I figure they’ll be looking for some kind of siege like the one they did around Isbel’s ranch. But we are definitely not going to do that. I’m going to catch that group by surprise. There’s only one guy among them who is dangerous, and that’s Queen. I know Queen. But he doesn’t know me. And I’m going to finish my job before he gets to know me. After that, everything will be fine!”

Blue paused a moment, his eyes narrowing down, his whole face setting in hard cast of intense preoccupation, as if he visualized a scene of extraordinary nature.

Blue paused for a moment, his eyes narrowing, his entire face taking on a serious expression of intense focus, as if he was picturing an extraordinary scene.

“Wal, what’s your trick?” demanded Blaisdell.

“Alright, what's your trick?” demanded Blaisdell.

“Y’u all know Greaves’s store,” continued Blue. “How them winders have wooden shutters thet keep a light from showin’ outside? Wal, I’m gamblin’ thet as soon as it’s dark Jorth’s gang will be celebratin’. They’ll be drinkin’ an’ they’ll have a light, an’ the winders will be shut. They’re not goin’ to worry none aboot us. Thet store is like a fort. It won’t burn. An’ shore they’d never think of us chargin’ them in there. Wal, as soon as it’s dark, we’ll go round behind the lots an’ come up jest acrost the road from Greaves’s. I reckon we’d better leave Isbel where he lays till this fight’s over. Mebbe y’u ’ll have more ’n him to bury. We’ll crawl behind them bushes in front of Coleman’s yard. An’ heah’s where Jean comes in. He’ll take an ax, an’ his guns, of course, an’ do some of his Injun sneakin’ round to the back of Greaves’s store.... An’, Jean, y’u must do a slick job of this. But I reckon it ’ll be easy fer you. Back there it ’ll be dark as pitch, fer anyone lookin’ out of the store. An’ I’m figgerin’ y’u can take your time an’ crawl right up. Now if y’u don’t remember how Greaves’s back yard looks I’ll tell y’u.”

“Y'all know Greaves's store,” Blue continued. “You know how the windows have wooden shutters that keep the light from showing outside? Well, I bet that as soon as it gets dark, Jorth's gang will be celebrating. They'll be drinking, and they'll have a light on, but the windows will be shut. They’re not going to worry about us at all. That store is like a fortress. It won't burn. And surely they wouldn't think of us charging in there. Well, as soon as it’s dark, we’ll go around behind the lots and come up just across the road from Greaves's. I think we’d better leave Isbel where he is until this fight’s over. Maybe you’ll have more than him to bury. We’ll crawl behind those bushes in front of Coleman’s yard. And here’s where Jean comes in. He’ll take an ax and his guns, of course, and do some of his sneaky moves to the back of Greaves’s store... And, Jean, you need to do a slick job of this. But I think it’ll be easy for you. Back there, it’ll be pitch dark for anyone looking out of the store. And I figure you can take your time and crawl right up. Now if you don’t remember what Greaves’s backyard looks like, I’ll tell you.”

Here Blue dropped on one knee to the floor and with a finger he traced a map of Greaves’s barn and fence, the back door and window, and especially a break in the stone foundation which led into a kind of cellar where Greaves stored wood and other things that could be left outdoors.

Here Blue dropped to one knee on the floor and traced a map of Greaves’s barn and fence with his finger, marking the back door and window, and especially a crack in the stone foundation that led into a sort of cellar where Greaves kept wood and other items that could be left outside.

“Jean, I take particular pains to show y’u where this hole is,” said Blue, “because if the gang runs out y’u could duck in there an’ hide. An’ if they run out into the yard—wal, y’u’d make it a sorry run fer them.... Wal, when y’u’ve crawled up close to Greaves’s back door, an’ waited long enough to see an’ listen—then you’re to run fast an’ swing your ax smash ag’in’ the winder. Take a quick peep in if y’u want to. It might help. Then jump quick an’ take a swing at the door. Y’u ’ll be standin’ to one side, so if the gang shoots through the door they won’t hit y’u. Bang thet door good an’ hard.... Wal, now’s where I come in. When y’u swing thet ax I’ll shore run fer the front of the store. Jorth an’ his outfit will be some attentive to thet poundin’ of yours on the back door. So I reckon. An’ they’ll be lookin’ thet way. I’ll run in—yell—an’ throw my guns on Jorth.”

“Jean, I’m making a real effort to show you where this hole is,” said Blue, “because if the gang runs out you can duck in there and hide. And if they come into the yard—well, you’d make it a rough time for them... Well, when you’ve crawled up close to Greaves’s back door and waited long enough to see and listen—then you’re supposed to run fast and swing your axe really hard against the window. Take a quick peek inside if you want. It might help. Then jump quickly and take a swing at the door. You’ll be standing to one side, so if the gang shoots through the door they won’t hit you. Bang that door good and hard... Well, now this is where I come in. When you swing that axe I’ll definitely run to the front of the store. Jorth and his crew will be pretty focused on that pounding of yours at the back door. So I think. And they’ll be looking that way. I’ll run in—yell—and throw my guns on Jorth.”

“Humph! Is that all?” ejaculated Blaisdell.

“Humph! Is that it?” exclaimed Blaisdell.

“I reckon thet’s all an’ I’m figgerin’ it’s a hell of a lot,” responded Blue, dryly. “Thet’s what Jorth will think.”

“I think that’s everything and I’m figuring it’s a lot,” replied Blue, dryly. “That’s what Jorth will think.”

“Where do we come in?”

"What's our role here?"

“Wal, y’u all can back me up,” replied Blue, dubiously. “Y’u see, my plan goes as far as killin’ Jorth—an’ mebbe his brothers. Mebbe I’ll get a crack at Queen. But I’ll be shore of Jorth. After thet all depends. Mebbe it ’ll be easy fer me to get out. An’ if I do y’u fellars will know it an’ can fill thet storeroom full of bullets.”

“Alright, you all can back me up,” replied Blue, sounding unsure. “You see, my plan involves killing Jorth—and maybe his brothers. Maybe I’ll even get a shot at the Queen. But I’ll definitely go after Jorth. After that, it all depends. Maybe it’ll be easy for me to get out. And if I do, you guys will know it and can fill that storeroom with bullets.”

“Wal, Blue, with all due respect to y’u, I shore don’t like your plan,” declared Blaisdell. “Success depends upon too many little things any one of which might go wrong.”

“Well, Blue, with all due respect to you, I really don’t like your plan,” declared Blaisdell. “Success relies on too many small details, any one of which could go wrong.”

“Blaisdell, I reckon I know this heah game better than y’u,” replied Blue. “A gun fighter goes by instinct. This trick will work.”

“Blaisdell, I think I know this game better than you do,” replied Blue. “A gunfighter goes by instinct. This trick will work.”

“But suppose that front door of Greaves’s store is barred,” protested Blaisdell.

“But what if the front door of Greaves’s store is locked?” protested Blaisdell.

“It hasn’t got any bar,” said Blue.

“It doesn’t have a bar,” said Blue.

“Y’u’re shore?”

"Are you sure?"

“Yes, I reckon,” replied Blue.

“Yeah, I guess,” replied Blue.

“Hell, man! Aren’t y’u takin’ a terrible chance?” queried Blaisdell.

“Wow, man! Aren’t you taking a huge risk?” asked Blaisdell.

Blue’s answer to that was a look that brought the blood to Blaisdell’s face. Only then did the rancher really comprehend how the little gunman had taken such desperate chances before, and meant to take them now, not with any hope or assurance of escaping with his life, but to live up to his peculiar code of honor.

Blue’s response was a glare that made Blaisdell’s face flush. It was only then that the rancher truly understood how the little gunman had taken such risky chances in the past and was prepared to do so again, not expecting or believing he would escape with his life, but to uphold his unusual sense of honor.

“Blaisdell, did y’u ever heah of me in Texas?” he queried, dryly.

“Blaisdell, have you ever heard of me in Texas?” he asked, dryly.

“Wal, no, Blue, I cain’t swear I did,” replied the rancher, apologetically. “An’ Isbel was always sort of’ mysterious aboot his acquaintance with you.”

“Well, no, Blue, I can’t say for sure that I did,” replied the rancher, apologetically. “And Isbel was always a bit mysterious about his connection with you.”

“My name’s not Blue.”

“My name isn’t Blue.”

“Ahuh! Wal, what is it, then—if I’m safe to ask?” returned Blaisdell, gruffly.

“Uh-huh! Well, what is it then—if it’s okay for me to ask?” Blaisdell replied, gruffly.

“It’s King Fisher,” replied Blue.

“It’s King Fisher,” Blue replied.

The shock that stiffened Blaisdell must have been communicated to the others. Jean certainly felt amaze, and some other emotion not fully realized, when he found himself face to face with one of the most notorious characters ever known in Texas—an outlaw long supposed to be dead.

The shock that froze Blaisdell must have spread to the others. Jean certainly felt amazed, along with some other emotion he couldn’t quite identify, when he found himself staring at one of the most infamous figures ever known in Texas—an outlaw believed to be dead for a long time.

“Men, I reckon I’d kept my secret if I’d any idee of comin’ out of this Isbel-Jorth war alive,” said Blue. “But I’m goin’ to cash. I feel it heah.... Isbel was my friend. He saved me from bein’ lynched in Texas. An’ so I’m goin’ to kill Jorth. Now I’ll take it kind of y’u—if any of y’u come out of this alive—to tell who I was an’ why I was on the Isbel side. Because this sheep an’ cattle war—this talk of Jorth an’ the Hash Knife Gang—it makes me, sick. I KNOW there’s been crooked work on Isbel’s side, too. An’ I never want it on record thet I killed Jorth because he was a rustler.”

“Listen, I would’ve kept my secret if I had any idea I’d survive this Isbel-Jorth war,” said Blue. “But I’m going to cash it in. I can feel it here.... Isbel was my friend. He saved me from being lynched in Texas. So I’m going to kill Jorth. Now I’d appreciate it if any of you who make it out alive could tell who I was and why I was on Isbel's side. Because this sheep and cattle war—this talk about Jorth and the Hash Knife Gang—it makes me sick. I KNOW there’s been shady stuff on Isbel’s side too. And I never want it recorded that I killed Jorth just because he was a rustler.”

“By God, Blue! it’s late in the day for such talk,” burst out Blaisdell, in rage and amaze. “But I reckon y’u know what y’u’re talkin’ aboot.... Wal, I shore don’t want to heah it.”

“By God, Blue! It’s late in the day for such talk,” Blaisdell exclaimed, both angry and shocked. “But I guess you know what you’re talking about... Well, I really don’t want to hear it.”

At this juncture Bill Isbel quietly entered the cabin, too late to hear any of Blue’s statement. Jean was positive of that, for as Blue was speaking those last revealing words Bill’s heavy boots had resounded on the gravel path outside. Yet something in Bill’s look or in the way Blue averted his lean face or in the entrance of Bill at that particular moment, or all these together, seemed to Jean to add further mystery to the long secret causes leading up to the Jorth-Isbel war. Did Bill know what Blue knew? Jean had an inkling that he did. And on the moment, so perplexing and bitter, Jean gazed out the door, down the deserted road to where his dead father lay, white-haired and ghastly in the sunlight.

At that moment, Bill Isbel quietly walked into the cabin, arriving too late to catch any of Blue’s words. Jean was sure of that, since while Blue was saying those last revealing things, Bill’s heavy boots were echoing on the gravel path outside. Yet something in Bill’s expression, the way Blue turned away his lean face, or the timing of Bill's entrance—all of it seemed to deepen the mystery surrounding the long-hidden reasons behind the Jorth-Isbel conflict. Did Bill know what Blue knew? Jean had a feeling he did. And in that confusing and bitter moment, Jean looked out the door, down the empty road to where his dead father lay, white-haired and ghostly in the sunlight.

“Blue, you could have kept that to yourself, as well as your real name,” interposed Jean, with bitterness. “It’s too late now for either to do any good.... But I appreciate your friendship for dad, an’ I’m ready to help carry out your plan.”

“Blue, you could have kept that to yourself, along with your real name,” interrupted Jean, bitterly. “It’s too late for either of those to make a difference now.... But I appreciate your friendship with Dad, and I’m ready to help carry out your plan.”

That decision of Jean’s appeared to put an end to protest or argument from Blaisdell or any of the others. Blue’s fleeting dark smile was one of satisfaction. Then upon most of this group of men seemed to settle a grim restraint. They went out and walked and watched; they came in again, restless and somber. Jean thought that he must have bent his gaze a thousand times down the road to the tragic figure of his father. That sight roused all emotions in his breast, and the one that stirred there most was pity. The pity of it! Gaston Isbel lying face down in the dust of the village street! Patches of blood showed on the back of his vest and one white-sleeved shoulder. He had been shot through. Every time Jean saw this blood he had to stifle a gathering of wild, savage impulses.

That decision of Jean's seemed to put a stop to any protests or arguments from Blaisdell or the others. Blue's quick, dark smile showed he was satisfied. Then, a heavy silence settled over most of the men in the group. They went outside to walk and observe; when they came back in, they were restless and serious. Jean felt like he must have directed his gaze down the road to the tragic figure of his father a thousand times. That sight stirred up every emotion in him, with the strongest being pity. The pity of it! Gaston Isbel lying face down in the dust of the village street! Patches of blood were visible on the back of his vest and one of his white-sleeved shoulders. He had been shot through. Each time Jean saw that blood, he had to suppress a surge of wild, savage impulses.

Meanwhile the afternoon hours dragged by and the village remained as if its inhabitants had abandoned it. Not even a dog showed on the side road. Jorth and some of his men came out in front of the store and sat on the steps, in close convening groups. Every move they, made seemed significant of their confidence and importance. About sunset they went back into the store, closing door and window shutters. Then Blaisdell called the Isbel faction to have food and drink. Jean felt no hunger. And Blue, who had kept apart from the others, showed no desire to eat. Neither did he smoke, though early in the day he had never been without a cigarette between his lips.

Meanwhile, the afternoon dragged on, and the village felt deserted, as if its residents had left. Not even a dog appeared along the side road. Jorth and some of his men gathered in front of the store, sitting on the steps in tight groups. Every move they made seemed to signal their confidence and importance. Around sunset, they went back inside the store, shutting the doors and window shutters. Then Blaisdell called the Isbel faction to share food and drinks. Jean felt no hunger. And Blue, who had stayed away from the others, showed no interest in eating. He didn't even smoke, even though earlier in the day, he had always had a cigarette between his lips.

Twilight fell and darkness came. Not a light showed anywhere in the blackness.

Twilight fell, and darkness arrived. Not a single light was visible in the darkness.

“Wal, I reckon it’s aboot time,” said Blue, and he led the way out of the cabin to the back of the lot. Jean strode behind him, carrying his rifle and an ax. Silently the other men followed. Blue turned to the left and led through the field until he came within sight of a dark line of trees.

“Well, I think it’s about time,” said Blue, and he led the way out of the cabin to the back of the lot. Jean walked behind him, carrying his rifle and an axe. The other men followed silently. Blue turned left and led through the field until he could see a dark line of trees ahead.

“Thet’s where the road turns off,” he said to Jean. “An’ heah’s the back of Coleman’s place.... Wal, Jean, good luck!”

“Thet's where the road branches off,” he said to Jean. “And here’s the back of Coleman’s place.... Well, Jean, good luck!”

Jean felt the grip of a steel-like hand, and in the darkness he caught the gleam of Blue’s eyes. Jean had no response in words for the laconic Blue, but he wrung the hard, thin hand and hurried away in the darkness.

Jean felt the strong grip of a hand as hard as steel, and in the dark, he caught the shine of Blue’s eyes. Jean didn’t have any words for the quiet Blue, but he squeezed the hard, thin hand and quickly made his way into the darkness.

Once alone, his part of the business at hand rushed him into eager thrilling action. This was the sort of work he was fitted to do. In this instance it was important, but it seemed to him that Blue had coolly taken the perilous part. And this cowboy with gray in his thin hair was in reality the great King Fisher! Jean marveled at the fact. And he shivered all over for Jorth. In ten minutes—fifteen, more or less, Jorth would lie gasping bloody froth and sinking down. Something in the dark, lonely, silent, oppressive summer night told Jean this. He strode on swiftly. Crossing the road at a run, he kept on over the ground he had traversed during the afternoon, and in a few moments he stood breathing hard at the edge of the common behind Greaves’s store.

Once he was alone, the urgency of his task propelled him into exciting action. This was the kind of work he was meant for. While it was important, he couldn’t shake the feeling that Blue had calmly taken on the risky part. And this cowboy with gray in his thin hair was actually the great King Fisher! Jean couldn’t believe it. He felt a chill for Jorth. In ten minutes—maybe fifteen, give or take, Jorth would be gasping, blood bubbling as he went down. Something about the dark, lonely, heavy summer night told Jean this. He moved quickly, running across the road and retracing his steps from earlier in the day. In a matter of moments, he stood, breathing heavily, at the edge of the common behind Greaves’s store.

A pin point of light penetrated the blackness. It made Jean’s heart leap. The Jorth contingent were burning the big lamp that hung in the center of Greaves’s store. Jean listened. Loud voices and coarse laughter sounded discord on the melancholy silence of the night. What Blue had called his instinct had surely guided him aright. Death of Gaston Isbel was being celebrated by revel.

A tiny dot of light cut through the darkness. It made Jean's heart race. The Jorth group was lighting up the large lamp that hung in the middle of Greaves's store. Jean listened. Loud voices and boisterous laughter shattered the melancholic silence of the night. What Blue had referred to as his instinct must have pointed him in the right direction. They were celebrating the death of Gaston Isbel with a party.

In a few moments Jean had regained his breath. Then all his faculties set intensely to the action at hand. He seemed to magnify his hearing and his sight. His movements made no sound. He gained the wagon, where he crouched a moment.

In just a few moments, Jean caught his breath. Then all his senses focused intensely on what he needed to do. He appeared to sharpen his hearing and his vision. His movements were completely silent. He approached the wagon and crouched there for a moment.

The ground seemed a pale, obscure medium, hardly more real than the gloom above it. Through this gloom of night, which looked thick like a cloud, but was really clear, shone the thin, bright point of light, accentuating the black square that was Greaves’s store. Above this stood a gray line of tree foliage, and then the intensely dark-blue sky studded with white, cold stars.

The ground appeared pale and unclear, barely more tangible than the darkness above it. Through the night, which looked dense like a cloud but was actually clear, a thin, bright point of light shone, highlighting the black square that was Greaves’s store. Above that was a gray line of tree branches, followed by the deep dark-blue sky dotted with bright, cold stars.

A hound bayed lonesomely somewhere in the distance. Voices of men sounded more distinctly, some deep and low, others loud, unguarded, with the vacant note of thoughtlessness.

A dog howled sadly in the distance. The voices of men were clearer, some deep and low, others loud and carefree, sounding thoughtless.

Jean gathered all his forces, until sense of sight and hearing were in exquisite accord with the suppleness and lightness of his movements. He glided on about ten short, swift steps before he halted. That was as far as his piercing eyes could penetrate. If there had been a guard stationed outside the store Jean would have seen him before being seen. He saw the fence, reached it, entered the yard, glided in the dense shadow of the barn until the black square began to loom gray—the color of stone at night. Jean peered through the obscurity. No dark figure of a man showed against that gray wall—only a black patch, which must be the hole in the foundation mentioned. A ray of light now streaked out from the little black window. To the right showed the wide, black door.

Jean gathered all his energy until his sight and hearing were perfectly in tune with the agility and lightness of his movements. He glided forward about ten quick, short steps before stopping. That was as far as his sharp eyes could see. If there had been a guard outside the store, Jean would have spotted him before he was noticed. He saw the fence, reached it, and entered the yard, moving silently in the dense shadow of the barn until the dark square began to look gray—the color of stone at night. Jean peered into the darkness. No dark figure of a man appeared against that gray wall—only a black spot, which must be the hole in the foundation mentioned. A beam of light now shone out from the small black window. To the right, he could see the wide, black door.

Farther on Jean glided silently. Then he halted. There was no guard outside. Jean heard the clink of a cap, the lazy drawl of a Texan, and then a strong, harsh voice—Jorth’s. It strung Jean’s whole being tight and vibrating. Inside he was on fire while cold thrills rippled over his skin. It took tremendous effort of will to hold himself back another instant to listen, to look, to feel, to make sure. And that instant charged him with a mighty current of hot blood, straining, throbbing, damming.

Farther along, Jean moved quietly. Then he stopped. There was no guard outside. Jean heard the clink of a cap, the lazy drawl of a Texan, and then a strong, harsh voice—Jorth’s. It sent shockwaves through Jean’s entire being. Inside, he was on fire while cold chills ran over his skin. It took a huge effort to hold himself back for another moment to listen, to look, to feel, to be sure. And that moment filled him with a powerful rush of adrenaline, straining, throbbing, building up inside him.

When Jean leaped this current burst. In a few swift bounds he gained his point halfway between door and window. He leaned his rifle against the stone wall. Then he swung the ax. Crash! The window shutter split and rattled to the floor inside. The silence then broke with a hoarse, “What’s thet?”

When Jean jumped over this current surge, he quickly covered the distance halfway between the door and the window. He propped his rifle against the stone wall. Then he swung the axe. Crash! The window shutter splintered and fell to the floor inside. The silence was interrupted by a rough, “What’s that?”

With all his might Jean swung the heavy ax on the door. Smash! The lower half caved in and banged to the floor. Bright light flared out the hole.

With all his strength, Jean swung the heavy axe at the door. Smash! The lower half collapsed and hit the floor. Bright light burst through the hole.

“Look out!” yelled a man, in loud alarm. “They’re batterin’ the back door!”

“Watch out!” shouted a man, loudly warning. “They’re breaking down the back door!”

Jean swung again, high on the splintered door. Crash! Pieces flew inside.

Jean swung again, hitting the broken door hard. Crash! Bits flew inside.

“They’ve got axes,” hoarsely shouted another voice. “Shove the counter ag’in’ the door.”

"They've got axes," another voice shouted hoarsely. "Push the counter against the door."

“No!” thundered a voice of authority that denoted terror as well. “Let them come in. Pull your guns an’ take to cover!”

“No!” shouted a commanding voice that also carried a sense of fear. “Let them come in. Draw your guns and take cover!”

“They ain’t comin’ in,” was the hoarse reply. “They’ll shoot in on us from the dark.”

“They're not coming in,” was the raspy reply. “They'll shoot at us from the shadows.”

“Put out the lamp!” yelled another.

“Turn off the lamp!” shouted another.

Jean’s third heavy swing caved in part of the upper half of the door. Shouts and curses intermingled with the sliding of benches across the floor and the hard shuffle of boots. This confusion seemed to be split and silenced by a piercing yell, of different caliber, of terrible meaning. It stayed Jean’s swing—caused him to drop the ax and snatch up his rifle.

Jean's third powerful swing smashed part of the upper half of the door. Shouts and curses blended with the sound of benches sliding across the floor and the heavy shuffle of boots. This chaos was suddenly cut through by a sharp scream, one that carried a terrible significance. It stopped Jean's swing—he dropped the ax and grabbed his rifle.

“DON’T ANYBODY MOVE!”

“DON’T ANYONE MOVE!”

Like a steel whip this voice cut the silence. It belonged to Blue. Jean swiftly bent to put his eye to a crack in the door. Most of those visible seemed to have been frozen into unnatural positions. Jorth stood rather in front of his men, hatless and coatless, one arm outstretched, and his dark profile set toward a little man just inside the door. This man was Blue. Jean needed only one flashing look at Blue’s face, at his leveled, quivering guns, to understand why he had chosen this trick.

Like a steel whip, this voice sliced through the silence. It belonged to Blue. Jean quickly crouched down to peek through a crack in the door. Most of the people he could see appeared to be frozen in awkward positions. Jorth stood in front of his men, hatless and coatless, one arm extended, his dark silhouette directed at a small man just inside the door. This man was Blue. Jean needed just one quick look at Blue’s face and his aimed, trembling guns to realize why he had pulled this stunt.

“Who’re—you?” demanded Jorth, in husky pants.

“Who are you?” demanded Jorth, breathing heavily.

“Reckon I’m Isbel’s right-hand man,” came the biting reply. “Once tolerable well known in Texas.... KING FISHER!”

"Guess I'm Isbel's right-hand man," came the sharp response. "Once pretty well known in Texas.... KING FISHER!"

The name must have been a guarantee of death. Jorth recognized this outlaw and realized his own fate. In the lamplight his face turned a pale greenish white. His outstretched hand began to quiver down.

The name must have meant certain death. Jorth recognized this outlaw and understood what would happen to him. In the light of the lamp, his face turned a sickly greenish white. His outstretched hand started to tremble.

Blue’s left gun seemed to leap up and flash red and explode. Several heavy reports merged almost as one. Jorth’s arm jerked limply, flinging his gun. And his body sagged in the middle. His hands fluttered like crippled wings and found their way to his abdomen. His death-pale face never changed its set look nor position toward Blue. But his gasping utterance was one of horrible mortal fury and terror. Then he began to sway, still with that strange, rigid set of his face toward his slayer, until he fell.

Blue’s left gun seemed to snap up, flash red, and go off. Several loud bangs merged into one. Jorth’s arm jerked weakly, tossing his gun away. His body sagged in the middle. His hands flailed like broken wings and reached for his abdomen. His deathly pale face didn’t change its expression or direction toward Blue. But his gasping words were filled with terrible fear and rage. Then he began to sway, still with that strange, stiff look on his face directed at his killer, until he collapsed.

His fall broke the spell. Even Blue, like the gunman he was, had paused to watch Jorth in his last mortal action. Jorth’s followers began to draw and shoot. Jean saw Blue’s return fire bring down a huge man, who fell across Jorth’s body. Then Jean, quick as the thought that actuated him, raised his rifle and shot at the big lamp. It burst in a flare. It crashed to the floor. Darkness followed—a blank, thick, enveloping mantle. Then red flashes of guns emphasized the blackness. Inside the store there broke loose a pandemonium of shots, yells, curses, and thudding boots. Jean shoved his rifle barrel inside the door and, holding it low down, he moved it to and fro while he worked lever and trigger until the magazine was empty. Then, drawing his six-shooter, he emptied that. A roar of rifles from the front of the store told Jean that his comrades had entered the fray. Bullets zipped through the door he had broken. Jean ran swiftly round the corner, taking care to sheer off a little to the left, and when he got clear of the building he saw a line of flashes in the middle of the road. Blaisdell and the others were firing into the door of the store. With nimble fingers Jean reloaded his rifle. Then swiftly he ran across the road and down to get behind his comrades. Their shooting had slackened. Jean saw dark forms coming his way.

His fall broke the spell. Even Blue, the gunman he was, paused to watch Jorth in his last moments. Jorth’s followers started to draw and fire. Jean saw Blue’s return fire take down a huge man, who collapsed across Jorth’s body. Then, quick as a thought, Jean raised his rifle and shot at the big lamp. It exploded in a flare. It crashed to the floor. Darkness followed—a thick, enveloping blackness. Then red flashes from guns highlighted the darkness. Inside the store erupted a chaos of shots, shouts, curses, and thudding boots. Jean pushed his rifle barrel inside the door and, holding it low, moved it back and forth while he worked the lever and trigger until the magazine was empty. Then, drawing his six-shooter, he emptied that as well. A roar of rifles from the front of the store told Jean that his teammates had joined the fight. Bullets zipped through the door he had broken. Jean quickly ran around the corner, making sure to veer slightly to the left, and when he cleared the building, he saw a line of flashes in the middle of the road. Blaisdell and the others were shooting into the door of the store. With quick fingers, Jean reloaded his rifle. Then he swiftly crossed the road to get behind his teammates. Their gunfire had slowed. Jean saw dark shapes approaching him.

“Hello, Blaisdell!” he called, warningly.

"Hey, Blaisdell!" he called, warningly.

“That y’u, Jean?” returned the rancher, looming up. “Wal, we wasn’t worried aboot y’u.”

“Is that you, Jean?” the rancher replied, stepping closer. “Well, we weren’t worried about you.”

“Blue?” queried Jean, sharply.

"Blue?" Jean asked sharply.

A little, dark figure shuffled past Jean. “Howdy, Jean!” said Blue, dryly. “Y’u shore did your part. Reckon I’ll need to be tied up, but I ain’t hurt much.”

A small, dark figure shuffled past Jean. “Hey, Jean!” said Blue, dryly. “You definitely did your part. I guess I’ll need to be restrained, but I’m not too hurt.”

“Colmor’s hit,” called the voice of Gordon, a few yards distant. “Help me, somebody!”

“Colmor’s hit,” shouted Gordon from a few yards away. “Help me, someone!”

Jean ran to help Gordon uphold the swaying Colmor. “Are you hurt—bad?” asked Jean, anxiously. The young man’s head rolled and hung. He was breathing hard and did not reply. They had almost to carry him.

Jean ran to help Gordon support the swaying Colmor. “Are you hurt—bad?” asked Jean, anxiously. The young man’s head rolled and hung. He was breathing heavily and didn’t respond. They nearly had to carry him.

“Come on, men!” called Blaisdell, turning back toward the others who were still firing. “We’ll let well enough alone.... Fredericks, y’u an’ Bill help me find the body of the old man. It’s heah somewhere.”

“Let’s go, guys!” shouted Blaisdell, turning back to the others who were still shooting. “We’ll leave things as they are... Fredericks, you and Bill help me find the old man’s body. It’s around here somewhere.”

Farther on down the road the searchers stumbled over Gaston Isbel. They picked him up and followed Jean and Gordon, who were supporting the wounded Colmor. Jean looked back to see Blue dragging himself along in the rear. It was too dark to see distinctly; nevertheless, Jean got the impression that Blue was more severely wounded than he had claimed to be. The distance to Meeker’s cabin was not far, but it took what Jean felt to be a long and anxious time to get there. Colmor apparently rallied somewhat. When this procession entered Meeker’s yard, Blue was lagging behind.

Farther down the road, the searchers came across Gaston Isbel. They picked him up and followed Jean and Gordon, who were helping the injured Colmor. Jean glanced back and saw Blue dragging himself along at the back. It was too dark to see clearly; still, Jean got the feeling that Blue was hurt worse than he had admitted. The distance to Meeker’s cabin wasn’t far, but it seemed to take a long and tense time to reach it. Colmor seemed to regain some strength. When this group arrived in Meeker’s yard, Blue was still falling behind.

“Blue, how air y’u?” called Blaisdell, with concern.

“Hey Blue, how are you?” called Blaisdell, sounding worried.

“Wal, I got—my boots—on—anyhow,” replied Blue, huskily.

“Well, I've got my boots on, anyway,” Blue replied hoarsely.

He lurched into the yard and slid down on the grass and stretched out.

He stumbled into the yard, flopped down on the grass, and stretched out.

“Man! Y’u’re hurt bad!” exclaimed Blaisdell. The others halted in their slow march and, as if by tacit, unspoken word, lowered the body of Isbel to the ground. Then Blaisdell knelt beside Blue. Jean left Colmor to Gordon and hurried to peer down into Blue’s dim face.

“Man! You’re hurt really bad!” Blaisdell exclaimed. The others stopped in their slow march and, almost as if they had a silent agreement, carefully laid Isbel down on the ground. Then Blaisdell knelt next to Blue. Jean left Colmor with Gordon and rushed over to look down at Blue’s fading face.

“No, I ain’t—hurt,” said Blue, in a much weaker voice. “I’m—jest killed! ... It was Queen! ... Y’u all heerd me—Queen was—only bad man in that lot. I knowed it.... I could—hev killed him.... But I was—after Lee Jorth an’ his brothers....”

“No, I’m not—hurt,” said Blue, in a much weaker voice. “I’m—just dead! ... It was Queen! ... You all heard me—Queen was—the only bad guy in that group. I knew it.... I could’ve killed him.... But I was—after Lee Jorth and his brothers....”

Blue’s voice failed there.

Blue's voice gave out there.

“Wal!” ejaculated Blaisdell.

"Wow!" exclaimed Blaisdell.

“Shore was funny—Jorth’s face—when I said—King Fisher,” whispered Blue. “Funnier—when I bored—him through.... But it—was—Queen—”

“Shore was funny—Jorth’s face—when I said—King Fisher,” whispered Blue. “Funnier—when I bored—him through.... But it—was—Queen—”

His whisper died away.

His whisper faded.

“Blue!” called Blaisdell, sharply. Receiving no answer, he bent lower in the starlight and placed a hand upon the man’s breast.

“Blue!” called Blaisdell, sharply. Receiving no answer, he leaned down in the starlight and placed a hand on the man’s chest.

“Wal, he’s gone.... I wonder if he really was the old Texas King Fisher. No one would ever believe it.... But if he killed the Jorths, I’ll shore believe him.”

“Well, he’s gone... I wonder if he was really the old Texas King Fisher. No one would ever believe it... But if he killed the Jorths, I’ll definitely believe him.”




CHAPTER X

Two weeks of lonely solitude in the forest had worked incalculable change in Ellen Jorth.

Two weeks of isolation in the forest had brought about countless changes in Ellen Jorth.

Late in June her father and her two uncles had packed and ridden off with Daggs, Colter, and six other men, all heavily armed, some somber with drink, others hard and grim with a foretaste of fight. Ellen had not been given any orders. Her father had forgotten to bid her good-by or had avoided it. Their dark mission was stamped on their faces.

Late in June, her father and two uncles packed up and rode out with Daggs, Colter, and six other heavily armed men. Some were gloomy from drinking, while others looked tough and serious, anticipating a fight. Ellen hadn’t been given any instructions. Her father either forgot to say goodbye or chose not to. Their ominous purpose was clear on their faces.

They had gone and, keen as had been Ellen’s pang, nevertheless, their departure was a relief. She had heard them bluster and brag so often that she had her doubts of any great Jorth-Isbel war. Barking dogs did not bite. Somebody, perhaps on each side, would be badly wounded, possibly killed, and then the feud would go on as before, mostly talk. Many of her former impressions had faded. Development had been so rapid and continuous in her that she could look back to a day-by-day transformation. At night she had hated the sight of herself and when the dawn came she would rise, singing.

They had left, and as much as Ellen had felt heartache, their departure was still a relief. She had heard them boast and brag so many times that she doubted there would be any significant Jorth-Isbel war. Barking dogs don’t bite. Someone, maybe from both sides, would likely get hurt, possibly killed, and then the feud would just continue as before, mostly just talk. Many of her old impressions had faded. The changes in her had been so rapid and ongoing that she could see a day-by-day transformation. At night, she had hated the way she looked, but when dawn came, she would rise, singing.

Jorth had left Ellen at home with the Mexican woman and Antonio. Ellen saw them only at meal times, and often not then, for she frequently visited old John Sprague or came home late to do her own cooking.

Jorth had left Ellen at home with the Mexican woman and Antonio. Ellen only saw them during meal times, and often not even then, since she frequently visited old John Sprague or came home late to cook for herself.

It was but a short distance up to Sprague’s cabin, and since she had stopped riding the black horse, Spades, she walked. Spades was accustomed to having grain, and in the mornings he would come down to the ranch and whistle. Ellen had vowed she would never feed the horse and bade Antonio do it. But one morning Antonio was absent. She fed Spades herself. When she laid a hand on him and when he rubbed his nose against her shoulder she was not quite so sure she hated him. “Why should I?” she queried. “A horse cain’t help it if he belongs to—to—” Ellen was not sure of anything except that more and more it grew good to be alone.

It was just a short walk to Sprague’s cabin, and since she had stopped riding the black horse, Spades, she chose to walk instead. Spades was used to getting grain, and every morning he would come down to the ranch and whistle. Ellen had promised herself she would never feed the horse and had asked Antonio to take care of it. But one morning, when Antonio was gone, she ended up feeding Spades herself. When she touched him and he rubbed his nose against her shoulder, she found herself questioning whether she really hated him. “Why should I?” she wondered. “A horse can’t help it if he belongs to—to—” Ellen wasn’t sure about anything except that more and more, she was finding it nice to be alone.

A whole day in the lonely forest passed swiftly, yet it left a feeling of long time. She lived by her thoughts. Always the morning was bright, sunny, sweet and fragrant and colorful, and her mood was pensive, wistful, dreamy. And always, just as surely as the hours passed, thought intruded upon her happiness, and thought brought memory, and memory brought shame, and shame brought fight. Sunset after sunset she had dragged herself back to the ranch, sullen and sick and beaten. Yet she never ceased to struggle.

A whole day in the lonely forest went by quickly, but it felt like a long time. She lived in her head. Every morning was bright, sunny, sweet, fragrant, and colorful, and her mood was thoughtful, nostalgic, and dreamy. But inevitably, as the hours went by, thoughts interrupted her happiness, and those thoughts brought memories, which brought shame, and shame brought anger. Sunset after sunset, she had pulled herself back to the ranch, feeling gloomy, unwell, and defeated. Yet she never stopped fighting.

The July storms came, and the forest floor that had been so sear and brown and dry and dusty changed as if by magic. The green grass shot up, the flowers bloomed, and along the canyon beds of lacy ferns swayed in the wind and bent their graceful tips over the amber-colored water. Ellen haunted these cool dells, these pine-shaded, mossy-rocked ravines where the brooks tinkled and the deer came down to drink. She wandered alone. But there grew to be company in the aspens and the music of the little waterfalls. If she could have lived in that solitude always, never returning to the ranch home that reminded her of her name, she could have forgotten and have been happy.

The July storms arrived, and the forest floor that had been so parched, brown, dry, and dusty transformed as if by magic. The green grass sprang up, flowers bloomed, and the canyon beds were lined with frilly ferns swaying in the wind, bending their delicate tips over the amber-colored water. Ellen explored these cool dells, these pine-shaded, moss-covered ravines where the brooks babbled and deer came down to drink. She wandered alone. But she found companionship among the aspens and the sound of the small waterfalls. If she could have lived in that solitude forever, never going back to the ranch home that reminded her of her name, she could have forgotten and been happy.

She loved the storms. It was a dry country and she had learned through years to welcome the creamy clouds that rolled from the southwest. They came sailing and clustering and darkening at last to form a great, purple, angry mass that appeared to lodge against the mountain rim and burst into dazzling streaks of lightning and gray palls of rain. Lightning seldom struck near the ranch, but up on the Rim there was never a storm that did not splinter and crash some of the noble pines. During the storm season sheep herders and woodsmen generally did not camp under the pines. Fear of lightning was inborn in the natives, but for Ellen the dazzling white streaks or the tremendous splitting, crackling shock, or the thunderous boom and rumble along the battlements of the Rim had no terrors. A storm eased her breast. Deep in her heart was a hidden gathering storm. And somehow, to be out when the elements were warring, when the earth trembled and the heavens seemed to burst asunder, afforded her strange relief.

She loved storms. It was a dry area, and over the years she had learned to welcome the fluffy clouds that rolled in from the southwest. They came floating and gathering, eventually darkening to form a massive, purple, angry mass that seemed to settle against the mountain’s edge and burst into brilliant flashes of lightning and gray sheets of rain. Lightning rarely struck near the ranch, but on the Rim, there was never a storm that didn't splinter and crash some of the majestic pines. During storm season, sheep herders and lumberjacks usually avoided camping under the pines. The fear of lightning was instinctual for the locals, but for Ellen, the dazzling white streaks or the tremendous splitting, crackling shock, or the thunderous booms and rumbles along the Rim's edges were not frightening. A storm eased her heart. Deep down, she had a hidden storm brewing. And somehow, being outside when the elements were clashing, when the earth shook and the skies seemed to explode, brought her a strange sense of relief.

The summer days became weeks, and farther and farther they carried Ellen on the wings of solitude and loneliness until she seemed to look back years at the self she had hated. And always, when the dark memory impinged upon peace, she fought and fought until she seemed to be fighting hatred itself. Scorn of scorn and hate of hate! Yet even her battles grew to be dreams. For when the inevitable retrospect brought back Jean Isbel and his love and her cowardly falsehood she would shudder a little and put an unconscious hand to her breast and utterly fail in her fight and drift off down to vague and wistful dreams. The clean and healing forest, with its whispering wind and imperious solitude, had come between Ellen and the meaning of the squalid sheep ranch, with its travesty of home, its tragic owner. And it was coming between her two selves, the one that she had been forced to be and the other that she did not know—the thinker, the dreamer, the romancer, the one who lived in fancy the life she loved.

The summer days turned into weeks, and the more time passed, the more Ellen was carried away by her solitude and loneliness until she felt like she was looking back years at the version of herself she had despised. Whenever dark memories intruded on her peace, she fought fiercely as if battling hatred itself. Scorn for scorn and hate for hate! Yet even her struggles started to feel like dreams. When the inevitable reflection brought back Jean Isbel and his love, along with her cowardly deceit, she would shudder slightly and unconsciously place a hand on her chest, unable to continue her fight, drifting off into vague and wistful dreams. The clean and healing forest, with its whispering wind and commanding solitude, stood between Ellen and the meaning of the grim sheep ranch, with its mockery of home and its tragic owner. It was also separating her into two selves: the one she had been forced to become and the other that she didn't know— the thinker, the dreamer, the romancer, the one who lived in her imagination the life she longed for.

The summer morning dawned that brought Ellen strange tidings. They must have been created in her sleep, and now were realized in the glorious burst of golden sun, in the sweep of creamy clouds across the blue, in the solemn music of the wind in the pines, in the wild screech of the blue jays and the noble bugle of a stag. These heralded the day as no ordinary day. Something was going to happen to her. She divined it. She felt it. And she trembled. Nothing beautiful, hopeful, wonderful could ever happen to Ellen Jorth. She had been born to disaster, to suffer, to be forgotten, and die alone. Yet all nature about her seemed a magnificent rebuke to her morbidness. The same spirit that came out there with the thick, amber light was in her. She lived, and something in her was stronger than mind.

The summer morning arrived, bringing Ellen unexpected news. It must have come from her dreams and now appeared in the radiant burst of golden sunlight, the soft clouds drifting across the blue sky, the serious sound of the wind rustling through the pines, the loud calls of blue jays, and the proud call of a stag. These signals announced that this was no ordinary day. Something was going to change for her. She sensed it. She could feel it. And she shivered. Nothing beautiful, hopeful, or wonderful could ever happen to Ellen Jorth. She was destined for disaster, to suffer, to be forgotten, and to die alone. Yet all of nature surrounding her seemed to mock her gloom. The same spirit that emerged under the thick, amber light was within her. She was alive, and something inside her was stronger than thought.

Ellen went to the door of her cabin, where she flung out her arms, driven to embrace this nameless purport of the morning. And a well-known voice broke in upon her rapture.

Ellen went to the door of her cabin, where she threw open her arms, eager to embrace the unnamed essence of the morning. And a familiar voice interrupted her joy.

“Wal, lass, I like to see you happy an’ I hate myself fer comin’. Because I’ve been to Grass Valley fer two days an’ I’ve got news.”

“Hey, girl, I just want to see you happy, and I feel terrible for showing up. I've been in Grass Valley for two days, and I have news.”

Old John Sprague stood there, with a smile that did not hide a troubled look.

Old John Sprague stood there, smiling, but his expression revealed a troubled look.

“Oh! Uncle John! You startled me,” exclaimed Ellen, shocked back to reality. And slowly she added: “Grass Valley! News?”

“Oh! Uncle John! You scared me,” exclaimed Ellen, jolted back to reality. And slowly she added: “Grass Valley! Any news?”

She put out an appealing hand, which Sprague quickly took in his own, as if to reassure her.

She reached out an inviting hand, which Sprague quickly took in his own, almost to comfort her.

“Yes, an’ not bad so far as you Jorths are concerned,” he replied. “The first Jorth-Isbel fight has come off.... Reckon you remember makin’ me promise to tell you if I heerd anythin’. Wal, I didn’t wait fer you to come up.”

“Yes, and things aren’t bad as far as you Jorths are concerned,” he said. “The first Jorth-Isbel fight has taken place.... I guess you remember making me promise to tell you if I heard anything. Well, I didn’t wait for you to come up.”

“So Ellen heard her voice calmly saying. What was this lying calm when there seemed to be a stone hammer at her heart? The first fight—not so bad for the Jorths! Then it had been bad for the Isbels. A sudden, cold stillness fell upon her senses.

“So Ellen heard her voice calmly saying. What was this deceptive calm when there felt like a stone hammer at her heart? The first fight—not so bad for the Jorths! Then it had been tough for the Isbels. A sudden, cold stillness washed over her senses.

“Let’s sit down—outdoors,” Sprague was saying. “Nice an’ sunny this—mornin’. I declare—I’m out of breath. Not used to walkin’. An’ besides, I left Grass Valley, in the night—an’ I’m tired. But excoose me from hangin’ round thet village last night! There was shore—”

“Let’s sit outside,” Sprague was saying. “It’s nice and sunny this morning. I swear—I’m out of breath. I’m not used to walking. Plus, I left Grass Valley at night—and I’m tired. But you can excuse me for not sticking around that village last night! There was sure—”

“Who—who was killed?” interrupted Ellen, her voice breaking low and deep.

“Who—who was killed?” interrupted Ellen, her voice low and shaky.

“Guy Isbel an’ Bill Jacobs on the Isbel side, an’ Daggs, Craig, an’ Greaves on your father’s side,” stated Sprague, with something of awed haste.

“Guy Isbel and Bill Jacobs on the Isbel side, and Daggs, Craig, and Greaves on your father’s side,” stated Sprague, with a sense of rush and awe.

“Ah!” breathed Ellen, and she relaxed to sink back against the cabin wall.

“Ah!” sighed Ellen, and she leaned back against the cabin wall, feeling relaxed.

Sprague seated himself on the log beside her, turning to face her, and he seemed burdened with grave and important matters.

Sprague sat down on the log next to her, turned to face her, and looked like he was weighed down by serious and important issues.

“I heerd a good many conflictin’ stories,” he said, earnestly. “The village folks is all skeered an’ there’s no believin’ their gossip. But I got what happened straight from Jake Evarts. The fight come off day before yestiddy. Your father’s gang rode down to Isbel’s ranch. Daggs was seen to be wantin’ some of the Isbel hosses, so Evarts says. An’ Guy Isbel an’ Jacobs ran out in the pasture. Daggs an’ some others shot them down.”

“I heard a lot of conflicting stories,” he said seriously. “The people in the village are all scared, and you can't believe their gossip. But I got the details straight from Jake Evarts. The fight happened the day before yesterday. Your father's gang rode down to Isbel's ranch. Daggs was seen wanting some of the Isbel horses, according to Evarts. And Guy Isbel and Jacobs ran out into the pasture. Daggs and some others shot them down.”

“Killed them—that way?” put in Ellen, sharply.

“Killed them—like that?” Ellen interjected sharply.

“So Evarts says. He was on the ridge an’ swears he seen it all. They killed Guy an’ Jacobs in cold blood. No chance fer their lives—not even to fight! ... Wall, hen they surrounded the Isbel cabin. The fight last all thet day an’ all night an’ the next day. Evarts says Guy an’ Jacobs laid out thar all this time. An’ a herd of hogs broke in the pasture an’ was eatin’ the dead bodies ...”

“So Evarts says. He was on the ridge and swears he saw it all. They killed Guy and Jacobs in cold blood. No chance for their lives—not even to fight! ... Well, then they surrounded the Isbel cabin. The fight lasted all that day and all night and the next day. Evarts says Guy and Jacobs lay out there all this time. And a herd of pigs broke into the pasture and was eating the dead bodies ...”

“My God!” burst out Ellen. “Uncle John, y’u shore cain’t mean my father wouldn’t stop fightin’ long enough to drive the hogs off an’ bury those daid men?”

“My God!” exclaimed Ellen. “Uncle John, you seriously can’t mean my father wouldn’t stop fighting long enough to drive the hogs off and bury those dead men?”

“Evarts says they stopped fightin’, all right, but it was to watch the hogs,” declared Sprague. “An’ then, what d’ ye think? The wimminfolks come out—the red-headed one, Guy’s wife, an’ Jacobs’s wife—they drove the hogs away an’ buried their husbands right there in the pasture. Evarts says he seen the graves.”

“Evarts says they stopped fighting, sure, but it was to watch the pigs,” Sprague declared. “And then, guess what? The women came out—the red-headed one, Guy’s wife, and Jacobs’s wife—they drove the pigs away and buried their husbands right there in the pasture. Evarts says he saw the graves.”

“It is the women who can teach these bloody Texans a lesson,” declared Ellen, forcibly.

“It’s the women who can teach these damn Texans a lesson,” declared Ellen, forcefully.

“Wal, Daggs was drunk, an’ he got up from behind where the gang was hidin’, an’ dared the Isbels to come out. They shot him to pieces. An’ thet night some one of the Isbels shot Craig, who was alone on guard.... An’ last—this here’s what I come to tell you—Jean Isbel slipped up in the dark on Greaves an’ knifed him.”

“Well, Daggs was drunk, and he got up from behind where the gang was hiding, and challenged the Isbels to come out. They shot him to pieces. And that night, one of the Isbels shot Craig, who was alone on guard... And finally—this is what I came to tell you—Jean Isbel crept up in the dark on Greaves and stabbed him.”

“Why did y’u want to tell me that particularly?” asked Ellen, slowly.

“Why did you want to tell me that specifically?” asked Ellen, slowly.

“Because I reckon the facts in the case are queer—an’ because, Ellen, your name was mentioned,” announced Sprague, positively.

“Because I think the facts in the case are strange—and because, Ellen, your name came up,” declared Sprague, firmly.

“My name—mentioned?” echoed Ellen. Her horror and disgust gave way to a quickening process of thought, a mounting astonishment. “By whom?”

“My name—mentioned?” echoed Ellen. Her horror and disgust transformed into a rapid flow of thoughts, growing astonishment. “By who?”

“Jean Isbel,” replied Sprague, as if the name and the fact were momentous.

“Jean Isbel,” replied Sprague, as if the name and the fact were significant.

Ellen sat still as a stone, her hands between her knees. Slowly she felt the blood recede from her face, prickling her kin down below her neck. That name locked her thought.

Ellen sat completely still, her hands resting between her knees. Slowly, she felt the blood drain from her face, a tingling sensation creeping down her neck. That name consumed her thoughts.

“Ellen, it’s a mighty queer story—too queer to be a lie,” went on Sprague. “Now you listen! Evarts got this from Ted Meeker. An’ Ted Meeker heerd it from Greaves, who didn’t die till the next day after Jean Isbel knifed him. An’ your dad shot Ted fer tellin’ what he heerd.... No, Greaves wasn’t killed outright. He was cut somethin’ turrible—in two places. They wrapped him all up an’ next day packed him in a wagon back to Grass Valley. Evarts says Ted Meeker was friendly with Greaves an’ went to see him as he was layin’ in his room next to the store. Wal, accordin’ to Meeker’s story, Greaves came to an’ talked. He said he was sittin’ there in the dark, shootin’ occasionally at Isbel’s cabin, when he heerd a rustle behind him in the grass. He knowed some one was crawlin’ on him. But before he could get his gun around he was jumped by what he thought was a grizzly bear. But it was a man. He shut off Greaves’s wind an’ dragged him back in the ditch. An’ he said: ‘Greaves, it’s the half-breed. An’ he’s goin’ to cut you—FIRST FOR ELLEN JORTH! an’ then for Gaston Isbel!’ ... Greaves said Jean ripped him with a bowie knife.... An’ thet was all Greaves remembered. He died soon after tellin’ this story. He must hev fought awful hard. Thet second cut Isbel gave him went clear through him.... Some of the gang was thar when Greaves talked, an’ naturally they wondered why Jean Isbel had said ‘first for Ellen Jorth.’ ... Somebody remembered thet Greaves had cast a slur on your good name, Ellen. An’ then they had Jean Isbel’s reason fer sayin’ thet to Greaves. It caused a lot of talk. An’ when Simm Bruce busted in some of the gang haw-hawed him an’ said as how he’d get the third cut from Jean Isbel’s bowie. Bruce was half drunk an’ he began to cuss an’ rave about Jean Isbel bein’ in love with his girl.... As bad luck would have it, a couple of more fellars come in an’ asked Meeker questions. He jest got to thet part, ‘Greaves, it’s the half-breed, an’ he’s goin’ to cut you—FIRST FOR ELLEN JORTH,’ when in walked your father! ... Then it all had to come out—what Jean Isbel had said an’ done—an’ why. How Greaves had backed Simm Bruce in slurrin’ you!”

“Ellen, it’s a really strange story—too strange to be a lie,” Sprague continued. “Now listen! Evarts got this from Ted Meeker. And Ted Meeker heard it from Greaves, who didn’t die until the day after Jean Isbel stabbed him. And your dad shot Ted for telling what he heard.... No, Greaves wasn’t killed outright. He was cut pretty badly—in two places. They wrapped him up and the next day packed him in a wagon back to Grass Valley. Evarts says Ted Meeker was friends with Greaves and went to see him while he was laying in his room next to the store. Well, according to Meeker’s story, Greaves came to and talked. He said he was sitting there in the dark, occasionally shooting at Isbel’s cabin, when he heard a rustle behind him in the grass. He knew someone was crawling up on him. But before he could turn his gun around, he was jumped by what he thought was a grizzly bear. But it was a man. He choked Greaves and dragged him back into the ditch. And he said: ‘Greaves, it’s the half-breed. And he’s going to cut you—FIRST FOR ELLEN JORTH! and then for Gaston Isbel!’ ... Greaves said Jean slashed him with a bowie knife.... And that was all Greaves remembered. He died soon after telling this story. He must have fought really hard. That second cut Isbel gave him went right through him.... Some of the gang was there when Greaves talked, and naturally, they wondered why Jean Isbel had said ‘first for Ellen Jorth.’ ... Somebody remembered that Greaves had cast a slur on your good name, Ellen. And then they had Jean Isbel’s reason for saying that to Greaves. It caused a lot of talk. And when Simm Bruce burst in, some of the gang laughed at him and said he’d get the third cut from Jean Isbel’s bowie. Bruce was half drunk and he started cursing and raving about Jean Isbel being in love with his girl.... Unfortunately, a couple of other guys came in and asked Meeker questions. He had just gotten to that part, ‘Greaves, it’s the half-breed, and he’s going to cut you—FIRST FOR ELLEN JORTH,’ when your father walked in! ... Then it all had to come out—what Jean Isbel had said and done—and why. How Greaves had backed Simm Bruce in slurring you!”

Sprague paused to look hard at Ellen.

Sprague paused to stare intently at Ellen.

“Oh! Then—what did dad do?” whispered Ellen.

"Oh! Then—what did Dad do?" whispered Ellen.

“He said, ‘By God! half-breed or not, there’s one Isbel who’s a man!’ An’ he killed Bruce on the spot an’ gave Meeker a nasty wound. Somebody grabbed him before he could shoot Meeker again. They threw Meeker out an’ he crawled to a neighbor’s house, where he was when Evarts seen him.”

“He said, ‘By God! Half-breed or not, there’s one Isbel who’s a real man!’ Then he killed Bruce right there and gave Meeker a bad wound. Someone grabbed him before he could shoot Meeker again. They threw Meeker out, and he crawled to a neighbor’s house, where Evarts saw him.”

Ellen felt Sprague’s rough but kindly hand shaking her. “An’ now what do you think of Jean Isbel?” he queried.

Ellen felt Sprague's rough but gentle hand shaking hers. "So, what do you think of Jean Isbel?" he asked.

A great, unsurmountable wall seemed to obstruct Ellen’s thought. It seemed gray in color. It moved toward her. It was inside her brain.

A huge, impossible wall felt like it was blocking Ellen’s thoughts. It appeared gray. It was closing in on her. It was inside her head.

“I tell you, Ellen Jorth,” declared the old man, “thet Jean Isbel loves you—loves you turribly—an’ he believes you’re good.”

“I’m telling you, Ellen Jorth,” said the old man, “that Jean Isbel loves you—really loves you—and he thinks you’re a great person.”

“Oh no—he doesn’t!” faltered Ellen.

“Oh no—he doesn’t!” hesitated Ellen.

“Wal, he jest does.”

"Well, he just does."

“Oh, Uncle John, he cain’t believe that!” she cried.

“Oh, Uncle John, he can't believe that!” she exclaimed.

“Of course he can. He does. You are good—good as gold, Ellen, an’ he knows it.... What a queer deal it all is! Poor devil! To love you thet turribly an’ hev to fight your people! Ellen, your dad had it correct. Isbel or not, he’s a man.... An’ I say what a shame you two are divided by hate. Hate thet you hed nothin’ to do with.” Sprague patted her head and rose to go. “Mebbe thet fight will end the trouble. I reckon it will. Don’t cross bridges till you come to them, Ellen.... I must hurry back now. I didn’t take time to unpack my burros. Come up soon.... An’, say, Ellen, don’t think hard any more of thet Jean Isbel.”

“Of course he can. He does. You’re good—good as gold, Ellen, and he knows it.... What a strange situation this is! Poor guy! To love you so much and have to fight your family! Ellen, your dad was right. Isbel or not, he’s a man.... And I think it’s such a pity you two are separated by hate. Hate that you had nothing to do with.” Sprague patted her head and stood up to leave. “Maybe that fight will end the trouble. I think it will. Don’t worry about problems until you have to face them, Ellen.... I really need to hurry back now. I didn’t have time to unpack my burros. Come by soon.... And hey, Ellen, don’t hold any more grudges against that Jean Isbel.”

Sprague strode away, and Ellen neither heard nor saw him go. She sat perfectly motionless, yet had a strange sensation of being lifted by invisible and mighty power. It was like movement felt in a dream. She was being impelled upward when her body seemed immovable as stone. When her blood beat down this deadlock of an her physical being and rushed on and on through her veins it gave her an irresistible impulse to fly, to sail through space, to ran and run and ran.

Sprague walked away, and Ellen neither heard nor saw him leave. She sat completely still but felt a strange sensation of being lifted by an invisible and powerful force. It was like movement felt in a dream. She felt herself being pushed upward even though her body seemed as immovable as stone. As her heart pounded against the stillness of her physical state and surged through her veins, it filled her with an overwhelming desire to fly, to soar through space, to run and run and run.

And on the moment the black horse, Spades, coming from the meadow, whinnied at sight of her. Ellen leaped up and ran swiftly, but her feet seemed to be stumbling. She hugged the horse and buried her hot face in his mane and clung to him. Then just as violently she rushed for her saddle and bridle and carried the heavy weight as easily as if it had been an empty sack. Throwing them upon him, she buckled and strapped with strong, eager hands. It never occurred to her that she was not dressed to ride. Up she flung herself. And the horse, sensing her spirit, plunged into strong, free gait down the canyon trail.

And at that moment, the black horse, Spades, came from the meadow and whinnied when he saw her. Ellen jumped up and ran quickly, but her feet seemed to trip her. She hugged the horse, buried her warm face in his mane, and held on tight. Then, just as fiercely, she dashed for her saddle and bridle, carrying the heavy weight as if it was just an empty bag. She threw them onto him and buckled and strapped them on with strong, eager hands. It didn’t even occur to her that she wasn’t dressed for riding. She jumped up onto him, and the horse, sensing her excitement, jumped into a strong, free gait down the canyon trail.

The ride, the action, the thrill, the sensations of violence were not all she needed. Solitude, the empty aisles of the forest, the far miles of lonely wilderness—were these the added all? Spades took a swinging, rhythmic lope up the winding trail. The wind fanned her hot face. The sting of whipping aspen branches was pleasant. A deep rumble of thunder shook the sultry air. Up beyond the green slope of the canyon massed the creamy clouds, shading darker and darker. Spades loped on the levels, leaped the washes, trotted over the rocky ground, and took to a walk up the long slope. Ellen dropped the reins over the pommel. Her hands could not stay set on anything. They pressed her breast and flew out to caress the white aspens and to tear at the maple leaves, and gather the lavender juniper berries, and came back again to her heart. Her heart that was going to burst or break! As it had swelled, so now it labored. It could not keep pace with her needs. All that was physical, all that was living in her had to be unleashed.

The ride, the action, the thrill, the feelings of violence weren't all she needed. Solitude, the empty paths of the forest, the long stretches of lonely wilderness—was that all there was? Spades moved with a smooth, rhythmic gait up the winding trail. The wind brushed against her hot face. The sting of whipping aspen branches felt good. A deep rumble of thunder shook the humid air. Beyond the green slope of the canyon, thick clouds gathered, turning darker and darker. Spades trotted on the flat areas, jumped over the washes, moved across the rocky ground, and walked up the long incline. Ellen let the reins fall over the saddle. Her hands couldn't stay still. They pressed against her chest, reached out to touch the white aspens, tugged at the maple leaves, collected the lavender juniper berries, and then returned to her heart. Her heart that felt like it was about to burst or break! As it had expanded, now it struggled. It couldn't keep up with her desires. Everything physical, everything alive in her needed to be set free.

Spades gained the level forest. How the great, brown-green pines seemed to bend their lofty branches over her, protectively, understandingly. Patches of azure-blue sky flashed between the trees. The great white clouds sailed along with her, and shafts of golden sunlight, flecked with gleams of falling pine needles, shone down through the canopy overhead. Away in front of her, up the slow heave of forest land, boomed the heavy thunderbolts along the battlements of the Rim.

Spades entered the flat forest. The tall, brown-green pines appeared to lean their high branches over her, as if to protect and understand her. Patches of bright blue sky peeked through the trees. The huge white clouds drifted alongside her, and beams of golden sunlight, sprinkled with falling pine needles, shone down through the canopy above. Ahead of her, up the gentle rise of the forest, the deep thunder rolled along the edges of the Rim.

Was she riding to escape from herself? For no gait suited her until Spades was running hard and fast through the glades. Then the pressure of dry wind, the thick odor of pine, the flashes of brown and green and gold and blue, the soft, rhythmic thuds of hoofs, the feel of the powerful horse under her, the whip of spruce branches on her muscles contracting and expanding in hard action—all these sensations seemed to quell for the time the mounting cataclysm in her heart.

Was she riding to escape from herself? Because no pace fit her until Spades was racing hard and fast through the woods. Then the rush of dry wind, the strong scent of pine, the flashes of brown, green, gold, and blue, the soft, rhythmic thuds of hooves, the power of the horse beneath her, and the whip of spruce branches against her muscles contracting and expanding with every move—all these feelings seemed to temporarily calm the rising storm in her heart.

The oak swales, the maple thickets, the aspen groves, the pine-shaded aisles, and the miles of silver spruce all sped by her, as if she had ridden the wind; and through the forest ahead shone the vast open of the Basin, gloomed by purple and silver cloud, shadowed by gray storm, and in the west brightened by golden sky.

The oak valleys, the maple patches, the aspen clusters, the pine-lined paths, and the endless rows of silver spruce rushed past her, as if she were riding the wind; and through the forest ahead, the vast openness of the Basin shone, darkened by purple and silver clouds, shadowed by gray storms, and in the west lit up by a golden sky.

Straight to the Rim she had ridden, and to the point where she had watched Jean Isbel that unforgetable day. She rode to the promontory behind the pine thicket and beheld a scene which stayed her restless hands upon her heaving breast.

Straight to the Rim she had ridden, and to the spot where she had watched Jean Isbel that unforgettable day. She rode to the overlook behind the pine thicket and saw a scene that calmed her restless hands on her heaving chest.

The world of sky and cloud and earthly abyss seemed one of storm-sundered grandeur. The air was sultry and still, and smelled of the peculiar burnt-wood odor caused by lightning striking trees. A few heavy drops of rain were pattering down from the thin, gray edge of clouds overhead. To the east hung the storm—a black cloud lodged against the Rim, from which long, misty veils of rain streamed down into the gulf. The roar of rain sounded like the steady roar of the rapids of a river. Then a blue-white, piercingly bright, ragged streak of lightning shot down out of the black cloud. It struck with a splitting report that shocked the very wall of rock under Ellen. Then the heavens seemed to burst open with thundering crash and close with mighty thundering boom. Long roar and longer rumble rolled away to the eastward. The rain poured down in roaring cataracts.

The world of sky, clouds, and earthly depths felt majestic yet storm-tossed. The air was warm and still, smelling of the unique burnt wood scent from lightning hitting trees. A few heavy raindrops were falling from the thin, gray edge of the clouds above. To the east, the storm loomed—a dark cloud pressed against the Rim, with long, misty strands of rain cascading into the chasm. The sound of the rain echoed like the constant roar of river rapids. Suddenly, a bright, blue-white streak of lightning shot down from the black cloud. It struck with a crash that shook the very rock beneath Ellen. Then the sky seemed to explode with a thunderous bang and then close with a powerful booming sound. A long rumble rolled off to the east. The rain poured down in roaring torrents.

The south held a panorama of purple-shrouded range and canyon, canyon and range, on across the rolling leagues to the dim, lofty peaks, all canopied over with angry, dusky, low-drifting clouds, horizon-wide, smoky, and sulphurous. And as Ellen watched, hands pressed to her breast, feeling incalculable relief in sight of this tempest and gulf that resembled her soul, the sun burst out from behind the long bank of purple cloud in the west and flooded the world there with golden lightning.

The south unfolded a view of purple-covered mountains and canyons, with the landscape stretching across the rolling miles to the distant, towering peaks, all under a sky filled with dark, angry, low-hanging clouds, smoky and sulfurous. As Ellen watched, her hands pressed to her chest, feeling an immense relief at the sight of this stormy landscape that mirrored her inner turmoil, the sun broke through the thick layer of purple clouds in the west and bathed the world in golden light.

“It is for me!” cried Ellen. “My mind—my heart—my very soul.... Oh, I know! I know now! ... I love him—love him—love him!”

“It’s for me!” cried Ellen. “My mind—my heart—my very soul.... Oh, I get it! I get it now! ... I love him—love him—love him!”

She cried it out to the elements. “Oh, I love Jean Isbel—an’ my heart will burst or break!”

She shouted it to the winds. “Oh, I love Jean Isbel—and my heart will either burst or break!”

The might of her passion was like the blaze of the sun. Before it all else retreated, diminished. The suddenness of the truth dimmed her sight. But she saw clearly enough to crawl into the pine thicket, through the clutching, dry twigs, over the mats of fragrant needles to the covert where she had once spied upon Jean Isbel. And here she lay face down for a while, hands clutching the needles, breast pressed hard upon the ground, stricken and spent. But vitality was exceeding strong in her. It passed, that weakness of realization, and she awakened to the consciousness of love.

The intensity of her passion was like the blazing sun. Everything else faded away, became less important. The shock of the truth blinded her for a moment. But she saw well enough to crawl into the pine thicket, pushing through the rough, dry twigs and over the soft layers of fragrant needles to the hidden spot where she had once watched Jean Isbel. Here she lay face down for a while, her hands gripping the needles, her chest pressed firmly against the ground, feeling overwhelmed and drained. But her strength was still incredibly powerful. That moment of weakness passed, and she became aware of her love.

But in the beginning it was not consciousness of the man. It was new, sensorial life, elemental, primitive, a liberation of a million inherited instincts, quivering and physical, over which Ellen had no more control than she had over the glory of the sun. If she thought at all it was of her need to be hidden, like an animal, low down near the earth, covered by green thicket, lost in the wildness of nature. She went to nature, unconsciously seeking a mother. And love was a birth from the depths of her, like a rushing spring of pure water, long underground, and at last propelled to the surface by a convulsion.

But at the start, it wasn’t about the man’s consciousness. It was a new, sensory experience, basic and primal, a release of a million inherited instincts, alive and physical, which Ellen couldn’t control any more than she could control the brightness of the sun. If she thought at all, it was about her need to hide, like an animal, low to the ground, wrapped in green foliage, lost in the wildness of nature. She went into nature, unconsciously searching for a mother. And love was a birth from deep within her, like a rushing spring of clean water that had been underground for a long time and finally burst to the surface in a surge.

Ellen gradually lost her tense rigidity and relaxed. Her body softened. She rolled over until her face caught the lacy, golden shadows cast by sun and bough. Scattered drops of rain pattered around her. The air was hot, and its odor was that of dry pine and spruce fragrance penetrated by brimstone from the lightning. The nest where she lay was warm and sweet. No eye save that of nature saw her in her abandonment. An ineffable and exquisite smile wreathed her lips, dreamy, sad, sensuous, the supremity of unconscious happiness. Over her dark and eloquent eyes, as Ellen gazed upward, spread a luminous film, a veil. She was looking intensely, yet she did not see. The wilderness enveloped her with its secretive, elemental sheaths of rock, of tree, of cloud, of sunlight. Through her thrilling skin poured the multiple and nameless sensations of the living organism stirred to supreme sensitiveness. She could not lie still, but all her movements were gentle, involuntary. The slow reaching out of her hand, to grasp at nothing visible, was similar to the lazy stretching of her limbs, to the heave of her breast, to the ripple of muscle.

Ellen gradually relaxed and let go of her tense rigidity. Her body softened. She rolled over until her face caught the delicate, golden shadows cast by the sun and branches. Scattered drops of rain pattered around her. The air was hot, filled with the scent of dry pine and spruce mixed with the smell of brimstone from the lightning. The nest where she lay was warm and sweet. No one except nature witnessed her in her vulnerability. An indescribable and exquisite smile graced her lips, dreamy, sad, sensual, the peak of unconscious happiness. A luminous film, like a veil, spread over her dark and expressive eyes as Ellen gazed upward. She was looking intently, yet she did not see. The wilderness surrounded her with its secret, elemental layers of rock, tree, cloud, and sunlight. Through her sensitive skin flowed a multitude of nameless sensations of life, awakened to an intense sensitivity. She couldn’t lie still, but all her movements were gentle and involuntary. The slow reaching out of her hand to grasp at nothing visible was like the lazy stretching of her limbs, the rise of her chest, and the ripple of her muscles.

Ellen knew not what she felt. To live that sublime hour was beyond thought. Such happiness was like the first dawn of the world to the sight of man. It had to do with bygone ages. Her heart, her blood, her flesh, her very bones were filled with instincts and emotions common to the race before intellect developed, when the savage lived only with his sensorial perceptions. Of all happiness, joy, bliss, rapture to which man was heir, that of intense and exquisite preoccupation of the senses, unhindered and unburdened by thought, was the greatest. Ellen felt that which life meant with its inscrutable design. Love was only the realization of her mission on the earth.

Ellen didn’t understand what she was feeling. Living that incredible moment was beyond her comprehension. That kind of happiness was like the very first sunrise to humanity. It connected her to past eras. Her heart, her blood, her flesh, her very bones were filled with instincts and emotions that were common to humanity before intellectual thought developed, when people only experienced life through their senses. Out of all the happiness, joy, bliss, and ecstasy that humans could experience, nothing compared to the intense and exquisite preoccupation of the senses, free from any burdens of thought. Ellen grasped what life truly meant with its mysterious purpose. Love was simply the realization of her purpose on Earth.

The dark storm cloud with its white, ragged ropes of lightning and down-streaming gray veils of rain, the purple gulf rolling like a colored sea to the dim mountains, the glorious golden light of the sun—these had enchanted her eyes with her beauty of the universe. They had burst the windows of her blindness. When she crawled into the green-brown covert it was to escape too great perception. She needed to be encompassed by close, tangible things. And there her body paid the tribute to the realization of life. Shock, convulsion, pain, relaxation, and then unutterable and insupportable sensing of her environment and the heart! In one way she was a wild animal alone in the woods, forced into the mating that meant reproduction of its kind. In another she was an infinitely higher being shot through and through with the most resistless and mysterious transport that life could give to flesh.

The dark storm cloud with its white, jagged flashes of lightning and cascading gray sheets of rain, the purple waves rolling like a colorful sea toward the distant mountains, the beautiful golden light of the sun—these had captivated her with the beauty of the universe. They had shattered the barriers of her blindness. When she crawled into the green-brown shelter, it was to escape overwhelming awareness. She needed to be surrounded by close, tangible things. There, her body acknowledged the reality of life. Shock, convulsion, pain, relaxation, and then an indescribable and unbearable awareness of her surroundings and her heart! In one way, she was like a wild animal alone in the woods, compelled to mate for the sake of reproduction. In another, she was an infinitely higher being infused with the most irresistible and mysterious exhilaration that life could offer to the flesh.

And when that spell slackened its hold there wedged into her mind a consciousness of the man she loved—Jean Isbel. Then emotion and thought strove for mastery over her. It was not herself or love that she loved, but a living man. Suddenly he existed so clearly for her that she could see him, hear him, almost feel him. Her whole soul, her very life cried out to him for protection, for salvation, for love, for fulfillment. No denial, no doubt marred the white blaze of her realization. From the instant that she had looked up into Jean Isbel’s dark face she had loved him. Only she had not known. She bowed now, and bent, and humbly quivered under the mastery of something beyond her ken. Thought clung to the beginnings of her romance—to the three times she had seen him. Every look, every word, every act of his returned to her now in the light of the truth. Love at first sight! He had sworn it, bitterly, eloquently, scornful of her doubts. And now a blind, sweet, shuddering ecstasy swayed her. How weak and frail seemed her body—too small, too slight for this monstrous and terrible engine of fire and lightning and fury and glory—her heart! It must burst or break. Relentlessly memory pursued Ellen, and her thoughts whirled and emotion conquered her. At last she quivered up to her knees as if lashed to action. It seemed that first kiss of Isbel’s, cool and gentle and timid, was on her lips. And her eyes closed and hot tears welled from under her lids. Her groping hands found only the dead twigs and the pine boughs of the trees. Had she reached out to clasp him? Then hard and violent on her mouth and cheek and neck burned those other kisses of Isbel’s, and with the flashing, stinging memory came the truth that now she would have bartered her soul for them. Utterly she surrendered to the resistlessness of this love. Her loss of mother and friends, her wandering from one wild place to another, her lonely life among bold and rough men, had developed her for violent love. It overthrew all pride, it engendered humility, it killed hate. Ellen wiped the tears from her eyes, and as she knelt there she swept to her breast a fragrant spreading bough of pine needles. “I’ll go to him,” she whispered. “I’ll tell him of—of my—my love. I’ll tell him to take me away—away to the end of the world—away from heah—before it’s too late!”

And when that spell started to fade, she became aware of the man she loved—Jean Isbel. Then emotions and thoughts fought for control over her. It wasn't just herself or love that she loved, but a real man. Suddenly, he was so vivid to her that she could see him, hear him, almost feel him. Her entire being, her very life, cried out to him for protection, for salvation, for love, for fulfillment. No denial, no doubt tainted the bright clarity of her realization. From the moment she had looked up into Jean Isbel’s dark face, she had loved him. She just hadn’t known it. She now bowed down, trembling in humble submission to something beyond her understanding. Thoughts clung to the early moments of their romance—those three times she had seen him. Every look, every word, every action of his came rushing back to her now in the light of the truth. Love at first sight! He had claimed it, passionately, eloquently, contemptuous of her doubts. And now a blind, sweet, shuddering ecstasy overwhelmed her. Her body felt so weak and frail—too small, too slight for this intense and chaotic force of fire and lightning and fury and glory—her heart! It felt like it might burst or break. Relentlessly, memories chased Ellen, and her thoughts spun wildly as emotions took over. Finally, she trembled to her knees as if driven to act. It felt like Isbel’s first kiss, cool and gentle and timid, was on her lips. Her eyes closed as hot tears flowed from beneath her lids. Her searching hands found only dead twigs and pine boughs. Had she reached out to hold him? Then she felt the hard and burning memories of those other kisses from Isbel on her mouth and cheek and neck, and with the flash of that stinging memory came the truth that she would now trade her soul for them. She completely surrendered to the force of this love. Her loss of her mother and friends, her wandering from one wild place to another, her lonely life among bold and rough men had prepared her for passionate love. It shattered all pride, brought forth humility, and extinguished hate. Ellen wiped the tears from her eyes, and as she knelt there, she embraced a fragrant branch of pine needles. “I’ll go to him,” she whispered. “I’ll tell him about—about my—my love. I’ll tell him to take me away—away to the ends of the earth—away from here—before it’s too late!”

It was a solemn, beautiful moment. But the last spoken words lingered hauntingly. “Too late?” she whispered.

It was a serious, beautiful moment. But the last words spoken hung in the air hauntingly. "Too late?" she whispered.

And suddenly it seemed that death itself shuddered in her soul. Too late! It was too late. She had killed his love. That Jorth blood in her—that poisonous hate—had chosen the only way to strike this noble Isbel to the heart. Basely, with an abandonment of womanhood, she had mockingly perjured her soul with a vile lie. She writhed, she shook under the whip of this inconceivable fact. Lost! Lost! She wailed her misery. She might as well be what she had made Jean Isbel think she was. If she had been shamed before, she was now abased, degraded, lost in her own sight. And if she would have given her soul for his kisses, she now would have killed herself to earn back his respect. Jean Isbel had given her at sight the deference that she had unconsciously craved, and the love that would have been her salvation. What a horrible mistake she had made of her life! Not her mother’s blood, but her father’s—the Jorth blood—had been her ruin.

And suddenly it felt like death itself shuddered within her soul. Too late! It was too late. She had killed his love. That Jorth blood in her—that poisonous hate—had chosen the only way to strike this noble Isbel to the heart. In a cowardly way, abandoning her womanhood, she had mockingly lied and betrayed her soul. She writhed, she shook under the weight of this unimaginable truth. Lost! Lost! She cried out in her misery. She might as well be what she had made Jean Isbel think she was. If she had been ashamed before, she was now humiliated, degraded, lost in her own eyes. And if she would have given her soul for his kisses, she now would have given anything to earn back his respect. Jean Isbel had instantly shown her the respect she had subconsciously desired, and the love that could have saved her. What a terrible mistake she had made with her life! It wasn’t her mother’s blood, but her father’s—the Jorth blood—that had ruined her.

Again Ellen fell upon the soft pine-needle mat, face down, and she groveled and burrowed there, in an agony that could not bear the sense of light. All she had suffered was as nothing to this. To have awakened to a splendid and uplifting love for a man whom she had imagined she hated, who had fought for her name and had killed in revenge for the dishonor she had avowed—to have lost his love and what was infinitely more precious to her now in her ignominy—his faith in her purity—this broke her heart.

Again Ellen collapsed onto the soft pine-needle mat, face down, and she groaned and buried herself there, in a pain that couldn’t stand the brightness. Everything she had endured was nothing compared to this. To have woken up to a beautiful and uplifting love for a man she had thought she hated, who had fought for her honor and killed in revenge for the shame she had admitted—to have lost his love and what was even more valuable to her now in her disgrace—his belief in her purity—this shattered her heart.




CHAPTER XI

When Ellen, utterly spent in body and mind, reached home that day a melancholy, sultry twilight was falling. Fitful flares of sheet lightning swept across the dark horizon to the east. The cabins were deserted. Antonio and the Mexican woman were gone. The circumstances made Ellen wonder, but she was too tired and too sunken in spirit to think long about it or to care. She fed and watered her horse and left him in the corral. Then, supperless and without removing her clothes, she threw herself upon the bed, and at once sank into heavy slumber.

When Ellen, completely exhausted in both body and mind, got home that day, a gloomy, humid twilight descended. Streaks of lightning flickered across the dark eastern horizon. The cabins were empty. Antonio and the Mexican woman were gone. The situation made Ellen curious, but she was too tired and too downhearted to think about it for long or to care. She fed and watered her horse and left him in the corral. Then, without having dinner or changing out of her clothes, she collapsed onto the bed and instantly fell into a deep sleep.

Sometime during the night she awoke. Coyotes were yelping, and from that sound she concluded it was near dawn. Her body ached; her mind seemed dull. Drowsily she was sinking into slumber again when she heard the rapid clip-clop of trotting horses. Startled, she raised her head to listen. The men were coming back. Relief and dread seemed to clear her stupor.

Sometime during the night, she woke up. Coyotes were howling, and from that noise, she figured it was almost dawn. Her body hurt; her mind felt sluggish. Drowsily, she was drifting off again when she heard the quick clip-clop of horses trotting. Startled, she lifted her head to listen. The men were coming back. Relief and dread seemed to shake her out of her daze.

The trotting horses stopped across the lane from her cabin, evidently at the corral where she had left Spades. She heard him whistle.

The trotting horses stopped across the lane from her cabin, clearly at the corral where she had left Spades. She heard him whistle.

From the sound of hoofs she judged the number of horses to be six or eight. Low voices of men mingled with thuds and cracking of straps and flopping of saddles on the ground. After that the heavy tread of boots sounded on the porch of the cabin opposite. A door creaked on its hinges. Next a slow footstep, accompanied by clinking of spurs, approached Ellen’s door, and a heavy hand banged upon it. She knew this person could not be her father.

From the sound of hoofbeats, she figured there were six or eight horses. Low voices of men blended with the thudding and cracking of straps and the flopping of saddles on the ground. After that, the heavy sound of boots echoed on the porch of the cabin across from her. A door creaked on its hinges. Then, a slow footstep, with the sound of clinking spurs, approached Ellen's door, and a heavy hand pounded on it. She knew this person couldn't be her father.

“Hullo, Ellen!”

"Hey, Ellen!"

She recognized the voice as belonging to Colter. Somehow its tone, or something about it, sent a little shiver clown her spine. It acted like a revivifying current. Ellen lost her dragging lethargy.

She recognized the voice as Colter's. Somehow its tone, or something about it, sent a little shiver down her spine. It felt like a refreshing rush of energy. Ellen shook off her heavy fatigue.

“Hey, Ellen, are y’u there?” added Colter, louder voice.

“Hey, Ellen, are you there?” Colter added, speaking louder.

“Yes. Of course I’m heah,” she replied. “What do y’u want?”

“Yes. Of course I’m here,” she replied. “What do you want?”

“Wal—I’m shore glad y’u’re home,” he replied. “Antonio’s gone with his squaw. An’ I was some worried aboot y’u.”

“Wal—I’m so glad you’re home,” he replied. “Antonio’s gone with his girl. And I was a bit worried about you.”

“Who’s with y’u, Colter?” queried Ellen, sitting up.

“Who’s with you, Colter?” Ellen asked, sitting up.

“Rock Wells an’ Springer. Tad Jorth was with us, but we had to leave him over heah in a cabin.”

“Rock Wells and Springer. Tad Jorth was with us, but we had to leave him here in a cabin.”

“What’s the matter with him?”

"What's wrong with him?"

“Wal, he’s hurt tolerable bad,” was the slow reply.

“Well, he’s hurt pretty badly,” was the slow reply.

Ellen heard Colter’s spurs jangle, as if he had uneasily shifted his feet.

Ellen heard Colter’s spurs jingle, as if he had awkwardly shifted his feet.

“Where’s dad an’ Uncle Jackson?” asked Ellen.

“Where’s Dad and Uncle Jackson?” asked Ellen.

A silence pregnant enough to augment Ellen’s dread finally broke to Colter’s voice, somehow different. “Shore they’re back on the trail. An’ we’re to meet them where we left Tad.”

A heavy silence that heightened Ellen’s fear was finally interrupted by Colter’s voice, which sounded different somehow. “Sure, they’re back on the trail. And we’re supposed to meet them where we left Tad.”

“Are yu goin’ away again?”

“Are you going away again?”

“I reckon.... An’, Ellen, y’u’re goin’ with us.”

“I think.... And, Ellen, you’re coming with us.”

“I am not,” she retorted.

"I'm not," she shot back.

“Wal, y’u are, if I have to pack y’u,” he replied, forcibly. “It’s not safe heah any more. That damned half-breed Isbel with his gang are on our trail.”

“Well, you are, if I have to drag you,” he said firmly. “It’s not safe here anymore. That damn half-breed Isbel and his gang are on our trail.”

That name seemed like a red-hot blade at Ellen’s leaden heart. She wanted to fling a hundred queries on Colter, but she could not utter one.

That name felt like a scorching knife piercing Ellen’s heavy heart. She wanted to throw a hundred questions at Colter, but she couldn't say a single word.

“Ellen, we’ve got to hit the trail an’ hide,” continued Colter, anxiously. “Y’u mustn’t stay heah alone. Suppose them Isbels would trap y’u! ... They’d tear your clothes off an’ rope y’u to a tree. Ellen, shore y’u’re goin’.... Y’u heah me!”

“Ellen, we need to get moving and find a place to hide,” Colter said anxiously. “You can’t stay here alone. What if those Isbels find you? ... They’d rip your clothes off and tie you to a tree. Ellen, you’re going, right?... Do you hear me!”

“Yes—I’ll go,” she replied, as if forced.

“Yes—I’ll go,” she answered, sounding like she had no choice.

“Wal—that’s good,” he said, quickly. “An’ rustle tolerable lively. We’ve got to pack.”

“Wal—that’s good,” he said quickly. “And rustle’s pretty lively. We’ve got to pack.”

The slow jangle of Colter’s spurs and his slow steps moved away out of Ellen’s hearing. Throwing off the blankets, she put her feet to the floor and sat there a moment staring at the blank nothingness of the cabin interior in the obscure gray of dawn. Cold, gray, dreary, obscure—like her life, her future! And she was compelled to do what was hateful to her. As a Jorth she must take to the unfrequented trails and hide like a rabbit in the thickets. But the interest of the moment, a premonition of events to be, quickened her into action.

The slow jingle of Colter’s spurs and his deliberate footsteps faded away from Ellen’s hearing. Throwing off the blankets, she placed her feet on the floor and sat there for a moment, staring at the empty nothingness of the cabin interior in the dim gray of dawn. Cold, gray, dreary, obscure—just like her life, her future! And she had to do what she found repugnant. As a Jorth, she had to take to the lonely paths and hide like a rabbit in the brush. But the urgency of the moment, a sense of what was to come, pushed her into action.

Ellen unbarred the door to let in the light. Day was breaking with an intense, clear, steely light in the east through which the morning star still shone white. A ruddy flare betokened the advent of the sun. Ellen unbraided her tangled hair and brushed and combed it. A queer, still pang came to her at sight of pine needles tangled in her brown locks. Then she washed her hands and face. Breakfast was a matter of considerable work and she was hungry.

Ellen unlatched the door to let in the light. Day was breaking with a sharp, clear light in the east, where the morning star still shone bright white. A reddish glow signaled the sun's arrival. Ellen let down her tangled hair and brushed and combed it. A strange, still feeling hit her when she saw pine needles stuck in her brown hair. Then she washed her hands and face. Breakfast required quite a bit of effort, and she was hungry.

The sun rose and changed the gray world of forest. For the first time in her life Ellen hated the golden brightness, the wonderful blue of sky, the scream of the eagle and the screech of the jay; and the squirrels she had always loved to feed were neglected that morning.

The sun came up and transformed the dull forest. For the first time in her life, Ellen hated the bright golden light, the beautiful blue sky, the cry of the eagle, and the chatter of the jay; and the squirrels she had always enjoyed feeding were ignored that morning.

Colter came in. Either Ellen had never before looked attentively at him or else he had changed. Her scrutiny of his lean, hard features accorded him more Texan attributes than formerly. His gray eyes were as light, as clear, as fierce as those of an eagle. And the sand gray of his face, the long, drooping, fair mustache hid the secrets of his mind, but not its strength. The instant Ellen met his gaze she sensed a power in him that she instinctively opposed. Colter had not been so bold nor so rude as Daggs, but he was the same kind of man, perhaps the more dangerous for his secretiveness, his cool, waiting inscrutableness.

Colter walked in. Either Ellen had never really looked at him before, or he had changed. Her careful observation of his lean, hard features gave him more Texan traits than before. His gray eyes were as light, clear, and fierce as an eagle's. The sandy gray of his face and his long, drooping, light mustache concealed the secrets of his mind, but not its strength. The moment Ellen met his gaze, she sensed a power in him that she instinctively resisted. Colter wasn't as bold or rude as Daggs, but he was the same type of man, maybe even more dangerous because of his secrecy and cool, waiting inscrutability.

“‘Mawnin’, Ellen!” he drawled. “Y’u shore look good for sore eyes.”

“Good morning, Ellen!” he said lazily. “You sure look good to see.”

“Don’t pay me compliments, Colter,” replied Ellen. “An’ your eyes are not sore.”

“Don’t flatter me, Colter,” Ellen replied. “And your eyes aren’t sore.”

“Wal, I’m shore sore from fightin’ an’ ridin’ an’ layin’ out,” he said, bluntly.

“Well, I’m definitely sore from fighting, riding, and lying around,” he said, bluntly.

“Tell me—what’s happened,” returned Ellen.

“Tell me—what happened?” replied Ellen.

“Girl, it’s a tolerable long story,” replied Colter. “An’ we’ve no time now. Wait till we get to camp.”

“Girl, it’s a long story,” replied Colter. “And we don’t have time right now. Wait until we get to camp.”

“Am I to pack my belongin’s or leave them heah?” asked Ellen.

“Should I pack my things or leave them here?” asked Ellen.

“Reckon y’u’d better leave—them heah.”

"Guess you’d better leave—here."

“But if we did not come back—”

“But if we don't come back—”

“Wal, I reckon it’s not likely we’ll come—soon,” he said, rather evasively.

“Well, I guess it’s unlikely we’ll come—anytime soon,” he said, somewhat evasively.

“Colter, I’ll not go off into the woods with just the clothes I have on my back.”

“Colter, I’m not going into the woods with just the clothes I have on.”

“Ellen, we shore got to pack all the grab we can. This shore ain’t goin’ to be a visit to neighbors. We’re shy pack hosses. But y’u make up a bundle of belongin’s y’u care for, an’ the things y’u’ll need bad. We’ll throw it on somewhere.”

“Ellen, we really need to pack everything we can. This isn’t going to be just a visit to neighbors. We’re short on pack horses. But you gather up a bundle of things you care about and the stuff you’ll really need. We’ll find a way to carry it all.”

Colter stalked away across the lane, and Ellen found herself dubiously staring at his tall figure. Was it the situation that struck her with a foreboding perplexity or was her intuition steeling her against this man? Ellen could not decide. But she had to go with him. Her prejudice was unreasonable at this portentous moment. And she could not yet feel that she was solely responsible to herself.

Colter walked away down the path, and Ellen found herself staring at his tall frame, unsure of what to think. Was it the situation that left her feeling uneasy, or was her instinct preparing her to be wary of this man? Ellen couldn't figure it out. But she had to follow him. Her concerns seemed unreasonable at this crucial moment. And she still couldn't shake the feeling that she wasn't just responsible for herself.

When it came to making a small bundle of her belongings she was in a quandary. She discarded this and put in that, and then reversed the order. Next in preciousness to her mother’s things were the long-hidden gifts of Jean Isbel. She could part with neither.

When it came to packing a small bag of her things, she was in a tough spot. She tossed some items aside and added others, then changed her mind again. Next in importance to her mother's belongings were the long-hidden gifts from Jean Isbel. She could let go of neither.

While she was selecting and packing this bundle Colter again entered and, without speaking, began to rummage in the corner where her father kept his possessions. This irritated Ellen.

While she was picking out and packing this bundle, Colter came in again and, without saying a word, started digging through the corner where her father kept his things. This annoyed Ellen.

“What do y’u want there?” she demanded.

“What do you want there?” she asked.

“Wal, I reckon your dad wants his papers—an’ the gold he left heah—an’ a change of clothes. Now doesn’t he?” returned Colter, coolly.

“Well, I guess your dad wants his papers—and the gold he left here—and a change of clothes. Now doesn’t he?” replied Colter, calmly.

“Of course. But I supposed y’u would have me pack them.”

“Of course. But I figured you'd want me to pack them.”

Colter vouchsafed no reply to this, but deliberately went on rummaging, with little regard for how he scattered things. Ellen turned her back on him. At length, when he left, she went to her father’s corner and found that, as far as she was able to see, Colter had taken neither papers nor clothes, but only the gold. Perhaps, however, she had been mistaken, for she had not observed Colter’s departure closely enough to know whether or not he carried a package. She missed only the gold. Her father’s papers, old and musty, were scattered about, and these she gathered up to slip in her own bundle.

Colter didn't respond to this but continued searching, not caring much about the mess he was making. Ellen turned away from him. Eventually, when he left, she went to her father's corner and saw that, as far as she could tell, Colter had taken neither papers nor clothes, only the gold. However, she might have been wrong, since she hadn't paid close enough attention to Colter's departure to know if he had taken a package. The only thing she noticed missing was the gold. Her father's papers, old and musty, were scattered around, and she gathered them up to add to her own bundle.

Colter, or one of the men, had saddled Spades, and he was now tied to the corral fence, champing his bit and pounding the sand. Ellen wrapped bread and meat inside her coat, and after tying this behind her saddle she was ready to go. But evidently she would have to wait, and, preferring to remain outdoors, she stayed by her horse. Presently, while watching the men pack, she noticed that Springer wore a bandage round his head under the brim of his sombrero. His motions were slow and lacked energy. Shuddering at the sight, Ellen refused to conjecture. All too soon she would learn what had happened, and all too soon, perhaps, she herself would be in the midst of another fight. She watched the men. They were making a hurried slipshod job of packing food supplies from both cabins. More than once she caught Colter’s gray gleam of gaze on her, and she did not like it.

Colter, or one of the guys, had saddled up Spades, who was now tied to the corral fence, chomping on his bit and kicking up the sand. Ellen wrapped bread and meat in her coat, and after tying it behind her saddle, she was ready to leave. But it seemed she would have to wait, so she chose to stay outside by her horse. Soon, as she watched the men pack, she noticed that Springer had a bandage around his head under the brim of his sombrero. His movements were slow and lacked energy. Shuddering at the sight, Ellen refused to guess what had happened. All too soon, she would find out, and maybe she would soon find herself in the middle of another fight. She watched the men hastily and carelessly packing food supplies from both cabins. More than once, she caught Colter’s gray gaze on her, and she didn’t like it.

“I’ll ride up an’ say good-by to Sprague,” she called to Colter.

“I’ll ride up and say goodbye to Sprague,” she called to Colter.

“Shore y’u won’t do nothin’ of the kind,” he called back.

“Sure you won’t do anything like that,” he called back.

There was authority in his tone that angered Ellen, and something else which inhibited her anger. What was there about Colter with which she must reckon? The other two Texans laughed aloud, to be suddenly silenced by Colter’s harsh and lowered curses. Ellen walked out of hearing and sat upon a log, where she remained until Colter hailed her.

There was a commanding tone in his voice that frustrated Ellen, but there was also something that held her anger back. What was it about Colter that she had to deal with? The other two Texans laughed loudly until Colter's sharp and quiet curses made them stop. Ellen walked out of earshot and sat on a log, where she stayed until Colter called her.

“Get up an’ ride,” he called.

“Get up and ride,” he called.

Ellen complied with this order and, riding up behind the three mounted men, she soon found herself leaving what for years had been her home. Not once did she look back. She hoped she would never see the squalid, bare pretension of a ranch again.

Ellen followed the order and, riding behind the three men on horseback, soon found herself leaving what had been her home for years. Not once did she look back. She hoped she would never see the rundown, empty facade of a ranch again.

Colter and the other riders drove the pack horses across the meadow, off of the trails, and up the slope into the forest. Not very long did it take Ellen to see that Colter’s object was to hide their tracks. He zigzagged through the forest, avoiding the bare spots of dust, the dry, sun-baked flats of clay where water lay in spring, and he chose the grassy, open glades, the long, pine-needle matted aisles. Ellen rode at their heels and it pleased her to watch for their tracks. Colter manifestly had been long practiced in this game of hiding his trail, and he showed the skill of a rustler. But Ellen was not convinced that he could ever elude a real woodsman. Not improbably, however, Colter was only aiming to leave a trail difficult to follow and which would allow him and his confederates ample time to forge ahead of pursuers. Ellen could not accept a certainty of pursuit. Yet Colter must have expected it, and Springer and Wells also, for they had a dark, sinister, furtive demeanor that strangely contrasted with the cool, easy manner habitual to them.

Colter and the other riders drove the pack horses across the meadow, off the trails, and up the slope into the forest. It didn’t take Ellen long to realize that Colter’s goal was to hide their tracks. He zigzagged through the woods, avoiding the dusty bare spots and the dry, sunbaked clay where water collected in the spring, choosing instead the grassy, open glades and the long aisles covered in pine needles. Ellen rode behind them, enjoying the challenge of spotting their tracks. Colter clearly had a lot of experience in this game of concealing his trail, showing the skill of a rustler. But Ellen wasn’t convinced he could truly evade a skilled woodsman. However, Colter likely intended to leave a trail that was hard to follow, giving him and his companions enough time to get ahead of anyone chasing them. Ellen couldn’t accept the certainty of being pursued. Still, Colter must have expected it, as did Springer and Wells, because they had a dark, sinister, and secretive demeanor that sharply contrasted with their usual calm, easygoing way.

They were not seeking the level routes of the forest land, that was sure. They rode straight across the thick-timbered ridge down into another canyon, up out of that, and across rough, rocky bluffs, and down again. These riders headed a little to the northwest and every mile brought them into wilder, more rugged country, until Ellen, losing count of canyons and ridges, had no idea where she was. No stop was made at noon to rest the laboring, sweating pack animals.

They were definitely not looking for the easy paths through the forests. They rode directly across the dense wooded ridge, down into another canyon, up and out of that, then across rough, rocky cliffs, and down again. These riders steered a bit to the northwest, and with every mile, they ventured deeper into wilder, more rugged terrain, until Ellen, losing track of the canyons and ridges, had no idea where she was. They didn’t stop at noon to give the tired, sweating pack animals a break.

Under circumstances where pleasure might have been possible Ellen would have reveled in this hard ride into a wonderful forest ever thickening and darkening. But the wild beauty of glade and the spruce slopes and the deep, bronze-walled canyons left her cold. She saw and felt, but had no thrill, except now and then a thrill of alarm when Spades slid to his haunches down some steep, damp, piny declivity.

Under circumstances where she could have enjoyed it, Ellen would have delighted in the tough ride into a beautiful forest that kept getting denser and darker. But the wild beauty of the open spaces, the spruce-covered slopes, and the deep, bronze-walled canyons failed to excite her. She noticed and sensed it all, but felt no thrill, except occasionally a jolt of fear when Spades slipped to his haunches down a steep, damp, pine-covered slope.

All the woodland, up and down, appeared to be richer greener as they traveled farther west. Grass grew thick and heavy. Water ran in all ravines. The rocks were bronze and copper and russet, and some had green patches of lichen.

All the woods, up and down, seemed to get richer and greener as they traveled farther west. Grass grew thick and lush. Water flowed in all the ravines. The rocks were bronze, copper, and rust-colored, and some had green patches of lichen.

Ellen felt the sun now on her left cheek and knew that the day was waning and that Colter was swinging farther to the northwest. She had never before ridden through such heavy forest and down and up such wild canyons. Toward sunset the deepest and ruggedest canyon halted their advance. Colter rode to the right, searching for a place to get down through a spruce thicket that stood on end. Presently he dismounted and the others followed suit. Ellen found she could not lead Spades because he slid down upon her heels, so she looped the end of her reins over the pommel and left him free. She herself managed to descend by holding to branches and sliding all the way down that slope. She heard the horses cracking the brush, snorting and heaving. One pack slipped and had to be removed from the horse, and rolled down. At the bottom of this deep, green-walled notch roared a stream of water. Shadowed, cool, mossy, damp, this narrow gulch seemed the wildest place Ellen had ever seen. She could just see the sunset-flushed, gold-tipped spruces far above her. The men repacked the horse that had slipped his burden, and once more resumed their progress ahead, now turning up this canyon. There was no horse trail, but deer and bear trails were numerous. The sun sank and the sky darkened, but still the men rode on; and the farther they traveled the wilder grew the aspect of the canyon.

Ellen felt the sun on her left cheek and realized the day was winding down and that Colter was heading farther to the northwest. She had never ridden through such dense forest or navigated such wild canyons before. As the sun set, the deepest, most rugged canyon blocked their path. Colter rode to the right, looking for a way to get down through a dense thicket of spruce trees. Eventually, he dismounted, and the others did the same. Ellen found she couldn’t lead Spades because he kept sliding on her heels, so she looped the end of her reins over the pommel and let him go free. She managed to get down by hanging onto branches and sliding all the way down the slope. She heard the horses cracking branches, snorting, and heaving. One pack slipped and had to be taken off the horse, rolling down the slope. At the bottom of this deep, green-walled ravine, a stream of water roared. Dark, cool, and damp, this narrow gulch seemed like the wildest place Ellen had ever seen. She could just make out the sunset-lit, gold-tipped spruces high above her. The men repacked the horse that had lost its load and continued their journey up the canyon. There was no horse trail, but there were plenty of deer and bear paths. The sun dipped below the horizon, and the sky darkened, but the men kept riding on; the farther they went, the wilder the canyon appeared.

At length Colter broke a way through a heavy thicket of willows and entered a side canyon, the mouth of which Ellen had not even descried. It turned and widened, and at length opened out into a round pocket, apparently inclosed, and as lonely and isolated a place as even pursued rustlers could desire. Hidden by jutting wall and thicket of spruce were two old log cabins joined together by roof and attic floor, the same as the double cabin at the Jorth ranch.

At last, Colter forced his way through a dense thicket of willows and entered a side canyon that Ellen hadn't even noticed. It curved and widened, eventually opening into a round pocket, seemingly enclosed, and as remote and secluded as any pursued rustlers could wish for. Hidden behind a jutting wall and a thicket of spruce were two old log cabins connected by their roof and attic floor, just like the double cabin at the Jorth ranch.

Ellen smelled wood smoke, and presently, on going round the cabins, saw a bright fire. One man stood beside it gazing at Colter’s party, which evidently he had heard approaching.

Ellen smelled wood smoke, and soon, as she walked around the cabins, she saw a bright fire. One man stood next to it, staring at Colter's group, which he clearly had heard coming.

“Hullo, Queen!” said Colter. “How’s Tad?”

“Halo, Queen!” said Colter. “How’s Tad?”

“He’s holdin’ on fine,” replied Queen, bending over the fire, where he turned pieces of meat.

“He’s doing well,” replied Queen, leaning over the fire, where he cooked pieces of meat.

“Where’s father?” suddenly asked Ellen, addressing Colter.

“Where’s Dad?” Ellen suddenly asked Colter.

As if he had not heard her, he went on wearily loosening a pack.

As if he hadn't heard her, he continued tiredly unpacking a bag.

Queen looked at her. The light of the fire only partially shone on his face. Ellen could not see its expression. But from the fact that Queen did not answer her question she got further intimation of an impending catastrophe. The long, wild ride had helped prepare her for the secrecy and taciturnity of men who had resorted to flight. Perhaps her father had been delayed or was still off on the deadly mission that had obsessed him; or there might, and probably was, darker reason for his absence. Ellen shut her teeth and turned to the needs of her horse. And presently, returning to the fire, she thought of her uncle.

Queen looked at her. The firelight only partially illuminated his face. Ellen couldn't see his expression. But the fact that Queen didn't respond to her question made her sense that something terrible was about to happen. The long, wild ride had prepared her for the secrecy and silence of men who had chosen to flee. Maybe her father was delayed or still off on the dangerous mission that had consumed him; or there could, and likely was, a darker reason for his absence. Ellen clenched her jaw and focused on her horse’s needs. After a while, as she returned to the fire, she thought about her uncle.

“Queen, is my uncle Tad heah?” she asked.

“Queen, is my uncle Tad here?” she asked.

“Shore. He’s in there,” replied Queen, pointing at the nearer cabin.

“Shore. He’s in there,” replied Queen, pointing at the closer cabin.

Ellen hurried toward the dark doorway. She could see how the logs of the cabin had moved awry and what a big, dilapidated hovel it was. As she looked in, Colter loomed over her—placed a familiar and somehow masterful hand upon her. Ellen let it rest on her shoulder a moment. Must she forever be repulsing these rude men among whom her lot was cast? Did Colter mean what Daggs had always meant? Ellen felt herself weary, weak in body, and her spent spirit had not rallied. Yet, whatever Colter meant by his familiarity, she could not bear it. So she slipped out from under his hand.

Ellen rushed toward the dark doorway. She could see how the logs of the cabin had shifted and how run-down it was. As she looked inside, Colter appeared above her—he placed a familiar, almost authoritative hand on her. Ellen allowed it to rest on her shoulder for a moment. Would she always have to push away these crude men she was surrounded by? Did Colter mean what Daggs had always meant? Ellen felt tired, physically weak, and her exhausted spirit hadn't recovered. Yet, no matter what Colter intended with his familiarity, she couldn’t stand it. So she slipped out from under his hand.

“Uncle Tad, are y’u heah?” she called into the blackness. She heard the mice scamper and rustle and she smelled the musty, old, woody odor of a long-unused cabin.

“Uncle Tad, are you here?” she called into the darkness. She heard the mice scurry and rustle, and she smelled the musty, old, woodsy scent of a long-unused cabin.

“Hello, Ellen!” came a voice she recognized as her uncle’s, yet it was strange. “Yes. I’m heah—bad luck to me! ... How ’re y’u buckin’ up, girl?”

“Hey, Ellen!” came a voice she recognized as her uncle’s, but it sounded off. “Yeah. I’m here—what bad luck for me! ... How are you holding up, girl?”

“I’m all right, Uncle Tad—only tired an’ worried. I—”

“I’m okay, Uncle Tad—just tired and worried. I—”

“Tad, how’s your hurt?” interrupted Colter.

“Tad, how’s your injury?” interrupted Colter.

“Reckon I’m easier,” replied Jorth, wearily, “but shore I’m in bad shape. I’m still spittin’ blood. I keep tellin’ Queen that bullet lodged in my lungs—but he says it went through.”

“Guess I’m feeling better,” Jorth replied tiredly, “but I’m definitely in rough shape. I’m still coughing up blood. I keep telling Queen that the bullet got stuck in my lungs—but he says it went right through.”

“Wal, hang on, Tad!” replied Colter, with a cheerfulness Ellen sensed was really indifferent.

“Hold on, Tad!” Colter replied, sounding cheerful in a way that Ellen could tell was actually indifferent.

“Oh, what the hell’s the use!” exclaimed Jorth. “It’s all—up with us—Colter!”

“Oh, what’s the point!” Jorth exclaimed. “It’s all over for us, Colter!”

“Wal, shut up, then,” tersely returned Colter. “It ain’t doin’ y’u or us any good to holler.”

“Well, just be quiet then,” Colter replied sharply. “It’s not helping you or us to shout.”

Tad Jorth did not reply to this. Ellen heard his breathing and it did not seem natural. It rasped a little—came hurriedly—then caught in his throat. Then he spat. Ellen shrunk back against the door. He was breathing through blood.

Tad Jorth didn't answer. Ellen heard him breathing, and it didn't sound normal. It was raspy and rushed, then he seemed to choke on it. After that, he spat. Ellen recoiled against the door. He was breathing through blood.

“Uncle, are y’u in pain?” she asked.

“Uncle, are you in pain?” she asked.

“Yes, Ellen—it burns like hell,” he said.

“Yes, Ellen—it really hurts,” he said.

“Oh! I’m sorry.... Isn’t there something I can do?”

“Oh! I’m sorry.... Is there anything I can do?”

“I reckon not. Queen did all anybody could do for me—now—unless it’s pray.”

"I don't think so. Queen did everything anyone could do for me—now—unless it's to pray."

Colter laughed at this—the slow, easy, drawling laugh of a Texan. But Ellen felt pity for this wounded uncle. She had always hated him. He had been a drunkard, a gambler, a waster of her father’s property; and now he was a rustler and a fugitive, lying in pain, perhaps mortally hurt.

Colter laughed at this—his slow, easy, drawling laugh reminiscent of a Texan. But Ellen felt sorry for her injured uncle. She had always despised him. He had been a drunk, a gambler, a squandering fool with her father's assets; and now he was a cattle thief and a fugitive, lying in pain, possibly seriously wounded.

“Yes, uncle—I will pray for y’u,” she said, softly.

“Yes, uncle—I will pray for you,” she said softly.

The change in his voice held a note of sadness that she had been quick to catch.

The change in his voice had a hint of sadness that she picked up on immediately.

“Ellen, y’u’re the only good Jorth—in the whole damned lot,” he said. “God! I see it all now.... We’ve dragged y’u to hell!”

“Ellen, you’re the only decent Jorth—in the entire damned group,” he said. “Oh my God! I see it all now... We’ve pulled you down to hell!”

“Yes, Uncle Tad, I’ve shore been dragged some—but not yet—to hell,” she responded, with a break in her voice.

“Yeah, Uncle Tad, I've definitely been through a lot—but not yet—to hell,” she replied, her voice trembling.

“Y’u will be—Ellen—unless—”

"You're gonna be—Ellen—unless—"

“Aw, shut up that kind of gab, will y’u?” broke in Colter, harshly.

“Aw, shut up with that kind of talk, will you?” interrupted Colter, roughly.

It amazed Ellen that Colter should dominate her uncle, even though he was wounded. Tad Jorth had been the last man to take orders from anyone, much less a rustler of the Hash Knife Gang. This Colter began to loom up in Ellen’s estimate as he loomed physically over her, a lofty figure, dark motionless, somehow menacing.

It surprised Ellen that Colter was able to overpower her uncle, even though he was injured. Tad Jorth had been the last person to take orders from anyone, especially not from a rustler of the Hash Knife Gang. Colter started to stand out in Ellen’s mind, just like he towered over her physically, a tall, dark, still figure that seemed somewhat threatening.

“Ellen, has Colter told y’u yet—aboot—aboot Lee an’ Jackson?” inquired the wounded man.

“Ellen, has Colter told you yet—about—about Lee and Jackson?” the wounded man asked.

The pitch-black darkness of the cabin seemed to help fortify Ellen to bear further trouble.

The pitch-black darkness of the cabin seemed to help strengthen Ellen to endure more troubles.

“Colter told me dad an’ Uncle Jackson would meet us heah,” she rejoined, hurriedly.

“Colter told me Dad and Uncle Jackson would meet us here,” she replied quickly.

Jorth could be heard breathing in difficulty, and he coughed and spat again, and seemed to hiss.

Jorth could be heard breathing heavily, and he coughed and spat again, seeming to hiss.

“Ellen, he lied to y’u. They’ll never meet us—heah!”

“Ellen, he lied to you. They’ll never meet us—here!”

“Why not?” whispered Ellen.

“Why not?” murmured Ellen.

“Because—Ellen—” he replied, in husky pants, “your dad an’—uncle Jackson—are daid—an’ buried!”

“Because—Ellen—” he replied, breathing heavily, “your dad and—uncle Jackson—are dead—and buried!”

If Ellen suffered a terrible shock it was a blankness, a deadness, and a slow, creeping failure of sense in her knees. They gave way under her and she sank on the grass against the cabin wall. She did not faint nor grow dizzy nor lose her sight, but for a while there was no process of thought in her mind. Suddenly then it was there—the quick, spiritual rending of her heart—followed by a profound emotion of intimate and irretrievable loss—and after that grief and bitter realization.

If Ellen experienced a terrible shock, it was a numbness, an emptiness, and a slow, creeping weakness in her knees. They gave out beneath her, and she collapsed onto the grass against the cabin wall. She didn’t faint, feel dizzy, or lose her sight, but for a while, her mind was blank. Then it hit her—the sudden, spiritual tearing of her heart—followed by a deep feeling of personal and irreversible loss—and after that, grief and harsh awareness.

An hour later Ellen found strength to go to the fire and partake of the food and drink her body sorely needed.

An hour later, Ellen mustered the strength to go to the fire and enjoy the food and drink her body desperately needed.

Colter and the men waited on her solicitously, and in silence, now and then stealing furtive glances at her from under the shadow of their black sombreros. The dark night settled down like a blanket. There were no stars. The wind moaned fitfully among the pines, and all about that lonely, hidden recess was in harmony with Ellen’s thoughts.

Colter and the guys waited on her attentively and in silence, occasionally sneaking glances at her from beneath the shadows of their black sombreros. The dark night draped over them like a blanket. There were no stars. The wind moaned restlessly among the pines, and everything around that lonely, secluded spot matched Ellen’s thoughts.

“Girl, y’u’re shore game,” said Colter, admiringly. “An’ I reckon y’u never got it from the Jorths.”

“Girl, you’re definitely something special,” said Colter, admiringly. “And I bet you didn’t get it from the Jorths.”

“Tad in there—he’s game,” said Queen, in mild protest.

“Tad in there—he’s brave,” said Queen, in mild protest.

“Not to my notion,” replied Colter. “Any man can be game when he’s croakin’, with somebody around.... But Lee Jorth an’ Jackson—they always was yellow clear to their gizzards. They was born in Louisiana—not Texas.... Shore they’re no more Texans than I am. Ellen heah, she must have got another strain in her blood.”

“Not how I see it,” replied Colter. “Any guy can act tough when he’s dying, with someone else around... But Lee Jorth and Jackson—they’ve always been cowards to the core. They were born in Louisiana—not Texas... They’re no more Texans than I am. Ellen here, she must have a different background in her blood.”

To Ellen their words had no meaning. She rose and asked, “Where can I sleep?”

To Ellen, their words meant nothing. She stood up and asked, “Where can I sleep?”

“I’ll fetch a light presently an’ y’u can make your bed in there by Tad,” replied Colter.

“I'll get a light in a minute and you can make your bed in there by Tad,” replied Colter.

“Yes, I’d like that.”

“Yes, I’d love that.”

“Wal, if y’u reckon y’u can coax him to talk you’re shore wrong,” declared Colter, with that cold timbre of voice that struck like steel on Ellen’s nerves. “I cussed him good an’ told him he’d keep his mouth shut. Talkin’ makes him cough an’ that fetches up the blood.... Besides, I reckon I’m the one to tell y’u how your dad an’ uncle got killed. Tad didn’t see it done, an’ he was bad hurt when it happened. Shore all the fellars left have their idee aboot it. But I’ve got it straight.”

“Well, if you think you can get him to talk, you're definitely wrong,” Colter declared, his icy tone grating on Ellen’s nerves. “I gave him a good scolding and told him to keep quiet. Talking makes him cough and that brings up blood... Besides, I guess I’m the one who should tell you how your dad and uncle were killed. Tad didn’t see it happen and he was really hurt when it did. Sure, all the guys left have their opinions about it. But I know the real story.”

“Colter—tell me now,” cried Ellen.

“Colter—tell me now,” yelled Ellen.

“Wal, all right. Come over heah,” he replied, and drew her away from the camp fire, out in the shadow of gloom. “Poor kid! I shore feel bad aboot it.” He put a long arm around her waist and drew her against him. Ellen felt it, yet did not offer any resistance. All her faculties seemed absorbed in a morbid and sad anticipation.

“Okay, come over here,” he said, pulling her away from the campfire and into the shadows. “Poor kid! I really feel bad about this.” He wrapped his long arm around her waist and pulled her close. Ellen felt it but didn’t push him away. All her thoughts were consumed by a dark and sad expectation.

“Ellen, y’u shore know I always loved y’u—now don’t y ’u?” he asked, with suppressed breath.

“Ellen, you know I’ve always loved you—don’t you?” he asked, breathing heavily.

“No, Colter. It’s news to me—an’ not what I want to heah.”

“No, Colter. It’s news to me—and not what I want to hear.”

“Wal, y’u may as well heah it right now,” he said. “It’s true. An’ what’s more—your dad gave y’u to me before he died.”

“Alright, you might as well hear this now,” he said. “It’s true. And what’s more—your dad gave you to me before he died.”

“What! Colter, y’u must be a liar.”

“What! Colter, you must be lying.”

“Ellen, I swear I’m not lyin’,” he returned, in eager passion. “I was with your dad last an’ heard him last. He shore knew I’d loved y’u for years. An’ he said he’d rather y’u be left in my care than anybody’s.”

“Ellen, I swear I’m not lying,” he said eagerly. “I was with your dad last and heard him last. He definitely knew I’d loved you for years. And he said he’d rather you be left in my care than anyone else’s.”

“My father gave me to y’u in marriage!” ejaculated Ellen, in bewilderment.

“My dad gave me to you in marriage!” exclaimed Ellen, bewildered.

Colter’s ready assurance did not carry him over this point. It was evident that her words somewhat surprised and disconcerted him for the moment.

Colter’s confident demeanor didn’t help him here. It was clear that her words caught him off guard and unsettled him for a moment.

“To let me marry a rustler—one of the Hash Knife Gang!” exclaimed Ellen, with weary incredulity.

“To let me marry a cattle thief—one of the Hash Knife Gang!” exclaimed Ellen, with exhausted disbelief.

“Wal, your dad belonged to Daggs’s gang, same as I do,” replied Colter, recovering his cool ardor.

“Well, your dad was part of Daggs’s gang, just like I am,” Colter replied, regaining his calm enthusiasm.

“No!” cried Ellen.

“No!” shouted Ellen.

“Yes, he shore did, for years,” declared Colter, positively. “Back in Texas. An’ it was your dad that got Daggs to come to Arizona.”

“Yes, he sure did, for years,” Colter said confidently. “Back in Texas. And it was your dad who got Daggs to come to Arizona.”

Ellen tried to fling herself away. But her strength and her spirit were ebbing, and Colter increased the pressure of his arm. All at once she sank limp. Could she escape her fate? Nothing seemed left to fight with or for.

Ellen tried to pull away. But her strength and her spirit were fading, and Colter tightened his grip. Suddenly, she went slack. Could she escape her fate? It felt like there was nothing left to fight with or for.

“All right—don’t hold me—so tight,” she panted. “Now tell me how dad was killed ... an’ who—who—”

“All right—don’t hold me—so tight,” she gasped. “Now tell me how Dad was killed ... and who—who—”

Colter bent over so he could peer into her face. In the darkness Ellen just caught the gleam of his eyes. She felt the virile force of the man in the strain of his body as he pressed her close. It all seemed unreal—a hideous dream—the gloom, the moan of the wind, the weird solitude, and this rustler with hand and will like cold steel.

Colter leaned in to look at her face. In the dark, Ellen barely saw the glint of his eyes. She could feel the strong energy of the man in the tension of his body as he held her tight. It all felt surreal—a terrifying nightmare—the darkness, the sound of the wind, the strange solitude, and this cattle thief with a grip and determination like cold steel.

“We’d come back to Greaves’s store,” Colter began. “An’ as Greaves was daid we all got free with his liquor. Shore some of us got drunk. Bruce was drunk, an’ Tad in there—he was drunk. Your dad put away more ’n I ever seen him. But shore he wasn’t exactly drunk. He got one of them weak an’ shaky spells. He cried an’ he wanted some of us to get the Isbels to call off the fightin’.... He shore was ready to call it quits. I reckon the killin’ of Daggs—an’ then the awful way Greaves was cut up by Jean Isbel—took all the fight out of your dad. He said to me, ‘Colter, we’ll take Ellen an’ leave this heah country—an’ begin life all over again—where no one knows us.’”

“We went back to Greaves’s store,” Colter started. “And since Greaves was dead, we all helped ourselves to his liquor. Sure, some of us got drunk. Bruce was drunk, and Tad in there—he was drunk too. Your dad drank more than I’ve ever seen him drink. But he definitely wasn’t completely drunk. He started having those weak and shaky spells. He cried and wanted some of us to get the Isbels to call off the fighting... He was really ready to give up. I guess the killing of Daggs—and then the terrible way Greaves was cut up by Jean Isbel—took all the fight out of your dad. He said to me, ‘Colter, we’ll take Ellen and leave this place— and start our lives over somewhere no one knows us.’”

“Oh, did he really say that? ... Did he—really mean it?” murmured Ellen, with a sob.

“Oh, did he really say that? ... Did he—really mean it?” Ellen whispered, choking back a sob.

“I’ll swear it by the memory of my daid mother,” protested Colter. “Wal, when night come the Isbels rode down on us in the dark an’ began to shoot. They smashed in the door—tried to burn us out—an’ hollered around for a while. Then they left an’ we reckoned there’d be no more trouble that night. All the same we kept watch. I was the soberest one an’ I bossed the gang. We had some quarrels aboot the drinkin’. Your dad said if we kept it up it ’d be the end of the Jorths. An’ he planned to send word to the Isbels next mawnin’ that he was ready for a truce. An’ I was to go fix it up with Gaston Isbel. Wal, your dad went to bed in Greaves’s room, an’ a little while later your uncle Jackson went in there, too. Some of the men laid down in the store an’ went to sleep. I kept guard till aboot three in the mawnin’. An’ I got so sleepy I couldn’t hold my eyes open. So I waked up Wells an’ Slater an’ set them on guard, one at each end of the store. Then I laid down on the counter to take a nap.”

“I swear it on the memory of my dead mother,” Colter protested. “Well, when night came, the Isbels rode down on us in the dark and started shooting. They broke down the door—tried to burn us out—and yelled around for a while. Then they left, and we thought there wouldn’t be any more trouble that night. Still, we kept watch. I was the most sober one, and I led the group. We had some arguments about drinking. Your dad said if we kept it up, it would be the end of the Jorths. He planned to send word to the Isbels the next morning that he was ready for a truce. I was supposed to go make arrangements with Gaston Isbel. Well, your dad went to bed in Greaves’s room, and a little while later your uncle Jackson went in there too. Some of the guys laid down in the store and fell asleep. I kept guard until about three in the morning. I got so sleepy I couldn’t keep my eyes open. So I woke up Wells and Slater and had them keep watch, one at each end of the store. Then I lay down on the counter to take a nap.”

Colter’s low voice, the strain and breathlessness of him, the agitation with which he appeared to be laboring, and especially the simple, matter-of-fact detail of his story, carried absolute conviction to Ellen Jorth. Her vague doubt of him had been created by his attitude toward her. Emotion dominated her intelligence. The images, the scenes called up by Colter’s words, were as true as the gloom of the wild gulch and the loneliness of the night solitude—as true as the strange fact that she lay passive in the arm of a rustler.

Colter’s low voice, the strain and breathlessness that came with it, the intensity he seemed to embody, and especially the straightforward, no-nonsense way he told his story, convinced Ellen Jorth completely. Her vague doubt about him had stemmed from how he treated her. Her feelings overshadowed her reasoning. The pictures and scenes evoked by Colter’s words felt as real as the shadowy wild gulch and the desolation of the night—as real as the strange reality that she was lying quietly in the arms of a rustler.

“Wall, after a while I woke up,” went on Colter, clearing his throat. “It was gray dawn. All was as still as death.... An’ somethin’ shore was wrong. Wells an’ Slater had got to drinkin’ again an’ now laid daid drunk or asleep. Anyways, when I kicked them they never moved. Then I heard a moan. It came from the room where your dad an’ uncle was. I went in. It was just light enough to see. Your uncle Jackson was layin’ on the floor—cut half in two—daid as a door nail.... Your dad lay on the bed. He was alive, breathin’ his last.... He says, ‘That half-breed Isbel—knifed us—while we slept!’ ... The winder shutter was open. I seen where Jean Isbel had come in an’ gone out. I seen his moccasin tracks in the dirt outside an’ I seen where he’d stepped in Jackson’s blood an’ tracked it to the winder. Y’u shore can see them bloody tracks yourself, if y’u go back to Greaves’s store.... Your dad was goin’ fast.... He said, ‘Colter—take care of Ellen,’ an’ I reckon he meant a lot by that. He kept sayin’, ‘My God! if I’d only seen Gaston Isbel before it was too late!’ an’ then he raved a little, whisperin’ out of his haid.... An’ after that he died.... I woke up the men, an’ aboot sunup we carried your dad an’ uncle out of town an’ buried them.... An’ them Isbels shot at us while we were buryin’ our daid! That’s where Tad got his hurt.... Then we hit the trail for Jorth’s ranch.... An now, Ellen, that’s all my story. Your dad was ready to bury the hatchet with his old enemy. An’ that Nez Perce Jean Isbel, like the sneakin’ savage he is, murdered your uncle an’ your dad.... Cut him horrible—made him suffer tortures of hell—all for Isbel revenge!”

“Wall, after a while I woke up,” Colter continued, clearing his throat. “It was a gray dawn. Everything was as still as death... And something was definitely wrong. Wells and Slater had gotten drunk again and now lay dead drunk or asleep. Anyway, when I kicked them, they didn’t move. Then I heard a moan. It came from the room where your dad and uncle were. I went in. It was just light enough to see. Your uncle Jackson was lying on the floor—cut in half—dead as a doornail... Your dad was on the bed. He was alive, breathing his last... He said, ‘That half-breed Isbel—knifed us—while we slept!’ ... The window shutter was open. I saw where Jean Isbel had come in and gone out. I saw his moccasin tracks in the dirt outside, and I saw where he’d stepped in Jackson’s blood and tracked it to the window. You can definitely see those bloody tracks for yourself if you go back to Greaves’s store... Your dad was going fast... He said, ‘Colter—take care of Ellen,’ and I think he meant a lot by that. He kept saying, ‘My God! If I’d only seen Gaston Isbel before it was too late!’ and then he raved a little, whispering out of his head... And after that, he died... I woke up the men, and around sunrise, we carried your dad and uncle out of town and buried them... And those Isbels shot at us while we were burying our dead! That’s where Tad got his injury... Then we hit the trail for Jorth’s ranch... And now, Ellen, that’s my story. Your dad was ready to make peace with his old enemy. And that Nez Perce Jean Isbel, like the sneaky savage he is, murdered your uncle and your dad... Cut him horribly—made him suffer tortures of hell—all for Isbel revenge!”

When Colter’s husky voice ceased Ellen whispered through lips as cold and still as ice, “Let me go ... leave me—heah—alone!”

When Colter’s deep voice stopped, Ellen whispered with lips as cold and still as ice, “Let me go ... leave me—here—alone!”

“Why, shore! I reckon I understand,” replied Colter. “I hated to tell y’u. But y’u had to heah the truth aboot that half-breed.... I’ll carry your pack in the cabin an’ unroll your blankets.”

“Sure! I think I get it,” replied Colter. “I didn't want to tell you. But you needed to hear the truth about that half-breed... I’ll take your pack to the cabin and unroll your blankets.”

Releasing her, Colter strode off in the gloom. Like a dead weight, Ellen began to slide until she slipped down full length beside the log. And then she lay in the cool, damp shadow, inert and lifeless so far as outward physical movement was concerned. She saw nothing and felt nothing of the night, the wind, the cold, the falling dew. For the moment or hour she was crushed by despair, and seemed to see herself sinking down and down into a black, bottomless pit, into an abyss where murky tides of blood and furious gusts of passion contended between her body and her soul. Into the stormy blast of hell! In her despair she longed, she ached for death. Born of infidelity, cursed by a taint of evil blood, further cursed by higher instinct for good and happy life, dragged from one lonely and wild and sordid spot to another, never knowing love or peace or joy or home, left to the companionship of violent and vile men, driven by a strange fate to love with unquenchable and insupportable love a’ half-breed, a savage, an Isbel, the hereditary enemy of her people, and at last the ruthless murderer of her father—what in the name of God had she left to live for? Revenge! An eye for an eye! A life for a life! But she could not kill Jean Isbel. Woman’s love could turn to hate, but not the love of Ellen Jorth. He could drag her by the hair in the dust, beat her, and make her a thing to loathe, and cut her mortally in his savage and implacable thirst for revenge—but with her last gasp she would whisper she loved him and that she had lied to him to kill his faith. It was that—his strange faith in her purity—which had won her love. Of all men, that he should be the one to recognize the truth of her, the womanhood yet unsullied—how strange, how terrible, how overpowering! False, indeed, was she to the Jorths! False as her mother had been to an Isbel! This agony and destruction of her soul was the bitter Dead Sea fruit—the sins of her parents visited upon her.

Releasing her, Colter walked away into the darkness. Like a heavy weight, Ellen started to slide until she ended up lying beside the log. She lay there in the cool, damp shade, completely motionless. She didn’t see or feel anything of the night, the wind, the cold, or the falling dew. In that moment or hour, she was overwhelmed by despair, imagining herself sinking deeper into a dark, endless pit, into an abyss where murky tides of blood and fierce gusts of passion battled between her body and her soul. She felt like she was caught in a violent storm from hell! In her despair, she craved death. Born from betrayal, cursed by a lineage of evil, further cursed by a strong desire for a good and happy life, dragged from one lonely, wild, and grim place to another, never knowing love, peace, joy, or a home, left only with the company of violent and vile men, fated to love a mixed-race man, a savage, an Isbel, the longstanding enemy of her people, and ultimately the brutal murderer of her father—what in the world did she have left to live for? Revenge! An eye for an eye! A life for a life! But she couldn't kill Jean Isbel. A woman's love could turn to hate, but not Ellen Jorth’s love. He could drag her through the dirt, beat her, and make her a thing to despise, and inflict fatal wounds on her in his relentless thirst for revenge—but with her last breath, she would whisper that she loved him and that she had lied to him to destroy his faith. It was that—his strange belief in her purity—that had won her love. Of all men, how strange, terrible, and overwhelming that he should be the one to see the truth of her—her womanhood still untainted. Indeed, she was false to the Jorths! False just like her mother had been to an Isbel! This agony and devastation of her soul was the bitter fruit of the Dead Sea—the sins of her parents haunting her.

“I’ll end it all,” she whispered to the night shadows that hovered over her. No coward was she—no fear of pain or mangled flesh or death or the mysterious hereafter could ever stay her. It would be easy, it would be a last thrill, a transport of self-abasement and supreme self-proof of her love for Jean Isbel to kiss the Rim rock where his feet had trod and then fling herself down into the depths. She was the last Jorth. So the wronged Isbels would be avenged.

“I’ll end it all,” she whispered to the shadows of the night that surrounded her. She was no coward—no fear of pain, disfigurement, death, or the unknown afterlife could ever hold her back. It would be easy; it would be a final thrill, a moment of self-degradation and ultimate proof of her love for Jean Isbel, to kiss the rock where he had walked and then throw herself into the abyss. She was the last Jorth. This was how the wronged Isbels would be avenged.

“But he would never know—never know—I lied to him!” she wailed to the night wind.

“But he will never know—never know—I lied to him!” she cried out to the night wind.

She was lost—lost on earth and to hope of heaven. She had right neither to live nor to die. She was nothing but a little weed along the trail of life, trampled upon, buried in the mud. She was nothing but a single rotten thread in a tangled web of love and hate and revenge. And she had broken.

She was lost—lost on earth and without any hope for heaven. She felt she had no right to live or die. She was just a little weed along the path of life, trampled and buried in the mud. She was just a single rotten thread in a tangled web of love, hate, and revenge. And she had broken.

Lower and lower she seemed to sink. Was there no end to this gulf of despair? If Colter had returned he would have found her a rag and a toy—a creature degraded, fit for his vile embrace. To be thrust deeper into the mire—to be punished fittingly for her betrayal of a man’s noble love and her own womanhood—to be made an end of, body, mind, and soul.

Lower and lower she seemed to sink. Was there no end to this pit of despair? If Colter had returned, he would have found her a wreck and a plaything—a fallen being, suitable for his disgusting desires. To be pushed further into the filth—to be justly punished for betraying a man’s noble love and her own womanhood—to be completely destroyed, body, mind, and soul.

But Colter did not return.

But Colter didn't come back.

The wind mourned, the owls hooted, the leaves rustled, the insects whispered their melancholy night song, the camp-fire flickered and faded. Then the wild forestland seemed to close imponderably over Ellen. All that she wailed in her despair, all that she confessed in her abasement, was true, and hard as life could be—but she belonged to nature. If nature had not failed her, had God failed her? It was there—the lonely land of tree and fern and flower and brook, full of wild birds and beasts, where the mossy rocks could speak and the solitude had ears, where she had always felt herself unutterably a part of creation. Thus a wavering spark of hope quivered through the blackness of her soul and gathered light.

The wind moaned, the owls hooted, the leaves rustled, the insects whispered their sad night song, and the campfire flickered and faded. Then the wild forest seemed to close in around Ellen. Everything she cried out in her despair, everything she admitted in her humiliation, was true, no matter how tough life could be—but she was part of nature. If nature hadn’t let her down, had God let her down? It was there—the lonely land of trees, ferns, flowers, and streams, filled with wild birds and animals, where the mossy rocks could speak and the solitude listened, where she had always felt deeply connected to creation. Thus, a faint spark of hope flickered through the darkness of her soul and began to shine.

The gloom of the sky, the shifting clouds of dull shade, split asunder to show a glimpse of a radiant star, piercingly white, cold, pure, a steadfast eye of the universe, beyond all understanding and illimitable with its meaning of the past and the present and the future. Ellen watched it until the drifting clouds once more hid it from her strained sight.

The dark sky, with its shifting gray clouds, broke apart to reveal a shining star—bright white, cold, and pure—a steady gaze of the universe, beyond all comprehension and limitless in its significance of the past, present, and future. Ellen stared at it until the drifting clouds concealed it from her weary eyes again.

What had that star to do with hell? She might be crushed and destroyed by life, but was there not something beyond? Just to be born, just to suffer, just to die—could that be all? Despair did not loose its hold on Ellen, the strife and pang of her breast did not subside. But with the long hours and the strange closing in of the forest around her and the fleeting glimpse of that wonderful star, with a subtle divination of the meaning of her beating heart and throbbing mind, and, lastly, with a voice thundering at her conscience that a man’s faith in a woman must not be greater, nobler, than her faith in God and eternity—with these she checked the dark flight of her soul toward destruction.

What did that star have to do with hell? She could be crushed and destroyed by life, but was there not something more? Just being born, just suffering, just dying—could that really be everything? Despair didn’t let go of Ellen, and the conflict and pain in her heart didn’t fade. But with the long hours, the strange encroachment of the forest around her, and the fleeting glimpse of that amazing star, along with a subtle understanding of the meaning of her beating heart and racing mind, and finally, with a voice booming in her conscience that a man’s faith in a woman shouldn’t be greater or nobler than her faith in God and eternity—with all this, she resisted the dark descent of her soul toward destruction.




CHAPTER XII

A chill, gray, somber dawn was breaking when Ellen dragged herself into the cabin and crept under her blankets, there to sleep the sleep of exhaustion.

A cold, gray, gloomy dawn was breaking when Ellen pulled herself into the cabin and slipped under her blankets, ready to sleep the deep sleep of exhaustion.

When she awoke the hour appeared to be late afternoon. Sun and sky shone through the sunken and decayed roof of the old cabin. Her uncle, Tad Jorth, lay upon a blanket bed upheld by a crude couch of boughs. The light fell upon his face, pale, lined, cast in a still mold of suffering. He was not dead, for she heard his respiration.

When she woke up, it seemed like it was late afternoon. Sunlight and blue sky streamed through the sunken and rotting roof of the old cabin. Her uncle, Tad Jorth, was lying on a blanket bed supported by a rough couch made of branches. The light shone on his face, which was pale, lined, and set in a calm expression of pain. He wasn't dead, because she could hear him breathing.

The floor underneath Ellen’s blankets was bare clay. She and Jorth were alone in this cabin. It contained nothing besides their beds and a rank growth of weeds along the decayed lower logs. Half of the cabin had a rude ceiling of rough-hewn boards which formed a kind of loft. This attic extended through to the adjoining cabin, forming the ceiling of the porch-like space between the two structures. There was no partition. A ladder of two aspen saplings, pegged to the logs, and with braces between for steps, led up to the attic.

The floor beneath Ellen's blankets was just bare clay. She and Jorth were alone in this cabin. It didn’t have anything apart from their beds and a thick patch of weeds growing along the rotting lower logs. Half of the cabin had a rough ceiling made of uneven boards that created a sort of loft. This attic stretched over to the neighboring cabin, making up the ceiling of the porch area between the two buildings. There was no wall separating them. A ladder made from two aspen saplings, fastened to the logs, with extra supports for steps, led up to the attic.

Ellen smelled wood smoke and the odor of frying meat, and she heard the voices of men. She looked out to see that Slater and Somers had joined their party—an addition that might have strengthened it for defense, but did not lend her own situation anything favorable. Somers had always appeared the one best to avoid.

Ellen caught the scent of wood smoke and frying meat, and she heard the voices of men. She looked out and saw that Slater and Somers had joined their group—an addition that could have made it stronger for defense, but didn’t improve her own situation at all. Somers had always seemed like the one to steer clear of.

Colter espied her and called her to “Come an’ feed your pale face.” His comrades laughed, not loudly, but guardedly, as if noise was something to avoid. Nevertheless, they awoke Tad Jorth, who began to toss and moan on the bed.

Colter spotted her and called out, “Come feed your pale face.” His friends chuckled, not too loudly, but carefully, as if they were trying to keep quiet. Still, they managed to wake up Tad Jorth, who started to toss and moan on the bed.

Ellen hurried to his side and at once ascertained that he had a high fever and was in a critical condition. Every time he tossed he opened a wound in his right breast, rather high up. For all she could see, nothing had been done for him except the binding of a scarf round his neck and under his arm. This scant bandage had worked loose. Going to the door, she called out:

Ellen rushed to his side and quickly realized he had a high fever and was in serious condition. Every time he moved, he opened a wound on his right breast, pretty high up. From what she could see, nothing had been done for him except wrapping a scarf around his neck and under his arm. This makeshift bandage had come loose. Heading to the door, she shouted:

“Fetch me some water.” When Colter brought it, Ellen was rummaging in her pack for some clothing or towel that she could use for bandages.

“Get me some water.” When Colter brought it, Ellen was digging through her pack for some clothes or a towel that she could use for bandages.

“Weren’t any of y’u decent enough to look after my uncle?” she queried.

“Wasn’t anyone here decent enough to take care of my uncle?” she asked.

“Huh! Wal, what the hell!” rejoined Colter. “We shore did all we could. I reckon y’u think it wasn’t a tough job to pack him up the Rim. He was done for then an’ I said so.”

“Huh! Well, what the heck!” replied Colter. “We definitely did everything we could. I guess you think it wasn’t a hard job to carry him up the Rim. He was finished then and I said so.”

“I’ll do all I can for him,” said Ellen.

“I’ll do everything I can for him,” said Ellen.

“Shore. Go ahaid. When I get plugged or knifed by that half-breed I shore hope y’u’ll be round to nurse me.”

“Sure. Go ahead. When that half-breed plugs or stabs me, I really hope you’ll be there to take care of me.”

“Y’u seem to be pretty shore of your fate, Colter.”

“Seems like you're pretty sure of your fate, Colter.”

“Shore as hell!” he bit out, darkly. “Somers saw Isbel an’ his gang trailin’ us to the Jorth ranch.”

“Sure as hell!” he snapped, darkly. “Somers saw Isbel and his crew following us to the Jorth ranch.”

“Are y’u goin’ to stay heah—an’ wait for them?”

“Are you going to stay here—and wait for them?”

“Shore I’ve been quarrelin’ with the fellars out there over that very question. I’m for leavin’ the country. But Queen, the damn gun fighter, is daid set to kill that cowman, Blue, who swore he was King Fisher, the old Texas outlaw. None but Queen are spoilin’ for another fight. All the same they won’t leave Tad Jorth heah alone.”

“Sure, I've been arguing with the guys out there about that very question. I’m in favor of leaving the country. But Queen, the damn gunfighter, is dead set on killing that cowman, Blue, who claimed he was King Fisher, the old Texas outlaw. No one but Queen is itching for another fight. Still, they won’t leave Tad Jorth here alone.”

Then Colter leaned in at the door and whispered: “Ellen, I cain’t boss this outfit. So let’s y’u an’ me shake ’em. I’ve got your dad’s gold. Let’s ride off to-night an’ shake this country.”

Then Colter leaned in at the door and whispered, “Ellen, I can’t handle this place. So let’s you and me make a run for it. I’ve got your dad’s gold. Let’s ride out tonight and leave this country behind.”

Colter, muttering under his breath, left the door and returned to his comrades. Ellen had received her first intimation of his cowardice; and his mention of her father’s gold started a train of thought that persisted in spite of her efforts to put all her mind to attending her uncle. He grew conscious enough to recognize her working over him, and thanked her with a look that touched Ellen deeply. It changed the direction of her mind. His suffering and imminent death, which she was able to alleviate and retard somewhat, worked upon her pity and compassion so that she forgot her own plight. Half the night she was tending him, cooling his fever, holding him quiet. Well she realized that but for her ministrations he would have died. At length he went to sleep.

Colter, grumbling quietly, left the door and joined his friends. Ellen had just realized for the first time that he was afraid; his mention of her father's gold sparked a stream of thoughts that continued despite her efforts to focus entirely on caring for her uncle. He became aware enough to sense her concern for him and thanked her with a look that deeply moved Ellen. It shifted her focus. His pain and the threat of death, which she was able to ease and delay a little, stirred her sympathy and compassion so much that she forgot her own troubles. She spent half the night tending to him, cooling his fever and keeping him calm. She understood well that if it weren't for her care, he would have died. Eventually, he fell asleep.

And Ellen, sitting beside him in the lonely, silent darkness of that late hour, received again the intimation of nature, those vague and nameless stirrings of her innermost being, those whisperings out of the night and the forest and the sky. Something great would not let go of her soul. She pondered.

And Ellen, sitting next to him in the quiet, dark solitude of that late hour, felt once more the nudges of nature, those vague and unidentifiable feelings deep within her, those whispers from the night, the forest, and the sky. Something profound had a hold on her soul. She thought about it.

Attention to the wounded man occupied Ellen; and soon she redoubled her activities in this regard, finding in them something of protection against Colter.

Attention to the injured man kept Ellen busy, and soon she intensified her efforts in this regard, finding in them a way to shield herself from Colter.

He had waylaid her as she went to a spring for water, and with a lunge like that of a bear he had tried to embrace her. But Ellen had been too quick.

He had stopped her while she was on her way to a spring for water, and with a sudden move like a bear, he tried to hug her. But Ellen was too fast.

“Wal, are y’u goin’ away with me?” he demanded.

“Well, are you going away with me?” he asked.

“No. I’ll stick by my uncle,” she replied.

“No. I’m standing by my uncle,” she replied.

That motive of hers seemed to obstruct his will. Ellen was keen to see that Colter and his comrades were at a last stand and disintegrating under a severe strain. Nerve and courage of the open and the wild they possessed, but only in a limited degree. Colter seemed obsessed by his passion for her, and though Ellen in her stubborn pride did not yet fear him, she realized she ought to. After that incident she watched closely, never leaving her uncle’s bedside except when Colter was absent. One or more of the men kept constant lookout somewhere down the canyon.

That motive of hers seemed to get in the way of his intentions. Ellen was eager to see that Colter and his team were at their breaking point and collapsing under intense pressure. They had some nerve and bravery typical of the wild, but only to a certain extent. Colter seemed consumed by his feelings for her, and even though Ellen, in her stubborn pride, didn’t yet feel threatened by him, she understood that she should. After that incident, she watched closely, never leaving her uncle’s side except when Colter wasn’t around. One or more of the men kept a constant watch somewhere down the canyon.

Day after day passed on the wings of suspense, of watching, of ministering to her uncle, of waiting for some hour that seemed fixed.

Day after day went by in a blur of suspense, watching, caring for her uncle, and waiting for a moment that felt inevitable.

Colter was like a hound upon her trail. At every turn he was there to importune her to run off with him, to frighten her with the menace of the Isbels, to beg her to give herself to him. It came to pass that the only relief she had was when she ate with the men or barred the cabin door at night. Not much relief, however, was there in the shut and barred door. With one thrust of his powerful arm Colter could have caved it in. He knew this as well as Ellen. Still she did not have the fear she should have had. There was her rifle beside her, and though she did not allow her mind to run darkly on its possible use, still the fact of its being there at hand somehow strengthened her. Colter was a cat playing with a mouse, but not yet sure of his quarry.

Colter was like a dog on her scent. Every time she turned around, he was there, trying to persuade her to leave with him, threatening her with the danger of the Isbels, and pleading for her to give herself to him. The only time she found any relief was when she ate with the men or locked the cabin door at night. But even locking the door didn’t offer much comfort. With one powerful blow, Colter could easily break it down. He knew this just as well as Ellen did. Still, she didn’t feel the fear she probably should have. Her rifle was next to her, and although she tried not to think about how she might use it, just having it nearby somehow made her feel stronger. Colter was like a cat toying with a mouse, but he wasn’t quite sure if he had caught her yet.

Ellen came to know hours when she was weak—weak physically, mentally, spiritually, morally—when under the sheer weight of this frightful and growing burden of suspense she was not capable of fighting her misery, her abasement, her low ebb of vitality, and at the same time wholly withstanding Colter’s advances.

Ellen realized there were times when she felt weak—weak physically, mentally, spiritually, and morally—when the overwhelming pressure of the constant suspense left her unable to fight against her pain, her humiliation, her depleted energy, while also completely resisting Colter’s attempts.

He would come into the cabin and, utterly indifferent to Tad Jorth, he would try to make bold and unrestrained love to Ellen. When he caught her in one of her unresisting moments and was able to hold her in his arms and kiss her he seemed to be beside himself with the wonder of her. At such moments, if he had any softness or gentleness in him, they expressed themselves in his sooner or later letting her go, when apparently she was about to faint. So it must have become fascinatingly fixed in Colter’s mind that at times Ellen repulsed him with scorn and at others could not resist him.

He would enter the cabin and, completely indifferent to Tad Jorth, attempt to passionately pursue Ellen. When he caught her in one of her unresisting moments and managed to hold her in his arms and kiss her, he seemed overwhelmed with amazement at her. In those moments, if he had any softness or gentleness within him, it showed when he eventually let her go, especially when it seemed she was about to faint. It must have made a strong impression on Colter that sometimes Ellen rejected him with disdain, while at other times she couldn’t resist him.

Ellen had escaped two crises in her relation with this man, and as a morbid doubt, like a poisonous fungus, began to strangle her mind, she instinctively divined that there was an approaching and final crisis. No uplift of her spirit came this time—no intimations—no whisperings. How horrible it all was! To long to be good and noble—to realize that she was neither—to sink lower day by day! Must she decay there like one of these rotting logs? Worst of all, then, was the insinuating and ever-growing hopelessness. What was the use? What did it matter? Who would ever think of Ellen Jorth? “O God!” she whispered in her distraction, “is there nothing left—nothing at all?”

Ellen had escaped two crises in her relationship with this man, and as a dark doubt, like a toxic fungus, began to choke her mind, she instinctively sensed that another final crisis was approaching. This time, there was no uplift in her spirit—no hints—no whispers. How awful it all was! To long to be good and noble—to realize that she was neither—to sink lower day by day! Must she rot there like one of these decaying logs? Worst of all was the creeping and ever-growing hopelessness. What was the point? What did it matter? Who would ever think of Ellen Jorth? “Oh God!” she whispered in her distress, “is there nothing left—nothing at all?”

A period of several days of less torment to Ellen followed. Her uncle apparently took a turn for the better and Colter let her alone. This last circumstance nonplused Ellen. She was at a loss to understand it unless the Isbel menace now encroached upon Colter so formidably that he had forgotten her for the present.

A few days of less torment for Ellen followed. Her uncle seemed to be getting better, and Colter left her alone. This last situation confused Ellen. She couldn't figure it out unless the Isbel threat loomed so large over Colter that he had temporarily forgotten about her.

Then one bright August morning, when she had just begun to relax her eternal vigilance and breathe without oppression, Colter encountered her and, darkly silent and fierce, he grasped her and drew her off her feet. Ellen struggled violently, but the total surprise had deprived her of strength. And that paralyzing weakness assailed her as never before. Without apparent effort Colter carried her, striding rapidly away from the cabins into the border of spruce trees at the foot of the canyon wall.

Then one bright August morning, just as she was starting to let her guard down and breathe easily, Colter found her. Silent and intense, he grabbed her and lifted her off her feet. Ellen fought back hard, but the shock left her weak. That overwhelming weakness hit her like never before. Without breaking a sweat, Colter carried her, striding quickly away from the cabins and into the edge of the spruce trees at the base of the canyon wall.

“Colter—where—oh, where are Y’u takin’ me?” she found voice to cry out.

“Colter—where—oh, where are you taking me?” she managed to cry out.

“By God! I don’t know,” he replied, with strong, vibrant passion. “I was a fool not to carry y’u off long ago. But I waited. I was hopin’ y’u’d love me! ... An’ now that Isbel gang has corralled us. Somers seen the half-breed up on the rocks. An’ Springer seen the rest of them sneakin’ around. I run back after my horse an’ y’u.”

“By God! I don’t know,” he replied, with intense emotion. “I was an idiot for not taking you away a long time ago. But I waited. I was hoping you’d love me! ... And now that the Isbel gang has trapped us. Somers spotted the half-breed on the rocks. And Springer saw the rest of them sneaking around. I ran back for my horse and you.”

“But Uncle Tad! ... We mustn’t leave him alone,” cried Ellen.

“But Uncle Tad! ... We can't leave him alone,” Ellen exclaimed.

“We’ve got to,” replied Colter, grimly. “Tad shore won’t worry y’u no more—soon as Jean Isbel gets to him.”

“We have to,” Colter replied, looking serious. “Tad definitely won’t bother you anymore—once Jean Isbel gets to him.”

“Oh, let me stay,” implored Ellen. “I will save him.”

“Oh, please let me stay,” Ellen begged. “I can save him.”

Colter laughed at the utter absurdity of her appeal and claim. Suddenly he set her down upon her feet. “Stand still,” he ordered. Ellen saw his big bay horse, saddled, with pack and blanket, tied there in the shade of a spruce. With swift hands Colter untied him and mounted him, scarcely moving his piercing gaze from Ellen. He reached to grasp her. “Up with y’u! ... Put your foot in the stirrup!” His will, like his powerful arm, was irresistible for Ellen at that moment. She found herself swung up behind him. Then the horse plunged away. What with the hard motion and Colter’s iron grasp on her Ellen was in a painful position. Her knees and feet came into violent contact with branches and snags. He galloped the horse, tearing through the dense thicket of willows that served to hide the entrance to the side canyon, and when out in the larger and more open canyon he urged him to a run. Presently when Colter put the horse to a slow rise of ground, thereby bringing him to a walk, it was just in time to save Ellen a serious bruising. Again the sunlight appeared to shade over. They were in the pines. Suddenly with backward lunge Colter halted the horse. Ellen heard a yell. She recognized Queen’s voice.

Colter laughed at the complete absurdity of her plea and claim. Suddenly, he set her down on her feet. “Stand still,” he commanded. Ellen saw his big bay horse, saddled with a pack and blanket, tied up in the shade of a spruce tree. With quick hands, Colter untied him and climbed on, hardly taking his intense gaze off Ellen. He reached out to grab her. “Up with you! ... Put your foot in the stirrup!” His determination, like his strong arm, was impossible for Ellen to resist at that moment. She found herself pulled up behind him. Then the horse took off. With the jerky motion and Colter’s firm hold on her, Ellen found herself in a painful position. Her knees and feet hit branches and snags painfully. He galloped the horse, crashing through the thick brush of willows that hid the entrance to the side canyon, and once out in the larger, more open canyon, he urged the horse to run. Eventually, when Colter guided the horse to a slow incline and brought him to a walk, it was just in time to prevent Ellen from getting seriously bruised. Again, the sunlight seemed to dim. They were among the pines. Suddenly, with a sharp pull, Colter stopped the horse. Ellen heard a yell. She recognized Queen’s voice.

“Turn back, Colter! Turn back!”

“Turn around, Colter! Turn back!”

With an oath Colter wheeled his mount. “If I didn’t run plump into them,” he ejaculated, harshly. And scarcely had the goaded horse gotten a start when a shot rang out. Ellen felt a violent shock, as if her momentum had suddenly met with a check, and then she felt herself wrenched from Colter, from the saddle, and propelled into the air. She alighted on soft ground and thick grass, and was unhurt save for the violent wrench and shaking that had rendered her breathless. Before she could rise Colter was pulling at her, lifting her to her feet. She saw the horse lying with bloody head. Tall pines loomed all around. Another rifle cracked. “Run!” hissed Colter, and he bounded off, dragging her by the hand. Another yell pealed out. “Here we are, Colter!”. Again it was Queen’s shrill voice. Ellen ran with all her might, her heart in her throat, her sight failing to record more than a blur of passing pines and a blank green wall of spruce. Then she lost her balance, was falling, yet could not fall because of that steel grip on her hand, and was dragged, and finally carried, into a dense shade. She was blinded. The trees whirled and faded. Voices and shots sounded far away. Then something black seemed to be wiped across her feeling.

With a curse, Colter turned his horse around. “If I hadn’t run straight into them,” he shouted harshly. Just as the agitated horse got moving, a shot rang out. Ellen felt a jolt, as if her momentum had suddenly been halted, and then she found herself yanked away from Colter, thrown off the saddle, and sent flying through the air. She landed on soft ground covered in thick grass, and was unhurt except for the painful jolt and shaking that left her breathless. Before she could get up, Colter was pulling her up, helping her to her feet. She saw the horse lying there with a bloody head. Tall pines loomed all around. Another gunshot fired. “Run!” hissed Colter, and he took off, dragging her along by the hand. Another yell rang out. “Here we are, Colter!” It was Queen’s shrill voice again. Ellen ran as fast as she could, her heart racing, her vision unable to register more than a blur of passing pines and a solid green wall of spruce. Then she lost her footing, was falling, but couldn’t fall because of that iron grip on her hand, and was pulled, and finally carried, into a deep shade. She was blinded. The trees spun and faded away. Voices and gunshots sounded far off. Then something dark seemed to sweep across her senses.

It turned to gray, to moving blankness, to dim, hazy objects, spectral and tall, like blanketed trees, and when Ellen fully recovered consciousness she was being carried through the forest.

It faded to gray, to a shifting emptiness, to dim, blurry shapes, ghostly and tall, like covered trees, and when Ellen fully regained her awareness, she was being carried through the woods.

“Wal, little one, that was a close shave for y’u,” said Colter’s hard voice, growing clearer. “Reckon your keelin’ over was natural enough.”

“Well, little one, that was a close call for you,” said Colter’s harsh voice, becoming clearer. “I guess your passing out was pretty natural.”

He held her lightly in both arms, her head resting above his left elbow. Ellen saw his face as a gray blur, then taking sharper outline, until it stood out distinctly, pale and clammy, with eyes cold and wonderful in their intense flare. As she gazed upward Colter turned his head to look back through the woods, and his motion betrayed a keen, wild vigilance. The veins of his lean, brown neck stood out like whipcords. Two comrades were stalking beside him. Ellen heard their stealthy steps, and she felt Colter sheer from one side or the other. They were proceeding cautiously, fearful of the rear, but not wholly trusting to the fore.

He held her gently in both arms, her head resting above his left elbow. Ellen saw his face as a gray blur, then it began to come into focus until it was clearly defined, pale and clammy, with cold, intense eyes that were strikingly bright. As she looked up, Colter turned his head to glance back through the woods, and his movement revealed a sharp, wild alertness. The veins in his lean, brown neck stood out like cords. Two companions were stalking beside him. Ellen heard their quiet footsteps, and she sensed Colter shift from one side to the other. They moved carefully, wary of what was behind them, but not completely trusting what lay ahead.

“Reckon we’d better go slow an’ look before we leap,” said one whose voice Ellen recognized as Springer’s.

“Looks like we should take it slow and check things out before we jump in,” said one whose voice Ellen recognized as Springer’s.

“Shore. That open slope ain’t to my likin’, with our Nez Perce friend prowlin’ round,” drawled Colter, as he set Ellen down on her feet.

“Sure. That open slope doesn’t sit well with me, with our Nez Perce friend wandering around,” Colter said slowly as he set Ellen down on her feet.

Another of the rustlers laughed. “Say, can’t he twinkle through the forest? I had four shots at him. Harder to hit than a turkey runnin’ crossways.”

Another of the rustlers laughed. “Hey, can’t he move through the forest? I took four shots at him. Harder to hit than a turkey running sideways.”

This facetious speaker was the evil-visaged, sardonic Somers. He carried two rifles and wore two belts of cartridges.

This sarcastic speaker was the grim-faced, cynical Somers. He carried two rifles and wore two ammunition belts.

“Ellen, shore y’u ain’t so daid white as y’u was,” observed Colter, and he chucked her under the chin with familiar hand. “Set down heah. I don’t want y’u stoppin’ any bullets. An’ there’s no tellin’.”

“Ellen, you sure aren’t as pale as you used to be,” Colter remarked, giving her a playful nudge under the chin. “Sit down here. I don’t want you getting caught in the crossfire. And who knows what could happen.”

Ellen was glad to comply with his wish. She had begun to recover wits and strength, yet she still felt shaky. She observed that their position then was on the edge of a well-wooded slope from which she could see the grassy canyon floor below. They were on a level bench, projecting out from the main canyon wall that loomed gray and rugged and pine fringed. Somers and Cotter and Springer gave careful attention to all points of the compass, especially in the direction from which they had come. They evidently anticipated being trailed or circled or headed off, but did not manifest much concern. Somers lit a cigarette; Springer wiped his face with a grimy hand and counted the shells in his belt, which appeared to be half empty. Colter stretched his long neck like a vulture and peered down the slope and through the aisles of the forest up toward the canyon rim.

Ellen was happy to go along with his request. She had started to regain her composure and strength, but she still felt a bit unsteady. She noticed that they were positioned on the edge of a densely wooded slope, from where she could see the grassy canyon floor below. They were on a flat ledge that jutted out from the main canyon wall, which was gray, rugged, and lined with pine trees. Somers, Cotter, and Springer scanned all around, particularly in the direction they had come from. They clearly expected to be followed or intercepted but didn’t show much worry. Somers lit a cigarette; Springer wiped his face with a dirty hand and counted the shells in his belt, which looked to be half empty. Colter stretched his long neck like a vulture and looked down the slope and through the tree gaps up toward the canyon rim.

“Listen!” he said, tersely, and bent his head a little to one side, ear to the slight breeze.

“Listen!” he said sharply, tilting his head slightly to one side, ear turned toward the gentle breeze.

They all listened. Ellen heard the beating of her heart, the rustle of leaves, the tapping of a woodpecker, and faint, remote sounds that she could not name.

They all listened. Ellen heard her heart beating, the rustling of leaves, the tapping of a woodpecker, and faint, distant sounds that she couldn’t identify.

“Deer, I reckon,” spoke up Somers.

"Deer, I guess," Somers said.

“Ahuh! Wal, I reckon they ain’t trailin’ us yet,” replied Colter. “We gave them a shade better ’n they sent us.”

“Yeah! Well, I don't think they’re following us yet,” replied Colter. “We gave them a bit better than they gave us.”

“Short an’ sweet!” ejaculated Springer, and he removed his black sombrero to poke a dirty forefinger through a buffet hole in the crown. “Thet’s how close I come to cashin’. I was lyin’ behind a log, listenin’ an’ watchin’, an’ when I stuck my head up a little—zam! Somebody made my bonnet leak.”

“Short and sweet!” exclaimed Springer, and he took off his black sombrero to poke a dirty finger through a hole in the crown. “That’s how close I was to cashing in. I was lying behind a log, listening and watching, and when I lifted my head a bit—bam! Someone made my hat leak.”

“Where’s Queen?” asked Colter.

“Where’s the Queen?” asked Colter.

“He was with me fust off,” replied Somers. “An’ then when the shootin’ slacked—after I’d plugged thet big, red-faced, white-haired pal of Isbel’s—”

“He was with me at first,” replied Somers. “And then when the shooting slowed down—after I’d taken out that big, red-faced, white-haired buddy of Isbel’s—”

“Reckon thet was Blaisdell,” interrupted Springer.

“Think that was Blaisdell,” interrupted Springer.

“Queen—he got tired layin’ low,” went on Somers. “He wanted action. I heerd him chewin’ to himself, an’ when I asked him what was eatin’ him he up an’ growled he was goin’ to quit this Injun fightin’. An’ he slipped off in the woods.”

“Queen—he got tired of staying low,” Somers continued. “He wanted some action. I heard him mumbling to himself, and when I asked him what was bothering him, he snapped and said he was going to quit this Indian fighting. Then he slipped off into the woods.”

“Wal, that’s the gun fighter of it,” declared Colter, wagging his head, “Ever since that cowman, Blue, braced us an’ said he was King Fisher, why Queen has been sulkier an’ sulkier. He cain’t help it. He’ll do the same trick as Blue tried. An’ shore he’ll get his everlastin’. But he’s the Texas breed all right.”

“Yeah, that’s the reality of it,” Colter said, shaking his head. “Ever since that rancher, Blue, confronted us and claimed he was King Fisher, Queen has been getting more and more moody. He can’t help it. He’s going to pull the same stunt as Blue did. And he’s definitely going to pay for it in the end. But he’s definitely one of those Texas types.”

“Say, do you reckon Blue really is King Fisher?” queried Somers.

“Hey, do you think Blue is really King Fisher?” asked Somers.

“Naw!” ejaculated Colter, with downward sweep of his hand. “Many a would-be gun slinger has borrowed Fisher’s name. But Fisher is daid these many years.”

“Nah!” Colter said, waving his hand down. “Lots of would-be gun slingers have borrowed Fisher’s name. But Fisher has been dead for many years.”

“Ahuh! Wal, mebbe, but don’t you fergit it—thet Blue was no would-be,” declared Somers. “He was the genuine article.”

“Uh-huh! Well, maybe, but don’t forget—it’s that Blue was no wannabe,” declared Somers. “He was the real deal.”

“I should smile!” affirmed Springer.

“I should smile!” said Springer.

The subject irritated Colter, and he dismissed it with another forcible gesture and a counter question.

The topic annoyed Colter, and he waved it away with another forceful gesture and a pointed question.

“How many left in that Isbel outfit?”

“How many are left in that Isbel outfit?”

“No tellin’. There shore was enough of them,” replied Somers. “Anyhow, the woods was full of flyin’ bullets.... Springer, did you account for any of them?”

“No telling. There sure were enough of them,” replied Somers. “Anyway, the woods were full of flying bullets... Springer, did you account for any of them?”

“Nope—not thet I noticed,” responded Springer, dryly. “I had my chance at the half-breed.... Reckon I was nervous.”

“Nope—not that I noticed,” Springer replied dryly. “I had my chance with the half-breed... I guess I was nervous.”

“Was Slater near you when he yelled out?”

“Was Slater close to you when he shouted?”

“No. He was lyin’ beside Somers.”

“No. He was lying next to Somers.”

“Wasn’t thet a queer way fer a man to act?” broke in Somers. “A bullet hit Slater, cut him down the back as he was lyin’ flat. Reckon it wasn’t bad. But it hurt him so thet he jumped right up an’ staggered around. He made a target big as a tree. An’ mebbe them Isbels didn’t riddle him!”

“Wasn’t that a weird way for a guy to act?” interrupted Somers. “A bullet hit Slater, cut him down the back while he was lying flat. I guess it wasn’t too bad. But it hurt him so much that he jumped right up and staggered around. He was a target as big as a tree. And maybe those Isbels didn’t shoot him full of holes!”

“That was when I got my crack at Bill Isbel,” declared Colter, with grim satisfaction. “When they shot my horse out from under me I had Ellen to think of an’ couldn’t get my rifle. Shore had to run, as yu seen. Wal, as I only had my six-shooter, there was nothin’ for me to do but lay low an’ listen to the sping of lead. Wells was standin’ up behind a tree about thirty yards off. He got plugged, an’ fallin’ over he began to crawl my way, still holdin’ to his rifle. I crawled along the log to meet him. But he dropped aboot half-way. I went on an’ took his rifle an’ belt. When I peeped out from behind a spruce bush then I seen Bill Isbel. He was shootin’ fast, an’ all of them was shootin’ fast. That war, when they had the open shot at Slater.... Wal, I bored Bill Isbel right through his middle. He dropped his rifle an’, all bent double, he fooled around in a circle till he flopped over the Rim. I reckon he’s layin’ right up there somewhere below that daid spruce. I’d shore like to see him.”

“That was when I finally got my chance at Bill Isbel,” Colter said with grim satisfaction. “When they shot my horse out from under me, I had to think about Ellen and couldn’t grab my rifle. I really had no choice but to run, like you saw. Well, since I only had my six-shooter, there was nothing for me to do but stay low and listen to the bullets whizzing by. Wells was standing behind a tree about thirty yards away. He got hit, and as he fell, he started to crawl my way, still clutching his rifle. I crawled along the log to meet him, but he dropped about halfway. I continued on and took his rifle and belt. When I peeked out from behind a spruce bush, that’s when I saw Bill Isbel. He was shooting rapidly, and everyone was shooting quickly. That was during the open shot at Slater... Well, I shot Bill Isbel right through the middle. He dropped his rifle, and all bent over, he spun around in a circle until he fell over the edge. I guess he’s lying somewhere up there below that dead spruce. I’d really like to see him.”

“I Wal, you’d be as crazy as Queen if you tried thet,” declared Somers. “We’re not out of the woods yet.”

“I Wal, you’d be as crazy as Queen if you tried that,” declared Somers. “We’re not out of the woods yet.”

“I reckon not,” replied Colter. “An’ I’ve lost my horse. Where’d y’u leave yours?”

“I don't think so,” replied Colter. “And I’ve lost my horse. Where did you leave yours?”

“They’re down the canyon, below thet willow brake. An’ saddled an’ none of them tied. Reckon we’ll have to look them up before dark.”

“They're down in the canyon, below the willow thicket. And they’re saddled and none of them are tied. I guess we’ll have to find them before dark.”

“Colter, what ’re we goin’ to do?” demanded Springer.

“Colter, what are we going to do?” demanded Springer.

“Wait heah a while—then cross the canyon an’ work round up under the bluff, back to the cabin.”

“Wait here for a bit—then cross the canyon and make your way around under the bluff, back to the cabin.”

“An’ then what?” queried Somers, doubtfully eying Colter.

“Then what?” Somers asked, looking at Colter with uncertainty.

“We’ve got to eat—we’ve got to have blankets,” rejoined Colter, testily. “An’ I reckon we can hide there an’ stand a better show in a fight than runnin’ for it in the woods.”

“We need to eat—we need blankets,” Colter replied irritably. “And I think we can hide there and have a better chance in a fight than running for it in the woods.”

“Wal, I’m givin’ you a hunch thet it looked like you was runnin’ fer it,” retorted Somers.

“Well, I’m giving you a hint that it looked like you were running for it,” retorted Somers.

“Yes, an’ packin’ the girl,” added Springer. “Looks funny to me.”

“Yeah, and taking the girl with us,” added Springer. “Seems strange to me.”

Both rustlers eyed Colter with dark and distrustful glances. What he might have replied never transpired, for the reason that his gaze, always shifting around, had suddenly fixed on something.

Both rustlers looked at Colter with suspicious and wary eyes. What he might have said never happened because his gaze, which was always darting around, suddenly locked onto something.

“Is that a wolf?” he asked, pointing to the Rim.

“Is that a wolf?” he asked, pointing at the Rim.

Both his comrades moved to get in line with his finger. Ellen could not see from her position.

Both of his friends moved to align with his finger. Ellen couldn’t see from where she was.

“Shore thet’s a big lofer,” declared Somers. “Reckon he scented us.”

“Wow, that’s a big guy,” declared Somers. “I bet he caught our scent.”

“There he goes along the Rim,” observed Colter. “He doesn’t act leary. Looks like a good sign to me. Mebbe the Isbels have gone the other way.”

“There he goes along the Rim,” Colter said. “He doesn’t seem worried. Looks like a good sign to me. Maybe the Isbels have gone the other way.”

“Looks bad to me,” rejoined Springer, gloomily.

“Looks bad to me,” replied Springer, gloomily.

“An’ why?” demanded Colter.

"Why?" demanded Colter.

“I seen thet animal. Fust time I reckoned it was a lofer. Second time it was right near them Isbels. An’ I’m damned now if I don’t believe it’s thet half-lofer sheep dog of Gass Isbel’s.”

“I saw that animal. The first time I thought it was a stray. The second time it was right near the Isbels. And I’m damn sure now that it’s that half-stray sheepdog of Gass Isbel’s.”

“Wal, what if it is?”

"Well, what if it is?"

“Ha! ... Shore we needn’t worry about hidin’ out,” replied Springer, sententiously. “With thet dog Jean Isbel could trail a grasshopper.”

“Ha! ... We definitely don’t need to worry about hiding out,” replied Springer, seriously. “With that dog, Jean Isbel could track a grasshopper.”

“The hell y’u say!” muttered Colter. Manifestly such a possibility put a different light upon the present situation. The men grew silent and watchful, occupied by brooding thoughts and vigilant surveillance of all points. Somers slipped off into the brush, soon to return, with intent look of importance.

“The hell you say!” muttered Colter. Clearly, this possibility changed how they viewed the current situation. The men fell silent and alert, lost in deep thought and carefully watching everything around them. Somers sneaked off into the bushes, soon returning with a serious look of importance.

“I heerd somethin’,” he whispered, jerking his thumb backward. “Rollin’ gravel—crackin’ of twigs. No deer! ... Reckon it’d be a good idee for us to slip round acrost this bench.”

“I heard something,” he whispered, pointing his thumb backward. “Rolling gravel—snapping of twigs. No deer!... I think it’d be a good idea for us to sneak around across this ridge.”

“Wal, y’u fellars go, an’ I’ll watch heah,” returned Colter.

“Alright, you guys go ahead, and I’ll stay here,” Colter replied.

“Not much,” said Somers, while Springer leered knowingly.

“Not much,” said Somers, while Springer smirked knowingly.

Colter became incensed, but he did not give way to it. Pondering a moment, he finally turned to Ellen. “Y’u wait heah till I come back. An’ if I don’t come in reasonable time y’u slip across the canyon an’ through the willows to the cabins. Wait till aboot dark.” With that he possessed himself of one of the extra rifles and belts and silently joined his comrades. Together they noiselessly stole into the brush.

Colter got really angry, but he didn’t let it show. After thinking for a moment, he turned to Ellen. “You wait here until I get back. And if I’m not back in a reasonable time, you slip across the canyon and through the willows to the cabins. Wait until about dark.” With that, he grabbed one of the extra rifles and belts and quietly joined his friends. Together, they silently made their way into the brush.

Ellen had no other thought than to comply with Colter’s wishes. There was her wounded uncle who had been left unattended, and she was anxious to get back to him. Besides, if she had wanted to run off from Colter, where could she go? Alone in the woods, she would get lost and die of starvation. Her lot must be cast with the Jorth faction until the end. That did not seem far away.

Ellen couldn’t think about anything other than fulfilling Colter’s wishes. There was her injured uncle who had been left alone, and she was eager to return to him. Besides, if she wanted to escape from Colter, where would she go? Being alone in the woods meant she would get lost and starve. She was stuck with the Jorth faction until the end. That didn’t seem far off.

Her strained attention and suspense made the moments fly. By and by several shots pealed out far across the side canyon on her right, and they were answered by reports sounding closer to her. The fight was on again. But these shots were not repeated. The flies buzzed, the hot sun beat down and sloped to the west, the soft, warm breeze stirred the aspens, the ravens croaked, the red squirrels and blue jays chattered.

Her tense focus and anticipation made the moments fly by. After a while, several gunshots rang out from the side canyon to her right, and they were responded to by sounds that were closer to her. The battle was back on. But those shots weren't repeated. Flies buzzed, the hot sun beat down as it dipped toward the west, a soft, warm breeze rustled the aspens, ravens croaked, and red squirrels and blue jays chattered.

Suddenly a quick, short, yelp electrified Ellen, brought her upright with sharp, listening rigidity. Surely it was not a wolf and hardly could it be a coyote. Again she heard it. The yelp of a sheep dog! She had heard that’ often enough to know. And she rose to change her position so she could command a view of the rocky bluff above. Presently she espied what really appeared to be a big timber wolf. But another yelp satisfied her that it really was a dog. She watched him. Soon it became evident that he wanted to get down over the bluff. He ran to and fro, and then out of sight. In a few moments his yelp sounded from lower down, at the base of the bluff, and it was now the cry of an intelligent dog that was trying to call some one to his aid. Ellen grew convinced that the dog was near where Colter had said Bill Isbel had plunged over the declivity. Would the dog yelp that way if the man was dead? Ellen thought not.

Suddenly, a quick, short yelp jolted Ellen, making her sit up straight, alert and listening intently. Surely it wasn’t a wolf, and it was hard to think it could be a coyote. She heard it again. The yelp of a sheepdog! She recognized it well enough. She stood up to shift her position so she could see the rocky bluff above. Before long, she spotted what looked like a big timber wolf. But another yelp assured her it was indeed a dog. She watched him closely. Soon, it was clear that he wanted to get down the bluff. He dashed back and forth, and then disappeared from view. Moments later, his yelp rang out from further down, at the base of the bluff, and it was now the cry of a smart dog trying to alert someone for help. Ellen became convinced that the dog was near the spot where Colter had said Bill Isbel had fallen. Would the dog be yelping like that if the man were dead? Ellen didn’t think so.

No one came, and the continuous yelping of the dog got on Ellen’s nerves. It was a call for help. And finally she surrendered to it. Since her natural terror when Colter’s horse was shot from under her and she had been dragged away, she had not recovered from fear of the Isbels. But calm consideration now convinced her that she could hardly be in a worse plight in their hands than if she remained in Colter’s. So she started out to find the dog.

No one showed up, and the dog's constant barking was getting on Ellen's nerves. It was a cry for help. Eventually, she gave in to it. Ever since that terrifying moment when Colter's horse was shot out from under her and she was dragged away, she hadn't shaken off her fear of the Isbels. But after thinking it through, she realized that she could hardly be in a worse situation with them than she was with Colter. So she set out to find the dog.

The wooded bench was level for a few hundred yards, and then it began to heave in rugged, rocky bulges up toward the Rim. It did not appear far to where the dog was barking, but the latter part of the distance proved to be a hard climb over jumbled rocks and through thick brush. Panting and hot, she at length reached the base of the bluff, to find that it was not very high.

The wooden bench was flat for a few hundred yards, and then it started to rise in rough, rocky bumps up toward the Rim. It didn't seem far to the spot where the dog was barking, but the final part of the distance turned out to be a challenging climb over scattered rocks and through dense brush. Breathing hard and feeling hot, she finally reached the base of the bluff, only to find that it wasn't very tall.

The dog espied her before she saw him, for he was coming toward her when she discovered him. Big, shaggy, grayish white and black, with wild, keen face and eyes he assuredly looked the reputation Springer had accorded him. But sagacious, guarded as was his approach, he appeared friendly.

The dog spotted her before she noticed him since he was heading her way when she realized he was there. Big, shaggy, grayish-white and black, with a wild, sharp face and eyes, he definitely lived up to the reputation Springer had given him. But clever and cautious in his approach, he seemed friendly.

“Hello—doggie!” panted Ellen. “What’s—wrong—up heah?”

“Hey there, doggy!” panted Ellen. “What’s wrong up here?”

He yelped, his ears lost their stiffness, his body sank a little, and his bushy tail wagged to and fro. What a gray, clear, intelligent look he gave her! Then he trotted back.

He yelped, his ears relaxed, his body sank a little, and his fluffy tail wagged back and forth. What a gray, clear, intelligent look he gave her! Then he trotted back.

Ellen followed him around a corner of bluff to see the body of a man lying on his back. Fresh earth and gravel lay about him, attesting to his fall from above. He had on neither coat nor hat, and the position of his body and limbs suggested broken bones. As Ellen hurried to his side she saw that the front of his shirt, low down, was a bloody blotch. But he could lift his head; his eyes were open; he was perfectly conscious. Ellen did not recognize the dusty, skinned face, yet the mold of features, the look of the eyes, seemed strangely familiar.

Ellen turned a corner and saw a man lying on his back. Fresh dirt and gravel were scattered around him, showing he had fallen from above. He wasn't wearing a coat or hat, and the way his body and limbs were positioned suggested he might have broken bones. As Ellen rushed to his side, she noticed a bloody stain on the front of his shirt near the bottom. But he could lift his head; his eyes were open; he was fully conscious. Ellen didn't recognize the dusty, scraped face, but the shape of his features and the look in his eyes felt oddly familiar.

“You’re—Jorth’s—girl,” he said, in faint voice of surprise.

“You’re—Jorth’s—girl,” he said, with a hint of surprise in his voice.

“Yes, I’m Ellen Jorth,” she replied. “An’ are y’u Bill Isbel?”

“Yes, I’m Ellen Jorth,” she said. “And are you Bill Isbel?”

“All thet’s left of me. But I’m thankin’ God somebody come—even a Jorth.”

“All that’s left of me. But I’m thanking God someone came—even a Jorth.”

Ellen knelt beside him and examined the wound in his abdomen. A heavy bullet had indeed, as Colter had avowed, torn clear through his middle. Even if he had not sustained other serious injury from the fall over the cliff, that terrible bullet wound meant death very shortly. Ellen shuddered. How inexplicable were men! How cruel, bloody, mindless!

Ellen knelt beside him and looked at the wound in his abdomen. A heavy bullet had indeed, as Colter had claimed, torn right through his middle. Even if he hadn’t suffered any other serious injuries from the fall over the cliff, that terrible bullet wound meant death was imminent. Ellen shuddered. How inexplicable men were! How cruel, bloody, and mindless!

“Isbel, I’m sorry—there’s no hope,” she said, low voiced. “Y’u’ve not long to live. I cain’t help y’u. God knows I’d do so if I could.”

“Isbel, I’m sorry—there’s no hope,” she said softly. “You haven’t got long to live. I can’t help you. God knows I would if I could.”

“All over!” he sighed, with his eyes looking beyond her. “I reckon—I’m glad.... But y’u can—do somethin’ for or me. Will y’u?”

“All over!” he sighed, his eyes gazing past her. “I guess—I’m glad.... But you can—do something for me. Will you?”

“Indeed, Yes. Tell me,” she replied, lifting his dusty head on her knee. Her hands trembled as she brushed his wet hair back from his clammy brow.

“Of course, yes. Go ahead,” she said, lifting his dusty head onto her knee. Her hands shook as she pushed his damp hair back from his cold forehead.

“I’ve somethin’—on my conscience,” he whispered.

“I have something—on my conscience,” he whispered.

The woman, the sensitive in Ellen, understood and pitied him then.

The woman, the sensitive one in Ellen, understood and felt sorry for him then.

“Yes,” she encouraged him.

“Yes,” she cheered him on.

“I stole cattle—my dad’s an’ Blaisdell’s—an’ made deals—with Daggs.... All the crookedness—wasn’t on—Jorth’s side.... I want—my brother Jean—to know.”

“I took cattle—my dad’s and Blaisdell’s—and made deals—with Daggs.... All the dishonesty—wasn’t on—Jorth’s side.... I want—my brother Jean—to know.”

“I’ll try—to tell him,” whispered Ellen, out of her great amaze.

"I'll try—to tell him," Ellen whispered, still in shock.

“We were all—a bad lot—except Jean,” went on Isbel. “Dad wasn’t fair.... God! how he hated Jorth! Jorth, yes, who was—your father.... Wal, they’re even now.”

“We were all a terrible bunch—except for Jean,” Isbel continued. “Dad wasn’t fair.... Wow! how he hated Jorth! Jorth, yes, who was—your father.... Well, they’re even now.”

“How—so?” faltered Ellen.

“How—so?” hesitated Ellen.

“Your father killed dad.... At the last—dad wanted to—save us. He sent word—he’d meet him—face to face—an’ let thet end the feud. They met out in the road.... But some one shot dad down—with a rifle—an’ then your father finished him.”

“Your dad killed my dad.... In the end—my dad wanted to—save us. He sent word—he’d meet him—face to face—and let that end the feud. They met out on the road.... But someone shot my dad down—with a rifle—and then your dad finished him.”

“An’ then, Isbel,” added Ellen, with unconscious mocking bitterness, “Your brother murdered my dad!”

“Then, Isbel,” Ellen added, with an unintentional mocking bitterness, “your brother killed my dad!”

“What!” whispered Bill Isbel. “Shore y’u’ve got—it wrong. I reckon Jean—could have killed—your father.... But he didn’t. Queer, we all thought.”

"What!" whispered Bill Isbel. "You’ve got it wrong. I think Jean could have killed your father.... But he didn't. Strange, we all thought."

“Ah! ... Who did kill my father?” burst out Ellen, and her voice rang like great hammers at her ears.

“Ah! ... Who killed my dad?” Ellen exclaimed, and her voice echoed like heavy hammers in her ears.

“It was Blue. He went in the store—alone—faced the whole gang alone. Bluffed them—taunted them—told them he was King Fisher.... Then he killed—your dad—an’ Jackson Jorth.... Jean was out—back of the store. We were out—front. There was shootin’. Colmor was hit. Then Blue ran out—bad hurt.... Both of them—died in Meeker’s yard.”

“It was Blue. He went into the store—by himself—faced the whole gang on his own. He bluffed them—taunted them—told them he was King Fisher.... Then he killed—your dad—and Jackson Jorth.... Jean was out—behind the store. We were out—front. There was shooting. Colmor got hit. Then Blue ran out—badly hurt.... Both of them—died in Meeker’s yard.”

“An’ so Jean Isbel has not killed a Jorth!” said Ellen, in strange, deep voice.

“Then Jean Isbel hasn’t killed a Jorth!” said Ellen, in a strange, deep voice.

“No,” replied Isbel, earnestly. “I reckon this feud—was hardest on Jean. He never lived heah.... An’ my sister Ann said—he got sweet on y’u.... Now did he?”

“No,” Isbel replied seriously. “I think this feud hit Jean the hardest. He never lived here... And my sister Ann said he had a crush on you... Did he?”

Slow, stinging tears filled Ellen’s eyes, and her head sank low and lower.

Slow, stinging tears filled Ellen’s eyes, and her head dropped lower and lower.

“Yes—he did,” she murmured, tremulously.

“Yes—he did,” she whispered, nervously.

“Ahuh! Wal, thet accounts,” replied Isbel, wonderingly. “Too bad! ... It might have been.... A man always sees—different when—he’s dyin’.... If I had—my life—to live over again! ... My poor kids—deserted in their babyhood—ruined for life! All for nothin’.... May God forgive—”

“Ahuh! Well, that makes sense,” Isbel replied, amazed. “Too bad! ... It could have been.... A person always sees—things differently when—they’re dying.... If I could—live my life over again! ... My poor kids—abandoned in their childhood—ruined for life! All for nothing.... May God forgive—”

Then he choked and whispered for water.

Then he gasped and quietly asked for water.

Ellen laid his head back and, rising, she took his sombrero and started hurriedly down the slope, making dust fly and rocks roll. Her mind was a seething ferment. Leaping, bounding, sliding down the weathered slope, she gained the bench, to run across that, and so on down into the open canyon to the willow-bordered brook. Here she filled the sombrero with water and started back, forced now to walk slowly and carefully. It was then, with the violence and fury of intense muscular activity denied her, that the tremendous import of Bill Isbel’s revelation burst upon her very flesh and blood and transfiguring the very world of golden light and azure sky and speaking forestland that encompassed her.

Ellen leaned his head back and, standing up, she grabbed his sombrero and quickly made her way down the slope, kicking up dust and sending rocks tumbling. Her mind was in a frenzy. Jumping, bounding, and sliding down the worn slope, she reached the bench, ran across it, and continued down into the open canyon towards the brook lined with willows. Here, she filled the sombrero with water and started back, now having to walk slowly and carefully. It was then, with the intensity and energy of her activity stripped away, that the weight of Bill Isbel’s revelation hit her deeply, transforming her perception of the brilliant light, clear blue sky, and the vibrant forest around her.

Not a drop of the precious water did she spill. Not a misstep did she make. Yet so great was the spell upon her that she was not aware she had climbed the steep slope until the dog yelped his welcome. Then with all the flood of her emotion surging and resurging she knelt to allay the parching thirst of this dying enemy whose words had changed frailty to strength, hate to love, and, the gloomy hell of despair to something unutterable. But she had returned too late. Bill Isbel was dead.

Not a drop of the precious water did she spill. Not a single misstep did she take. Yet the spell on her was so strong that she didn't realize she had climbed the steep slope until the dog barked in greeting. Then, with her emotions surging and flowing, she knelt to quench the thirst of this dying enemy whose words had transformed weakness into strength, hate into love, and the dark hell of despair into something indescribable. But she had come back too late. Bill Isbel was dead.




CHAPTER XIII

Jean Isbel, holding the wolf-dog Shepp in leash, was on the trail of the most dangerous of Jorth’s gang, the gunman Queen. Dark drops of blood on the stones and plain tracks of a rider’s sharp-heeled boots behind coverts indicated the trail of a wounded, slow-traveling fugitive. Therefore, Jean Isbel held in the dog and proceeded with the wary eye and watchful caution of an Indian.

Jean Isbel, with the wolf-dog Shepp on a leash, was tracking the most dangerous member of Jorth’s gang, the gunman Queen. Dark drops of blood on the ground and clear marks from a rider’s sharp-heeled boots in the bushes showed the path of a wounded fugitive moving slowly. Because of this, Jean Isbel kept the dog close and moved with the careful eyes and alert caution of a Native American.

Queen, true to his class, and emulating Blue with the same magnificent effrontery and with the same paralyzing suddenness of surprise, had appeared as if by magic at the last night camp of the Isbel faction. Jean had seen him first, in time to leap like a panther into the shadow. But he carried in his shoulder Queen’s first bullet of that terrible encounter. Upon Gordon and Fredericks fell the brunt of Queen’s fusillade. And they, shot to pieces, staggering and falling, held passionate grip on life long enough to draw and still Queen’s guns and send him reeling off into the darkness of the forest.

Queen, staying true to his nature and mirroring Blue with the same impressive boldness and shocking suddenness, had appeared seemingly out of nowhere at the last night camp of the Isbel group. Jean spotted him first, just in time to leap like a panther into the shadows. But he bore Queen’s first shot from that dreadful encounter in his shoulder. Gordon and Fredericks took the brunt of Queen’s gunfire. Although they were shot up, staggering, and falling, they held onto life fiercely long enough to draw their weapons and silence Queen’s guns, sending him reeling off into the darkness of the forest.

Unarmed, and hindered by a painful wound, Jean had kept a vigil near camp all that silent and menacing night. Morning disclosed Gordon and Fredericks stark and ghastly beside the burned-out camp-fire, their guns clutched immovably in stiffened hands. Jean buried them as best he could, and when they were under ground with flat stones on their graves he knew himself to be indeed the last of the Isbel clan. And all that was wild and savage in his blood and desperate in his spirit rose to make him more than man and less than human. Then for the third time during these tragic last days the wolf-dog Shepp came to him.

Unarmed and struggling with a painful wound, Jean had kept watch near the camp all throughout that quiet and threatening night. Morning revealed Gordon and Fredericks, pale and lifeless next to the charred campfire, their guns firmly gripped in stiffened hands. Jean buried them as best as he could, and when they were covered with flat stones marking their graves, he realized he was truly the last of the Isbel clan. All the wildness and savagery in his blood and desperation in his spirit surged, making him more than just a man and less than human. Then, for the third time during these tragic last days, the wolf-dog Shepp came to him.

Jean washed the wound Queen had given him and bound it tightly. The keen pang and burn of the lead was a constant and all-powerful reminder of the grim work left for him to do. The whole world was no longer large enough for him and whoever was left of the Jorths. The heritage of blood his father had bequeathed him, the unshakable love for a worthless girl who had so dwarfed and obstructed his will and so bitterly defeated and reviled his poor, romantic, boyish faith, the killing of hostile men, so strange in its after effects, the pursuits and fights, and loss of one by one of his confederates—these had finally engendered in Jean Isbel a wild, unslakable thirst, these had been the cause of his retrogression, these had unalterably and ruthlessly fixed in his darkened mind one fierce passion—to live and die the last man of that Jorth-Isbel feud.

Jean cleaned the wound Queen had given him and wrapped it tightly. The sharp sting and burn from the lead served as a constant reminder of the grim task ahead. The world felt too small for him and what was left of the Jorths. The legacy of blood his father left him, the unshakeable love for a worthless girl who had so undermined his will and so cruelly shattered his naive, romantic beliefs, the killing of enemies, so strange in its aftermath, the endless struggles and losses of his comrades—these had created in Jean Isbel a wild, unquenchable thirst; these had caused his regression, and they had ruthlessly etched in his darkened mind one intense desire—to live and die as the last man of the Jorth-Isbel feud.

At sunrise Jean left this camp, taking with him only a small knapsack of meat and bread, and with the eager, wild Shepp in leash he set out on Queen’s bloody trail.

At sunrise, Jean left the camp with just a small backpack of meat and bread. With the excited, wild Shepp on a leash, he headed out to follow Queen’s bloody trail.

Black drops of blood on the stones and an irregular trail of footprints proved to Jean that the gunman was hard hit. Here he had fallen, or knelt, or sat down, evidently to bind his wounds. Jean found strips of scarf, red and discarded. And the blood drops failed to show on more rocks. In a deep forest of spruce, under silver-tipped spreading branches, Queen had rested, perhaps slept. Then laboring with dragging steps, not improbably with a lame leg, he had gone on, up out of the dark-green ravine to the open, dry, pine-tipped ridge. Here he had rested, perhaps waited to see if he were pursued. From that point his trail spoke an easy language for Jean’s keen eye. The gunman knew he was pursued. He had seen his enemy. Therefore Jean proceeded with a slow caution, never getting within revolver range of ambush, using all his woodcraft to trail this man and yet save himself. Queen traveled slowly, either because he was wounded or else because he tried to ambush his pursuer, and Jean accommodated his pace to that of Queen. From noon of that day they were never far apart, never out of hearing of a rifle shot.

Black drops of blood on the stones and an uneven trail of footprints showed Jean that the gunman had been badly injured. Here, he had either fallen, knelt, or sat down, clearly to tend to his wounds. Jean found red strips of scarf that had been discarded. The blood drops didn't appear on more rocks. In a deep spruce forest, beneath sprawling silver-tipped branches, Queen had rested, maybe even slept. Then, moving slowly and probably with a limp, he continued up from the dark-green ravine to the open, dry, pine-covered ridge. Here he had rested again, possibly waiting to see if he was being followed. From that point, his trail was clear to Jean's sharp eye. The gunman knew someone was after him. He had spotted his pursuer. So, Jean moved with slow caution, never getting within firing range of a potential ambush, using all his skills to track this man while also keeping himself safe. Queen moved slowly, either because he was injured or because he was trying to set a trap for his pursuer, and Jean matched his pace. From noon that day, they were never far apart, always within earshot of a rifle shot.

The contrast of the beauty and peace and loneliness of the surroundings to the nature of Queen’s flight often obtruded its strange truth into the somber turbulence of Jean’s mind, into that fixed columnar idea around which fleeting thoughts hovered and gathered like shadows.

The contrast between the beauty, peace, and loneliness of the surroundings and the essence of Queen's flight often forced its strange reality into the dark turmoil of Jean's mind, into that solid column of thought around which fleeting ideas hovered and gathered like shadows.

Early frost had touched the heights with its magic wand. And the forest seemed a temple in which man might worship nature and life rather than steal through the dells and under the arched aisles like a beast of prey. The green-and-gold leaves of aspens quivered in the glades; maples in the ravines fluttered their red-and-purple leaves. The needle-matted carpet under the pines vied with the long lanes of silvery grass, alike enticing to the eye of man and beast. Sunny rays of light, flecked with dust and flying insects, slanted down from the overhanging brown-limbed, green-massed foliage. Roar of wind in the distant forest alternated with soft breeze close at hand. Small dove-gray squirrels ran all over the woodland, very curious about Jean and his dog, rustling the twigs, scratching the bark of trees, chattering and barking, frisky, saucy, and bright-eyed. A plaintive twitter of wild canaries came from the region above the treetops—first voices of birds in their pilgrimage toward the south. Pine cones dropped with soft thuds. The blue jays followed these intruders in the forest, screeching their displeasure. Like rain pattered the dropping seeds from the spruces. A woody, earthy, leafy fragrance, damp with the current of life, mingled with a cool, dry, sweet smell of withered grass and rotting pines.

Early frost had touched the heights with its magic wand. And the forest felt like a temple where people could appreciate nature and life instead of sneaking through the glades and under the towering trees like a predator. The green-and-gold leaves of aspens shimmered in the clearings; maples in the ravines waved their red-and-purple leaves. The needle-covered ground under the pines competed with the long stretches of silvery grass, both equally appealing to the eyes of humans and animals. Sunbeams, speckled with dust and flying insects, angled down from the overhanging, brown-barked, leafy trees. The roar of the wind in the distant forest mixed with a gentle breeze nearby. Small dove-gray squirrels scurried all over the woods, curious about Jean and his dog, rustling the twigs, scratching the tree bark, chattering and barking, playful, cheeky, and bright-eyed. A sad twitter of wild canaries came from above the treetops—the first birds to start their journey south. Pine cones dropped with soft thuds. The blue jays chased after these interlopers in the forest, screeching their discontent. Like rain, the dropping seeds from the spruces pattered down. A woody, earthy, leafy scent, mixed with the moistness of life, blended with a cool, dry, sweet smell of withered grass and decaying pines.

Solitude and lonesomeness, peace and rest, wild life and nature, reigned there. It was a golden-green region, enchanting to the gaze of man. An Indian would have walked there with his spirits.

Solitude and loneliness, peace and calm, wild life and nature, reigned there. It was a golden-green area, captivating to the eye. An Indian would have walked there with joy in his heart.

And even as Jean felt all this elevating beauty and inscrutable spirit his keen eye once more fastened upon the blood-red drops Queen had again left on the gray moss and rock. His wound had reopened. Jean felt the thrill of the scenting panther.

And even as Jean experienced all this uplifting beauty and mysterious energy, his sharp eye once again focused on the blood-red drops that Queen had left on the gray moss and rock. His wound had reopened. Jean felt the excitement of the stalking panther.

The sun set, twilight gathered, night fell. Jean crawled under a dense, low-spreading spruce, ate some bread and meat, fed the dog, and lay down to rest and sleep. His thoughts burdened him, heavy and black as the mantle of night. A wolf mourned a hungry cry for a mate. Shepp quivered under Jean’s hand. That was the call which had lured him from the ranch. The wolf blood in him yearned for the wild. Jean tied the cowhide leash to his wrist. When this dark business was at an end Shepp could be free to join the lonely mate mourning out there in the forest. Then Jean slept.

The sun went down, twilight gathered, and night fell. Jean crawled under a thick, low-hanging spruce, ate some bread and meat, fed the dog, and lay down to rest and sleep. His thoughts weighed on him, heavy and dark like the cloak of night. A wolf howled a lonely cry for a mate. Shepp quivered under Jean’s hand. That was the call that had drawn him away from the ranch. The wolf blood in him craved the wild. Jean tied the cowhide leash to his wrist. When this dark task was finished, Shepp could be free to join the lonely mate crying out there in the forest. Then Jean slept.

Dawn broke cold, clear, frosty, with silvered grass sparkling, with a soft, faint rustling of falling aspen leaves. When the sun rose red Jean was again on the trail of Queen. By a frosty-ferned brook, where water tinkled and ran clear as air and cold as ice, Jean quenched his thirst, leaning on a stone that showed drops of blood. Queen, too, had to quench his thirst. What good, what help, Jean wondered, could the cold, sweet, granite water, so dear to woodsmen and wild creatures, do this wounded, hunted rustler? Why did he not wait in the open to fight and face the death he had meted? Where was that splendid and terrible daring of the gunman? Queen’s love of life dragged him on and on, hour by hour, through the pine groves and spruce woods, through the oak swales and aspen glades, up and down the rocky gorges, around the windfalls and over the rotting logs.

Dawn broke cold and clear, with frosty grass sparkling and a soft, faint rustling of falling aspen leaves. When the sun rose red, Jean was back on the trail of Queen. By a frosty, fern-lined brook, where the water tinkled and ran as clear as air and cold as ice, Jean quenched his thirst while leaning on a stone that showed drops of blood. Queen also needed to drink. What good could the cold, sweet water, so cherished by woodsmen and wild animals, do for this wounded, hunted rustler, Jean wondered? Why didn't he wait out in the open to fight and face the death he had dealt? Where was that bold and fearsome courage of the gunman? Queen's love for life pulled him on and on, hour after hour, through the pine groves and spruce forests, through the oak valleys and aspen clearings, up and down the rocky gorges, around the fallen trees and over the rotting logs.

The time came when Queen tried no more ambush. He gave up trying to trap his pursuer by lying in wait. He gave up trying to conceal his tracks. He grew stronger or, in desperation, increased his energy, so that he redoubled his progress through the wilderness. That, at best, would count only a few miles a day. And he began to circle to the northwest, back toward the deep canyon where Blaisdell and Bill Isbel had reached the end of their trails. Queen had evidently left his comrades, had lone-handed it in his last fight, but was now trying to get back to them. Somewhere in these wild, deep forest brakes the rest of the Jorth faction had found a hiding place. Jean let Queen lead him there.

The time came when Queen stopped trying to set traps. He gave up on waiting for his pursuer and trying to hide his tracks. He grew stronger or, out of desperation, pushed himself harder, which only allowed him to make a few miles of progress each day through the wilderness. He began to circle northwest, back toward the deep canyon where Blaisdell and Bill Isbel had met their end. Queen had clearly left his companions, fighting alone in his last struggle, but now he was making an effort to return to them. Somewhere in these dense, wild forest thickets, the rest of the Jorth faction had found a place to hide. Jean let Queen lead him there.

Ellen Jorth would be with them. Jean had seen her. It had been his shot that killed Colter’s horse. And he had withheld further fire because Colter had dragged the girl behind him, protecting his body with hers. Sooner or later Jean would come upon their camp. She would be there. The thought of her dark beauty, wasted in wantonness upon these rustlers, added a deadly rage to the blood lust and righteous wrath of his vengeance. Let her again flaunt her degradation in his face and, by the God she had forsaken, he would kill her, and so end the race of Jorths!

Ellen Jorth would be with them. Jean had seen her. It was his shot that killed Colter’s horse. And he had held back from firing again because Colter had dragged the girl behind him, using her to shield himself. Sooner or later, Jean would come across their camp. She would be there. The thought of her dark beauty, wasted in sin among these outlaws, fueled a deadly rage alongside his thirst for blood and righteous anger for his revenge. Let her once again flaunt her disgrace in front of him and, by the God she abandoned, he would kill her and put an end to the Jorth bloodline!

Another night fell, dark and cold, without starlight. The wind moaned in the forest. Shepp was restless. He sniffed the air. There was a step on his trail. Again a mournful, eager, wild, and hungry wolf cry broke the silence. It was deep and low, like that of a baying hound, but infinitely wilder. Shepp strained to get away. During the night, while Jean slept, he managed to chew the cowhide leash apart and run off.

Another night fell, dark and cold, without any stars. The wind howled in the forest. Shepp was anxious. He sniffed the air. There was a step following him. Again, a mournful, eager, wild, and hungry wolf cry shattered the silence. It was deep and low, like a baying hound, but way wilder. Shepp struggled to escape. During the night, while Jean was sleeping, he managed to chew through the cowhide leash and run away.

Next day no dog was needed to trail Queen. Fog and low-drifting clouds in the forest and a misty rain had put the rustler off his bearings. He was lost, and showed that he realized it. Strange how a matured man, fighter of a hundred battles, steeped in bloodshed, and on his last stand, should grow panic-stricken upon being lost! So Jean Isbel read the signs of the trail.

Next day, no dog was needed to track down Queen. Fog and low-hanging clouds in the forest, along with a light rain, had thrown the rustler off his course. He was lost and it was clear he knew it. It’s odd how a grown man, a veteran of a hundred battles, drenched in bloodshed and facing his last stand, could become so scared when he got lost! That’s how Jean Isbel understood the signs of the trail.

Queen circled and wandered through the foggy, dripping forest until he headed down into a canyon. It was one that notched the Rim and led down and down, mile after mile into the Basin. Not soon had Queen discovered his mistake. When he did do so, night overtook him.

Queen wandered through the misty, dripping forest until he made his way down into a canyon. It was one that carved into the Rim and descended mile after mile into the Basin. It wasn't long before Queen realized his mistake. By the time he figured it out, night had fallen.

The weather cleared before morning. Red and bright the sun burst out of the east to flood that low basin land with light. Jean found that Queen had traveled on and on, hoping, no doubt, to regain what he had lost. But in the darkness he had climbed to the manzanita slopes instead of back up the canyon. And here he had fought the hold of that strange brush of Spanish name until he fell exhausted.

The weather cleared by morning. The sun rose red and bright from the east, flooding the lowlands with light. Jean realized that Queen had kept going, likely hoping to get back what he had lost. But in the darkness, he had climbed up the manzanita slopes instead of making his way back up the canyon. There, he battled against that odd brush with the Spanish name until he collapsed from exhaustion.

Surely Queen would make his stand and wait somewhere in this devilish thicket for Jean to catch up with him. Many and many a place Jean would have chosen had he been in Queen’s place. Many a rock and dense thicket Jean circled or approached with extreme care. Manzanita grew in patches that were impenetrable except for a small animal. The brush was a few feet high, seldom so high that Jean could not look over it, and of a beautiful appearance, having glossy, small leaves, a golden berry, and branches of dark-red color. These branches were tough and unbendable. Every bush, almost, had low branches that were dead, hard as steel, sharp as thorns, as clutching as cactus. Progress was possible only by endless detours to find the half-closed aisles between patches, or else by crashing through with main strength or walking right over the tops. Jean preferred this last method, not because it was the easiest, but for the reason that he could see ahead so much farther. So he literally walked across the tips of the manzanita brush. Often he fell through and had to step up again; many a branch broke with him, letting him down; but for the most part he stepped from fork to fork, on branch after branch, with balance of an Indian and the patience of a man whose purpose was sustaining and immutable.

Surely Queen would choose a spot and wait somewhere in this tricky thicket for Jean to catch up. There were many places Jean would have picked if he were in Queen's shoes. He went around or approached many rocks and thick bushes with extreme caution. Manzanita grew in patches that were impossible to get through unless you were a small animal. The brush stood a few feet high, rarely so high that Jean couldn't see over it, and looked beautiful with its shiny, small leaves, golden berries, and dark-red branches. These branches were tough and unbendable. Almost every bush had low branches that were dead, hard as steel, sharp as thorns, and prickly like cactus. Progress was only possible by taking endless detours to find narrow paths between patches or by pushing through with brute strength or walking right over the tops. Jean preferred the last method, not because it was the easiest, but because it allowed him to see much farther ahead. So he literally walked across the tops of the manzanita brush. Often he fell through and had to step back up; many branches broke beneath him, dropping him down, but for the most part, he balanced from branch to branch with the grace of an Indian and the patience of a man whose resolve was strong and unwavering.

On that south slope under the Rim the sun beat down hot. There was no breeze to temper the dry air. And before midday Jean was laboring, wet with sweat, parching with thirst, dusty and hot and tiring. It amazed him, the doggedness and tenacity of life shown by this wounded rustler. The time came when under the burning rays of the sun he was compelled to abandon the walk across the tips of the manzanita bushes and take to the winding, open threads that ran between. It would have been poor sight indeed that could not have followed Queen’s labyrinthine and broken passage through the brush. Then the time came when Jean espied Queen, far ahead and above, crawling like a black bug along the bright-green slope. Sight then acted upon Jean as upon a hound in the chase. But he governed his actions if he could not govern his instincts. Slowly but surely he followed the dusty, hot trail, and never a patch of blood failed to send a thrill along his veins.

On that southern slope under the Rim, the sun beat down fiercely. There was no breeze to cool the dry air. By midday, Jean was working hard, drenched in sweat, parched with thirst, dusty, hot, and exhausted. He was amazed by the stubbornness and resilience of life shown by this injured rustler. Eventually, under the scorching sun, he had to give up walking across the tips of the manzanita bushes and take to the winding open paths that ran between them. It would have been hard to miss Queen’s winding and broken route through the brush. Then Jean spotted Queen, far ahead and above, crawling like a black bug along the bright green slope. Sight stimulated Jean like it would a hound on a chase. But he controlled his actions even if he couldn't control his instincts. Slowly but surely, he followed the dusty, hot trail, and every patch of blood sent a thrill through his veins.

Queen, headed up toward the Rim, finally vanished from sight. Had he fallen? Was he hiding? But the hour disclosed that he was crawling. Jean’s keen eye caught the slow moving of the brush and enabled him to keep just so close to the rustler, out of range of the six-shooters he carried. And so all the interminable hours of the hot afternoon that snail-pace flight and pursuit kept on.

Queen, moving up toward the Rim, eventually disappeared from view. Had he fallen? Was he hiding? But the hour revealed that he was crawling. Jean’s sharp eye noticed the slow movement of the brush, allowing him to stay just close enough to the rustler, out of range of the six-shooters he carried. Thus, the endless hours of the hot afternoon were filled with that slow-paced flight and pursuit.

Halfway up the Rim the growth of manzanita gave place to open, yellow, rocky slope dotted with cedars. Queen took to a slow-ascending ridge and left his bloody tracks all the way to the top, where in the gathering darkness the weary pursuer lost them.

Halfway up the Rim, the manzanita gave way to an open, yellow, rocky slope sprinkled with cedars. Queen followed a gradually ascending ridge, leaving his bloody tracks all the way to the top, where, in the fading light, the tired pursuer lost them.

Another night passed. Daylight was relentless to the rustler. He could not hide his trail. But somehow in a desperate last rally of strength he reached a point on the heavily timbered ridge that Jean recognized as being near the scene of the fight in the canyon. Queen was nearing the rendezvous of the rustlers. Jean crossed tracks of horses, and then more tracks that he was certain had been made days past by his own party. To the left of this ridge must be the deep canyon that had frustrated his efforts to catch up with the rustlers on the day Blaisdell lost his life, and probably Bill Isbel, too. Something warned Jean that he was nearing the end of the trail, and an unaccountable sense of imminent catastrophe seemed foreshadowed by vague dreads and doubts in his gloomy mind. Jean felt the need of rest, of food, of ease from the strain of the last weeks. But his spirit drove him implacably.

Another night went by. Daylight was unforgiving to the rustler. He couldn’t conceal his trail. But somehow, in a desperate final burst of strength, he reached a spot on the heavily wooded ridge that Jean recognized as being close to where the fight in the canyon had taken place. Queen was approaching the rustlers' meeting point. Jean came across horse tracks, and then more tracks that he was sure had been made days earlier by his own group. To the left of this ridge should be the deep canyon that had thwarted his attempts to catch up with the rustlers on the day Blaisdell lost his life, and probably Bill Isbel, too. Something warned Jean that he was coming to the end of the trail, and an unexplained sense of looming disaster seemed suggested by vague fears and uncertainties in his troubled mind. Jean felt the need for rest, food, and relief from the strain of the past weeks. But his spirit pushed him forward relentlessly.

Queen’s rally of strength ended at the edge of an open, bald ridge that was bare of brush or grass and was surrounded by a line of forest on three sides, and on the fourth by a low bluff which raised its gray head above the pines. Across this dusty open Queen had crawled, leaving unmistakable signs of his condition. Jean took long survey of the circle of trees and of the low, rocky eminence, neither of which he liked. It might be wiser to keep to cover, Jean thought, and work around to where Queen’s trail entered the forest again. But he was tired, gloomy, and his eternal vigilance was failing. Nevertheless, he stilled for the thousandth time that bold prompting of his vengeance and, taking to the edge of the forest, he went to considerable pains to circle the open ground. And suddenly sight of a man sitting back against a tree halted Jean.

Queen’s rally of strength came to an end at the edge of an open, bare ridge that had no brush or grass and was surrounded by a line of trees on three sides, with a low bluff on the fourth that rose its gray head above the pines. Across this dusty space, Queen had crawled, leaving clear signs of his condition. Jean took a long look at the circle of trees and the low, rocky hill, neither of which he liked. It might be smarter to stay in cover, Jean thought, and make his way back to where Queen’s trail entered the forest again. But he was tired, gloomy, and his constant vigilance was slipping. Still, he pushed down the intense urge for revenge for the thousandth time and, moving to the edge of the forest, he took extra care to go around the open ground. Then suddenly, he spotted a man sitting against a tree, which stopped Jean in his tracks.

He stared to make sure his eyes did not deceive him. Many times stumps and snags and rocks had taken on strange resemblance to a standing or crouching man. This was only another suggestive blunder of the mind behind his eyes—what he wanted to see he imagined he saw. Jean glided on from tree to tree until he made sure that this sitting image indeed was that of a man. He sat bolt upright, facing back across the open, hands resting on his knees—and closer scrutiny showed Jean that he held a gun in each hand.

He focused to make sure his eyes weren't playing tricks on him. Many times, stumps, snags, and rocks had looked oddly like a standing or crouching person. This was just another indication of the mind's deception—what he wanted to see, he believed he saw. Jean moved stealthily from tree to tree until he confirmed that this sitting figure was indeed a man. He sat straight up, facing back across the clearing, hands resting on his knees—and a closer look revealed that he held a gun in each hand.

Queen! At the last his nerve had revived. He could not crawl any farther, he could never escape, so with the courage of fatality he chose the open, to face his foe and die. Jean had a thrill of admiration for the rustler. Then he stalked out from under the pines and strode forward with his rifle ready.

Queen! At last, he had found his nerve again. He couldn't crawl any further, and there was no way to escape, so with a sense of unavoidable fate, he decided to confront his enemy and face death. Jean felt a rush of admiration for the rustler. Then he stepped out from under the pines and walked forward with his rifle at the ready.

A watching man could not have failed to espy Jean. But Queen never made the slightest move. Moreover, his stiff, unnatural position struck Jean so singularly that he halted with a muttered exclamation. He was now about fifty paces from Queen, within range of those small guns. Jean called, sharply, “QUEEN!” Still the figure never relaxed in the slightest.

A man watching couldn’t help but see Jean. But Queen didn’t make a single move. Furthermore, his rigid, unnatural stance caught Jean’s attention so much that he stopped with a quiet exclamation. He was now about fifty paces from Queen, within range of those small guns. Jean called out sharply, “QUEEN!” Still, the figure didn’t budge at all.

Jean advanced a few more paces, rifle up, ready to fire the instant Queen lifted a gun. The man’s immobility brought the cold sweat to Jean’s brow. He stopped to bend the full intense power of his gaze upon this inert figure. Suddenly over Jean flashed its meaning. Queen was dead. He had backed up against the pine, ready to face his foe, and he had died there. Not a shadow of a doubt entered Jean’s mind as he started forward again. He knew. After all, Queen’s blood would not be on his hands. Gordon and Fredericks in their death throes had given the rustler mortal wounds. Jean kept on, marveling the while. How ghastly thin and hard! Those four days of flight had been hell for Queen.

Jean took a few more steps, rifle aimed, ready to shoot the moment Queen raised a gun. The man’s stillness made cold sweat break out on Jean’s forehead. He paused to focus his intense gaze on this lifeless figure. Suddenly, it hit Jean—Queen was dead. He had backed against the pine tree, prepared to confront his enemy, and he had died there. Without a doubt in his mind, Jean moved forward again. He was sure. After all, Queen’s blood wouldn’t be on his hands. Gordon and Fredericks, in their final moments, had dealt the rustler fatal wounds. Jean continued on, marveling at how gaunt and hard Queen looked. Those four days of fleeing had been hell for him.

Jean reached him—looked down with staring eyes. The guns were tied to his hands. Jean started violently as the whole direction of his mind shifted. A lightning glance showed that Queen had been propped against the tree—another showed boot tracks in the dust.

Jean reached him—looked down with wide eyes. The guns were tied to his hands. Jean flinched as his mind completely shifted. A quick glance revealed that Queen had been propped against the tree—another glance showed boot tracks in the dust.

“By Heaven, they’ve fooled me!” hissed Jean, and quickly as he leaped behind the pine he was not quick enough to escape the cunning rustlers who had waylaid him thus. He felt the shock, the bite and burn of lead before he heard a rifle crack. A bullet had ripped through his left forearm. From behind the tree he saw a puff of white smoke along the face of the bluff—the very spot his keen and gloomy vigilance had descried as one of menace. Then several puffs of white smoke and ringing reports betrayed the ambush of the tricksters. Bullets barked the pine and whistled by. Jean saw a man dart from behind a rock and, leaning over, run for another. Jean’s swift shot stopped him midway. He fell, got up, and floundered behind a bush scarcely large enough to conceal him. Into that bush Jean shot again and again. He had no pain in his wounded arm, but the sense of the shock clung in his consciousness, and this, with the tremendous surprise of the deceit, and sudden release of long-dammed overmastering passion, caused him to empty the magazine of his Winchester in a terrible haste to kill the man he had hit.

“By heaven, they tricked me!” hissed Jean, and although he jumped behind the pine tree quickly, it wasn’t quick enough to escape the crafty rustlers who had ambushed him. He felt the shock, the sting, and burn of the bullet before he heard the rifle fire. A bullet had torn through his left forearm. From behind the tree, he saw a puff of white smoke along the face of the bluff—the exact spot his sharp and dark vigilance had identified as dangerous. Then several more puffs of white smoke and the sound of gunfire revealed the ambush of the deceivers. Bullets thudded into the pine and whistled past him. Jean saw a man dart out from behind a rock and, leaning forward, make a run for another. Jean's quick shot stopped him in his tracks. He fell, got up, and stumbled behind a bush that was barely big enough to hide him. Jean shot into that bush again and again. He felt no pain in his wounded arm, but the shock lingered in his mind, and along with the immense betrayal of the deceit and the sudden release of overwhelming passion he had kept in check, he emptied the magazine of his Winchester in a frantic effort to kill the man he had hit.

These were all the loads he had for his rifle. Blood passion had made him blunder. Jean cursed himself, and his hand moved to his belt. His six-shooter was gone. The sheath had been loose. He had tied the gun fast. But the strings had been torn apart. The rustlers were shooting again. Bullets thudded into the pine and whistled by. Bending carefully, Jean reached one of Queen’s guns and jerked it from his hand. The weapon was empty. Both of his guns were empty. Jean peeped out again to get the line in which the bullets were coming and, marking a course from his position to the cover of the forest, he ran with all his might. He gained the shelter. Shrill yells behind warned him that he had been seen, that his reason for flight had been guessed. Looking back, he saw two or three men scrambling down the bluff. Then the loud neigh of a frightened horse pealed out.

These were all the bullets he had for his rifle. Bloodlust had made him careless. Jean cursed himself and reached for his belt. His six-shooter was gone. The holster had been loose. He had secured the gun tightly, but the straps had been torn apart. The rustlers were shooting again. Bullets thudded into the pine trees and whizzed by. Carefully bending down, Jean grabbed one of Queen’s guns and yanked it from his hand. The weapon was empty. Both of his guns were empty. Jean peeked out again to find where the bullets were coming from, and noting a path from his position to the cover of the forest, he ran with all his strength. He reached the shelter. High-pitched shouts behind him warned that he had been spotted, that they had figured out why he was running. Looking back, he saw two or three men scrambling down the hill. Then, the loud neigh of a frightened horse echoed out.

Jean discarded his useless rifle, and headed down the ridge slope, keeping to the thickest line of pines and sheering around the clumps of spruce. As he ran, his mind whirled with grim thoughts of escape, of his necessity to find the camp where Gordon and Fredericks were buried, there to procure another rifle and ammunition. He felt the wet blood dripping down his arm, yet no pain. The forest was too open for good cover. He dared not run uphill. His only course was ahead, and that soon ended in an abrupt declivity too precipitous to descend. As he halted, panting for breath, he heard the ring of hoofs on stone, then the thudding beat of running horses on soft ground. The rustlers had sighted the direction he had taken. Jean did not waste time to look. Indeed, there was no need, for as he bounded along the cliff to the right a rifle cracked and a bullet whizzed over his head. It lent wings to his feet. Like a deer he sped along, leaping cracks and logs and rocks, his ears filled by the rush of wind, until his quick eye caught sight of thick-growing spruce foliage close to the precipice. He sprang down into the green mass. His weight precipitated him through the upper branches. But lower down his spread arms broke his fall, then retarded it until he caught. A long, swaying limb let him down and down, where he grasped another and a stiffer one that held his weight. Hand over hand he worked toward the trunk of this spruce and, gaining it, he found other branches close together down which he hastened, hold by hold and step by step, until all above him was black, dense foliage, and beneath him the brown, shady slope. Sure of being unseen from above, he glided noiselessly down under the trees, slowly regaining freedom from that constriction of his breast.

Jean tossed aside his useless rifle and made his way down the slope, sticking close to the thickest line of pines and dodging the clumps of spruce. As he ran, his mind was filled with desperate thoughts of escape, and the urgent need to find the camp where Gordon and Fredericks were buried, to get another rifle and ammunition. He felt the wet blood trickling down his arm, but felt no pain. The forest was too open for good cover, and he couldn't afford to run uphill. His only option was straight ahead, which soon led to a steep drop too dangerous to descend. As he stopped to catch his breath, he heard the sound of hooves on stone, followed by the thudding of horses running on soft ground. The rustlers had spotted the direction he was headed. Jean didn’t waste time looking back. In fact, there was no need; as he bounded along the cliff to the right, a rifle shot rang out, and a bullet zipped over his head. That made him run even faster. Like a deer, he raced along, jumping over cracks, logs, and rocks, the rush of wind filling his ears, until he spotted thick spruce foliage close to the edge. He jumped into the green mass. His weight sent him crashing through the upper branches, but lower down, his outstretched arms slowed his fall until he managed to catch himself. A long, swaying limb lowered him further, where he grabbed onto another, sturdier branch that supported his weight. He climbed hand over hand toward the trunk of the spruce and, once he reached it, found other closely spaced branches that he hastened down, hold by hold and step by step, until everything above him was dark, thick foliage, and below him was a brown, shaded slope. Confident he wasn’t seen from above, he quietly made his way under the trees, slowly easing the tightness in his chest.

Passing on to a gray-lichened cliff, overhanging and gloomy, he paused there to rest and to listen. A faint crack of hoof on stone came to him from above, apparently farther on to the right. Eventually his pursuers would discover that he had taken to the canyon. But for the moment he felt safe. The wound in his forearm drew his attention. The bullet had gone clear through without breaking either bone. His shirt sleeve was soaked with blood. Jean rolled it back and tightly wrapped his scarf around the wound, yet still the dark-red blood oozed out and dripped down into his hand. He became aware of a dull, throbbing pain.

Passing by a gray-lichen-covered cliff that loomed overhead and felt ominous, he stopped to rest and listen. A faint sound of hooves on stone reached him from above, seemingly further to the right. Sooner or later, his pursuers would realize he had gone into the canyon. But for now, he felt secure. His attention was drawn to the wound on his forearm. The bullet had passed clean through without breaking any bones. His shirt sleeve was soaked in blood. Jean rolled it back and wrapped his scarf tightly around the wound, but still the dark red blood seeped out and dripped into his hand. He became aware of a dull, throbbing pain.

Not much time did Jean waste in arriving at what was best to do. For the time being he had escaped, and whatever had been his peril, it was past. In dense, rugged country like this he could not be caught by rustlers. But he had only a knife left for a weapon, and there was very little meat in the pocket of his coat. Salt and matches he possessed. Therefore the imperative need was for him to find the last camp, where he could get rifle and ammunition, bake bread, and rest up before taking again the trail of the rustlers. He had reason to believe that this canyon was the one where the fight on the Rim, and later, on a bench of woodland below, had taken place.

Not much time did Jean waste figuring out what to do next. For now, he had escaped, and whatever danger he faced was behind him. In this dense, rugged terrain, he couldn't be caught by rustlers. But all he had left for a weapon was a knife, and there was very little meat in his coat pocket. He had salt and matches. So, it was essential for him to find the last camp, where he could get a rifle and ammunition, bake some bread, and rest before setting out again after the rustlers. He had reason to believe that this canyon was where the fight on the Rim, and later on a patch of woodland below, had happened.

Thereupon he arose and glided down under the spruces toward the level, grassy open he could see between the trees. And as he proceeded, with the slow step and wary eye of an Indian, his mind was busy.

Thereupon, he got up and moved quietly under the spruces toward the flat, grassy clearing he could see between the trees. As he went, with the slow step and cautious gaze of a Native American, his mind was occupied.

Queen had in his flight unerringly worked in the direction of this canyon until he became lost in the fog; and upon regaining his bearings he had made a wonderful and heroic effort to surmount the manzanita slope and the Rim and find the rendezvous of his comrades. But he had failed up there on the ridge. In thinking it over Jean arrived at a conclusion that Queen, finding he could go no farther, had waited, guns in hands, for his pursuer. And he had died in this position. Then by strange coincidence his comrades had happened to come across him and, recognizing the situation, they had taken the shells from his guns and propped him up with the idea of luring Jean on. They had arranged a cunning trick and ambush, which had all but snuffed out the last of the Isbels. Colter probably had been at the bottom of this crafty plan. Since the fight at the Isbel ranch, now seemingly far back in the past, this man Colter had loomed up more and more as a stronger and more dangerous antagonist then either Jorth or Daggs. Before that he had been little known to any of the Isbel faction. And it was Colter now who controlled the remnant of the gang and who had Ellen Jorth in his possession.

Queen had been flying directly towards this canyon until he got lost in the fog; when he figured out where he was, he made a tremendous and brave effort to climb the manzanita slope and the Rim to find his friends. But he failed at the ridge. After thinking it over, Jean concluded that Queen, realizing he couldn't go any further, must have waited there, guns in hand, for his pursuer. And he died in that position. Then, by some strange coincidence, his comrades stumbled upon him, recognized the situation, and took the bullets from his guns, propping him up to lure Jean in. They had set up a clever trick and ambush that almost wiped out the last of the Isbels. Colter was probably behind this crafty plan. Since the fight at the Isbel ranch, which now felt like ages ago, Colter had emerged as a stronger and more dangerous adversary than either Jorth or Daggs. Before that, he had been relatively unknown to most of the Isbel faction. And now it was Colter who controlled what was left of the gang and had Ellen Jorth in his grasp.

The canyon wall above Jean, on the right, grew more rugged and loftier, and the one on the left began to show wooded slopes and brakes, and at last a wide expanse with a winding, willow border on the west and a long, low, pine-dotted bench on the east. It took several moments of study for Jean to recognize the rugged bluff above this bench. On up that canyon several miles was the site where Queen had surprised Jean and his comrades at their campfire. Somewhere in this vicinity was the hiding place of the rustlers.

The canyon wall above Jean, on the right, became more rugged and taller, while the one on the left started to show wooded slopes and thickets, finally opening up to a wide area with a winding willow border on the west and a long, low bench dotted with pines on the east. It took Jean a few moments to recognize the rugged bluff above this bench. A few miles up that canyon was the spot where Queen had caught Jean and his friends by surprise at their campfire. Somewhere around here was where the rustlers were hiding.

Thereupon Jean proceeded with the utmost stealth, absolutely certain that he would miss no sound, movement, sign, or anything unnatural to the wild peace of the canyon. And his first sense to register something was his keen smell. Sheep! He was amazed to smell sheep. There must be a flock not far away. Then from where he glided along under the trees he saw down to open places in the willow brake and noticed sheep tracks in the dark, muddy bank of the brook. Next he heard faint tinkle of bells, and at length, when he could see farther into the open enlargement of the canyon, his surprised gaze fell upon an immense gray, woolly patch that blotted out acres and acres of grass. Thousands of sheep were grazing there. Jean knew there were several flocks of Jorth’s sheep on the mountain in the care of herders, but he had never thought of them being so far west, more than twenty miles from Chevelon Canyon. His roving eyes could not descry any herders or dogs. But he knew there must be dogs close to that immense flock. And, whatever his cunning, he could not hope to elude the scent and sight of shepherd dogs. It would be best to go back the way he had come, wait for darkness, then cross the canyon and climb out, and work around to his objective point. Turning at once, he started to glide back. But almost immediately he was brought stock-still and thrilling by the sound of hoofs.

Then Jean moved with the utmost stealth, completely sure that he wouldn’t miss any sounds, movements, signs, or anything out of place in the peaceful canyon. His first sense to pick up on something was his sharp sense of smell. Sheep! He was amazed to catch the scent of sheep. There must be a flock nearby. From where he crept along under the trees, he could see into the open areas of the willow thicket and noticed sheep tracks in the dark, muddy bank of the stream. Next, he heard the faint jingling of bells, and eventually, as he could see further into the wider part of the canyon, his surprised gaze fell upon a vast gray, woolly patch that covered acres and acres of grass. Thousands of sheep were grazing there. Jean knew there were several flocks of Jorth’s sheep on the mountain looked after by herders, but he had never considered them to be so far west, more than twenty miles from Chevelon Canyon. His searching eyes couldn’t spot any herders or dogs. But he knew there had to be dogs near that massive flock. And no matter how clever he was, he couldn’t hope to avoid the scent and sight of shepherd dogs. It would be better to go back the way he came, wait for darkness, then cross the canyon and climb out, working around to his target. Turning immediately, he began to head back. But almost right away, he froze, exhilarated by the sound of hoofbeats.

Horses were coming in the direction he wished to take. They were close. His swift conclusion was that the men who had pursued him up on the Rim had worked down into the canyon. One circling glance showed him that he had no sure covert near at hand. It would not do to risk their passing him there. The border of woodland was narrow and not dense enough for close inspection. He was forced to turn back up the canyon, in the hope of soon finding a hiding place or a break in the wall where he could climb up.

Horses were coming in the direction he wanted to go. They were nearby. He quickly realized that the men who had followed him up on the Rim had moved down into the canyon. A quick glance around revealed that there was no safe hiding spot close by. It wouldn't be wise to risk them seeing him there. The edge of the woods was narrow and not thick enough to hide him well. He had to turn back up the canyon, hoping to find a hiding place or a spot in the wall where he could climb up.

Hugging the base of the wall, he slipped on, passing the point where he had espied the sheep, and gliding on until he was stopped by a bend in the dense line of willows. It sheered to the west there and ran close to the high wall. Jean kept on until he was stooping under a curling border of willow thicket, with branches slim and yellow and masses of green foliage that brushed against the wall. Suddenly he encountered an abrupt corner of rock. He rounded it, to discover that it ran at right angles with the one he had just passed. Peering up through the willows, he ascertained that there was a narrow crack in the main wall of the canyon. It had been concealed by willows low down and leaning spruces above. A wild, hidden retreat! Along the base of the wall there were tracks of small animals. The place was odorous, like all dense thickets, but it was not dry. Water ran through there somewhere. Jean drew easier breath. All sounds except the rustling of birds or mice in the willows had ceased. The brake was pervaded by a dreamy emptiness. Jean decided to steal on a little farther, then wait till he felt he might safely dare go back.

Hugging the base of the wall, he slipped past the spot where he had seen the sheep and continued until he was stopped by a bend in the thick line of willows. It turned west there and ran close to the high wall. Jean kept going until he found himself crouching under a curling edge of willow thicket, with slim, yellow branches and clumps of green leaves brushing against the wall. Suddenly, he came across a sharp corner of rock. He rounded it and discovered that it met at a right angle with the one he had just left. Peering through the willows, he noticed a narrow crack in the main wall of the canyon. It had been hidden by low willows and the leaning spruces above. A wild, secret retreat! At the base of the wall, there were tracks from small animals. The place smelled earthy, like all dense thickets, but it wasn’t dry. Water was flowing somewhere nearby. Jean took a deep breath. All sounds apart from the rustling birds or mice in the willows had faded away. The thicket was filled with a dreamy stillness. Jean decided to move a little further, then wait until he felt it was safe to head back.

The golden-green gloom suddenly brightened. Light showed ahead, and parting the willows, he looked out into a narrow, winding canyon, with an open, grassy, willow-streaked lane in the center and on each side a thin strip of woodland.

The golden-green darkness suddenly brightened. Light appeared ahead, and parting the willows, he looked out into a narrow, winding canyon, with an open, grassy path lined with willows in the center and a thin strip of woodland on each side.

His surprise was short lived. A crashing of horses back of him in the willows gave him a shock. He ran out along the base of the wall, back of the trees. Like the strip of woodland in the main canyon, this one was scant and had but little underbrush. There were young spruces growing with thick branches clear to the grass, and under these he could have concealed himself. But, with a certainty of sheep dogs in the vicinity, he would not think of hiding except as a last resource. These horsemen, whoever they were, were as likely to be sheep herders as not. Jean slackened his pace to look back. He could not see any moving objects, but he still heard horses, though not so close now. Ahead of him this narrow gorge opened out like the neck of a bottle. He would run on to the head of it and find a place to climb to the top.

His surprise didn't last long. The sound of horses crashing through the willows behind him startled him. He ran out along the base of the wall, behind the trees. Like the strip of woodland in the main canyon, this area was sparse and had little underbrush. There were young spruces growing with thick branches down to the grass, and he could have hidden under them. But knowing that sheepdogs were likely nearby, he wouldn't consider hiding unless it was absolutely necessary. These horse riders, whoever they were, could easily be sheep herders. Jean slowed his pace to look back. He couldn't see any moving figures, but he could still hear horses, though they were not as close now. Ahead of him, this narrow gorge opened up like the neck of a bottle. He would run on to the end of it and find a place to climb to the top.

Hurried and anxious as Jean was, he yet received an impression of singular, wild nature of this side gorge. It was a hidden, pine-fringed crack in the rock-ribbed and canyon-cut tableland. Above him the sky seemed a winding stream of blue. The walls were red and bulged out in spruce-greened shelves. From wall to wall was scarcely a distance of a hundred feet. Jumbles of rock obstructed his close holding to the wall. He had to walk at the edge of the timber. As he progressed, the gorge widened into wilder, ruggeder aspect. Through the trees ahead he saw where the wall circled to meet the cliff on the left, forming an oval depression, the nature of which he could not ascertain. But it appeared to be a small opening surrounded by dense thickets and the overhanging walls. Anxiety augmented to alarm. He might not be able to find a place to scale those rough cliffs. Breathing hard, Jean halted again. The situation was growing critical again. His physical condition was worse. Loss of sleep and rest, lack of food, the long pursuit of Queen, the wound in his arm, and the desperate run for his life—these had weakened him to the extent that if he undertook any strenuous effort he would fail. His cunning weighed all chances.

Hurried and anxious as Jean was, he still felt an impression of the unique, wild nature of this side gorge. It was a hidden, pine-fringed gap in the rocky, canyon-cut tableland. Above him, the sky looked like a winding stream of blue. The walls were red and bulged out into spruce-green ledges. From one wall to the other, there was barely a distance of a hundred feet. Piles of rocks blocked his close contact with the wall. He had to walk along the edge of the trees. As he moved forward, the gorge opened up into a wilder, rougher appearance. Through the trees ahead, he saw where the wall curved to meet the cliff on the left, forming an oval hollow, the nature of which he couldn't quite figure out. But it seemed to be a small opening surrounded by dense thickets and steep walls. His anxiety grew into alarm. He might not be able to find a way to climb those rough cliffs. Breathing hard, Jean stopped again. The situation was becoming critical once more. His physical condition had worsened. Lack of sleep and rest, not enough food, the long chase of Queen, the wound in his arm, and the desperate run for his life—these had worn him down to the point that if he attempted any strenuous effort, he would fail. His instincts weighed all the possibilities.

The shade of wall and foliage above, and another jumble of ruined cliff, hindered his survey of the ground ahead, and he almost stumbled upon a cabin, hidden on three sides, with a small, bare clearing in front. It was an old, ramshackle structure like others he had run across in the canons. Cautiously he approached and peeped around the corner. At first swift glance it had all the appearance of long disuse. But Jean had no time for another look. A clip-clop of trotting horses on hard ground brought the same pell-mell rush of sensations that had driven him to wild flight scarcely an hour past. His body jerked with its instinctive impulse, then quivered with his restraint. To turn back would be risky, to run ahead would be fatal, to hide was his one hope. No covert behind! And the clip-clop of hoofs sounded closer. One moment longer Jean held mastery over his instincts of self-preservation. To keep from running was almost impossible. It was the sheer primitive animal sense to escape. He drove it back and glided along the front of the cabin.

The shade from the wall and the trees above, combined with a jumble of crumbling cliffs, blocked his view of the ground ahead. He almost tripped over a cabin that was hidden on three sides, with a small, bare clearing in front. It was an old, rundown structure like others he had encountered in the canyons. Cautiously, he moved closer and peeked around the corner. At first glance, it looked like it hadn’t been used in a long time. But Jean didn’t have time for another look. The clip-clop of trotting horses on the hard ground sent a rush of sensations through him, reminding him of the wild flight that had propelled him just an hour earlier. His body reacted instinctively, jerking at the impulse, then trembling as he held himself back. Turning back would be risky, running ahead would be deadly, and hiding was his only hope. No cover behind him! And the clip-clop of hoofs grew louder. For a moment longer, Jean managed to control his instinct to survive. Resisting the urge to run was nearly impossible; it was a basic, primal instinct to flee. He pushed it down and moved quietly along the front of the cabin.

Here he saw that the cabin adjoined another. Reaching the door, he was about to peep in when the thud of hoofs and voices close at hand transfixed him with a grim certainty that he had not an instant to lose. Through the thin, black-streaked line of trees he saw moving red objects. Horses! He must run. Passing the door, his keen nose caught a musty, woody odor and the tail of his eye saw bare dirt floor. This cabin was unused. He halted—gave a quick look back. And the first thing his eye fell upon was a ladder, right inside the door, against the wall. He looked up. It led to a loft that, dark and gloomy, stretched halfway across the cabin. An irresistible impulse drove Jean. Slipping inside, he climbed up the ladder to the loft. It was like night up there. But he crawled on the rough-hewn rafters and, turning with his head toward the opening, he stretched out and lay still.

Here he noticed that the cabin was next to another one. As he reached the door, he was about to peek inside when the sound of hooves and voices nearby froze him with a harsh realization that he didn’t have a moment to waste. Through the thin, dark-streaked line of trees, he saw moving red shapes. Horses! He had to run. As he passed the door, his sharp nose picked up a musty, woody smell, and out of the corner of his eye, he noticed a bare dirt floor. This cabin was empty. He paused—glanced back quickly. The first thing he saw was a ladder, right inside the door, leaning against the wall. He looked up. It led to a loft that was dark and gloomy, extending halfway across the cabin. An irresistible urge took hold of Jean. Slipping inside, he climbed up the ladder to the loft. It was like night up there. But he crawled along the rough-hewn rafters and, turning to face the opening, stretched out and lay still.

What seemed an interminable moment ended with a trample of hoofs outside the cabin. It ceased. Jean’s vibrating ears caught the jingle of spurs and a thud of boots striking the ground.

What felt like an endless moment ended with the sound of hooves pounding outside the cabin. It stopped. Jean’s twitching ears picked up the jingle of spurs and the thud of boots hitting the ground.

“Wal, sweetheart, heah we are home again,” drawled a slow, cool, mocking Texas voice.

“Well, sweetheart, here we are home again,” drawled a slow, cool, mocking Texas voice.

“Home! I wonder, Colter—did y’u ever have a home—a mother—a sister—much less a sweetheart?” was the reply, bitter and caustic.

“Home! I wonder, Colter—did you ever have a home—a mother—a sister—let alone a sweetheart?” was the reply, bitter and cutting.

Jean’s palpitating, hot body suddenly stretched still and cold with intensity of shock. His very bones seemed to quiver and stiffen into ice. During the instant of realization his heart stopped. And a slow, contracting pressure enveloped his breast and moved up to constrict his throat. That woman’s voice belonged to Ellen Jorth. The sound of it had lingered in his dreams. He had stumbled upon the rendezvous of the Jorth faction. Hard indeed had been the fates meted out to those of the Isbels and Jorths who had passed to their deaths. But, no ordeal, not even Queen’s, could compare with this desperate one Jean must endure. He had loved Ellen Jorth, strangely, wonderfully, and he had scorned repute to believe her good. He had spared her father and her uncle. He had weakened or lost the cause of the Isbels. He loved her now, desperately, deathlessly, knowing from her own lips that she was worthless—loved her the more because he had felt her terrible shame. And to him—the last of the Isbels—had come the cruelest of dooms—to be caught like a crippled rat in a trap; to be compelled to lie helpless, wounded, without a gun; to listen, and perhaps to see Ellen Jorth enact the very truth of her mocking insinuation. His will, his promise, his creed, his blood must hold him to the stem decree that he should be the last man of the Jorth-Isbel war. But could he lie there to hear—to see—when he had a knife and an arm?

Jean’s racing, hot body suddenly went still and cold with shock. His bones felt like they were freezing and rigid. In that moment of realization, his heart stopped. A slow, tightening pressure wrapped around his chest and moved up to choke his throat. That woman’s voice belonged to Ellen Jorth. Her voice had lingered in his dreams. He had come across the meeting place of the Jorth faction. The fates dealt to the Isbels and Jorths who had died had been harsh. But no trial, not even the Queen’s, could compare to the desperate situation Jean now faced. He had loved Ellen Jorth, in a strange and wonderful way, and he had ignored her reputation to believe she was good. He had spared her father and uncle. He had weakened or lost the cause of the Isbels. He loved her now, desperately and endlessly, knowing from her own words that she was worthless—loved her even more because he had felt her terrible shame. And for him—the last of the Isbels—came the cruelest fate: to be trapped like a wounded rat; to lie helpless, hurt, without a weapon; to listen, and maybe see Ellen Jorth reveal the truth of her mocking hints. His will, his promise, his principles, his blood must bind him to the harsh decree that he would be the last man of the Jorth-Isbel conflict. But could he really lie there to hear—to see—when he had a knife and a hand?




CHAPTER XIV

Then followed the leathery flop of saddles to the soft turf and the stamp, of loosened horses.

Then came the leathery thud of saddles hitting the soft grass and the stamp of untethered horses.

Jean heard a noise at the cabin door, a rustle, and then a knock of something hard against wood. Silently he moved his head to look down through a crack between the rafters. He saw the glint of a rifle leaning against the sill. Then the doorstep was darkened. Ellen Jorth sat down with a long, tired sigh. She took off her sombrero and the light shone on the rippling, dark-brown hair, hanging in a tangled braid. The curved nape of her neck showed a warm tint of golden tan. She wore a gray blouse, soiled and torn, that clung to her lissome shoulders.

Jean heard a noise at the cabin door, a rustle, and then a knock of something hard against the wood. Silently, he moved his head to look down through a crack between the rafters. He saw the glint of a rifle leaning against the sill. Then the doorstep was darkened. Ellen Jorth sat down with a long, tired sigh. She took off her sombrero, and the light shone on her flowing, dark-brown hair, which hung in a messy braid. The curved nape of her neck had a warm golden tan. She wore a gray blouse, dirty and torn, that clung to her slim shoulders.

“Colter, what are y’u goin’ to do?” she asked, suddenly. Her voice carried something Jean did not remember. It thrilled into the icy fixity of his senses.

“Colter, what are you going to do?” she asked, suddenly. Her voice held something Jean didn’t remember. It sent a thrill through the icy stillness of his senses.

“We’ll stay heah,” was the response, and it was followed by a clinking step of spurred boot.

“We’ll stay here,” was the response, and it was followed by the clinking sound of a spurred boot.

“Shore I won’t stay heah,” declared Ellen. “It makes me sick when I think of how Uncle Tad died in there alone—helpless—sufferin’. The place seems haunted.”

“Sure I won’t stay here,” declared Ellen. “It makes me sick to think about how Uncle Tad died in there alone—helpless—suffering. The place feels haunted.”

“Wal, I’ll agree that it’s tough on y’u. But what the hell CAN we do?”

“Well, I’ll admit it’s hard on you. But what can we actually do?”

A long silence ensued which Ellen did not break.

A long silence followed that Ellen didn’t interrupt.

“Somethin’ has come off round heah since early mawnin’,” declared Colter. “Somers an’ Springer haven’t got back. An’ Antonio’s gone.... Now, honest, Ellen, didn’t y’u heah rifle shots off somewhere?”

“Something has happened around here since early morning,” Colter declared. “Somers and Springer haven’t returned. And Antonio’s gone... Now, honestly, Ellen, didn’t you hear rifle shots from somewhere?”

“I reckon I did,” she responded, gloomily.

“I guess I did,” she replied, sadly.

“An’ which way?”

"Which way?"

“Sounded to me up on the bluff, back pretty far.”

“Sounded to me up on the hill, quite a way back.”

“Wal, shore that’s my idee. An’ it makes me think hard. Y’u know Somers come across the last camp of the Isbels. An’ he dug into a grave to find the bodies of Jim Gordon an’ another man he didn’t know. Queen kept good his brag. He braced that Isbel gang an’ killed those fellars. But either him or Jean Isbel went off leavin’ bloody tracks. If it was Queen’s y’u can bet Isbel was after him. An’ if it was Isbel’s tracks, why shore Queen would stick to them. Somers an’ Springer couldn’t follow the trail. They’re shore not much good at trackin’. But for days they’ve been ridin’ the woods, hopin’ to run across Queen.... Wal now, mebbe they run across Isbel instead. An’ if they did an’ got away from him they’ll be heah sooner or later. If Isbel was too many for them he’d hunt for my trail. I’m gamblin’ that either Queen or Jean Isbel is daid. I’m hopin’ it’s Isbel. Because if he ain’t daid he’s the last of the Isbels, an’ mebbe I’m the last of Jorth’s gang.... Shore I’m not hankerin’ to meet the half-breed. That’s why I say we’ll stay heah. This is as good a hidin’ place as there is in the country. We’ve grub. There’s water an’ grass.”

“Yeah, that’s my idea. And it really makes me think. You know, Somers found the last camp of the Isbels. And he dug into a grave to find the bodies of Jim Gordon and another guy he didn’t recognize. Queen lived up to his boast. He confronted that Isbel gang and killed those guys. But either he or Jean Isbel left bloody tracks behind. If it was Queen’s tracks, you can bet Isbel was after him. And if it was Isbel’s tracks, then Queen would definitely be following them. Somers and Springer couldn’t track them. They’re not very good at that. But for days they’ve been riding through the woods, hoping to find Queen... Well, now maybe they’ll come across Isbel instead. And if they did and managed to escape from him, they’ll be here sooner or later. If Isbel was too much for them, he’d be looking for my trail. I’m betting that either Queen or Jean Isbel is dead. I’m hoping it’s Isbel. Because if he’s not dead, he’s the last of the Isbels, and maybe I’m the last of Jorth’s gang... I really don’t want to run into the half-breed. That’s why I say we’ll stay here. This is as good a hiding place as there is in the country. We’ve got food. There’s water and grass.”

“Me—stay heah with y’u—alone!”

“Me—stay here with you—alone!”

The tone seemed a contradiction to the apparently accepted sense of her words. Jean held his breath. But he could not still the slowly mounting and accelerating faculties within that were involuntarily rising to meet some strange, nameless import. He felt it. He imagined it would be the catastrophe of Ellen Jorth’s calm acceptance of Colter’s proposition. But down in Jean’s miserable heart lived something that would not die. No mere words could kill it. How poignant that moment of her silence! How terribly he realized that if his intelligence and his emotion had believed her betraying words, his soul had not!

The tone felt like a contradiction to the seemingly accepted meaning of her words. Jean held his breath. But he couldn’t suppress the rising and quickening feelings inside him that were instinctively responding to some strange, undefined significance. He sensed it. He imagined it would be the disaster of Ellen Jorth’s calm acceptance of Colter’s proposal. But deep in Jean’s unhappy heart was something that wouldn’t die. No mere words could kill it. How intense that moment of her silence was! How painfully he realized that while his mind and emotions might have believed her misleading words, his soul did not!

But Ellen Jorth did not speak. Her brown head hung thoughtfully. Her supple shoulders sagged a little.

But Ellen Jorth didn’t say anything. Her brown hair hung down as she thought. Her flexible shoulders drooped slightly.

“Ellen, what’s happened to y’u?” went on Colter.

“Ellen, what happened to you?” Colter continued.

“All the misery possible to a woman,” she replied, dejectedly.

“All the misery possible to a woman,” she replied, feeling down.

“Shore I don’t mean that way,” he continued, persuasively. “I ain’t gainsayin’ the hard facts of your life. It’s been bad. Your dad was no good.... But I mean I can’t figger the change in y’u.”

“Sure I don’t mean it that way,” he continued, persuasively. “I’m not denying the hard facts of your life. It’s been tough. Your dad wasn’t good.... But what I mean is, I can’t figure out the change in you.”

“No, I reckon y’u cain’t,” she said. “Whoever was responsible for your make-up left out a mind—not to say feeling.”

“No, I don’t think you can,” she said. “Whoever did your makeup forgot to include a brain—not to mention any feelings.”

Colter drawled a low laugh.

Colter let out a low laugh.

“Wal, have that your own way. But how much longer are yu goin’ to be like this heah?”

“Well, you can do it your way. But how much longer are you going to act like this here?”

“Like what?” she rejoined, sharply.

"Like what?" she replied sharply.

“Wal, this stand-offishness of yours?”

"Well, this attitude of yours?"

“Colter, I told y’u to let me alone,” she said, sullenly.

“Colter, I told you to leave me alone,” she said, sulkily.

“Shore. An’ y’u did that before. But this time y’u’re different.... An’ wal, I’m gettin’ tired of it.”

“Sure. And you did that before. But this time you’re different.... And well, I’m getting tired of it.”

Here the cool, slow voice of the Texan sounded an inflexibility before absent, a timber that hinted of illimitable power.

Here the cool, slow voice of the Texan conveyed a strength that hadn't been there before, a tone that suggested limitless power.

Ellen Jorth shrugged her lithe shoulders and, slowly rising, she picked up the little rifle and turned to step into the cabin.

Ellen Jorth shrugged her slim shoulders and, slowly getting up, she picked up the small rifle and turned to walk into the cabin.

“Colter,” she said, “fetch my pack an’ my blankets in heah.”

“Colter,” she said, “bring my bag and my blankets in here.”

“Shore,” he returned, with good nature.

“Sure,” he replied, with a friendly attitude.

Jean saw Ellen Jorth lay the rifle lengthwise in a chink between two logs and then slowly turn, back to the wall. Jean knew her then, yet did not know her. The brown flash of her face seemed that of an older, graver woman. His strained gaze, like his waiting mind, had expected something, he knew not what—a hardened face, a ghost of beauty, a recklessness, a distorted, bitter, lost expression in keeping with her fortunes. But he had reckoned falsely. She did not look like that. There was incalculable change, but the beauty remained, somehow different. Her red lips were parted. Her brooding eyes, looking out straight from under the level, dark brows, seemed sloe black and wonderful with their steady, passionate light.

Jean saw Ellen Jorth lay the rifle lengthwise in a gap between two logs and then slowly turn, back to the wall. Jean recognized her then, yet also felt like he didn’t know her. The quick flash of her face seemed to belong to an older, more serious woman. His strained gaze, like his waiting mind, had anticipated something, though he couldn’t pin down what—it could have been a hardened face, a trace of beauty, a sense of recklessness, or a distorted, bitter, lost expression matching her circumstances. But he had miscalculated. She didn’t look like that. There was undeniable change, but the beauty remained, somehow transformed. Her red lips were slightly parted. Her intense eyes, peering out from under the straight, dark brows, appeared deep black and captivating with their steady, passionate light.

Jean, in his eager, hungry devouring of the beloved face, did not on the first instant grasp the significance of its expression. He was seeing the features that had haunted him. But quickly he interpreted her expression as the somber, hunted look of a woman who would bear no more. Under the torn blouse her full breast heaved. She held her hands clenched at her sides. She was’ listening, waiting for that jangling, slow step. It came, and with the sound she subtly changed. She was a woman hiding her true feelings. She relaxed, and that strong, dark look of fury seemed to fade back into her eyes.

Jean, in his eager, intense desire for the beloved face, didn't immediately understand the meaning behind her expression. He recognized the features that had haunted him. But soon, he interpreted her expression as the grim, hunted look of a woman who could take no more. Beneath her torn blouse, her full breast rose and fell. She kept her hands clenched at her sides. She was listening, waiting for that jarring, slow approach. It arrived, and with the sound, she subtly transformed. She was a woman concealing her true feelings. She relaxed, and that strong, dark look of anger seemed to recede from her eyes.

Colter appeared at the door, carrying a roll of blankets and a pack.

Colter showed up at the door, holding a bundle of blankets and a bag.

“Throw them heah,” she said. “I reckon y’u needn’t bother coming in.”

“Throw them here,” she said. “I guess you don’t need to bother coming in.”

That angered the man. With one long stride he stepped over the doorsill, down into the cabin, and flung the blankets at her feet and then the pack after it. Whereupon he deliberately sat down in the door, facing her. With one hand he slid off his sombrero, which fell outside, and with the other he reached in his upper vest pocket for the little bag of tobacco that showed there. All the time he looked at her. By the light now unobstructed Jean descried Colter’s face; and sight of it then sounded the roll and drum of his passions.

That made the man really angry. With one big step, he walked over the threshold, stepped into the cabin, and tossed the blankets at her feet, followed by the pack. Then he deliberately sat down in the doorway, facing her. He lifted one hand and took off his sombrero, letting it fall outside, while with the other hand he reached into his upper vest pocket for the small bag of tobacco that was visible there. All the while, he kept his eyes on her. With the light now unobstructed, Jean recognized Colter’s face, and seeing it stirred up all his emotions.

“Wal, Ellen, I reckon we’ll have it out right now an’ heah,” he said, and with tobacco in one hand, paper in the other he began the operations of making a cigarette. However, he scarcely removed his glance from her.

“Well, Ellen, I guess we’ll sort this out right now,” he said, and with tobacco in one hand and paper in the other, he started rolling a cigarette. However, he hardly took his eyes off her.

“Yes?” queried Ellen Jorth.

“Yes?” asked Ellen Jorth.

“I’m goin’ to have things the way they were before—an’ more,” he declared. The cigarette paper shook in his fingers.

“I’m going to have things the way they used to be—plus more,” he declared. The cigarette paper shook in his fingers.

“What do y’u mean?” she demanded.

“What do you mean?” she asked.

“Y’u know what I mean,” he retorted. Voice and action were subtly unhinging this man’s control over himself.

“Y'know what I mean,” he shot back. His voice and actions were slowly undermining this man's ability to keep himself together.

“Maybe I don’t. I reckon y’u’d better talk plain.”

"Maybe I don’t. I guess you’d better speak clearly."

The rustler had clear gray-yellow eyes, flawless, like, crystal, and suddenly they danced with little fiery flecks.

The rustler had bright gray-yellow eyes, perfect like crystal, and suddenly they sparkled with tiny fiery specks.

“The last time I laid my hand on y’u I got hit for my pains. An’ shore that’s been ranklin’.”

“The last time I touched you, I got hit for it. And sure, that’s been bothering me.”

“Colter, y’u’ll get hit again if y’u put your hands on me,” she said, dark, straight glance on him. A frown wrinkled the level brows.

“Colter, you'll get hit again if you put your hands on me,” she said, giving him a dark, straight look. A frown creased her even brows.

“Y’u mean that?” he asked, thickly.

“Do you mean that?” he asked, sounding thick.

“I shore, do.”

"I sure do."

Manifestly he accepted her assertion. Something of incredulity and bewilderment, that had vied with his resentment, utterly disappeared from his face.

Clearly, he accepted what she said. The mix of disbelief and confusion that had competed with his anger completely vanished from his expression.

“Heah I’ve been waitin’ for y’u to love me,” he declared, with a gesture not without dignified emotion. “Your givin’ in without that wasn’t so much to me.”

“Heah I’ve been waiting for you to love me,” he declared, with a gesture that was not without dignified emotion. “Your giving in without that didn’t mean much to me.”

And at these words of the rustler’s Jean Isbel felt an icy, sickening shudder creep into his soul. He shut his eyes. The end of his dream had been long in coming, but at last it had arrived. A mocking voice, like a hollow wind, echoed through that region—that lonely and ghost-like hall of his heart which had harbored faith.

And at the rustler's words, Jean Isbel felt a cold, sickening shiver slip into his soul. He shut his eyes. The end of his dream had taken a long time to arrive, but it had finally come. A mocking voice, like an empty wind, echoed through that area—his lonely, ghostly heart that had once held onto hope.

She burst into speech, louder and sharper, the first words of which Jean’s strangely throbbing ears did not distinguish.

She suddenly started talking, her voice louder and sharper, but the first words were lost on Jean’s strangely pulsating ears.

“— — you! ... I never gave in to y’u an’ I never will.”

“— — you! ... I never gave in to you and I never will.”

“But, girl—I kissed y’u—hugged y’u—handled y’u—” he expostulated, and the making of the cigarette ceased.

“But, girl—I kissed you—hugged you—held you—” he exclaimed, and the rolling of the cigarette stopped.

“Yes, y’u did—y’u brute—when I was so downhearted and weak I couldn’t lift my hand,” she flashed.

“Yeah, you did— you jerk— when I was so heartbroken and weak I couldn’t even lift my hand,” she shot back.

“Ahuh! Y’u mean I couldn’t do that now?”

“Really! You mean I can’t do that now?”

“I should smile I do, Jim Colter!” she replied.

“I should smile, I do, Jim Colter!” she said.

“Wal, mebbe—I’ll see—presently,” he went on, straining with words. “But I’m shore curious.... Daggs, then—he was nothin’ to y’u?”

“Well, maybe—I’ll think about it—soon,” he continued, forcing out the words. “But I’m really curious.... Daggs, then—he didn’t mean anything to you?”

“No more than y’u,” she said, morbidly. “He used to run after me—long ago, it seems.... I was only a girl then—innocent—an’ I’d not known any but rough men. I couldn’t all the time—every day, every hour—keep him at arm’s length. Sometimes before I knew—I didn’t care. I was a child. A kiss meant nothing to me. But after I knew—”

“No more than you,” she said, darkly. “He used to chase after me—so long ago, it feels... I was just a girl back then—innocent—and I hadn’t known anything but rough men. I couldn’t always—every single day, every hour—keep him at a distance. Sometimes, before I realized it—I didn’t care. I was a child. A kiss meant nothing to me. But after I realized—”

Ellen dropped her head in brooding silence.

Ellen lowered her head in deep thought.

“Say, do y’u expect me to believe that?” he queried, with a derisive leer.

“Say, do you expect me to believe that?” he asked, with a mocking grin.

“Bah! What do I care what y’u believe?” she cried, with lifting head.

“Bah! What do I care what you believe?” she exclaimed, lifting her head.

“How aboot Simm Brace?”

“How about Simm Brace?”

“That coyote! ... He lied aboot me, Jim Colter. And any man half a man would have known he lied.”

“That coyote! ... He lied about me, Jim Colter. And any man who's half a man would have known he was lying.”

“Wal, Simm always bragged aboot y’u bein’ his girl,” asserted Colter. “An’ he wasn’t over—particular aboot details of your love-makin’.”

“Well, Simm always bragged about you being his girl,” Colter said. “And he wasn’t too concerned about the details of your romance.”

Ellen gazed out of the door, over Colter’s head, as if the forest out there was a refuge. She evidently sensed more about the man than appeared in his slow talk, in his slouching position. Her lips shut in a firm line, as if to hide their trembling and to still her passionate tongue. Jean, in his absorption, magnified his perceptions. Not yet was Ellen Jorth afraid of this man, but she feared the situation. Jean’s heart was at bursting pitch. All within him seemed chaos—a wreck of beliefs and convictions. Nothing was true. He would wake presently out of a nightmare. Yet, as surely as he quivered there, he felt the imminence of a great moment—a lightning flash—a thunderbolt—a balance struck.

Ellen looked out the door, over Colter’s head, as if the forest beyond was a safe haven. She clearly sensed more about the man than what was evident in his slow speech and slouched posture. Her lips pressed together tightly, as if trying to hide their trembling and keep her passionate words in check. Jean, lost in thought, intensified his perceptions. Ellen Jorth wasn’t afraid of this man yet, but she was scared of the situation. Jean’s heart raced. Everything inside him felt chaotic—a mess of beliefs and convictions. Nothing felt real. He expected to wake up from this nightmare any moment. Yet, even as he trembled there, he felt the approach of a significant moment—a flash of insight—a jolt of realization—a balance achieved.

Colter attended to the forgotten cigarette. He rolled it, lighted it, all the time with lowered, pondering head, and when he had puffed a cloud of smoke he suddenly looked up with face as hard as flint, eyes as fiery as molten steel.

Colter focused on the neglected cigarette. He rolled it and lit it, his head lowered in thought the whole time, and when he puffed out a cloud of smoke, he suddenly looked up with a face as tough as flint, eyes as fiery as molten steel.

“Wal, Ellen—how aboot Jean Isbel—our half-breed Nez Perce friend—who was shore seen handlin’ y’u familiar?” he drawled.

"Well, Ellen—what about Jean Isbel—our mixed-race Nez Perce friend—who was definitely seen dealing with you?" he said.

Ellen Jorth quivered as under a lash, and her brown face turned a dusty scarlet, that slowly receding left her pale.

Ellen Jorth shivered as if hit by a whip, and her brown face flushed a dusty red, which gradually faded to a pale hue.

“Damn y’u, Jim Colter!” she burst out, furiously. “I wish Jean Isbel would jump in that door—or down out of that loft! ... He killed Greaves for defiling my name! ... He’d kill Y’U for your dirty insult.... And I’d like to watch him do it.... Y’u cold-blooded Texan! Y’u thieving rustler! Y’u liar! ... Y’u lied aboot my father’s death. And I know why. Y’u stole my father’s gold.... An’ now y’u want me—y’u expect me to fall into your arms.... My Heaven! cain’t y’u tell a decent woman? Was your mother decent? Was your sister decent? ... Bah! I’m appealing to deafness. But y’u’ll HEAH this, Jim Colter! ... I’m not what yu think I am! I’m not the—the damned hussy y’u liars have made me out.... I’m a Jorth, alas! I’ve no home, no relatives, no friends! I’ve been forced to live my life with rustlers—vile men like y’u an’ Daggs an’ the rest of your like.... But I’ve been good! Do y’u heah that? ... I AM good—so help me God, y’u an’ all your rottenness cain’t make me bad!”

“Damn you, Jim Colter!” she exclaimed, angrily. “I wish Jean Isbel would come through that door—or jump down from that loft! ... He killed Greaves for ruining my name! ... He’d kill YOU for your filthy insult.... And I’d love to see him do it.... You cold-hearted Texan! You thieving rustler! You liar! ... You lied about my father’s death. And I know why. You stole my father’s gold.... And now you want me—you expect me to fall into your arms.... My God! Can’t you recognize a decent woman? Was your mother decent? Was your sister decent? ... Ugh! I might as well be talking to a wall. But you’ll HEAR this, Jim Colter! ... I’m not what you think I am! I’m not the—the damn hussy you liars have made me out to be.... I’m a Jorth, unfortunately! I have no home, no relatives, no friends! I’ve been forced to live my life with rustlers—shameful men like you and Daggs and the rest of your kind.... But I’ve been good! Do you hear that? ... I AM good—so help me God, you and all your filth can’t make me bad!”

Colter lounged to his tall height and the laxity of the man vanished.

Colter straightened up to his full height and the relaxed demeanor he had disappeared.

Vanished also was Jean Isbel’s suspended icy dread, the cold clogging of his fevered mind—vanished in a white, living, leaping flame.

Vanished too was Jean Isbel’s frozen, anxious fear, the chill holding back his restless mind—gone in a bright, vibrant, dancing flame.

Silently he drew his knife and lay there watching with the eyes of a wildcat. The instant Colter stepped far enough over toward the edge of the loft Jean meant to bound erect and plunge down upon him. But Jean could wait now. Colter had a gun at his hip. He must never have a chance to draw it.

Silently, he pulled out his knife and lay there watching with the intensity of a wildcat. The moment Colter stepped far enough to the edge of the loft, Jean planned to spring up and leap down at him. But Jean could wait now. Colter had a gun at his hip. He must never get the chance to draw it.

“Ahuh! So y’u wish Jean Isbel would hop in heah, do y’u?” queried Colter. “Wal, if I had any pity on y’u, that’s done for it.”

“Ahuh! So you wish Jean Isbel would jump in here, do you?” Colter asked. “Well, if I had any sympathy for you, that’s out the window now.”

A sweep of his long arm, so swift Ellen had no time to move, brought his hand in clutching contact with her. And the force of it flung her half across the cabin room, leaving the sleeve of her blouse in his grasp. Pantingly she put out that bared arm and her other to ward him off as he took long, slow strides toward her.

A quick swing of his long arm, so fast that Ellen couldn't react in time, made his hand grab her. The force of it sent her flying halfway across the cabin, leaving the sleeve of her blouse in his hand. Breathing heavily, she raised her bare arm and the other one to push him away as he walked slowly toward her.

Jean rose half to his feet, dragged by almost ungovernable passion to risk all on one leap. But the distance was too great. Colter, blind as he was to all outward things, would hear, would see in time to make Jean’s effort futile. Shaking like a leaf, Jean sank back, eye again to the crack between the rafters.

Jean rose partially to his feet, pulled by an overwhelming urge to take a leap of faith. But the gap was too wide. Colter, oblivious to everything around him, would notice and see in time to render Jean’s attempt pointless. Shaking like a leaf, Jean sank back down, peering once more through the crack between the rafters.

Ellen did not retreat, nor scream, nor move. Every line of her body was instinct with fight, and the magnificent blaze of her eyes would have checked a less callous brute.

Ellen didn’t back down, scream, or even move. Every part of her was filled with defiance, and the fierce intensity in her eyes would have stopped a less ruthless person in their tracks.

Colter’s big hand darted between Ellen’s arms and fastened in the front of her blouse. He did not try to hold her or draw her close. The unleashed passion of the man required violence. In one savage pull he tore off her blouse, exposing her white, rounded shoulders and heaving bosom, where instantly a wave of red burned upward.

Colter’s large hand shot between Ellen’s arms and grabbed the front of her blouse. He didn’t try to hold her or pull her close. The man's sudden passion demanded aggression. In one brutal tug, he ripped her blouse apart, revealing her white, rounded shoulders and heaving chest, causing a wave of redness to rush to her face.

Overcome by the tremendous violence and spirit of the rustler, Ellen sank to her knees, with blanched face and dilating eyes, trying with folded arms and trembling hand to hide her nudity.

Overwhelmed by the intense rage and energy of the rustler, Ellen dropped to her knees, her face pale and her eyes wide, attempting with crossed arms and a shaking hand to cover her nakedness.

At that moment the rapid beat of hoofs on the hard trail outside halted Colter in his tracks.

At that moment, the quick sound of hooves on the hard trail outside stopped Colter in his tracks.

“Hell!” he exclaimed. “An’ who’s that?” With a fierce action he flung the remnants of Ellen’s blouse in her face and turned to leap out the door.

“Damn!” he shouted. “And who’s that?” With a sudden motion, he threw the torn pieces of Ellen’s blouse in her face and turned to jump out the door.

Jean saw Ellen catch the blouse and try to wrap it around her, while she sagged against the wall and stared at the door. The hoof beats pounded to a solid thumping halt just outside.

Jean saw Ellen grab the blouse and attempt to wrap it around herself while she leaned against the wall and stared at the door. The hoofbeats came to a strong, steady stop just outside.

“Jim—thar’s hell to pay!” rasped out a panting voice.

“Jim—there's trouble ahead!” gasped a breathless voice.

“Wal, Springer, I reckon I wished y’u’d paid it without spoilin’ my deals,” retorted Colter, cool and sharp.

“Well, Springer, I guess I wish you’d paid it without messing up my deals,” Colter shot back, calm and pointed.

“Deals? Ha! Y’u’ll be forgettin’—your lady love in a minnit,” replied Springer. “When I catch—my breath.”

“Deals? Ha! You’ll forget about your lady love in a minute,” replied Springer. “Just let me catch my breath.”

“Where’s Somers?” demanded Colter.

“Where’s Somers?” Colter asked.

“I reckon he’s all shot up—if my eyes didn’t fool me.”

“I think he’s all worn out—if my eyes aren’t deceiving me.”

“Where is he?” yelled Colter.

“Where is he?” shouted Colter.

“Jim—he’s layin’ up in the bushes round thet bluff. I didn’t wait to see how he was hurt. But he shore stopped some lead. An’ he flopped like a chicken with its—haid cut off.”

“Jim—he’s lying in the bushes around that bluff. I didn’t wait to see how he was hurt. But he sure took some shots. And he flopped like a chicken with its head cut off.”

“Where’s Antonio?”

“Where's Antonio?”

“He run like the greaser he is,” declared Springer, disgustedly.

“He runs like the greaser he is,” declared Springer, disgusted.

“Ahuh! An’ where’s Queen?” queried Colter, after a significant pause.

“Uh huh! And where’s Queen?” asked Colter, after a noticeable pause.

“Dead!”

"Deceased!"

The silence ensuing was fraught with a suspense that held Jean in cold bonds. He saw the girl below rise from her knees, one hand holding the blouse to her breast, the other extended, and with strange, repressed, almost frantic look she swayed toward the door.

The silence that followed was thick with suspense that kept Jean frozen in place. He watched as the girl below got up from her knees, one hand clutching her blouse to her chest, the other reaching out, and with a strange, suppressed, almost desperate expression, she swayed toward the door.

“Wal, talk,” ordered Colter, harshly.

"Well, talk," ordered Colter, harshly.

“Jim, there ain’t a hell of a lot,” replied Springer; drawing a deep breath, “but what there is is shore interestin’.... Me an’ Somers took Antonio with us. He left his woman with the sheep. An’ we rode up the canyon, clumb out on top, an’ made a circle back on the ridge. That’s the way we’ve been huntin’ fer tracks. Up thar in a bare spot we run plump into Queen sittin’ against a tree, right out in the open. Queerest sight y’u ever seen! The damn gunfighter had set down to wait for Isbel, who was trailin’ him, as we suspected—an’ he died thar. He wasn’t cold when we found him.... Somers was quick to see a trick. So he propped Queen up an’ tied the guns to his hands—an’, Jim, the queerest thing aboot that deal was this—Queen’s guns was empty! Not a shell left! It beat us holler.... We left him thar, an’ hid up high on the bluff, mebbe a hundred yards off. The hosses we left back of a thicket. An’ we waited thar a long time. But, sure enough, the half-breed come. He was too smart. Too much Injun! He would not cross the open, but went around. An’ then he seen Queen. It was great to watch him. After a little he shoved his rifle out an’ went right fer Queen. This is when I wanted to shoot. I could have plugged him. But Somers says wait an’ make it sure. When Isbel got up to Queen he was sort of half hid by the tree. An’ I couldn’t wait no longer, so I shot. I hit him, too. We all begun to shoot. Somers showed himself, an’ that’s when Isbel opened up. He used up a whole magazine on Somers an’ then, suddenlike, he quit. It didn’t take me long to figger mebbe he was out of shells. When I seen him run I was certain of it. Then we made for the hosses an’ rode after Isbel. Pretty soon I seen him runnin’ like a deer down the ridge. I yelled an’ spurred after him. There is where Antonio quit me. But I kept on. An’ I got a shot at Isbel. He ran out of sight. I follered him by spots of blood on the stones an’ grass until I couldn’t trail him no more. He must have gone down over the cliffs. He couldn’t have done nothin’ else without me seein’ him. I found his rifle, an’ here it is to prove what I say. I had to go back to climb down off the Rim, an’ I rode fast down the canyon. He’s somewhere along that west wall, hidin’ in the brush, hard hit if I know anythin’ aboot the color of blood.”

“Jim, there’s not a lot, but what there is is really interesting,” Springer replied, taking a deep breath. “Somers and I took Antonio with us. He left his partner with the sheep. We rode up the canyon, climbed to the top, and circled back along the ridge. That’s how we’ve been searching for tracks. Up there in a bare spot, we ran right into Queen sitting against a tree, completely out in the open. It was the strangest sight you’ve ever seen! The damn gunfighter had set down to wait for Isbel, who was trailing him like we suspected—and he died there. He wasn’t even cold when we found him. Somers quickly figured out a trick. He propped Queen up and tied the guns to his hands—and, Jim, the weirdest thing about that was this—Queen’s guns were empty! Not a bullet left! It shocked us. We left him there and hid up high on the bluff, maybe a hundred yards away. We left the horses behind a thicket. We waited there for a long time. But sure enough, the half-breed came. He was too smart. Too much of an Indian! He wouldn’t cross the open space but went around. Then he saw Queen. It was great to watch him. After a bit, he stuck his rifle out and went right for Queen. That’s when I wanted to shoot. I could have taken him out. But Somers said to wait and make it sure. When Isbel got up to Queen, he was sort of half-hidden by the tree. I couldn’t wait any longer, so I shot. I hit him, too. We all started shooting. Somers showed himself, and that’s when Isbel opened up. He used a whole magazine on Somers and then, suddenly, he stopped. It didn’t take me long to figure he was probably out of bullets. When I saw him run, I was sure of it. Then we made for the horses and rode after Isbel. Pretty soon I saw him running like a deer down the ridge. I yelled and spurred after him. That’s when Antonio left me. But I kept going. I got a shot at Isbel. He ran out of sight. I followed him by the spots of blood on the stones and grass until I couldn’t track him anymore. He must have gone down over the cliffs. He couldn’t have done anything else without me seeing him. I found his rifle, and here it is to prove what I’m saying. I had to go back to climb down off the Rim, and I rode fast down the canyon. He’s somewhere along that west wall, hiding in the brush, badly hurt if I know anything about the color of blood.”

“Wal! ... that beats me holler, too,” ejaculated Colter.

“Wow! ... that surprises me as well,” exclaimed Colter.

“Jim, what’s to be done?” inquired Springer, eagerly. “If we’re sharp we can corral that half-breed. He’s the last of the Isbels.”

“Jim, what should we do?” asked Springer, eagerly. “If we’re clever, we can catch that half-breed. He’s the last of the Isbels.”

“More, pard. He’s the last of the Isbel outfit,” declared Colter. “If y’u can show me blood in his tracks I’ll trail him.”

“More, pard. He's the last of the Isbel crew,” Colter declared. “If you can show me blood in his tracks, I’ll follow him.”

“Y’u can bet I’ll show y’u,” rejoined the other rustler. “But listen! Wouldn’t it be better for us first to see if he crossed the canyon? I reckon he didn’t. But let’s make sure. An’ if he didn’t we’ll have him somewhar along that west canyon wall. He’s not got no gun. He’d never run thet way if he had.... Jim, he’s our meat!”

“Bet I’ll show you,” replied the other rustler. “But listen! Wouldn’t it be smarter for us to see if he crossed the canyon first? I doubt he did. But let’s make sure. And if he didn’t, we’ll find him somewhere along that west canyon wall. He doesn’t have a gun. He’d never run that way if he did... Jim, he’s our target!”

“Shore, he’ll have that knife,” pondered Colter.

“Sure, he’ll have that knife,” thought Colter.

“We needn’t worry about thet,” said the other, positively. “He’s hard hit, I tell y’u. All we got to do is find thet bloody trail again an’ stick to it—goin’ careful. He’s layin’ low like a crippled wolf.”

“We don’t need to worry about that,” said the other firmly. “He’s really hurt, I’m telling you. All we have to do is find that blood trail again and follow it—being careful. He’s hiding out like an injured wolf.”

“Springer, I want the job of finishin’ that half-breed,” hissed Colter. “I’d give ten years of my life to stick a gun down his throat an’ shoot it off.”

“Springer, I want the job of finishing that half-breed,” Colter hissed. “I’d give ten years of my life to stick a gun down his throat and pull the trigger.”

“All right. Let’s rustle. Mebbe y’u’ll not have to give much more ’n ten minnits. Because I tell y’u I can find him. It’d been easy—but, Jim, I reckon I was afraid.”

“All right. Let's get moving. Maybe you won’t have to wait much longer than ten minutes. Because I’m telling you I can find him. It would have been easy—but, Jim, I guess I was scared.”

“Leave your hoss for me an’ go ahaid,” the rustler then said, brusquely. “I’ve a job in the cabin heah.”

“Leave your horse for me and go ahead,” the rustler said abruptly. “I have a job in the cabin here.”

“Haw-haw! ... Wal, Jim, I’ll rustle a bit down the trail an’ wait. No huntin’ Jean Isbel alone—not fer me. I’ve had a queer feelin’ about thet knife he used on Greaves. An’ I reckon y’u’d oughter let thet Jorth hussy alone long enough to—”

“Haw-haw! ... Well, Jim, I’ll head down the trail a bit and wait. No hunting Jean Isbel alone—not for me. I’ve had a strange feeling about that knife he used on Greaves. And I think you should leave that Jorth girl alone long enough to—”

“Springer, I reckon I’ve got to hawg-tie her—” His voice became indistinguishable, and footfalls attested to a slow moving away of the men.

“Springer, I guess I need to tie her up—” His voice faded away, and the sound of footsteps indicated that the men were slowly walking away.

Jean had listened with ears acutely strung to catch every syllable while his gaze rested upon Ellen who stood beside the door. Every line of her body denoted a listening intensity. Her back was toward Jean, so that he could not see her face. And he did not want to see, but could not help seeing her naked shoulders. She put her head out of the door. Suddenly she drew it in quickly and half turned her face, slowly raising her white arm. This was the left one and bore the marks of Colter’s hard fingers.

Jean had listened intently, trying to catch every word while his eyes rested on Ellen, who was standing by the door. Every line of her body showed that she was fully focused. Her back was to Jean, so he couldn’t see her face. He didn’t want to see, but he couldn’t help but notice her bare shoulders. She leaned her head out of the door, then suddenly pulled it back quickly and turned her face slightly, slowly raising her white arm. This was her left arm, which bore the marks of Colter’s rough grip.

She gave a little gasp. Her eyes became large and staring. They were bent on the hand that she had removed from a step on the ladder. On hand and wrist showed a bright-red smear of blood.

She let out a small gasp. Her eyes widened and stared. They were focused on the hand she had taken off a step on the ladder. On her hand and wrist was a bright red smear of blood.

Jean, with a convulsive leap of his heart, realized that he had left his bloody tracks on the ladder as he had climbed. That moment seemed the supremely terrible one of his life.

Jean felt a jolt in his heart as he realized he had left bloody marks on the ladder while climbing. That moment felt like the most terrifying of his life.

Ellen Jorth’s face blanched and her eyes darkened and dilated with exceeding amaze and flashing thought to become fixed with horror. That instant was the one in which her reason connected the blood on the ladder with the escape of Jean Isbel.

Ellen Jorth’s face went pale, and her eyes grew dark and wide with shock, then froze in terror. In that moment, her mind pieced together the blood on the ladder with Jean Isbel’s escape.

One moment she leaned there, still as a stone except for her heaving breast, and then her fixed gaze changed to a swift, dark blaze, comprehending, yet inscrutable, as she flashed it up the ladder to the loft. She could see nothing, yet she knew and Jean knew that she knew he was there. A marvelous transformation passed over her features and even over her form. Jean choked with the ache in his throat. Slowly she put the bloody hand behind her while with the other she still held the torn blouse to her breast.

One moment she leaned there, completely still except for her heavy breathing, and then her steady gaze shifted to a quick, dark intensity—understanding, yet mysterious—as she shot it up the ladder to the loft. She couldn't see anything, but she and Jean both knew that she was aware he was there. A stunning change came over her face and even her body. Jean felt a lump in his throat. Slowly, she tucked the bloody hand behind her while still holding the torn blouse to her chest with the other.

Colter’s slouching, musical step sounded outside. And it might have been a strange breath of infinitely vitalizing and passionate life blown into the well-springs of Ellen Jorth’s being. Isbel had no name for her then. The spirit of a woman had been to him a thing unknown.

Colter’s relaxed, rhythmic walk echoed outside. And it might have been a strange rush of endlessly energizing and passionate life flowing into the core of Ellen Jorth’s existence. Isbel didn’t know what to call her back then. The essence of a woman was something he had never encountered.

She swayed back from the door against the wall in singular, softened poise, as if all the steel had melted out of her body. And as Colter’s tall shadow fell across the threshold Jean Isbel felt himself staring with eyeballs that ached—straining incredulous sight at this woman who in a few seconds had bewildered his senses with her transfiguration. He saw but could not comprehend.

She leaned back from the door against the wall in a unique, graceful way, as if all the strength had melted away from her body. And as Colter’s tall shadow crossed the doorway, Jean Isbel found himself staring with eyes that hurt—straining to believe what he was seeing in this woman who had, in just a few seconds, confused his senses with her transformation. He saw but couldn’t understand.

“Jim—I heard—all Springer told y’u,” she said. The look of her dumfounded Colter and her voice seemed to shake him visibly.

“Jim—I heard—all Springer told you,” she said. The way she looked at Colter, completely shocked, and her voice made him visibly tremble.

“Suppose y’u did. What then?” he demanded, harshly, as he halted with one booted foot over the threshold. Malignant and forceful, he eyed her darkly, doubtfully.

“Suppose you did. What then?” he demanded, harshly, as he stopped with one booted foot over the threshold. Malicious and intense, he looked at her darkly, skeptically.

“I’m afraid,” she whispered.

"I'm scared," she whispered.

“What of? Me?”

"What about me?"

“No. Of—of Jean Isbel. He might kill y’u and—then where would I be?”

“No. Of—of Jean Isbel. He could kill you and—then where would I be?”

“Wal, I’m damned!” ejaculated the rustler. “What’s got into y’u?” He moved to enter, but a sort of fascination bound him.

“Wow, I can't believe this!” exclaimed the rustler. “What’s wrong with you?” He tried to step inside, but something held him back in fascination.

“Jim, I hated y’u a moment ago,” she burst out. “But now—with that Jean Isbel somewhere near—hidin’—watchin’ to kill y’u—an’ maybe me, too—I—I don’t hate y’u any more.... Take me away.”

“Jim, I hated you a moment ago,” she exclaimed. “But now—with that Jean Isbel nearby—hiding—watching to kill you—and maybe me too—I—I don’t hate you anymore… Take me away.”

“Girl, have y’u lost your nerve?” he demanded.

“Girl, have you lost your nerve?” he asked.

“My God! Colter—cain’t y’u see?” she implored. “Won’t y’u take me away?”

“My God! Colter—can’t you see?” she pleaded. “Won’t you take me away?”

“I shore will—presently,” he replied, grimly. “But y’u’ll wait till I’ve shot the lights out of this Isbel.”

“I definitely will—soon,” he replied, grimly. “But you’ll have to wait until I’ve shot the lights out of this Isbel.”

“No!” she cried. “Take me away now.... An’ I’ll give in—I’ll be what y’u—want.... Y’u can do with me—as y’u like.”

“No!” she shouted. “Take me away now... And I’ll give in—I’ll be what you want... You can do whatever you want with me.”

Colter’s lofty frame leaped as if at the release of bursting blood. With a lunge he cleared the threshold to loom over her.

Colter’s tall figure jumped as if he had just been hit with adrenaline. With a quick move, he stepped over the doorway to tower over her.

“Am I out of my haid, or are y’u?” he asked, in low, hoarse voice. His darkly corded face expressed extremest amaze.

“Am I out of my mind, or are you?” he asked in a low, raspy voice. His deeply lined face showed extreme surprise.

“Jim, I mean it,” she whispered, edging an inch nearer him, her white face uplifted, her dark eyes unreadable in their eloquence and mystery. “I’ve no friend but y’u. I’ll be—yours.... I’m lost.... What does it matter? If y’u want me—take me NOW—before I kill myself.”

“Jim, I’m serious,” she whispered, moving an inch closer to him, her pale face tilted up, her dark eyes unreadable in their depth and mystery. “You’re my only friend. I’ll be—yours.... I’m lost.... What difference does it make? If you want me—take me NOW—before I do something really terrible.”

“Ellen Jorth, there’s somethin’ wrong aboot y’u,” he responded. “Did y’u tell the truth—when y’u denied ever bein’ a sweetheart of Simm Bruce?”

“Ellen Jorth, there’s something off about you,” he replied. “Did you tell the truth when you said you were never Simm Bruce’s sweetheart?”

“Yes, I told y’u the truth.”

“Yes, I told you the truth.”

“Ahuh! An’ how do y’u account for layin’ me out with every dirty name y’u could give tongue to?”

“Uh-huh! And how do you explain calling me every dirty name you could think of?”

“Oh, it was temper. I wanted to be let alone.”

“Oh, it was just my temper. I wanted to be left alone.”

“Temper! Wal, I reckon y’u’ve got one,” he retorted, grimly. “An’ I’m not shore y’u’re not crazy or lyin’. An hour ago I couldn’t touch y’u.”

“Temper! Well, I guess you’ve got one,” he replied, sternly. “And I’m not sure you’re not crazy or lying. An hour ago, I couldn’t get near you.”

“Y’u may now—if y’u promise to take me away—at once. This place has got on my nerves. I couldn’t sleep heah with that Isbel hidin’ around. Could y’u?”

“Y’all can go now—if you promise to take me with you—right away. This place is driving me crazy. I couldn’t sleep here with that Isbel lurking around. Could you?”

“Wal, I reckon I’d not sleep very deep.”

"Well, I guess I wouldn't sleep very deeply."

“Then let us go.”

“Let’s go.”

He shook his lean, eagle-like head in slow, doubtful vehemence, and his piercing gaze studied her distrustfully. Yet all the while there was manifest in his strung frame an almost irrepressible violence, held in abeyance to his will.

He shook his lean, eagle-like head slowly and doubtfully, and his piercing gaze watched her with suspicion. Yet beneath it all, there was a clear, almost uncontrollable intensity in his tense body, kept in check by his will.

“That aboot your bein’ so good?” he inquired, with a return of the mocking drawl.

“What's that about you being so good?” he asked, slipping back into a mocking tone.

“Never mind what’s past,” she flashed, with passion dark as his. “I’ve made my offer.”

“Forget about the past,” she shot back, her passion as intense as his. “I’ve made my offer.”

“Shore there’s a lie aboot y’u somewhere,” he muttered, thickly.

“Sure there’s a lie about you somewhere,” he mumbled, heavily.

“Man, could I do more?” she demanded, in scorn.

“Seriously, could I do more?” she asked, with disdain.

“No. But it’s a lie,” he returned. “Y’u’ll get me to take y’u away an’ then fool me—run off—God knows what. Women are all liars.”

“No. But that’s a lie,” he replied. “You’ll get me to take you away and then trick me—run off—who knows what. Women are all liars.”

Manifestly he could not believe in her strange transformation. Memory of her wild and passionate denunciation of him and his kind must have seared even his calloused soul. But the ruthless nature of him had not weakened nor softened in the least as to his intentions. This weather-vane veering of hers bewildered him, obsessed him with its possibilities. He had the look of a man who was divided between love of her and hate, whose love demanded a return, but whose hate required a proof of her abasement. Not proof of surrender, but proof of her shame! The ignominy of him thirsted for its like. He could grind her beauty under his heel, but he could not soften to this feminine inscrutableness.

Clearly, he couldn't accept her strange transformation. The memory of her wild and passionate condemnation of him and his kind must have burned deep into his hardened soul. But his ruthless nature hadn't weakened or softened at all when it came to his intentions. This sudden change in her bewildered him and consumed him with its possibilities. He looked like a man torn between love and hate for her, whose love demanded something in return, but whose hate craved evidence of her humiliation. Not proof of surrender, but proof of her shame! His ignominy thirsted for something similar. He could crush her beauty underfoot, but he couldn't relent in the face of this feminine mystery.

And whatever was the truth of Ellen Jorth in this moment, beyond Colter’s gloomy and stunted intelligence, beyond even the love of Jean Isbel, it was something that held the balance of mastery. She read Colter’s mind. She dropped the torn blouse from her hand and stood there, unashamed, with the wave of her white breast pulsing, eyes black as night and full of hell, her face white, tragic, terrible, yet strangely lovely.

And no matter what the truth was about Ellen Jorth in that moment, beyond Colter's dark and limited understanding, even more than Jean Isbel's love, it was something that held the power of control. She could see into Colter’s thoughts. She let the ripped blouse fall from her hand and stood there, unashamed, with the curve of her white breast rising and falling, her eyes as black as night and full of rage, her face pale, tragic, terrifying, yet somehow beautiful.

“Take me away,” she whispered, stretching one white arm toward him, then the other.

“Take me away,” she whispered, reaching out one pale arm toward him, then the other.

Colter, even as she moved, had leaped with inarticulate cry and radiant face to meet her embrace. But it seemed, just as her left arm flashed up toward his neck, that he saw her bloody hand and wrist. Strange how that checked his ardor—threw up his lean head like that striking bird of prey.

Colter, even while she was moving, had jumped up with an unspoken cry and a glowing face to welcome her embrace. But it seemed that just as her left arm shot up toward his neck, he noticed her bloody hand and wrist. It was strange how that moment stopped his enthusiasm—his lean head shot back like a bird of prey reacting to danger.

“Blood! What the hell!” he ejaculated, and in one sweep he grasped her. “How’d yu do that? Are y’u cut? ... Hold still.”

“Blood! What the hell!” he exclaimed, and in one swift motion, he grabbed her. “How’d you do that? Are you hurt? ... Hold still.”

Ellen could not release her hand.

Ellen couldn't let go of her hand.

“I scratched myself,” she said.

“I scratched myself,” she said.

“Where?... All that blood!” And suddenly he flung her hand back with fierce gesture, and the gleams of his yellow eyes were like the points of leaping flames. They pierced her—read the secret falsity of her. Slowly he stepped backward, guardedly his hand moved to his gun, and his glance circled and swept the interior of the cabin. As if he had the nose of a hound and sight to follow scent, his eyes bent to the dust of the ground before the door. He quivered, grew rigid as stone, and then moved his head with exceeding slowness as if searching through a microscope in the dust—farther to the left—to the foot of the ladder—and up one step—another—a third—all the way up to the loft. Then he whipped out his gun and wheeled to face the girl.

“Where?... All that blood!” Suddenly, he jerked her hand back with a fierce motion, and the glint in his yellow eyes resembled flickering flames. They pierced through her, revealing her hidden deceit. He slowly stepped back, cautiously moving his hand toward his gun, his eyes scanning the inside of the cabin. It was as if he had the nose of a hound, tracking a scent; his gaze fixed on the dust by the door. He trembled, became as rigid as stone, then turned his head with extreme slowness, as if examining something under a microscope in the dust—farther to the left—to the foot of the ladder—up one step—another—a third—right up to the loft. Then he quickly drew his gun and spun to confront the girl.

“Ellen, y’u’ve got your half-breed heah!” he said, with a terrible smile.

“Ellen, you’ve got your mixed-race person here!” he said, with a terrible smile.

She neither moved nor spoke. There was a suggestion of collapse, but it was only a change where the alluring softness of her hardened into a strange, rapt glow. And in it seemed the same mastery that had characterized her former aspect. Herein the treachery of her was revealed. She had known what she meant to do in any case.

She didn't move or say anything. There was a hint of giving in, but it was just a shift where her appealing softness turned into a strange, intense glow. In that glow was the same control that had marked her previous demeanor. Here, her deceit was exposed. She had known exactly what she wanted to do all along.

Colter, standing at the door, reached a long arm toward the ladder, where he laid his hand on a rung. Taking it away he held it palm outward for her to see the dark splotch of blood.

Colter, standing by the door, stretched out his long arm toward the ladder and placed his hand on a rung. When he pulled it back, he held it palm out for her to see the dark stain of blood.

“See?”

"Got it?"

“Yes, I see,” she said, ringingly.

“Yeah, I get it,” she replied, clearly.

Passion wrenched him, transformed him. “All that—aboot leavin’ heah—with me—aboot givin’ in—was a lie!”

Passion tore him apart, changed him completely. “All that—about leaving here—with me—about giving in—was a lie!”

“No, Colter. It was the truth. I’ll go—yet—now—if y’u’ll spare—HIM!” She whispered the last word and made a slight movement of her hand toward the loft. “Girl!” he exploded, incredulously. “Y’u love this half-breed—this ISBEL! ... Y’u LOVE him!”

“No, Colter. It’s the truth. I’ll go—right now—if you’ll spare—HIM!” She whispered the last word and made a small gesture towards the loft. “Girl!” he shouted, incredulously. “You love this half-breed—this ISBEL! ... You LOVE him!”

“With all my heart! ... Thank God! It has been my glory.... It might have been my salvation.... But now I’ll go to hell with y’u—if y’u’ll spare him.”

“With all my heart! ... Thank God! It has been my honor.... It could have been my salvation.... But now I’ll go to hell with you—if you’ll spare him.”

“Damn my soul!” rasped out the rustler, as if something of respect was wrung from that sordid deep of him. “Y’u—y’u woman! ... Jorth will turn over in his grave. He’d rise out of his grave if this Isbel got y’u.”

“Damn my soul!” the rustler rasped, as if some respect was forced from the depths of him. “You— you woman! ... Jorth will turn in his grave. He’d get up from his grave if this Isbel got you.”

“Hurry! Hurry!” implored Ellen. “Springer may come back. I think I heard a call.”

“Hurry! Hurry!” Ellen urged. “Springer might come back. I think I heard a call.”

“Wal, Ellen Jorth, I’ll not spare Isbel—nor y’u,” he returned, with dark and meaning leer, as he turned to ascend the ladder.

“Well, Ellen Jorth, I won’t hold back on Isbel—or you,” he replied, with a dark and significant look, as he turned to climb the ladder.

Jean Isbel, too, had reached the climax of his suspense. Gathering all his muscles in a knot he prepared to leap upon Colter as he mounted the ladder. But, Ellen Jorth screamed piercingly and snatched her rifle from its resting place and, cocking it, she held it forward and low.

Jean Isbel had also reached the peak of his tension. Tensing all his muscles, he got ready to jump on Colter as he climbed the ladder. But Ellen Jorth screamed loudly, grabbed her rifle from where it was resting, and, cocking it, held it out in front of her, pointed low.

“COLTER!”

"Colter!"

Her scream and his uttered name stiffened him.

Her scream and the sound of his name made him freeze.

“Y’u will spare Jean Isbel!” she rang out. “Drop that gun-drop it!”

“Let Jean Isbel go!” she shouted. “Put that gun down—drop it!”

“Shore, Ellen.... Easy now. Remember your temper.... I’ll let Isbel off,” he panted, huskily, and all his body sank quiveringly to a crouch.

“Shore, Ellen.... Easy now. Remember your temper.... I’ll let Isbel off,” he panted, huskily, and all his body sank quiveringly to a crouch.

“Drop your gun! Don’t turn round.... Colter!—I’LL KILL Y’U!”

“Drop your gun! Don’t turn around.... Colter!—I’LL KILL YOU!”

But even then he failed to divine the meaning and the spirit of her.

But even then he couldn't understand her meaning or spirit.

“Aw, now, Ellen,” he entreated, in louder, huskier tones, and as if dragged by fatal doubt of her still, he began to turn.

“Aw, come on, Ellen,” he pleaded, in a louder, rougher voice, as if pulled by a deep uncertainty about her silence, and he started to turn away.

Crash! The rifle emptied its contents in Colter’s breast. All his body sprang up. He dropped the gun. Both hands fluttered toward her. And an awful surprise flashed over his face.

Crash! The rifle fired all its shots into Colter's chest. His whole body jerked up. He dropped the gun. Both hands reached out toward her. And a look of horror washed over his face.

“So—help—me—God!” he whispered, with blood thick in his voice. Then darkly, as one groping, he reached for her with shaking hands. “Y’u—y’u white-throated hussy!... I’ll ...”

“So—help—me—God!” he whispered, his voice thick with emotion. Then, in a dark manner, as if searching for something, he reached for her with trembling hands. “You— you white-throated hussy!... I’ll ...”

He grasped the quivering rifle barrel. Crash! She shot him again. As he swayed over her and fell she had to leap aside, and his clutching hand tore the rifle from her grasp. Then in convulsion he writhed, to heave on his back, and stretch out—a ghastly spectacle. Ellen backed away from it, her white arms wide, a slow horror blotting out the passion of her face.

He grabbed the shaking rifle barrel. Crash! She shot him again. As he leaned over her and fell, she had to jump aside, and his grabbing hand yanked the rifle from her grip. Then, in a convulsion, he twisted, rolled onto his back, and stretched out—a horrifying sight. Ellen stepped back from it, her pale arms wide, a slow dread replacing the passion on her face.

Then from without came a shrill call and the sound of rapid footsteps. Ellen leaned against the wall, staring still at Colter. “Hey, Jim—what’s the shootin’?” called Springer, breathlessly.

Then from outside came a sharp shout and the sound of quick footsteps. Ellen leaned against the wall, still staring at Colter. “Hey, Jim—what's going on?” called Springer, out of breath.

As his form darkened the doorway Jean once again gathered all his muscular force for a tremendous spring.

As his figure filled the doorway, Jean once again mustered all his strength for a powerful leap.

Springer saw the girl first and he appeared thunderstruck. His jaw dropped. He needed not the white gleam of her person to transfix him. Her eyes did that and they were riveted in unutterable horror upon something on the ground. Thus instinctively directed, Springer espied Colter.

Springer noticed the girl first and looked stunned. His jaw dropped. He didn't need the bright shine of her presence to hold him in place. Her eyes did that, fixed in indescribable horror at something on the ground. Following her gaze, Springer spotted Colter.

“Y’u—y’u shot him!” he shrieked. “What for—y’u hussy? ... Ellen Jorth, if y’u’ve killed him, I’ll...”

“Y-you shot him!” he screamed. “What for—you bimbo? ... Ellen Jorth, if you’ve killed him, I’ll...”

He strode toward where Colter lay.

He walked over to where Colter was lying.

Then Jean, rising silently, took a step and like a tiger he launched himself into the air, down upon the rustler. Even as he leaped Springer gave a quick, upward look. And he cried out. Jean’s moccasined feet struck him squarely and sent him staggering into the wall, where his head hit hard. Jean fell, but bounded up as the half-stunned Springer drew his gun. Then Jean lunged forward with a single sweep of his arm—and looked no more.

Then Jean, getting up quietly, took a step and, like a tiger, sprang into the air, landing on the rustler. Just as he jumped, Springer glanced up quickly. He shouted out. Jean’s moccasin-clad feet hit him squarely and knocked him back against the wall, where his head struck hard. Jean fell but quickly got back up as the dazed Springer pulled out his gun. Then Jean rushed forward with a swift motion of his arm—and didn’t look back.

Ellen ran swaying out of the door, and, once clear of the threshold, she tottered out on the grass, to sink to her knees. The bright, golden sunlight gleamed upon her white shoulders and arms. Jean had one foot out of the door when he saw her and he whirled back to get her blouse. But Springer had fallen upon it. Snatching up a blanket, Jean ran out.

Ellen rushed out the door, and once she was clear of the threshold, she staggered onto the grass, sinking to her knees. The bright, golden sunlight shone on her bare shoulders and arms. Jean had one foot out the door when he spotted her and quickly turned back to grab her blouse. But Springer had already fallen on it. Grabbing a blanket, Jean ran outside.

“Ellen! Ellen! Ellen!” he cried. “It’s over!” And reaching her, he tried to wrap her in the blanket.

“Ellen! Ellen! Ellen!” he shouted. “It’s over!” And as he got to her, he tried to wrap her in the blanket.

She wildly clutched his knees. Jean was conscious only of her white, agonized face and the dark eyes with their look of terrible strain.

She gripped his knees tightly. Jean could only focus on her pale, pained face and the dark eyes filled with intense strain.

“Did y’u—did y’u...” she whispered.

“Did you—did you...” she whispered.

“Yes—it’s over,” he said, gravely. “Ellen, the Isbel-Jorth feud is ended.”

“Yes—it’s over,” he said seriously. “Ellen, the Isbel-Jorth feud is done.”

“Oh, thank—God!” she cried, in breaking voice. “Jean—y’u are wounded... the blood on the step!”

“Oh, thank God!” she cried, her voice trembling. “Jean—you're wounded... the blood on the step!”

“My arm. See. It’s not bad.... Ellen, let me wrap this round you.” Folding the blanket around her shoulders, he held it there and entreated her to get up. But she only clung the closer. She hid her face on his knees. Long shudders rippled over her, shaking the blanket, shaking Jean’s hands. Distraught, he did not know what to do. And his own heart was bursting.

“My arm. See? It’s not bad... Ellen, let me wrap this around you.” He folded the blanket over her shoulders, holding it in place as he urged her to get up. But she just held on tighter. She buried her face in his knees. Long shudders ran through her, shaking the blanket and Jean's hands. Distraught, he didn’t know what to do. His own heart felt like it was about to break.

“Ellen, you must not kneel—there—that way,” he implored.

“Ellen, you can’t kneel like that,” he begged.

“Jean! Jean!” she moaned, and clung the tighter.

“Jean! Jean!” she cried, holding on tighter.

He tried to lift her up, but she was a dead weight, and with that hold on him seemed anchored at his feet.

He tried to lift her up, but she felt like dead weight, and with that grip on him, she seemed stuck to his feet.

“I killed Colter,” she gasped. “I HAD to—kill him! ... I offered—to fling myself away....”

“I killed Colter,” she gasped. “I HAD to—kill him! ... I offered—to fling myself away....”

“For me!” he cried, poignantly. “Oh, Ellen! Ellen! the world has come to an end! ... Hush! don’t keep sayin’ that. Of course you killed him. You saved my life. For I’d never have let you go off with him .... Yes, you killed him.... You’re a Jorth an’ I’m an Isbel ... We’ve blood on our hands—both of us—I for you an’ you for me!”

“For me!” he exclaimed, emotionally. “Oh, Ellen! Ellen! It's the end of the world! ... Hush! Stop saying that. Of course you killed him. You saved my life. Because I would never have let you go off with him .... Yes, you killed him.... You’re a Jorth and I’m an Isbel ... We’ve got blood on our hands—both of us—I for you and you for me!”

His voice of entreaty and sadness strengthened her and she raised her white face, loosening her clasp to lean back and look up. Tragic, sweet, despairing, the loveliness of her—the significance of her there on her knees—thrilled him to his soul.

His pleading and sorrowful voice gave her strength, and she lifted her pale face, releasing her grip to lean back and look up. Tragic, sweet, and hopeless, her beauty—the meaning of her being there on her knees—moved him deeply.

“Blood on my hands!” she whispered. “Yes. It was awful—killing him.... But—all I care for in this world is for your forgiveness—and your faith that saved my soul!”

“Blood on my hands!” she whispered. “Yes. It was terrible—killing him.... But—all I care about in this world is your forgiveness—and your faith that saved my soul!”

“Child, there’s nothin’ to forgive,” he responded. “Nothin’... Please, Ellen...”

“Child, there’s nothing to forgive,” he replied. “Nothing... Please, Ellen...”

“I lied to y’u!” she cried. “I lied to y’u!”

“I lied to you!” she cried. “I lied to you!”

“Ellen, listen—darlin’.” And the tender epithet brought her head and arms back close-pressed to him. “I know—now,” he faltered on. “I found out to-day what I believed. An’ I swear to God—by the memory of my dead mother—down in my heart I never, never, never believed what they—what y’u tried to make me believe. NEVER!”

“Ellen, listen—sweetheart.” And the gentle nickname pulled her head and arms back close to him. “I know—now,” he hesitated. “I found out today what I actually believed. And I swear to God—by the memory of my deceased mother—deep down in my heart, I never, never, never believed what they—what you tried to make me believe. NEVER!”

“Jean—I love y’u—love y’u—love y’u!” she breathed with exquisite, passionate sweetness. Her dark eyes burned up into his.

“Jean—I love you—I love you—I love you!” she breathed with exquisite, passionate sweetness. Her dark eyes burned up into his.

“Ellen, I can’t lift you up,” he said, in trembling eagerness, signifying his crippled arm. “But I can kneel with you! ...”

“Ellen, I can’t lift you up,” he said, with eager hesitation, pointing to his injured arm. “But I can kneel with you! ...”


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!